A CABINET OF CHOICE JEWELS OR, A Box of precious Ointment. Being a plain Discovery of, or, what men are worth for Eternity, and how 'tis like to go with them in another World. Here is also a clear and large Discovery of the several rounds in Jacob's Ladder, that no Hypocrite under Heaven can climb up to. Here are also such closely, piercing, distinguishing and discovering evidences as will reach and suit those Christians who are highest in Grace and spiritual Enjoyments; and here are many Evidences, which are suited to the Capacities and Experiences of the weakest Christians in Christ's School: And here Christians may see as in a Glass, what a sober Use and Improvement they ought to make of their evidences for Heaven; and how in the use of their gracious evidences they ought to live. First, upon the free grace of God. Secondly, upon the Mediatory righteousness of Christ. Thirdly, upon the Covenant of Grace: With several other Points of grand Importance, etc. By Thomas Brooks, formerly Preacher of the Gospel at St. Margaret's, New-Fishstreet. Brethren, give diligence to make your calling and election sure, 2 Pet. 1.10. Examine yourselves whether ye be in the faith; prove your own selves, know ye not your own selves, how that Jesus Christ is in you except ye be reprobates? Or, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, unapproved or rejected. Omnis anima est aut sponsa Christi, aut adultera Diaboli. Austin. London, Printed and are to be sold by John Hancock at the first Shop in Popes-Head-Alley in Cornhill, at the sign of the three Bibles, or at his Shop in Bishops-Gate-Street, near great St. Hellins, 1669. To the Right Worshipful, Sir John Frederick Knight, and the Lady Mary Frederick his pious Consort. To Mr. Nathaniel Herne, and Mrs. Judith his virtuous Wife. All confluence of blessings, both for this Life and for that which is to come, from the Father of Mercies and God of all Consolations. Honoured and Beloved in our Lord Jesus, THough I crowd your Names together, yet I own more than an Epistle to each of your Names; but the Lo●d having made you near and dear one to another, more ways than one, I take the boldness to present this Treatise to you jointly. Here is nothing in this Book that relates to the Government of Church or State: The design of this Treatise is to show what men are worth for Eternity, and how it is like to go with them in another World. Granctensis tells of a woman that was so affected with souls miscarryings, that she besought God to stop up the passage into hell with her soul and body, that none might have entrance. O anima! Dei insignita imagine, desponsata fide, donata spiritu, etc. Bern. O divine soul! invested with the image of God, espoused to him by faith, etc. There are none of the sons of men, but bear about with them precious and immortal souls, that are more worth than ten thousand thousand worlds; if the soul be safe all is safe, if that be well all is well, if that be lost all is lost. The first great work that men are to attend in this World, is the eternal safety and security of their souls; the next great work is to know, to be assured, that it shall go well with their souls for ever. And these are the main things that are aimed at in this Discourse. The soul is the better and more noble part of man; upon the soul the Image of God is most fairly stamped; the soul is first converted, and the soul shall be first and most glorified; the soul is that spiritual and immortal substance that is capable of union with God, and of communion with God, and of an eternal fruition of God. Plato though a Heathen, could say, That he thought the soul to be made all of eternity, and that the putting the soul into the body, was a sign of great wrath from God. Each living corpse must yield at last to death, Pindarus. And every life must lose his vital breath. The soul of man that only lives on high, And is an image of Eternity. The Romans, when their Emperors and great Ones died, and their bodies were buried, they caused an Eagle to mount on high, thereby to signify the souls immortality and ascent. He gave good counsel, who said, Play not the Courtier with your soul; the Courtier doth all things late, he rises late, and dines late, and sups late, and reputes late. A Scythian Captain having for a draught of water delivered up his City, cried out, Quid perdidi, quid prodidi? What have I lost, what have I betrayed? So many at last will cry out, What have I lost, what have I betrayed? I have lost God, and Christ, and Heaven, and have betrayed my precious and immortal soul into the hands of divine Justice, and into the hands of Satan. Who these men are that will at last thus cry out, this Treatise does discover. I have read that there was a time when the Romans did wear jewels on their shoes: Most men in this day do worse, for they trample that matchless jewel of their souls under feet; and who these are, this Treatise does discover. One well observes, Chrysost. That whereas God hath given many other things double, two eyes to see with, two ears to hear with, two hands to work with, and two feet to walk with, to the intent that the failing of the one might be supplied by the other; but he hath given us but one soul, and if that be lost, hast thou (saith he) another soul to give in recompense for it? Now, who those are whose souls are in a safe estate, and who those are whose souls are in danger of being lost for ever, this Treatise does plainly and fully discover. Psal. 15. Psal. 144.15. To describe to the life who that man is that is truly happy in this world, and that shall be blest for ever in the other world, is the work of this ensuing Treatise. The grace of the Cov●nant in us is a sure evidence of Gods entering into the Covenant of grace with us. To be in a gracious state is true happiness, but to know ourselves to be in such a state, is the top of our happiness in this world. A man may have grace, and yet (for a time) not know it. 1. Joh. 5.13. The child lives in the womb but does not know it. A man may be in a gracious state, and yet not see it; Psal. 77. Psal. 88 he may have a saving work of God upon his soul, and yet not discern it; he may have the root of the matter in him, and yet not be able to evidence it. Now to help such poor hearts to a right understanding of their spiritual condition, and that they may see and know what they are worth for another world, and so go to their graves in joy and peace, I have sent this Treatise abroad into the world. Will you give me leave to say, First, Some men of name in their day have laid down such things for evidences or characters of grace, which being weighed in the balance of the Sanctuary will be found too light. But here a mantle of love may be of more use than a lamp; and therefore, Secondly, Many, yea very many there are, whose graces are very weak, and much buried under the earth and ashes of many fears, doubts, scruples, strong passions, prevailing corruptions, and diabolical suggestions, who would give as many worlds as there be men in the world (had they so many in their hands to give) to know that they have grace, and that their spiritual estate is good, and that they shall be happy for ever. Now, this Treatise is fitted up for the service of these poor hearts; for the weakest Christians may turn to many clear and well-bottomed evidences in this Treatise, and throw the Gauntlet to Satan, and bid him prove if he can that ever any profane person or cunning hypocrite under heaven had such evidences, or such fair certificates to show for heaven, which he has to show. The generality of Christians are weak, they are rather Dwarves than Giants, 1 Pet. 2.2, 3. 1 John 2.12, 13, 14. Isa. 40.11. they are rather bruised Reeds than tall Cedars, they are rather Babes than men, Lambs than sheep, etc. Now, for the service of their souls, I have been willing to send this Treatise into the world; for this Treatise may speak to them when I may not, yea when I cannot, yea which is more, when I am not. Famous Mr. Dod would frequently say, He cared not where he was if he could but answer these two Questions. 1. Who am I? And, 2. What do I hear; am I a child of God, and am I in my way? But, Thirdly, Some there are who are so excessively and immoderately taken up with their Signs, Marks and Evidences of grace, and of their gracious state, etc. that Christ is too much neglected, Where Christ was born, they were all so taken up with their guests, that he was not minded nor regarded; when others lay in stately rooms, he must be laid in a manger. Luke 2.7. and more rarely minded by them, their hearts don't run out so freely, so fully, so strongly, so frequently, so delightfully towards Christ as they should do, nor as they would do, if they were not too inordinately taken up with their Marks and Signs. Now for the rectifying of these mistakes, and the cure of these spiritual maladies, this Treatise is sent into the world; we may and aught to make a sober use of characters and evidences of our gracious estates, to support, comfort, and encourage us in our way to heaven, but still in subordination to Christ, and to the fresh and frequent exercises of faith upon the person, blood, and righteousness of Jesus. But O! how few Christians are there that are skilled in this Work of Works, this Art of Arts, this Mystery of Mysteries. But, Fourthly, Some there are who in these days are given up to Enthusiastical Fancies, strange Raptures, Revelations, and to the sad delusions of their own hearts, crying down with all their might all discoveries of Believers spiritual estates by Scripture Characters, 2 Thes. 2.9, 10, 11. Marks and Signs of Sanctification, as carnal, and low, and all this under fair pretences of exalting Christ, and maintaining the honour of his Righteousness and Freegrace, and of denying ourselves, and our own righteousness. Though sanctification be a branch of the Covenant of grace as well as Justification, Jer. 33.8. Ezek. 36.25, 26, 27. yet there are a sort of men in the world, that would not have Christians to rejoice in their sanctification, under a pretence of reflecting dishonour upon their free justification by Christ. There are many who place all their Religion in opinions, in brainsick notions, in airy speculations, in acquaint disputations, in immediate Revelations, and in their warm zeal, for this or that form of worship. Now, that these may be recovered, and healed, and prevented from doing further mischief in the world, I have at this time put to a helping hand. But, Fifthly, No man can tell what is in the breasts, in the womb of divine Providence; The Brathmanni had their graves before their doors. The Sybarites at Banquets had a death's head delivered from hand to hand by every guest at the Table. The Egyptians in the midst of their Feasts, used to have the Anatomy of a dead man set before them, as a memorandum to the guests of their mortality. The poor Heathen could say, that the whole life of man should be meditatio mortis, a meditation of death. Dwell upon that, Deut. 32.29. Prov. 27, 1. no man can tell what a a day, a night, an hour, may bring forth. Who can sum up the many possible deaths that are still lurking in his own bowels, or the innumerable hosts of external dangers which beleaguer him on every side? or how many invisible arrows fly about his ears continually? and how soon he may have his mortal wound given him by one of them, who can tell? Now, how sad would it be for a man to have a summons to appear before God in that other world, before his heart and life is changed, and his evidences for heaven cleared up to him? The life of man is but a shadow, a post, a span, a vapour, a flower, etc. Though there is but one way to come into the world, yet there are many thousand ways to be sent out of the world; and this should bespeak every Christian to have his evidences for heaven always ready and at hand, yea in his hand as well as in his heart, and then he will find it an easy thing to die. The King of terrors will then be the King of desires to him, and he will then travel to glory under a spirit of joy and triumph. We carry about in our bodies the matter of a thousand deaths, and may die a thousand several ways several hours: As many senses, as many members, nay as many pores as there are in the body, so many windows there are for death to enter in at. Death needs not spend all his arrows upon us, a Worm, a Gnat, a Fly, a Hair, a stone of a Raisin, a kernel of a Grape, the fall of a Horse, the stumble of a Foot, the prick of a Pin, the pairing of a Nail, the cutting one of a Corn; all these have been to others, and any of them may be to us, the means of our death within the space of a few days, nay of a few hours. Don't it therefore highly concern us to have our evidences for heaven cleared, sealed, shining and at hand. Naturalists tell us, That if a man sees a Cockatrice first, the Cockatrice dieth; but if the Cockatrice sees a man first, the man dies. Certainly, if we so see death first as to prepare for it, as to get our evidences for heaven ready, we shall kill it; but if death sees us first, and arrests us first before we are prepared, and before our evidences for heaven are cleared, it will kill us everlastingly, it will kill us eternally. Time traveleth with God's decrees, and in their season brings them forth; but little doth any man know what is in the womb of to morrow, till God hath signified his will by the event. Boast not thyself of to morrow, for thou knowest not what a day may bring forth. That man that knows what himself intends to bring forth, does not know what the day will bring forth; the next day is not so near the former in time, as it may be remote from it in the effects of it. Seneca could say, Seneca, Epist. 102. Nihil est miserius dubitatione venientium, quo evadunt; There is nothing more miserable than the doubtfulness of things to come, to what they will come. Providence in this life is the Map of changes, Ezek. 1.16. the picture of mutability. Who can sum up the strange circumferences, and rare circuits and labyrinths of providence. Providence is as a wheel in the midst of a wheel, whose motion, and work, and end in working, is not discerned by every common eye. Three dreadful judgements God hath lately visited us with, viz. Sword, Pestilence and Fire; but who reputes? who smites upon his thigh? Isa 1.16, 17. Psal. 106.23. who finds out the plague of his own heart? who says, what have I done? who ceases from doing evil? who learns to do well? who turns to the most High? who lays hold on everlasting strength? who makes peace with God? who throws himself into the gap? etc. Are not multitudes grown much worse after judgements than they were before? Don't they bid higher defiance to heaven than ever? and therefore, who can tell what further controversy God may have with such a people, especially considering that terrible Scripture, Levit. 26.14. to the 34. vers. with scores of others that sound that way. Were our forefathers alive, how sadly would they blush to see such a horrid degenerate posterity as is to be found in the midst of us? How is our forefather's hospitality converted into riot and luxury, their frugality into pride and prodigality, their simplicity into subtlety, their sincerity into hypocrisy, their charity into cruelty, their chastity into chambering and wantonness, their sobriety into drunkenness, their plain-dealing into dissembling, and their works of compassion into works of oppression, etc. And may we not fear, that even for these things God may once more visit us. The Nations are angry, and we are low in their eyes; our enemies are not asleep abroad, and are not we too secure at home? and what further conclusions may be in the world, who can divine? I point at these things only to provoke all those into whose hands this Treatise may fall, to make sure work for another world, to make sure their evidences for heaven, and to keep their evidences for life and glory always sparkling and shining, and then I am sure the worst of calamities, the sorest of judgements, shall but translate them from earth to heaven, from a wilderness to a paradise, from misery to glory, & from mixed and mutable enjoyments, to the pure & everlasting enjoyments of God, Christ, the Angels and the spirits of just men made perfect, Heb. 12, 22, 23, 24. But, Sixthly and lastly, In this Treatise, as in a Glass, all sorts of profane persons, and all sorts of self-flatterers, and all sorts of hypocrites may see, 1. That their present state and condition is not so safe, nor yet so happy as they judge it to be. Again, in this Treatise, as in a Glass, all sorts of profane persons, and all sorts of self-flatterers, and all sorts of hypocrites may see, 2. The happy and blessed state of the people of God, against whom their spirits rise and swell, etc. Again, in this Treatise, as in a Glass, all sorts of profane persons, and all sorts of self-flatterers, and all sorts of Hypocrites may see, 3. What those things are that they need, and that they ought to beg of God. Again, in this Treatise, as in a Glass, all sorts of profane persons, and all sorts of self-flatterers, and all sorts of hypocrites may see, 4. What those things are, without which they can neither be happy here nor hereafter. Now, were there no other Reasons for my sending forth this Treatise into the world, this alone might justify me. But Honoured and Beloved, before I close up this Epistle, give me leave to say, That there are two sorts of men that my self, and all the world, are bound, 1. Highly to prise. 2. Cordially to love. And, 3. Greatly to honour above all other men in the world, and they are these: First, men of public spirits. Secondly, men of charitable spirits, men of merciful spirits, men of tender and compassionate spirits. First, Men of public spirits, my self and all others are bound, 1. Highly to prise. 2. Cordially to love. And, 3. Greatly to honour above all other men in the world, and that, First, Because a public spirited man is a common good, a common blessing; all in the Family, all in the Court, all in the City, all in the Country, far the better for that Christians sake that is of a public spirit. All in Laban's family did far the better for Jacob's sake; Gen. 30.27. & 19.21, 22, 23, 24. & 41. etc. and all in the City of Zoar did far the better for Lot's sake, and all Pharoah's Court, and the whole Country of Egypt did far the better for Joseph's sake. Sodom was safe whilst Lot was in it; Eliah was a man of a public spirit, 2 King. 2.12. and he was the chariots and horsemen of Israel; Moses was a man of a public spirit, and he often diverted ruining judgements from falling upon Israel. Psal. 106.23. Num. 16.46.49. Phineas was a man of a public spirit, and he takes up his Censer and stands between the living and the dead, Though I do not, I dare not say, that every public spirit is a gracious spirit, yet this I must say, that every gracious spirit is a public spirit. and the Plague was stayed. Men of public spirits are public mercies, public blessings; a man of a public spirit is (〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉) a public, diffusive blessing in the place where he lives; men of public spirits are the true Atlases both of Church and State, they are the Pillars on whom all do rest, the Props on whom all do lean; do but overturn these Pillars, and all will fall about your ears, as the house did about the Philistines when Samson shook it; wrack but these, and Kingdoms, and Commonwealths shall be quickly wracked themselves. When Metellus heard of the death of Scipio Africanus a man of a public spirit, he ran out into the Marketplace and cried out, O Citizens, come forth and consult what is to be done, for the walls of your City are fallen down. But, Secondly, Because public spirited Christians are most like to Christ, and to the choicest and most excellent Saints. John 17. Heb. 2. Isa. 63.3. Rom. 8.30, 31, 32, 33. Heb. 7.25. John 14.1, 2, 3, 4. Acts 10.38. Phil. 2.4, 5. Christ made himself poor to make others rich, but men of narrow souls make others poor to make themselves rich. 1 Cor. 6.8. 2 Cor. 8.9. Christ left his Father's bosom for a public good, he assumed our nature for a public good, he trod the wine-press of his Father's wrath for a public good, he died for a public good, and he risen for a public good, he ascended to heaven for a public good, and he continues in heaven for a public good; when he was in this world he went up and down doing good, he healed others but was hurt himself, he fed and filled others but was hungry himself; Christ was all for a public good. Look not every man on his own things, but every man also on the things of others. Let this mind be in you which was also in Christ Jesus. Though self be a great stickler, yet he that will write after Christ's Copy, must neglect himself to serve others. That Christian acts most like Christ, who prefers the public interest before his own private interest. The Stars have their brightness not for themselves, but for the use of others; and the Sun hath her shining light, but not for herself, but for others. In the natural body every member is diffusive, the eye conveys the light, the head spirits the liver, blood, etc. And why should it not be so in the politic body also? And as Christ, so Moses was a man of a public spirit, when God made a very fair proffer to him, that he would make him a great Nation, Exod. 32.10, 11, 12. So Num. 14 4, 10, 13, 14. if he would but stand Neuter till he had revenged himself upon a rebellious people; but Moses had no mind to preferment upon those terms, he preferred the public good before his own honour, profit and advancement, and therefore follows God closely, and never gives over pleading for them till he had procured their pardon, Ver. 13.14. and turned away the wrath of God from them. So Joshua was a man of a public spirit. Josh. 19.49. When they had made an end of dividing the Land for inheritance by their coast, the children of Israel gave an inheritance to Joshua the son of Nun among them. Joshua might have served himself first, and he might have taken as large an Inheritance as he had pleased, but he preferred the good of the people before his own; he who had divided the Land to others, was himself contented with very mean preferment, for his inheritance was among the barren Mountains, Hierom. as some observe. So Jehoiada was a man of a public spirit; 2 Chron. 24.16 you read that they buried him in the City of David among the Kings, because he had done good in Israel, both towards God and towards his house. Men of public spirits shall be honoured both living and dying. Neh. 5.14, 15. So Nehemiah was a man of a brave public spirit, he holds on twelve years together in public work upon his own cost and charge. Esther 4.16. So Esther was one of a public spirit, and therefore she takes her life in her hand, and goes in to the King with an If I perish, I perish. And so Mordecai was a man of a public spirit. Mordecai the Jew was next unto King Ahashuerus, and great among the Jews, Esth. 10.3. and arcepted of the multitude of his brethren, seeking the wealth of his people, and speaking peace to all his seed. Mordecai was more mindful and careful of his people's peace, prosperity and welfare, than he was of his own concernments. And so D●vid was a man of a public spirit, for after he had served his own generation he fell asleep. Acts 13.36. The spirit of the Lord has put this upon record for David's honour and our imitation. David's soul did not live in a narrow Bowling-alley, he was not a man of so poor, low and narrow a spirit, as to make himself the centre of his designs and actions. David was a man of a generous, noble spirit, the public good lay nearest his heart, and to serve his generation he was willing to spend and be spent. The public spirited man of all men is most like to Christ, and to those Worthies who were once glorious on earth, and are now triumphing in heaven. The Apostle speaks of some who are lovers of themselves, 2 Tim. 3.2. and who are seekers of themselves, Phil. 2.21. and who are minders of themselves, Phil. 3.19. They mind earthly things. Of all these we may say as God speaks of Israel, Israel is an empty vine, Hos. 10.1. he brings forth fruit unto himself; yea of all these we may say, that light is not more contrary to darkness, heaven to hell, glory to shame, than these are contrary to Christ, and to those precious servants of his who are crowned and chronicled in the blessed Scriptures for their public spiritedness and public usefulness in the world. But, Thirdly, Men of public spirits are rare men, excellent men, of all men they most resemble God, Mat. 5.45. Vir bonus magis aliis prodest quam sibi. who does good to all; there are none so excellent and truly honourable as these. All the Instances cited to make good the second particular evidences this, to which I may add that of Daniel, who was a man of a public spirit, and of that excellent spirit, as that he carried the Bell from all the Precedents and Princes of Darius his Court. Dan. 6.3. Then this Daniel was preferred above the Precedents and Princes, because an excellent spirit was in him, and the King thought to set him over the whole Realm. I might give you many other Instances from the Patriarches and Apostles, but what need that, when blind nature speaks so loud in the case. Men of public spirits have been very excellent and honourable in the very eyes of all the Heathen. Take a few Instances among the many hundreds that might be produced. M. Attilius Regulus was a man of that public spirit, In Augustine's account he was the gallantest of all the old Romans. that he valued neither State nor Life to serve his Country and preserve his own honour; he got very much for his Country, but little for himself, seven Acres of Land being all that ever he had; he was a man highly honoured among the Romans. Titus Vespasian was a man of a public spirit, he governed so sweetly, moderately and prudently, that he was generally termed Delitiae humani generis, the delight of mankind; he was greatly honoured whilst he lived, and when he died the people wept so bitterly for him, as if they had been resolved to have wept out their yes. Curius Dentalus was a man of a public spirit, and very victorious; when his Country was settled, he was found at dinner feeding hard on a few parched Pease, when the Ambassadors were sent to tender him a great sum of gold, which he refused, saying, He had rather be at his pease, while they whom he ruled over had the gold, than he to have the gold and they the Pease When some unworthy persons once accused him for keeping back somewhat from the public, he brought forth a wooden platter, and did swear, That it was all he had reserved to himself of the spoils. He was had in great honour and reputation among the people. That Pilot dies nobly (saith Seneca) who perisheth in the storm with the Helm in his hand. Aristides was a man of a public spirit; after the overthrow of the Persians, when there was a Mass of treasure, gold, silver, and rich apparel, he would not touch it, nor take so much as one farthing of it to himself, he was in high esteem among the people. Tully in his Book of Scipio's dream, brings in a dead Father (now in heaven as he supposed) encouraging his son to do service for his Country (wherein himself had given him a most noble and notable example) upon a very high consideration, viz. There is a most sure and certain place in heaven for every man that shall procure the weal of his Country, either by freeing it from peril, or increasing the happiness of it any way. To hear a Gentile tell of heaven, as of a thing certain; to hear him tell of certain places provided there for those that should do virtuously, to have the service of ones Country pressed on his soul with so celestial an argument, what matter of wonder and admiration is it! Another speaking of men of public spirits, saith, Such ennobled spirits, they are the dear offspring, Cicero. the delight and care of God; a divine race it is, from the heavens they come down to us, and to the heavens again when ever they take their leaves of us, shall they triumphantly return. A Catiline says the Satirist) a trouble of mankind grows as the weed, Jur. almost every where; but a Brutus, a worthy Patriot, that bears the welfare of others, the true prosperity of his native Land upon his heart, and sets his eyes perpetually thereon for good; such an one is a rare jewel, worthy of all honour and embraces where ever he is found. Men of public spirits of all men, 1 Sam. 2.30. do most exalt the Lord, and honour the Lord, and therefore the Lord first or last will most exalt them and honour them. In all the Ages of the world, and in all the Nations of the world, men of most public spirits have been best beloved, and most highly honoured. A man of a narrow spirit is like the Hedgehog, that never goes abroad but to gather what he can for himself, who ever suffer by it; but a man of a public spirit is like the Pelican that draws out her own blood for the good of others, and therefore the light of nature as well as the Law of grace, will lead men by the hand to honour such. Fourthly, Men of public spirits do most and best answer to one of the noblest and highest ends of their creation. Doth the Bee gather honey for itself? Doth the Sheep yield wool for itself? Doth not all creatures serve the community. Non nobis solum nati, said the Heathen. By the Law of creation every man is bound to serve the public, to serve his generation. A narrow, a private spirited man is a shame to his Creation, because he walks so contrary to the great intendment of God in it. 'Tis a base and unworthy spirit, for a man to make himself the Centre of all his actions. The very Heathen man could say, That a man's Country and his Friends, and others, challenge a great part of him. That man sins against the very Law of his being, who is swallowed up in his own, private interests. Men of public spirits should not bear the sword of justice in vain, for by the Law of creation they are bound so to handle it as to be a terror to evil doers, Rom. 13.3, 4 and a praise to them that do well. 'Tis cruelty to the good to spare the bad, 'tis wrong to the Sheep to let the Wolves alone, 'tis the death of the Lambs to spare the Lions. If you will pity Catiline (says one) pity Rome much more; let the whole have a share in your pity rather than a part. (Pereat unus magis quam unitas) better have one injurious person sit mourning, than a whole Nation languishing, etc. Men of public spirits should be for the ease of all, and the peace of all, and the comfort of all, and the encouragement of all, and the safety of all. But this Age is full of Drones and Ciphers, and of spiritless, lifeless men, who look at nothing, who design nothing, who aim at nothing, and who endeavour nothing, but how to raise themselves, and greaten themselves, and enrich themselves, and build up themselves, though it be upon others ruinnes. How many are there who are so swallowed up in their own interests and private concernments, that Gallio-like, they care not whether the public sink or swim. Acts 18.7. These put me in mind of Jothams' Parable. Judg. 9.8, 9, 10, 11, etc. The Trees went forth to anoint a King over them. They go to the Olive, to the Figtree, and to the Vine; but shall I leave my fatness, saith the Olive? shall I leave my sweetness, saith the Figtree? and shall I leave my wine, saith the Vine, and go up and down for other Trees? This is the very temper, spirit and carriage of many in our day: If you go to them and desire them to lay out themselves for the public good. What say some, shall we leave our ease, our pleasure, our profits? And say others, Shall we run this and that hazard? Shall we lose such and such friends, and create to ourselves such and such enemies, to serve other men, to save other men, to advantage other men? we cannot do it, we will never do it. Learned Tully was a zealous Patriot and lover of his Country; he wished two wishes (though he never saw either of them effected) one was, That he might see Rome settled in its just liberties; and the other was. That he might see every man's estate proportionable to his affection and love to the public. Deubtless if Tully's wish might take place in our times, the purses of many would be more empty, and the public Coffers would be more full. But, Fifthly, Of all men on earth, there are none that have such a stock of prayers going for them as men of public spirits. Men of public spirits are not only most highly prized, and cordially loved, and greatly honoured, but they are also most upon the hearts of all sober and serious Christians, when they are in the Mount with God. The lives of such are most desirable, and the deaths of such will be most lamented, who make it their business to serve their generation. 2 Chron. 21.20 Men of public spirits shall never die as Jehoram did, undesired and unlamented. Men of public spirits lie most open to snares, temptations, and oppositions, etc. This all sober Christians well understand, and therefore they can't but pray hard for such: The names, the lives, the liberties, the estates, and all the concernments of men of public spirits always lie nearest their hearts, who lie nearest to the heart of Christ. Men of the greatest name, and of the greatest renown, and that have had the greatest stock of prayers going for them all the world over, have been men of public spirits. But, Sixthly and lastly, When Christians of public spirits come to die, their public spiritedness and general usefulness will be no small comfort and cordial to them. Nehemiah was a man of a public spirit, and accordingly he pleads it with God. Think upon me, Neh. 5. ult. See Chap. 13.22. O my God for good, according to all that I have done for this people. This was that which sweetened death to Hezekiah, I beseech thee, O Lord, to remember now, how I have walked before thee in truth, 2 King. 20.3. Acts 13.36. and with a perfect heart, and have done that which is good in thy sight. And when David had served his generation, he fell asleep. Sleep is not more welcome and sweet to a labouring man, than death is to him who has made it his business, his work sincerely and faithfully to serve his generation. Such Magistrates, 2 Tim. 4.7, 8, 9 John 17. Ministers and Christians who have made it their business according to their different measures faithfully to serve their generation, have found the King of terrors to be but the King of desires to them; when death to men of narrow, selfish spirits, hath been like the hand-writing upon the wall, Dan. 5.5, 6. very terrible. Many score Instances might be produced out of History to evidence this. Take one for all. Henry Beauford that rich and wretched Cardinal, Bishop of Winchester, and Chancellor of England (a man swallowed up in self interest) in the Reign of Henry the Sixth, when he perceived that he must die, Acts and Mon. fol. 925. and that there was no remedy, O! how terrible was death to him? and, O! how did he murmur, and fret, and vex at death, that his riches could not reprieve him till a further time? For, saith he, wherefore should I die being so rich; if the whole Realm would save my life, I am able either by policy to get it, or by riches to buy it. Fie upon death (saith he) will not death be hired? will money do nothing? I might instance in men of a higher rank, but then I should exceed the bounds of an Epistle. The second sort of men, that my self and all others are bound. 1. Highly to prise. 2. Cordially to love. And 3. Greatly to honour: Are men of charitable spirits, men of merciful spirits, men of tender and compassionate spirits. The Hebrew word for godly 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 signifies merciful, to note that the godly man is the merciful man, and the merciful man is the godly man. Loving kindness is an ingredient unto godliness. The godly man is frequently called Chasid, gracious or merciful; it notes one that hath obtained mercy, goodness, grace, piety and benignity from the Lord, and that is pious, kind, The Italian form of begging is, Do good to yourselves. gracious and merciful to others. Though charity, bounty, is the most compendious way to plenty, and giving to getting, and scattering to increasing, and layings out to layings up, Prov. 11.24. There is that scattereth, and yet increaseth. Ver. 25. The liberal soul shall be made fat, and he that watereth shall be watered also himself: Yet how few in our days do honour the Lord with their substance? Prov. 3.9. Mic. 4.13. how few look a this as a duty, to consecrate any part of their gain unto the Lord, or of their substance to the Lord of the whole earth? Most men now carry it as if God himself had last his propriety, and as if there were no rent-penny due to his poor. But yet some there are, who have liberal hearts and open hands; Deut. 15.11. some there are, who do open their hands wide to the poor and needy. Now, here give me leave to say, Mat. 25. Prov. 31.8, 9 That these, 1. Discharge their consciences in the duty of charity, 2. These rightly improve the talents of mercy, with which they are entrusted. 3. These treasure up a stock of prayers, Job 29.13. 2 Tim. 1.16. both for themselves and theirs; the blessing and the prayers of them that were ready to perish will come upon them and theirs. 4. These evidence the liveliness of their faith, James 2.17. Even so faith, if it hath not works, is dead being alone. Ver. 18. Yea, a man may say thou hast faith, and I have works; show me thy faith without thy works, and I will show thee my faith by my works. Ver. 26. For as the body without the spirit is dead, so faith without works is dead also 5. These take the surest way, the readiest course to assure their own souls of Gods eternal favours and mercies to them, 1 Tim. 6.17. Charge them that be rich in this world. Ver. 18. That they do good, that they be rich in good works, ready to distribute, willing to communicate. Ver. 19 Aeterna vitae, vera ulta. Aug. Laying up in store for themselves a good foundation against the time to come, that they may lay hold on eternal life. Charitable Christians are as wife Merchants, happy Usurers, parting with that which they cannot keep, that they may gain that which they cannot lose. 6. These take the surest way to draw down more outward mercies upon themselves. The fountain is not diminished, Pedagog— 3. c. 7 Clemens, Alex. but augmented by giving water to the thirsty. The widow's oil did increase by running; we do not lose, but increase our mercies by imparting of them for God's honour, and the comfort and benefit of others. Luk. 6.38. Give (saith Christ) and it shall be given to you, good measure, pressed down, and shaken together, and running over, shall men give into your bosom. The Jews more large and lose garments, so that they could bear away much in their bosoms. Hence this expression, into your bosom. The meaning is, That the Lord will largely reward the beneficence of his people; yea, that he will so reward them, that they shall perceive that they are rewarded. Honour the Lord with thy substance, Prov. 3.9, 10. so shall thy Barns be filled with plenty, and thy presses shall burst out with new wine. God will certainly bless their substance, who honour him with their substance. The Jews at this day, Godw Heb. ●ntiq. 27.7. though they are not in their own Country, and though they have not a Levitical Priesthood, yet those who will be reputed Religious amongst them do distribute the tenth of their increase to the poor, The safest chest is the poor man's Box. God will never forget your charity to his, Heb. 6.10. Cicero could say, that to be rich is not to possess much, but to use much And Seneca could rebuke them that so studied to increase their wealth, that they forget to use it. being persuaded that God doth bless their increase the more; for they have among them a very elegant Proverb to that purpose; Decima ut dives fias, Pay thy tithes that thou mayest be rich. The poor man's hand is Christ's Treasury, and he shall not lose his reward that casts his mites into that Treasury. It is fabled of Midas, that what ever he touched he turned it into gold. But this is most sure, that whatever the hand of charity toucheth, it turneth it into g●ld; be it but a cup of cold water, nay into heaven itself, Mat. 10.42. And whosoever shall give to drink, unto one of these little ones, a cup of cold water only, in the name of a Disciple, verily I say unto you, he shall in no wise lose his reward. Cold water having not fuel to heat it, cold water which cost not the charge of fire to warm it. A Sea of pleasures, a heaven of blessings attends men of charitable minds, though their charity can extend no further than to a cup of cold water; for God measures men's deeds by their minds, and not their minds by their deeds. The Kenites in saul's time, that were born many Ages after Jethroes death received life from his dust, and favour from his hospitality, nay, the very Egyptians, for harbouring, and at first dealing kindly with the Israelites, though without any respect to their righteousness, were preserved by Joseph in that sore famine, and kindly dealt with ever after by God's special command. I have read a story of one Evag●i a rich man, who lying upon his deathbed, and being importuned by Sinesius, a pious Bishop, to give something to charitable uses, he yielded at last to give three hundred pounds, but first took bond of the Bishop that it should be repaid him in another world; but before he had been one day dead, he is said to have appeared to the Bishop delivering in the bond canceled, as thereby acknowledging, that what was promised was made good. Whether the Relation be fabulous or not, I shall not now stand to determine; but this is certain, that all acts of charity shall be certainly and signatly rewarded. Several Writers observe, that the ground is most barren nearest the golden Mines; and experience tells us, that many who are enriched with fair estates, are most barren in good works, but this will be bitterness in the end. He that shall consult two Scriptures (among many others) will conclude, that he that hath a withered hand has no honest heart, 2 Chron. 31.10. 1 John 3.17. The wealth that such men have, is but as Aristotle calls it, Arist. Rhetor. l. 2. c. 6. Foelix amentia, a happy madness, because they are so taken up with their wealth, that they neither know what they are, nor what they do. Josephus writing of the waters of Egypt, saith, That they were blood in the hands of an Egyptian, but water in the hand of an Israelite. Wealth in the hand of a worldling, is like blood in the hand which is good for nothing; Josephus. but wealth in the hand of a charitable Christian is like water in the hand, which may be of use both to a man's self and others. By what has been said, there is nothing more evident than this, viz. That men of public spirits, and men of charitable spirits, of all men on earth, are, 1. To be most highly prized. 2. Most cordially loved. And 3. Most greatly honoured, etc. Gentlemen, those that shall read what I have writ in this Epistle, concerning public spiritedness and charitableness, and know you well, they know how to make the Application without any further direction from me. Sir John, I must crave leave to say, that it is and will be your honour and comfort, both in life and death, and in the day of your account, that in all the great Places, Offices and Employments unto which divine Providence has called you for divers years together, you have laid out your time, your strength, your estate for the public good; when others have been serving themselves upon the public, you have been a serving of the public. Sir, 'tis your great mercy and happiness, that you can stand forth and say; as once Samuel did, Behold, here I am, witness against me, 1 Sam. 12.3. whose Ox have I taken? or whose Ass have I taken? or whom have I defrauded? whom have I oppressed? or of whose hand have I received any bribe to blind mine eyes therewith? Your prudence and moderation before your Mayoralty, and in it (when you had many a narrow bridge to go over) and after it, to this day will never be forgotten by all sober Citizens. Sir, the French History tells us, that when an old Courtier would needs departed from the Court, and retire himself to a private life, the King desired him to leave his advice in some general Rules, about the Government of his Kingdom: Upon this motion of the King, the old Courtier took a sheet of white paper, and writ upon the top of the leaf Moderation, and in the middle of the leaf Moderation, and at the bottom of the leaf Moderation, intimating to the King, that the only way to keep his Kingdom in Peace and Prosperity, was to manage his Government throughout with a spirit of Moderation. When Vespasian asked Apollonius what was the cause of Nero's ruin; he answered, That Nero could tune the Harp well, but in Government he did always wind up the strings too high, or let them down too low. Both of your staying in London in the time of the last great Plague, when death peeped in at every window, and when most Magistrates, Ministers and People were fled from their Habitations (the terror of the Lord and of his judgements being very great in that day, upon all sorts and ranks of men) and that chief, mainly (if not only) upon the account of public service, and that nothing might be wanting on your side, to preserve poor creatures from perishing. The old Romans for lesser services than you did in these dismal days, have set up many a statue of brass; but the Lord is faithful, and will not forget to reward your work, your great work, your hazardous work, and that matchless love and bowels that you showed to very many that were impoverished for want of Trade, and to very many that lay in a sick, languishing and dying condition: How free, how full, how seasonable, how suitable, how impartial, how constant, and well regulated your charity then was, and since hath been, is very well known to God above, and to some faithful friends still alive; but all will out in the great day. Mat. 25. I know you don't love that your left hand should know what your right hand doth, Chap. 6.3. and therefore I shall not provoke you by sounding a Trumpet. Ezek. 1.8. & 10.8. The Angels have their hands under their wings, they do much good, and yet make no noise. There are some in the world that are like to them; the Violet grows low and covers it self with its own leaves, and yet of all flowers yields the most fragrant smell to others. There are some charitable Christians that resemble this sweet flower. Gentlemen and Ladies, your respects and undeserved favours, that have been many ways manifested unto me, hath emboldened me to Dedicate and present to you this Treatise as a real Testimony of my unfeigned love, service, gratitude and desires to promote the internal and eternal welfare of all your precious and immortal souls: And wherein could I (or any body else) be more truly serviceable to you than in endeavouring to promote your assurance of eternal salvation, which is the grand Design and Project of this Book. 1 Pet. 5. 1●. Now, the God of all grace fill all your hearts with all the fruits of righteousness and holiness, Gal. 5.22, 23. unto all riches of the full assurance of understanding, Heb. 10.22. and of faith and hope in this Life, and at last crown you all (and all yours) with ineffable glory in the life to come. To the everlasting arms of his protection, and to the perpetual influences of his grace and mercy in Christ, he commends you all, who is to you all Your much obliged and affectionate friend and souls servant in our dear Lord Jesus. THO. BROOKS. The CONTENTS. A Of the appearance of sin. EIght Arguments to arm us against the appearances of sin. 114 to Page 126 Of Assurance. The sense and evidence of the least grace, yea of the least degree of the least grace, may afford some measure of assurance. Page 17, 18, 19, 20 That Christians may more easily attain to a comfortable assurance of their gracious estate, than many (I than m●st) do apprehend or believe; This is strongly and fully made good. Page 25 to Page 57 There is a threefold Assurance Page 27 Perfection of Assurance, in respect of degrees, not attainable in this life. Page 57, 58 Assurance is not to be expected by any extraordinary way of Revelation. Page 58, 59, 60 Assurance excludes not all fears, doubts, conflicts, etc. Page 351, 352 B About Babes in grace. The generality of Christians are but Babes in grace. Page 339, 340 C About changing a man's condition. A godly man won't change his condition with men of this world, for ten thousand worlds Page 200, 201 About choosing. more man can choose God and Christ, grace and glory, holiness and happiness, as their chiefest good, but such who are really good Page 202, 203 Of the commands of God. He that hath a respect to all God's commands, shall never be ashamed. Page 27, 28 See O, of Obedience. About heart-condemning. He whose heart does not condemn him, in six things, may have confidence towards God. Page 29, 30 About confession of sin. The second part of true repentance lies in confession of sin Page 234, 235, 236 There are eight properties or qualifications of true penitential confession of sin. Page 236, to 255 Of the Covenant of grace. When a Christian casts his eye upon his gracious evidences, he must remember that he has to do with God in a Covenant of grace Page 83, 84, 85, 86, 87 The Covenant of grace is a Christians Fort Royal Page 363, 364 In the Covenant of grace, God stands engaged to give what ever he requires, which is evidenced by an induction of twelve particulars. Page 364, to 369 The Covenant is everlasting, in two respects Page 370, 373, 374 The Covenant is a sure Covenant. Page 370, 371, 372 About delighting in God. Five Arguments to prove that no Hypocrite can delight himself in God. Page 322, 323 D Of desires. That true desires of grace is grace proved by six Arguments. Page 170, to 178 No man can sincerely desire grace for grace sake, but he that has true grace. Page 178, 179, 180, 181 No man can sincerely desire every grace, but he that has grace. Page 181, 182 No man can sincerely and graciously desire grace for gracious ends and purposes, but he that has true grace in his soul. Page 182, 183 No man can sincerely desire, and earnestly endeavour after the highest pitches of grace, but he that has grace. Page 183, to 186 No man can always desire grace, but he that has true grace Page 186, 187 No man can sincerely desire to abound, to abound and excel most in those particular graces, which are most opposite and contrary to those particular sins, which his natural temper, constitution, complexion, etc. does most expose him and incline him to. Page 187, 188, 189 About the dominion of sin. He over whom presumptuous sins have no dominion, is upright. Page 29 Eight ways for a man to know whether he be under the dominion of sin or no. Page 39, to 48 Against trusting in our own duties. Three Arguments against trusting in our own duties. Page 374, 375, 376, 377, etc. E Of Evidences. Sound ●●id Evidences are the best way to prevent delusions Page 4, 5 Two special Rules are still to be seriously minded in propounding of Evidences for men to try their spiritual and eternal estates by Page 6, 7. Seven Reasons why many men cry down Marks and Signs, and deny sanctification to be an evidence of men's justification. Page 337, 338, 339, 340, 341, 342 'Tis lawful and useful to make use of gracious evidences. Page 342, 343 Such Saints as are now triumphing in glory, have made use of their gracious evidences, etc. Page 343, 344, 345, 346 He that can find but one gracious evidence in his soul, he may safely conclude that all the rest are there. Page 347 What a Christian should do when his evidences are so clouded and blotted, that he cannot read them. Page 352, 353, 354, 355, 356 When a Christians evidences shine brightest, his heart and the eye of his faith is to be most firmly fixed upon three Royal Forts. Page 356, 357, 358 & 374, 375, 376, 377, etc. F Of Christians folly. Eight Arguments to show the folly of such sincere Christians, who make their condition worse than ' 'tis. Page 51 to 57 Of forsaking of sin. There is a fourfold forsaking of sin. Page 28 Of Freegrace. When a Christians evidences are either clear or blotted, it highly concern him to be still a living upon freegrace. Page 356, 357, 358, 359 G Of Grace and Graces. Where there is any one grace in truth, there is every grace in truth Page 7, 8, 9 The sense and evidence of the least grace, yea of the least degree of the least grace, may afford some measure of assurance. Page 17, 18, 19, 20 Probabilities of grace may be a great stay, support and comfort to poor Christians that want assurance; probabilities of grace are mercies more worth than ten thousand worlds. This is made good by ten Arguments. Page 60, to 65 Six considerable things about probabilities of grace. Page 65, 66, 67, 68, 69 If a Christian can't say he has grace, yet he should not say he has no grace; for he may have grace, and yet not know it. Page 81, 82 He that prizes the least dram of grace above ten thousand thousand worlds, certainly that man has true grace in him. Page 200 'tis the wisdom, and aught to be the work of every Christian to own the least measure of grace that is in him, though it be mixed and mingled with many weaknesses & infirmities. Page 332, 333 'Tis the wisdom, and should be the work of every Christian, to look upon all his graces and gracious evidences, as favours given him from above, as gifts dropped out of heaven into his heart, as flowers of Paradise stuck in his bosom by a divine hand. Page 333, 334 335 When you look upon your graces in the light of the spirit, it highly concerns you to look narrowly to it, that you don't renounce and reject your graces as weak and worthless evidences of your interest in Christ, etc. Page 335, 336, 337 The spirit does four things in respect of our grace's Page 348 Christians may safely rejoice in their graces. Page 349, 350, 351 The more grace any man hath, the more clear, the more fair, the more full, the more sweet will his evidences be for heaven, etc. Page 378, 379, 380, 381, 382 When your graces are strongest, and your evidences for heaven are clearest, and your comforts rise-highest, then in a special manner it concerns you to make it your great business and work to act faith afresh upon the free, rich and glorious grace of God, and upon the Lord Jesus Christ. Page 382, 383, 384, 385 H Of the hatred of sin. An Hypocrite can't hate sin as sin. Page 303, 304, 305 True hatred of sin includes six things. Page 305, 306, 307, 308 Of the heart, and of keeping of it. Where the constant standing frame of a man's heart, desires and endeavours, are set for God, Christ, Grace, Holiness, there is a most sure and infallible work of God upon that man's soul. Page 127, 128, 129, 130, 131, 132 A gracious heart is an uniform heart Page 161, 162, 163, 164. A gracious heart sets himself most against his darling sin, his bosom sin, his constitution sin, etc. Page 164, 165, 166, 167, 168, 169, 170 He that has given up his heart and life to the Rule, Authority and Government of Christ, he has a saving work of God upon him. Page 203, 204 That man that will cleave to Christ with full purpose of heart, that man shall certainly be saved. Page 204, 205 That man that makes it his principle care, his main business, his work of works to look to his heart, to watch his heart, to reform his heart, that man doubtless hath a saving work of God upon his heart. Page 205, 206, 207, 208, 209, 210 Ten ways showing how men should keep their hearts. Page 210, 211, 212, 213, 214, 215, 216 There are many that are great strangers to their own hearts. Page 339 Of Hypocrites. First, an Hypocrites inside is never answerable to his outside. An Hypocrites inside is one thing, and his outside another thing. Page 287, 288 Secondly, no Hypocrite under heaven is totally divorced from the love and liking of every known sin. Page 288, 289, 290, 291 Thirdly, an Hypocrites heart is never throughly subdued to a willingness to perform all known duties. Page 291, 292, 293 Fourthly, There is never an Hypocrite in the world, that makes God, or Christ, or holiness, or his doing or receiving good in his Station, Relation or Generation, his grand end, his highest end, his ultimate end of living in this world. Page 294, 295; 296, 297 Fifthly, no Hypocrite under heaven can live wholly and only upon the righteousness of Christ, the satisfaction of Christ, the merits of Christ, for justification and salvation. Page 297, 298, 299, 300 Sixthly, an Hypocrite never embraces a whole Christ, he can never take up his full rest, satisfaction and content in the person of Christ, in the merits of Christ, in the enjoyment of Christ alone. Page 300, 301, 302, 303 Seventhly, an Hypocrite can't mourn for sin as sin, nor grieve for sin as sin, nor hate sin as sin, nor make head against sin as sin. Page 303, 304, 305 Eighthly, no Hypocrite is habitually low or little in his own eyes, no hypocrite has ordinarily mean thoughts of himself, or a poor esteem of himself. Page 308, 309, 310, 311, 312 Ninthly, no Hypocrite will long hold out in the work and ways of the Lord, in the want of outward encouragements, and in the face of outward discouragements. Page 312, 313, 314, 315, 316, 317, 318 Tenthly, no hypocrite ever makes it his business, his work, to bring his heart into religious duties and services. Page 318, 319, 320, 321 Eleventhly, an hypocrite never performs religious duties from spiritual principles, nor in a spiritual manner. Page 321, 322, 323, 324, 325 Twelfthly, no hypocrite in the world loves the Word, or delights in the Word, or prizes the Word, as 'tis a holy Word, a spiritual Word, a beautiful Word, a pure Word, a clean word. Page 325, 326, 327, 328, 329 Thirteenthly and lastly, an hypocrite can't endure to be tried, and searched, and laid open. Page 329, 330, 331 I Of judging ourselves. We must not judge ourselves Hypocrites by those things that ●he Scripture never makes a character of an Hypocrite. Page 74, 75, 76, 77. We must not judge ourselves hypocrites for such things which being admitted and granted to be true, would unavoidably prove the whole generation of the faithful to be Hypocrites. Page 77, 78, 79 In judging of our spiritual estates and conditions, we must always have an eye to our natural tempers, complexions, etc. Page 79, 80, 81 Of judgements. Spiritual judgements are the worst of judgements. Page 338 L Of love to the Saints. No man can truly love grace in another, but he that has true grace in his own soul. Page 189, 190 Six ways whereby men may certainly know whether their love to the Saints be real or not. Page 190, to 200 M Of singular manifestations. Some Christians live under the singular manifestations of divine love. Page 341, 342 Of Melancholy. The evil effects of Melancholy. Page 72, 73, 74 Of merciful men. Such as are truly and graciously merciful, are blessed, etc. Page 34, 35, 36 Of true mourners. Such as are true mourners are blessed. Page 32 N Of Name, and of a great Name. Many Professors take up in a great Name. Page 337, 338. O Of Obedience. If your obedience springs from faith, than your estate is good, than you have assuredly an infallible work of God upon your souls. Page 132 Seven ways to know when your obedience is the obedience of faith, with the resolution of some considerable questions about obedience, worthy of serious consideration. Page 132, to 161 P Of the Promises. The Promises of God are a Christians Magna Charta, his chiefest evidences for heaven. Page 9, 10 Q. How may a person come to know whether he has a real and saving interest in the promises or no. This great Question receives nine Answers. Page 10, 11, 12, 13, 14, 15, 16. All great Promises are made over to faith and repentance. Page 26, 27 The promises prove an inseparable connexion between true faith and eternal glory. Page 48, 49, 50, 51, 52 Many scores of promises will be of no use to a Christian, if he may not lawfully come to the knowledge of his gracious estate, in a discursive way arguing from the effect to the cause, Page 346, 347 Of being poor in spirit. To such who are poor in spirit the kingdom of heaven belongs. Page 30, 31, 32 Of prising grace. No man can really prise grace above a thousand worlds, but he that has true grace in him. Page 200 Of purity of heart. They that are pure in heart are blessed, and shall see God. Page 36, 37, 38, 39 R Of Relapses. A true child of God may relapse into the same sin again and again. Page 278, 279, 280, 281 That a child of God does not relapse into the same sin in such a manner as wicked men do relapse, is made good seven ways. Page 281, 282 About receiving of Christ. Such as receive Christ aright are the Sons of God. Page 26 About Repentance. There is a Repentance that does accomcompany salvation. Page 217 See sorrow for sin, see confession of sin, and see turning from sin. Of Christ's Righteousness. When a Christians evidences are either clear or clouded, it highly concerns him to have his heart fixed upon the Mediatory righteousness of Christ. Page 359, 360, 361 Five admirable comforts the Mediatory righteousness of Christ will afford to every gracious soul. Page 361, 362, 363 Remedies against fears. Two Remedies against those fears that many times rise in a gracious soul. Page 388, 389, 390 S Of Satan. Satan is a grand enemy to the peace, joy, comfort, settlement and satisfaction of every poor Christian. Page 340, 341 Of Scripture. All men and women that are desirous to know how it will go with them in another world, they must peremptorily resolve to be determined by Scripture, in the great matters of their interest in Christ. Page 20, 21, 22, 23, 24 Of sin, many weighty things about it. A universal willingness to be rid of all sin, is an infallible evidence of the truth of grace in a man's heart. Page 88, 89, 90, 91, 92 A constant habitual willingness to be rid of all sin, is an infallible evidence of the truth of grace in the soul. Page 92, 93 A transcendent willingness, a superlative willingness to be rid of sin, is an infallible evidence of the truth of grace in the soul. Page 93, 94, 95, 96, 97 That soul that does not allow himself, or indulge himself in a course of sin, or in the common practice of any known sin, that soul is certainly a gracious soul. Page 97, 98, 99 That soul that conflicts most with heart-sins, and is m●st affected and afflicted with spiritual sins, he is certainly a gracious soul. Page 99, 100, 101, 102 That soul that abstains from sin, and whose heart rises against sin, because of the evil nature of it, etc. that soul has certainly a principle of grace, a seed of God in him. Page 102, 103, 104, 105, 106 Where there is an irreconcilable opposition in the soul against sin, there is a saving work of God upon that man's heart. Page 106, 107, 108 Where the very prevailings of sin are ordinarily made serviceable to high and holy ends, there certainly is a saving work of God upon that man's soul. Page 108 109, 110 Where a bare naked command of God is commonly of that power, force and authority with the soul, as to curb sin, and restrain the soul from sin, and to fence the soul against the encroachments and commands of sin, there is certainly a saving work of God upon that man's soul. Page 111, 112, 113 Constant desires, and earnest and constant endeavours to avoid and shun all known appearances of sin, evidences the truth and reality of grace in the soul. Page 114, 115, 116 He that sets himself mostly, resolutely, habitually, against his bosom sins, his constitution sins, etc. he has certainly a powerful, a saving work of God upon his soul. Page 126, 127 That soul that would not willingly, wilfully, resolutely, maliciously, wickedly, habitually, etc. sin against the Lord to gain a world, that soul is certainly a gracious soul Page 201, 202 Paul lays down eight aggravations of his sins, and all to greaten and heighten them. Page 244, 245, 246, 247 Many indulge their lusts. Page 338, 339 Of sorrow for sin. When a man's sorrow for sin is sinful, showed in six particulars. Page 87 Sorrow and grief of heart for sin committed, is that first part of repentance to which the promise of forgiveness of sin is made Page 218, 219 Eight ways whereby men may know that their sorrow is true godly sorrow, that it is that very sorrow that is a part of true repentance. Page 219, to 229 There are seven concomitants or companions that attend and wait on godly sorrow. Page 229, 230, 231, 232, 233, 234 Of the Spirit. Without the light of the Spirit our graces shine not Page 347, 348, 349 T Of thirsting. They which truly hunger and thirst after righteousness are blessed. Page 32, 33, 34 Of time and times. Christian's should take the m●st compendious time for the casting up of their spiritual accounts. Page 69, 70 There are seven times, seasons or cases, where a Christian should not cast up his spiritual accounts. Page 70, to 74 Of turning from all sin to God. The third part of true repentance lies in turning from all sin to God. Page 254, 255, 256 First, that turning from sin which brings a man within the compass of the promise of forgiveness of sin, is a cordial turning from sin. Page 256, 257 Secondly, a true penitential turning is an universal turning, a turning not from some sins, but from all sins. Page 257, 258 Eight great Reasons why the true penitent turns from sin universally. Page 258, to 269 In answer to an Objection it is declared, that a true penitential turning from all sin consists in six things. Page 269; to 274 Thirdly, a true penitential turning is a constant, a continued turning from sin. Page 274, 275, 276; 277 Q. But in what respects is a true penitential turning from sin, such a turning from sin, as never to return to sin any more? in what respects is the penitents turning from sin, a continued and steadfast turning from sin. Sol. This is a very sober, serious, weighty Question, and bespeaks a very sober, serious and satisfactory Answer; and therefore 'tis answered, First, Negatively, from 277, to 282. And Secondly, Affirmatively, from Page 282, to 284 A true penitential turning from sin includes a returning to God; sin is an aversion from God, and repentance is a conversion to God. Page 284, 285, 286 W Of walking. There is no condemnation to such who walk after the Spirit Page 47, 48 Of the witness of the Spirit. Their mistake pointed at, who have made the witness of the Spirit the only marks or evidence of our interest in Christ. Page 1, 2, 3, 4. There is at the end of this Book, a Catalogue of all Mr. Brooks' Books. ERRATA. PAge 4. line. 14. fleshly for flashy, p. 16. in the Margin, r. dance, p. 17. Margin, pat for part, p. 18. l. 32. for gradually r. perfectly, p. 19 l. 2. r. it, l. 25. for Marcol r. Murcot. p. 30. l. 2. hat for that, p. 35. l. 8. r. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 p. 39 l. 31. r. Asa's, p. 63. l. 17. for wate● r. children, p. 106. l. 15. r. gerandum, p. 110. l. 28. r. Antiperistasis, p. 142. l. 30. add only, p. 239. l. 2. for heels r. feels, p. 258. l. 19 outging for outing, p. 292. Margin, r. vitiums for vitium, p. 117. l. 16. for were r. where, p. 311. Margin, r. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, p. 326. l. 22. r. word for world, p. 333. l. ult. add the, p. 347. l. ult add as. p. 356. l. 21. for five r. three, l. 26. for five r. three, l. 34. for five r. three, p. 357. l. 8. springs for spring, in the Margin r. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, p. 368. l. 13. r. patent, p. 376. l. 14. r. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 p. 383. l. 16. to for in, in the fourth leaf of the Epistle, in l. 9 blot out one, in the same leaf, l. 32. conclusions for confusions. CHAP. I. Containing eighteen special Maxims, Considerations, Rules and Directions that are seriously to be minded and observed, in order to the clearing up of a man's interest in Christ, the saving work of God upon his own soul, and his title to all the glory of another world. The first Maxim or Consideration. FIrst, Some have made the witness of the Spirit to be the only mark or evidence of our interest in Christ, But this opinion being well laid asleep in these days, I shall not put myself to the trouble of awakening of it afresh, but leave it to sleep with the Authors, who are now in their graves. and deny all signs from the fruit of the Spirit; but this is to deny the fruit growing upon the Tree to be a sign that the Tree is alive, whereas our Saviour expressly tells us, That the Tree is known by his fruit, Mat. 12.33. Certainly 'tis one thing to judge by our graces, and another thing to rest on our graces, or to put our trust in our graces, or to make a Saviour of our graces; there is a great deal of difference between declaring and deserving. Doubtless Christians may look to their graces as evidences of their interest in Christ, justification and salvation, though not as causes of their interest in Christ, justification and salvation. O Sirs, we must always carefully distinguish 'twixt the root and ground of our comfort, and between the testimonies or evidences of our interest in the root of our comfort. Now it must be readily granted that Jesus Christ is the only root and ground of a Christians comfort and triumph; and therefore saith Paul, Gal. 6 14. God forbidden that I should rejoice in any thing, but in the Cross of Christ. And so in that, 2 Cor. 2.14. New thanks be unto God, which always causes us to triumph in Christ. So that, if at any time we behold this or that saving grace, or this or that part of holiness shining in our hearts or lives, we take comfort in it, not as the cause, or root, or ground of our comfort or triumph, but as in a testimony or evidence, because it doth manifest our interest in him, who is our comfort, Luke 2 25. Col. 3 11. Gen. 9 13, 14, 16. v. our peace, our joy, our salvation, our all in all. Look as the Rainbow is not a cause, why God will not drown the world, but a sign that God will not drown the world; and as it is a sign that God will not drown the world, we may and aught to rejoice in it, and to take comfort from it. So here, etc. 'Tis agreed on all hands, that sanctification is a precious benefit of the Covenant of grace, Jer. 33.8, 9 Ezek. 36.25, 26. Heb. 8.10, 12. etc. as well as justification; and what crime can it then be, to evidence one benefit of the Covenant of grace, by another benefit of the same Covenant. That he that is justified, is also sanctified, and that he that is sanctified is also justified, is so clear, so bright, so sparkling, and so full a truth contained in the Covenant of grace, that no man or devil can deny. Now what evil or error can it be for a man to assert, That he that is certainly sanctified, is certainly justified; (it being the very language of the Covenant of grace) and that therefore he that knows himself to be sanctified, may also know thereby that he is justified. Certainly, those persons that shall deny sanctification to be a most sure, sweet and comfortable evidence of a man's justification, they must not only blot out and abolish the Epistles of James and John, but must also raze out and abolish all those Evangelical promises of grace and mercy, of happiness and blessedness, that are made to such persons as are invested, enriched and bespangled with the several graces of the holy Spirit; this might be made evident by many hundred Scriptures: but take that one for all, Mat. 5. where our Saviour himself (who was the most Evangelical Preacher that ever was in the world) makes eight or nine promises of mercy and blessedness to those very persons that had the graces of the Spirit inherent in them, as poverty of spirit, mourning, meekness, hungering and thirsting after righteousness, etc. O Sirs, why should we be so frequently and earnestly called ●pon to try and examine ourselves, 2 Cor. 12.5. ver. whether we be in the faith or no, if we were not to come to the knowledge of our faith, in a discursive way, arguing from the effect to the cause. Have not the Saints of old come to assurance and the knowledge of the goodness of their estates this way? Ponder seriously on that, 2 Cor. 1.12. For our rejoicing is this, the testimony of our conscience, that in simplicity and godly sincerity we have had our conversation in the world. Mark, their joy was founded on the testimony of their conscience, and their conscience gave in this testimony from the sincerity of their conversation in this world. So Paul in that, 2 Tim. 4.7, 8. I have fought a good fight, I have finished my course, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Certamen illud praeclarum certavi. Beza. I have fought that excellent fight. By wrestling the Apostle useth the same Metaphor also in that, 1 Cor. 9.25. v. I have kept the faith; henceforth is laid up for me a crown of righteousness. How plainly, how fully, how with open mouth (as I may say) does he conclude his right to the crown of Righteousness (so called, partly because 'tis purchased by the righteousness of Christ, and partly, because he is righteous that hath promised it, and partly, because 'tis a just and righteous thing with God to crown them with glory at last, who have for the Gospel sake, and his glory sake, been crowned with shame and reproach in this world, and partly (if not mainly) because 'tis a crown that can only be had (or obtained) in a way of righteousness and holiness) from his graces and gracious actings in this world. I have fought a good fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith; yea, 'tis further observable, that in the blessed Scripture, we are strongly pressed to do good works, that by them we may make our calling, election and salvation sure, 2 Pet. 1.10. Wherefore the rather brethren, give diligence to make your calling and election sure. By good works; so say all the Latin Copies, and so say some Greek Copies, though not those that our English Translators have been pleased to follow, and that is the reason why those words (by good works) are not in our English Bibles; but he that shall seriously weigh the scope of the Apostle in this place, he must of necessity grant, that good works are to be understood, tho●gh they are not expressed in the Text; and that of the Apostle, in 1 Tim. 6.16, 17, 18. seems plainly and strongly to sound the same way. The second Maxim or Consideration. SEcondly, consider, That true, sound, solid marks, signs and evidences, are the best way to prevent delusions; there is no such deceit in sound and solid evidences, as there is in fleshy joys, and in high and strange raptures, by which many glistering Professors have been sadly deceived and deluded. Young Samuel being not acquainted with any extraordinary manifestations of the presence and power of God, took the voice of God from heaven to be the voice of old Ely. 1. Sam. 3.5. Ah, how many have there been in our days, that have taken the irregular motions of their own hearts, and the violent workings of their own distempered fancies, and imaginations, and Satanical delusions, to be the visions of God, celestial raptures, divine breathe, and the powerful impulses of the Spirit of God, and so have been stirred up to speak, writ and act such things that have been, not only contrary to the holy Word of God, but also contrary to the very Laws of nature and Nations. Satan by transforming of himself into an Angel of light, hath seduced and ruined many Professors, 2 Cor. 11.14. v. Gerson in his Book (de probatione spirituum) of the trial of spirits. against whom, as an Angel of darkness he could never prevail. Gerson tells a remarkable story of Satan's appearing to a holy man, in a most glorious and beautiful manner, professing himself to be Christ; and because he for his exemplary holiness was worthy to be honoured above others, therefore he appeared unto him; but the good old man readily answered him, that he desired not to see his Saviour in this wilderness, it should suffice him to see him hereafter in heaven, and withal added this pithy prayer: O let thy sight be my reward, Lord, in another life, and not in this; and so he became victorious over Satan, though he had transformed himself into a glorious Angel of light; but such a a victorious crown has not been set upon every one's head to whom Satan has appeared as an Angel of glory. See Dr. Casaubon, and Dr. Moor, concerning Enthusiasm. Certainly, they that stand so much, so mightily for an immediate testimony, seem to open such a gap to Enthusiasm, as will not be easily shut; yea, how will they be ever able to secure to purpose, poor souls from sad delusions? for how easy a thing is it for Satan (who is the father of lies? Joh. 8.48. who is an old deceiver, Gen. 3.13. 1 Tim. 2.14. who is the grand deceiver, Rev. 12.9. Rev. 13.14. Rev. 19.20. Rev. 20.10. who has his devices, Cor. 2.11. his wiles, Eph. 6.11. his snares, 1 Tim. 3.7. his depths, Rev. 2.24.) to find various artifices to counterfeit this immediate testimony, and bear witness in the spirits stead; so that, when poor souls thinks that they have the Spirit of grace and truth to assure them that all is well, and shall be for ever well with them; they have none but the father of lies to deceive them, they have none but the devil in samuel's mantle, to put a soul-murdering cheat upon them. I am not fond of advising any poor souls to lay the stress of their hopes of heaven and salvation, merely upon immediate impressions, lest they should subject themselves to infinite delusions. O Sirs, the way of immediate Revelation is more fleeting and inconstant, such actings of the Spirit are like those outward motions that came upon Samson, Judg. 13.25. The Spirit came upon him at times; and so upon every withdrawment, new doubts and scruples arise; but the trial of a man's estate by grace is more constant and durable, saving grace being a continual pledge of God's love to us; flashes of joy and comfort, are only sweet and delightsom whilst they are felt, but grace is that immortal seed that abideth for ever, 1 John 3.9. But, The third Maxim or Consideration. THirdly, consider, In propounding of evidences for men to try their spiritual and eternal estates by, there are two special Rules for ever to be minded and remembered, and the first is this, That he that propounds evidences of grace, which are only proper to eminent Christians, as belonging to all true Christians, he will certainly grieve and sad those precious Lambs of Christ that he would not have grieved and sadded. Look, as there is a strong faith, and a weak faith, Mat. 15 28. and Chap. 8 26. It is one thing to show you the properties of a man, and another thing to show you the properties of a strong man, 1 Pet. 2.3. 1 John 2.1, 12, 13, 14. v. so there are evidences that are proper to a strong faith, and evidences that are proper to a weak faith: Now, he that cannot find in himself the evidences of a strong faith, he must not conclude that he has no faith; for he may have in him the evidences of a weak faith, when he has not the evidences of a strong faith in him; in Christ's School, House, Church, there are several sorts and ranks of Christians, as babes, children, young men, and old men; and accordingly, Ministers in their preaching and writing, should sort their evidences, that so babes and children may not be found bleeding, grieving and weeping, when they should be sound joying and rejoicing. Secondly, no man must make such characters, marks or evidences of a child of God, which may be found in an hypocrite, a Formalist, etc. for this were to lay a stumbling block before the blind, this were to delude poor souls, Ezek. 13.22. v. and to make them glad whom God would not have made glad; yea, this is the highway, the ready way, to make them miserable in both worlds. The rule or evidence that every Christian is to measure himself by, must be neither too long nor too short, but adequate to the state of a Christian; that is, it must not be so long on the one hand, as that all Christians cannot reach it, nor yet so short on the other hand, as that it will not reach a true Christian; but the rule or evidence must be such as will suit and fit every sincere believer, and none else: Some Christians are apt to judge of themselves, and to try themselves, by such rules or evidences as are competent only to those that are strong men in Christ, and that are grown to a high pitch of grace, of holiness, of communion with God, of spiritual enjoyments, and heavenly attainments, and sweet and blessed ravishments of soul; and by this means they come to conclude against the works of the blessed spirit in them, and to perplex and disquiet their own souls with needless fears, doubts and jealousies; others on the other hand, are apt to judge of themselves, and to try themselves, by such things, rules or evidences that are too short (and will certainly leave them short of heaven) as a fair civil deportment among all sorts and ranks of men, a good nature, paying every man their d●e, charity to the poor, Mat. 23. Luke 18 9, 10, 11, 12. v. Isa. 1.2, 3, 4, 5. a good name or fame among men (yea, happily among good men) outward exercises of Religion, as hearing, praying, reading, fasting, or that they are good negative Christians, that is to say, that they are no drunkards, swearers, liars, adulterers, extortioners, oppressors, Sabbath-breakers, persecutor, etc. Phil. 3.4.5, 6 v. Gal. 6.3. Isa. 33.14. Thus far Paul attained before his conversion, but if he had gone no further, he had been a lost man for ever; and by this means they flatter themselves into misery, and are still a dreaming of going to heaven, till they drop into hell, and awake with everlasting flames about their ears: And oh, that all that preach or print, read or write, would seriously lay this to heart, some in describing the state of a Christian, show rather what of right it should be, than what indeed it is; they show what Christians ought to be, rather than what they find themselves to be, and so they become a double edged sword to many Christians. But, The fourth Maxim or Consideration. FOurthly, consider, Where there is any one grace in truth, there is every grace in truth, though every grace cannot be seen. Look, as a man may certainly know a wicked man by his living under the reign and dominion of any one sin, As they say of the cardinal virtues; Virtutes sunt inter se connexa, The virtues are chained together; so we may say of the graces of the Spirit, etc. Mark, saith Chrysostom, 'tis not working of miracles, casting out of devils, but love to our brethren, that's the infallible proof of being a Disciple. though he does not live under the power of other sins, because there is not any one sin mortified in that man, that hath any one sin reigning in him, and that does not set himself in good earnest against it as his greatest enemy. So when a Christian can but find any one grace in him, as love to the Saints, for grace sake, for godliness sake, he may safely conclude, that there is in him all other graces; where there is but one link of this golden chain, there are all the links of this golden chain, Joh. 13.35. By this shall all men know ye are my Disciples, if ye love one another. He doth not say, if ye work miracles, if ye raise the dead, if ye give eyes to the blind, or ears to the deaf, or tongues to the dumb, or feet to the lame, but if ye love one another. There have been many, yea, very many precious Christians, who have lived and died with a great deal of comfort and peace from the application of that Text to their own souls, 1 John 3.14. We know that we have passed from death to life, because we love the brethren. Sincere love to the brethren, is a most evident sign of a Christians being already passed or translated from death to life; observe, the Apostle doth not say, we think we have passed from death to life, but we know we have passed from death to life; nor he does not say, we conjecture we have passed from death to life, but we know we have passed from death to life; nor he does not say, we hope we are passed from death to life, but we are assured that we are passed from death to life, that is, from a state of nature into a state of grace, because we love the brethren; for ever remember this, when all other evidences have failed, many gracious Christians, and all other Texts of Scripture have afforded them no comfort here, they have anchored here, they have found rest for their distressed souls, and upon this one single plank, this one evidence they have swum safely and comfortably unto the haven of eternal happiness. Every real Christian hath in some measure, every sanctifying grace in him; as a child so soon as it is born is a perfect man, for integrity of parts and entireness of limbs, though not for bigness and bulk of body, so every regenerate person, at the very first hour of his conversion, 1 Thes. 5.23. John 3 5, 6, 7, 8. Chap. 1.16. Psal. 45.13. The new creature hath all the pa●ts and lineaments; as in the body there is a composition of all the elements, and a mixture of all the humours. he is in part renewed in all parts, all the habits of grace are infused into the soul by the Spirit at once; at first conversion, the soul is bespangled with every grace, though every grace is not then grown up to its full proportion or perfection; so that where there is one grace in truth, there is every grace in truth; that soul that can truly and seriously conclude, that he has any one grace in him, that soul ought to conclude, that there is every grace in him. Such as diligently search the Scripture, shall find that true blessedness, Mat. 5.3, 4, 5, 6, etc. Every child of God hath all the graces of the spirit in him radically, though not gradually. happiness and salvation is attributed to several signs, sometimes to the fear of God, sometimes to faith, sometimes to repentance, sometimes to love, sometimes to meekness, sometimes to humility, sometimes to patience, sometimes to poverty of spirit, sometimes to holy mourning, sometimes to hungering and thirsting after righteousness; so that if a godly man can find any one of these in himself, he may safely and groundedly conclude of his salvation and justification, though he cannot see all those signs in him; there is no Saint but may perceive one sign in him, when he cannot another. Now, he that can groundedly be persuaded of any one sign of grace, he may safely conclude he hath all the rest, though for the present he can neither see them nor feel them in himself. But, The fifth Maxim or Consideration. FIfthly, consider, That the promises of God are a Christians Magna Charta, his chiefest evidences for heaven; divine promises are God's Deed of Gift, they are the only assurance which the Saints have to show for their right and title to Christ, to his blood, and to all the happiness and blessedness that comes by him. Look, Gen. 38. 18-27 as Judah by pleading and bringing forth the signet, the bracelets, and the staff, saved her life, so we by believing, pleading, and bringing forth the promises, must save our own souls; the promises are not only the food of faith, but also the very life and soul of faith, they are a Mine of rich treasures, a garden full of the choicest and sweetest flowers, in them are wrapped up all celestial contentments and delights. And this is most certain, that all a Christians conclusions of interest in any of those choice and precious privileges which flow from the blood of Jesus Christ, aught to be bottomed, grounded and founded upon the rich and free promises of grace and mercy. Quest. But how may a person come to know, whether he has a real and saving interest in the promises, or no? Now to this great Question, I shall give these nine following Answers. First, A holy reliance, a holy resting, a holy staying of thy soul upon the promises, makes the promises thine own; yea, it makes all the good, and all the sweet, and all the happiness and blessedness that is wrapped up in the promises, thine; even as thy staying, relying and resting on Christ, makes Christ thine, and all that is in him, and that comes by him, thine; so thy staying and resting upon the promises makes them thine. Secondly, If thy heart ordinarily, habitually, lies under the word of command, than the word of promise does assuredly belong to thy soul, 'Twas a good saying of Augustin, Da quod jubes, & juhe quod vis, Give what thou commandest, and command what thou wilt. To such a frame the promises belong. Numb. 13.28. to the end. Psal. 119.6. Act. 13.22. Luke 1.5, 6. There is no soul under heaven that commonly lies under the commanding power of the Word, but that soul that has an interest in the word of Promise; men that have no interest in the word of Promise, commonly live in the neglect of the word of command; if the word of command commonly carries thy soul, than the word of promise, without all peradventure, belongs to thy soul: Many deal with the commands of God, as the Heathens dealt with the commands of their gods; When their gods called for a man, they offered a candle; or as Hercules offered up a painted man, instead of a living man. Such as deal thus with the commands of God, they have no interest in the promises of God; flesh and blood looks upon the commands of God as impossible to be obeyed, like the unbelieving spies; O we cannot conquer the Land; but faith and love, like Caleb and Joshua, conclude the Land may be conquered, the commands may be Evangelically obeyed, and accordingly they readily ●ndertake it. Now, to such a frame of heart the promises are entailed. But, Thirdly, If in the face of all objections, The longer, said the Emperor's son, the Cooks are preparing the meat, the better cheer I shall have. His meaning was, that the longer he stayed for the Empire, the better and greater it would be; so the longer the soul waits for a mercy, the better and greater it will be when it comes, etc. discouragements and difficulties, thy soul be kept up in a waiting frame, for the fulfilling of the promises, as abraham's was, Rom. 4. then certainly the promises belong to thee. There are some promises that relate to the subduing of sin, as that, Jer. 33.8. Ezek. 36.25, 26, 27. Mich. 7.19. Psal. 65.3. And there are other precious promises that relate to a growth in grace, as that, Mal. 4.2. Job 17.9. Psal. 92.12, 13, 14. Prov. 4.18. Hos. 14.5, 6, 7. Now if thy heart be kept up in a waiting frame, for the accomplishment of these promises, than they do certainly belong to thee; the same I may say of all other promises, The waiting soul shall be sure to speed, Psal. 40.1, 2, 3. Isa. 40.29, 30, 31. Isa. 30.18. Heb. 6.12, etc. God never did, nor never will, frustrate the expectations of the patiented waiter, etc. But, Fourthly, He that hath those divine qualities or supernatural graces in him, to which the promises are made, as faith, repentance, love, fear, hope, uprightness, patience, a waiting frame, etc. He has an undoubted interest in the promises, he may lay his hand upon any promise, and say, this promise is mine, and all the blessings, the benefits, the heavenly treasure that is laid up in it, is mine. But, Fifthly, He that lives upon the promises as his daily food, he has an unquestionable interest in the promises; wicked men may make use of promises as of physic, in some cases, as when they are under anguish of spirit, or gripes of conscience, or in fear of hell; or else when they are under some outward wants or straits, etc. but he that lives upon them as his daily food, he has a most assured interest in them; our outward man lives not upon kickshaws, though now and then we may taste of them, but we live upon wholesome food; so here, no man lives upon the blessed promises as his appointed food, but he that has a real interest in the promises. Look, as there is a nourishment proper to every Animal Spiders feed on flies, Moles on worms, the Horse on g●ass, the Lion on flesh, etc. so there is food (nourishment) that is proper for men's souls, viz. the precious promises; and Christ's flesh, which is meat indeed, and his blood, which is drink indeed, john 6. and he that daily feeds on this food, will be happy for ever. But, Sixthly, If you are united and married to Christ by faith, than you have a real, a saving interest in the promises, Gal. 3.29. Gal. 4.28. Heb. 1.2. Rev. 21.7. And if you be Christ's, then are you Abraham's seed, and heirs according to the promise. The promise is the Jointure, and there is no way under heaven to enjoy the Jointure, but by matching with the person of Christ. And faith is the grace of graces, by which the soul gives both its assent and consent to take the Lord Jesus Christ, as he is tendered and offered in the Gospel, and is therefore called sometimes a receiving of Christ, john 1.12. The only way to enjoy a Lady's Jointure, is to marry her person; and so the only way to enjoy the promise of Christ, is to be willing to marry the person of Christ; 'tis our marriage-union with Christ, that gives us a right and title to all the promises of Christ, 2 Cor. 1.20. For all the promises of God in him, are yea, and in him, Amen. All absolute and conditional promises, either of grace or unto grace, are made to us in Christ, and only enjoyed by our enjoying of Christ. Seventhly, He that can clear his right to any one promise, he may safely and boldly conclude his interest in every promise. The promises are a golden chain, and he that has a right in one link of the chain, 2 Pet. 1.5, 6, 7. Eph. 5.22, 23. 2 Pet. 1.4. has a right in every link of the chain. As there is a chain of graces, so there is a chain of promises. He that can lay his hand upon any one promise, and truly say this is mine, he may safely lay his hand upon every promise, and say these are mine; he that is an heir to any one promise, he is an heir to every promise. Hence it is they are called heirs of promise, Heb. 6.17. not hei s of this promise, or that, but of promise; that is, of every promise, or the Covenant which comprehends all the precious promises of the Gospel in it. Though the promises may be distinguished one from another, yet they may not be severed one from another; he that has a right to any one promise, he may safely infer his right to every promise. The whole Covenant (which is a bundle of promises) is certainly thine, if any one promise be thine; the promises by a divine hand are mutually tied and linked together; and those whom God has joined together, no man may put asunder. The promises can be no more divided, than Christ can be divided, or than heaven can be divided; the promises are not like loof and unstringed pearls, but as pearls made into one entire chain. He that can lay his hand upon that promise, Mat. 5.6. Blessed are they which hunger and thirst after righteousness, for they shall be satisfied, and truly say, this promise is mine, he may safely lay his hand upon that promise, ver. 8. Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see God, and say this promise is mine; and the same he may say of the rest of the precious promises that are specified in v. 3, 4, 5, 7, 9, 10, 11. of that Chapter. He that can lay his hand upon any one promise, that God has made to them that love him, and truly say, this promise is mine, he may safely lay his hand upon every promise that God has made to them that love him, and say these are all mine. He that can lay his hand upon any one promise that God has made to them that fear him, and truly say this promise is mine, he may assuredly lay his hand upon every promise that God has made to them that fear him, and say these are all mine. He that can lay his hand upon any one promise that God has made to faith in Christ, to believing in Christ, and truly say this promise is mine, he may safely lay his hand upon every promise that God has made to faith in Christ, to believing in Christ, and say all these promises are mine. He that can lay his hand upon any one promise that God has made to the returning sinner, and truly say, this promise is mine, he may securely lay his hand upon every promise, that God has made to the returning sinner, the repenting sinner, and say all these are mine. He that can lay his hand upon any one promise, that God has made to the waiting soul, and truly say this promise is mine, he may without all peradventure lay his hand upon every promise that God has made to the waiting soul, and say all these are mine; prove but your right in one, and you may safely infer your right to all. But, Eighthly, If in the times of your greatest outward and inward straits and trials, when you are most sadly and sorely put to it, you fly to the precious promises, as to your sureest and choicest City of refuge, then certainly you have an interest in them. Thus Abraham did, Rom. 4. 17-22. and thus Jacob did, Gen. 32.6, 7, 8, 9, 11, 12. compared, and thus Sarah did, Heb. 11.11. and thus Moses did, Num. 10.29. and thus Jehosaphat did, 2 Chron. 20.1, 10, compared with the 7, 8, 9 verses of that Chapter. And this was David's common practice, Psal. 27.12.13. and Psal 60.1, 2, 3, 6, 7, 8, 9, 10. compared, and Psal. 119.49, 50. Turn to these Scriptures, and ponder upon them. And so when a man is under the guilt of sin, he flies to promises of pardon and forgiveness, as to his surest and choicest City of refuge, Num. 14.19. Isa. 55.7. Jer. 33.8. Isa. 40.1.2. Chap. 43.25. Mich. 7.18. Jer. 31.34. Exod. 34.7. Dan. 9.9. And so when a man is under the strength, power and prevalency of sin, he runs to such promises wherein God has engaged himself to subdue the sins of his people, and to purge and cleanse away the sins of his people (Mich. 7.19. Rom. 6.14. Psal. 65.3. Isa. 1.25. Mal. 3.3. Zach. 13.9. Isa. 27.9. Mat. 3.12. Ezek. 36.25.33. Jer. 33.8.) as to his surest and choicest City of refuge. And so when a man is deserted, he runs to such promises as are proper to that state, as to his surest and choicest City of refuge, Mich. 7.19. Isa. 54.7, 8, 9, 10. Psal. 5.12. Psal. 84.10. Psal. 97.11. Psal. 112.4. Isa. 49.14, 15, 16. And so when a man is tempted, he runs to such supporting, succouring and encouraging promises as are most suitable to that state, as to his surest and choicest City of refuge, 1 Cor. 10.13. Heb. 2.18. Rom. 16.20. James 4.7. Now certainly, such as in all their inward and outward straits run thus to the promises, as to their surest and choicest City of refuge, they have an unquestionable interest in the promises. The rich man's wealth is his strong City, Prov. 10.15. Wealthy worldlings in times of distress & danger, do run to their hoards and heaps of riches, as to a strong City that is able to outstand all sieges and assaults, and to be safety and security to them; so when once a man makes the precious promises to be his strong City, and runs to them in the day of his distress and dangers, as his only safety and security, than he has doubtless an interest in them. But, Ninethly and lastly, If you daily present a greater and a choicer good in the promises to your souls, than any this world affords, then certainly you have an interest in the promises. If when honours, or riches, or pleasures, or the applause of men do present themselves unto you, you can readily present to your own souls higher honours in the promise, 1 Sam. 2.30. Luke 12.32. Rev. 2.17, 26, 27. Chap. 3.5, 12, 21. Chap. 5.10. and more durable riches in the promise, Prov. 8.18. 1 Pet. 3.4. and sweeter and choicer pleasures in the promise, Psal. 16.11. Isa. 12.3. Chap. 35.2, 10. Jer. 33.9, 11. Psal. 132.16. and greater applause in the promise, Mat. 10.32. Whosoever therefore shall confess me before men, him will I confess also before my father which is in heaven; I, and before the Angels too, Luke 12.8. Mat. 25. 31-41. 1 Cor. 6.2, 3. 2 Thes. 1.6, 7, 8, 9, 10. Rev. 3.9. Isa. 60.12, 13, 14. Then certainly you have an interest in the promise. When a man can show his own heart daily, in the glass of the promises, a greater worth, excellency and glory, than all this world affords, without all controversy he has an interest in the promises. Thus those Worthies, of whom this world was not worthy, Heb. 11. and the Martyrs in all ages, did commonly present better, higher and greater things to their own souls in the promises, than any their adversaries were able to propose to draw them off from Christ, their profession or principles, etc. and by this means they did very courageously & honourably maintain their ground in the face of all the gay and golden temptations that they met withal. Mat. 5.10, 11, 12 Burn my foot if you will (said that noble Martyr S. Basil) that it may da ce everlastingly with the Angels in heaven. Crudelitas vestra, gloria nostra, Your cruelty is our glory, said they in Tertullian; and the harder we are put to it, the greater shall be our reward in heaven. Basi● will tell you, that the most cruel Martyrdom is but a crafty trick to escape death, to pass from life to life, as he speaks; It can be but a day's journey between the Cross and Paradise. Though the Cross be bitter, yet it is but short: A little storm, as one said of julian's persecution, and an eternal calm follows. Adrianus seeing the Martyrs suffer cheerfully such grievous and dreadful things, asked, Why they would endure such misery, 1 Cor. 2.9. when they might (by retracting) free themselves; upon which one of them alleged that Text, Eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the heart of man, the things which God hath prepared for them that love him. The naming of the Text, and seeing them suffer such hard things cheerfully, did (by a blessing from on high) so really and effectually convert him, that afterwards he became a Martyr too. Acts 16.25. When we see poor, weak, feeble Christians, defying their torments, conquering in the midst of sufferings, singing in prison as Paul and Silas did, kissing the stake, as Henry Voes did: clapping their hands when they were half consumed with fire, as Hawks did; blessing God that ever they were born to see that day, as John Noyes did; calling their execution day, their wedding day, as Bishop Ridley did; we cannot but conclude, that they had an eye to the recompense of reward, and they saw such great, and sweet, and glorious things in the promises, that did so refresh, delight and ravish their hearts, and transport their souls, that all their heavy afflictions seemed light, and their long afflictions short, and their most bitter afflictions sweet and easy to them. But, The sixth Maxim or Consideration. SIxthly, consider, That 'tis granted on all hands, that the least degree of grace, if true, is sufficient to salvation; for the promises of life and glory, of remission and salvation, of everlasting happiness and blessedness, Mark. 16.16. John 3.16, 36. M●t. 5. John 6, 40. are not made over to degrees of grace, but to the truth of grace, not to faith in triumph, but to faith in truth; and therefore the sense and evidence of the least grace, yea of the least degree of the least grace, may afford some measure of assurance. Grace is the fruit of the Spirit, Gal. 5.22. and the Tree is known by his fruit, Mat. 12.33. I don't say, An eminent Minister, who was a famous instrument of converting many to God, was wont to say, that for his own pat he had no other evidence in himself of being in the state of grace, than that he was sensible of his deadness. that weak grace will afford a strong assurance, or a full assurance (for that rather arises from strength of grace, than from truth of grace) but I say, weak grace may afford some assurance: And oh, that all weak Christians would seriously lay this to heart, for it may serve to relieve them against many fears, doubts, discouragements and jealousies, which do much disturb the peace and comfort of their precious souls; though the least measures of grace can't satisfy a sincere Christian, yet they ought to quiet his conscience, and cheer his heart, and confirm his judgement of his interest in Christ. The least measure of grace is like a Diamond, very little in bulk, but of high price and mighty value, and accordingly we are to improve it for our comfort and encouragement. A Goldsmith makes reckoning of the least filings of gold, 'Slight not the lowest, the meanest evidences of grace. God may put thee to make use of the lowest as thou thinkest, even that, 1 Joh. 3.14. that may be worth a thousand worlds to thee. Page 33. of a little piece called a choice drop of honey. and so should we of the least measures of grace. A man may read the King's Image upon a silver penny, as well as upon a larger piece of coin. The least dram of grace bears the Image of God upon it; and why then should it not evidence the goodness and happiness of a Christians estate. It's a true saying, That the assurance of an eternal life, is the life of this temporal life. I have read, that Mr. Jordain, one of the Aldermen of the City of Exeter, would use to ask grown Professors, whether they had any assurance; which if they denied, he would tell them, that he was even ashamed of them; In good earnest (saith he) I would study the promises, and go into my closet, and lock the door, and there plead them to God, and say, that I would not go forth, till he gave me some sense of his love. He would often mention and try himself by these three Marks: First, a sincere desire to fear the name of God, which he grounded upon that, Neh. 1. ult. Secondly, a sincere desire to do the will of God in all things required; which he grounded upon Psal. 119.6. Thirdly, a full purpose of heart to cleave to the Lord, which he grounded upon Act. 11.23. The discovery of grace in thy heart though but one grain, and that of mustardseed, will assure thee of thy election and final salvation. Fords spirit of Adoption, p. 248. These he would often press upon others, and these he frequently tried himself by, and from these he had much assurance and comfort. Mr. Stephen Marshal, in a Sermon of his, on Isa. 9.2. saith, Look and examine, whether thou dost not loathe thyself as a base creature; and dost thou make this nothing? Secondly, Dost thou not in thy heart value and prise the meanest child of God, more than the greatest men in the world, that have not the image of God, the image of grace and holiness stamped upon them, I pray God (saith Mr. Marshal) that many of God's people do not want these evidences. If our souls (saith another) shall like of Christ for a Suitor, when we find no other jointure but the Cross, Mr. Dod on the commandments page 313, 314. we may be sure we are Christians. A man may want the feeling of his faith, and cry and call again and again for it, and feel nothing all this while, and yet nevertheless have true and sound faith: For the feeling of, and mourning for the want of faith, and the earnest and constant desire of it, is an infallible sign of faith. For this is a sure Rule, that so long as one feeleth himself sick he is not dead; and the high estimation of faith, joined with a vehement desire of it, is a singular evidence that there is a sound and lively root of faith in our hearts. 1. Pet. 1.2. Mr. Love, his zealous Christian, pag. 29. last part. All the elect of God shall have the sanctification of the Spirit unto obedience, and the sprinkling of the blood of Christ upon their hearts, sooner or later. I do not press the having of these things gradually, but sincerely; an elect person may want many a degree of grace, but if he have them in sincerity, Dr. Sibbs, his commentary on the first Chapter of the second Epistle of Paul to the Corinthians, ver. 22. pag. 491, 492. though in the least measure, it is a sufficient evidence of his election. An earnest is little in regard of the whole; perhaps we have but a shilling to secure us of many pounds: so than the point is this, That howsoever we may be assured of our estate in grace, and likewise that we shall hold out, yet the ground of this assurance is not from any great measure of grace; but though t be little in quantity, it may be great in assurance and security. As we value an earnest, not for the worth that is in itself, but because it assures us of a great bargain; we have an eye more to the consummation of the bargain, than to the quantity of the earnest; so it is here, grace is but an earnest: yet notwithstanding, though it be little, as an earnest is, yet it is great in assurance and validity, answerable to the relation of that it hath to assure us. Though grace be little, yet as little as it is, seeing it is an earnest, and the first fruits (as the Apostle saith) which were but little in regard of the whole harvest, yet it is of the nature of the whole, and thereupon it comes to secure. A spark of fire is but little, yet it is fire as well as the whole element of fire; and a drop of water is but little, yet it is water as well as the whole Ocean. When a man is in a dark place, put the case it be in a dungeon, if he have but a ●ittle light shining into him from a little crevice, that little light discovers that the day is broke, that the Sun is risen. Put the case there be but one grape on a Vine, it shows that it is a Vine, and that the Vine is not dead: So put the case that there be but the appearance of a little grace in a Christian, perhaps the Spirit of God appears but in one grace in him at that time, yet that one grace showeth that we are Vines, and not thistles, or thorns or base plants, and it shows that there is life in the root. Thus you see how fully this Reverend Doctor speaks to the case. That friend that writes the life and death of Mr. John Marcol, once Preacher of the Gospel at Dublin, saith, See his Treatise, published by Mr. Winter, Mr. Chambers, Mr. Eton, Mr. Carryl, and Mr. Mantou, pag. 36, 37. That in preparation for the Supper-Ordinance, he would bring himself unto the Test, and to say the truth, was very clear in the discovering and making out his own condition, being well acquainted with the way of Gods dealing with the soul, and with the way of the souls closing with Christ. Instance, April. 3. 1653. Upon search I find, 1. Myself an undone creature. 2. That the Lord Jesus sufficiently satisfied as Mediator, the Law for sin. 3. That he is freely offered in the Gospel. 4. So far as I know my own heart, I do through mercy hearty consent, that he only shall be my Saviour, not my works or duties, which I do only in obedience to him. 5. If I know my heart, I would be ruled by his Word and Spirit. Behold, in a few words (saith he that writes his life and death) the sum and substance of the Gospel. By these Instances we may see, that some of the precious servants of God have found a great deal of comfort, support, rest, content, and some measure of assurance, from a lower rank of evidences, than those that many strong Christians do reach unto, etc. But, The seventh Maxim or Consideration. SEventhly, consider, That all men and women that are desirous to know how it will go with them in another world, they must peremptorily resolve to be determined by Scripture in the great matters of their interest in Christ; the blessed Scripture is the great uncontroverted Rule, This we believe, when we first begin to believe, that we ought not to believe any thing beyond Scripture. Tertullian. and therefore if a person can prove from Scripture that his graces are true, or that he is in a gracious estate, or that he has an interest in Christ, or that he has sayingly, graciously stricken Covenant with God, than he must resolutely and peremptorily resolve to grant so much as unchangably to acquiesce in it, to stick fast to it, and to hear nothing against it, from the world, the flesh, or the devil. God hath plainly told us in his blessed Word, who shall be saved, and who shall be damned, though not by name, yet by the qualifications, by which they are described in the Bible; there are the Statute-Laws of heaven, and the standing Rule by which all must be tried, every man must stand or fall, be eternally blessed, or eternally miserable, as his condition is consonant to, or various from the infallible characters of saving grace contained in the holy Scripture, witness that, Isa. 8.20. To the Law and to the Testimony, if they speak not according to this word, it is because there is no light (or no morning) in them. So John 12.48. He that rejecteth me, and receiveth not my words, hath one that judgeth him; the word that I have spoken, the same shall judge him in the last day. Mat. 5.18. For verily I say unto you, till heaven and earth pass, on jot, or one title shall in no wise pass from the Law till all be fulfilled. So John 10.35. And the Scripture cannot be broken, or violated, or made void; but though this be an indispensable duty, yet certainly there is (especially in times of great afflictions, temptations, desertions, fears and doubts) a very great aptness and proneness in Christians to expect strange means rather than right means, and new means rather than old means, and invented means rather than appointed means, & to build their faith upon something beside the Word, or that is without the compass of the Word, rather than upon the plain and naked Word itself; being in this very like to many weak, crazy, distempered and diseased Patients, that are more ready to fancy every new Medicine and new Doctor they hear of, and to be tampering with them, than to expect a recovery, by going through a course of Physic prescribed by the Physician that best understands their diseases, and the most proper and effectual means for their recoveries. You know when Naaman the Assyrian came to the Prophet Elisha to be cured of his Leprosy, he only sent out a Messenger to him, who bid him go and wash seven times in Jordan, and his flesh should come again unto him, and he should be clean, 2 Kings 5.10. but Naaman's blood rises, and his heart swells, and he grows very wrath, and all because he did not like the means prescribed by the Prophet, and because he thought in his own heart, that the Prophet would have used more likely means to have wrought the cure, ver. 11, 12. So many Christians when they lie under great agonies and sore perplexities of soul, and are encouraged to act faith upon the promises, and to rest their weary souls upon the Word of grace, they are ready to think and say, that these things, these means will never heal them, nor comfort them, nor be a relief or support unto them, unless the Lord does from heaven, by extraordinary Revelations, Visions, Signs and Miracles, confirm his promises to them; and hereupon they make light of the blessed Scriptures, which are the springs of life, and the only bottom upon which all our comforts, peace and happiness is to be built; yea, they relinquish that more sure word of prophecy which shines as a light in a dark place. 2 Pet. 1.19. Certainly the acting of faith on the precious promises, and the cleaving of the soul unto those blessed truths declared in the Gospel of grace, is the most sure, ready and compendious way of obtaining a blessed assurance, Eph. 1.13. and a full establishment of heart, Com. on Gen. cap. 38. in all sound, solid and abiding joy and peace; and therefore Luther, though (as he confesseth) he was often tempted to ask for Signs, Apparitions and Revelations from heaven to confirm him in his way, yet tells us how strongly he did withstand them, Pactum feci cum Domino Deo meo, etc. I have (saith he) indented with the Lord my God, that he would never send me Dreams, Visions, Angels, for I am well contented with this gift, that I have the holy Scripture, which doth abundantly teach and supply all necessaries for this life, and that also which is to come. Certainly, Austin hit the mark, when he prayed, Lord, let thy holy Scriptures be my pure delights, in which I can neither deceive, or ever be deceived. Certainly the balance of the sanctuary should weigh all the Oracles of God, decide all, and the Rule of God's Word be the square and judge of all. O Sirs, dare you venture your souls upon it, that the blessed Scriptures are false, that they are but a Fable? dare you stand forth, and say, if the Scriptures be not a lie, let us be damned for ever and ever? dare you stand up and say, we are freely contented that the everlasting worm shall gnaw on our hearts for ever, and that our bodies and souls shall for ever and ever lie burning in infernal flames, if the Scriptures prove not at last a cheat, a deceit, a mere forgery and imposture? Now, if you dare not thus to say, and thus to venture, then peremptorily resolve to be determined by Scripture, in the great concernments of your precious souls. They that would take their parts in promised comforts, they must follow the voice of the Word, and subscribe to the sentence of conscience, following that Word. If the Word approve of thee, as sound and sincere with God, assuredly thou art so, for that rule cannot err: If the Word saith, that thy heart is right with God, thou must maintain that Testimony against all disputes whatever. Never enter into dispute with Satan, or thine own self, about thy estate, but by taking and making the Scripture the judge of the controversy; when fears rise high, you say you shall never have mercy; b●t dot● the Word say so? The Lord never gave himself to me; but doth the Word say so? Never was any as I am; but doth the Word say so? I cannot see, nor conceive, nor think, that the Lord hath any love for me; but doth the Word say so? yea, doth not the Word say, That his thoughts are not as your thoughts, nor his ways as your ways? Isa. 55.8, 9 But as the heavens are higher than the earth, so are his ways higher than your ways; and his thoughts than your thoughts. I have not that peace and joy that others have, therefore the Lord intends no good towards me; but doth the Word say so? Oh, but if my inside were but turned outward, good men would loathe me, and wicked men would laugh at me; but doth the Word say so? Oh, but my heart was never right with God; but doth the Word say so? Oh, but that which I have taken all this while for saving grace, is but common grace; but doth the Word say so? Oh, but the face of God is hid from me, my Sun is set in a cloud, and will never rise more; but doth the Word say so? Oh, but Satan is let lose upon me, and therefore God hates me; but doth the Word say so? yea, doth not the Word tell you, That those who have been most beloved of God, have been most tempted by Satan? Witness Christ, David, Job, Joshua, Peter, Paul, etc. Oh, but I am afflicted, so as never was any before me; but doth the Word say so? Oh, let the Word have the casting voice, and not thine own frail distempered reason: Oh, don't only hear what sin, and Satan, and thine own heart can say against thee, but hear also what the Word of the Lord Jesus can say for thee. Let the Word of the Lord be judge on both sides, and then all will be well. I know that the impenitent and unbelieving person that lives and dies without grace in his heart, and an interest in Christ, shall as certainly be damned, as if I saw him this very moment under everlasting burn; because God in the Scripture has said it, Mark 16.16. John 3.18.36. Rev. 21.8. Rom. 2.4, 5. 1 Cor. 6.9, 10. Gal. 5.19, 20, 21. Heb. 12.14. And I know that the holy, humble, true, penitent, believing, selfdenying, and sin-mortifying Christian, shall be as certainly saved, as if at this very time I saw him in an actual possession of glory; because God in the Scripture has said it, Mat. 5. 3-12. Rom. 8.1.13. Act. 10.43. Joh. 3.15, 16, 36. Chap. 6.37, 38, 39, 40, etc. O Sirs, no man in his wits dares dispute against the Authority of Scripture, or deny it as false and erroneous; and therefore if the Scripture say, a man has grace, he ought in conscience to subscribe to it against all objections or temptations to the contrary. For ever remember this; Till a man comes to be willing to have his spiritual and eternal estate to be determined by Scripture, he will never enjoy any settled rest or quiet in his spirit. When once the goodness of a man's estate is cleared up to him by the Word, he is never to regard what Satan or carnal reason objects against him; Satan is a liar and a deceiver, of near six thousand years standing; he is full of envy, and full of malice, and full of wiles, devices and fetches, and therefore give no credit to any of his reports against the report of the Word, but stand by the testimony of the Word, and the witness of your own consciences, against all Satan's cavils, temptations, objections and suggestions; and then, and not till then, will you find rest to your souls. He that would hold on cheerfully and resolutely in a Christian course, and go merrily to his grave, and singing to heaven, he must maintain the testimony of the Word against all the gainsayings of sense or carnal reason, he must hear nothing, nor believe nothing against the Word, nor against the goodness and happiness of his own estate or condition, which has been evidenced to him from the Word. Men will not be easily baffled out of their estates: If some great man should come and lay claim to your estates, you will not presently give them up, though your evidences are not at hand, or though they are blotted, or though perhaps you cannot clearly make out your title, yet you will not tamely and quietly give up your estates; and yet how ready are many Christians, upon every clamour of Satan against their souls and spiritual estates, to give up all, and to conclude, that they are hypocrites, and have no true grace and spiritual life in them! etc. But, The eighth Maxim or Consideration. EIghthly, consider, That a godly man may not only come to a sure knowledge of his gracious estate, but it is also more easily attainable, than many (may I not say, than most) do apprehend or believe; for if a gracious man will but argue rationally from Scripture, he shall be forced to conclude, that he has grace, and that he has an interest in Christ, and that he shall be saved, unless he be resolved before hand boldly to deny Scripture-truths. Sirs, Rom. 8.15. look in what way the spirit of bondage doth ordinarily work fear, terror and horror in the hearts of unconverted persons, in the same way the spirit of Adoption doth ordinarily work hope and assurance in the heart of the Saints. Now, John 16.8. the spirit of bondage commonly awakens secure sinners, and fills the hearts and consciences of poor sinners with fear, horror and amazement, by setting home upon their souls such practical syllogisms as these: Every liar shall have his portion in the lake, Rev. 21.8. that burneth with fire and brimstone. But I am a liar, Therefore I shall have my portion in that lake that burneth with fire and brimstone. Or thus. He that believeth not, is condemned already. John 3.18. I believe not, Therefore I am condemned already. Or thus. He that hateth his brother, is a murderer, 1 John 3.15. and hath not eternal life abiding in him. I hate my brother, Therefore I am a murderer, and have not eternal life abiding in me. Or thus. Christ shall be revealed from heaven in flaming fire, 2 Thes. 1.7, 8, to take vengeance on them that know not God, and that obey not the Gosspel of his Son. I know not God, I obey not the Gospel of his Son, Therefore Christ shall be revealed from heaven in flaming fire, to take vengeance on me. Or thus. Psal 9 15. The wicked shall be turned into hell. I am wicked, Therefore I shall be turned into hell. Now in like manner the spirit of adoption brings the heirs of the promise to the assurance of hope, Heb. 6.17. by setting home such practical syllogisms as these. First, Whosoever truly and hearty receives the Lord Jesus Christ, are truly and justly reputed to be the sons of God, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, signifies authority. Such as receive the Lord Jesus, have authority to be called the sons of God. Others may call God father, and themselves sons, but they have not that right and authority to do it as believers have, Mark 16.16. Joh. 3.16, 18, 36 Mat. 3.2, 8. Luke 24 47. Act. 5.31. Chap. 3.19. Luke 13.3. Joh. 1.12. But I have received Christ all the ways that the Word there can import; I am hearty willing to receive the Lord Jesus Christ in all his offices, viz. as a King to rule me, a Prophet to teach and instruct me, and a Priest to offer and intercede for me; I am willing to receive him as a Sanctifier, as well as a Saviour, and to receive him as my Lord, as well as to receive him as my Redeemer, and to receive him upon his own terms, viz. of taking up his Cross, denying myself, and following of him; therefore I may safely, boldly, plainly and warrantably conclude, that I am a son of God, and that I have an interest in God, according to the Scripture last cited; which Scripture cannot be broken, nor cannot fail, nor cannot be unbound or loosed, as the Greek word in that, John 10.35. imports, etc. Secondly, A gracious soul may argue thus; All the great and precious promises concerning everlasting happiness and blessedness, are made over to faith and repentance, as the Scriptures do abundantly evidence: Now, he that really finds faith and repentance wrought in his soul, so that he is able to say, I am a repenting and a believing sinner, he may truly and safely conclude, that he shall be saved; for all the promises of eternal happiness and blessedness, do run out with a full stream to faith and repentance: I readily grant, that a strong hope results from the clear evidence it hath of both these. We read in Scripture of a threefold assurance: As first, an assurance of understanding, Col. 2.2. Secondly, an assurance of faith, Heb. 10.22. Thirdly, an assurance of hope, Heb. 6.11. And 'tis a very choice note, that acute D. A. hath upon it, viz. That these three make up one practical Syllogism, wherein knowledge forms the proportion, faith makes the assumption, and hope draws the conclusion. I do (saith the Christian) assuredly know from the Word that can't deceive me, That the believing and repenting sinner, shall be saved, my conscience also tells me, that I do unfeignedly believe and repent, therefore I do firmly hope, that I shall (how ever vile and unworthy (otherwise) be saved. Now mark, answerable to the evidence that a man hath in his own soul, that faith and repentance is wrote in him; so will his hope and assurance be weaker or stronger, more or less. If a man's evidence for the truth of his faith and repentance be dark, and weak, and low, and uncertain, his hope and assurance that is born of these parents (as I may say) must needs partake of its parent's weakness and infirmities, and be itself weak, and dark, and low, and wavering, and uncertain, as they are from which it results; ●ope and assurance ebbs and flows, as the evidence of a man's faith and repentance ebbs and flows. Assurance can't be ordinarily had without a serious examination of our own hearts, for assurance is the certain knowledge of the conclusion drawn from the premises, one out of Scripture, the other by a reflect act of the understanding or conscience, thus: He that believes and reputes shall certainly be saved, that is the voice of the Word of God; then by the search of a man's own heart, he must be able to say, but I believe and repent, and from these two doth result this assurance, that he may safely conclude, therefore I shall be saved. And, O that all Christians were so wise, as seriously to ponder upon these things. Thirdly, a godly man may argue thus. He that hath respect unto all God's commands, shall never be ashamed, Psal. 119.6. Then shall I not be ashamed, when I have respect unto a l thy commandments. Shame is both the tempora●● deternal fru●● sin, Rom SIXPENCES. Dan. 12.2. He that is so honest and faithful with God, as to do his best, shall find that God will be so gracious as to pardon his worst. And this Gospel indulgence, David does more than hint at in those words, Then shall I not be ashamed, when I have respect unto all thy commandments. Or, as the Hebrew has it, Then shall I not blush when my eye is to all thy commandments. The Traveller you know, hath his eye towards the place where he is going; and though he be yet short of it, yet he is putting on and pressing forward all he can to reach it; so when the eye of a Saint is to all the commands of God, and he is still a pressing forwards toward full obedience, such a foul shall never be put to shame, it shall never be put to the blush, but it shall be able, living and dying, boldly to appear in the presence of the Lord. Mark, the Psalmist doth not say, when I obey all thy commandments, but when I have respect to all thy commandments; and that implies an inward awe and reverential eye towards every duty God requires: You know, to have respect unto a thing is this, When that of all others sways most with us, as when a Master commands such a business, the servant will do it, because he respects him; and at his command he will go and come, though he will not at the command of any other.) But I have respect unto all his commandments, therefore I shall never be ashamed. Fourthly, a godly man may argue thus. He that loveth the brethren, is passed from death to life, and consequently is in Christ, 1 John 3.18, 19 But I love the brethren, therefore I am passed from death to life, and so consequently am in Christ. Fifthly, a godly man may argue thus. He that confesseth and forsaketh his sin, shall certainly find mercy, Prov. 28.13. But I confess and forsake my sins (1. In respect of my sincere desires. 2. In respect of my gracious purposes. 3. In respect of my fixed resolutions. 4. In respect of my faithful and constant endeavours) therefore I shall certainly find mercy. Sixthly, a godly man may argue thus. He that hath the testimony of a good conscience, he may rejoice in that testimony 2 Cor. 1.12. Isa. 38.3. But I have the testimony of a good conscience, therefore I may rejoice in that testimony. Seventhly, a godly man may argue thus. He over whom presumptuous sins has not dominion, is upright (Psal. 19.13. keep back thy servant from presumptuous sins, let them not have dominion over me; then shall I be upright.) But presumptuous sins has not dominion over me, therefore I am upright. Mark, unfeigned willingness to part with every sin, and to mortify every sin, is a sure sign of uprightness, a sure sign of saving grace; when a man is sincerely willing to leave every sin, and to indulge himself in none, no not his darling sin, it is a most certain sign of his integrity and sincerity, as you may evidently see, by comparing of these Scriptures together, Psal. 17.1, 3, 4. Psal. 119.1, 2, 3, 6. Job 1.8. and Chap. 2.3. Psal. 18.23. I was upright before him. Oh, but how do you know that? how do you prove that? how are you assured of that? Why by this, that I have kept myself from mine iniquity. Doubtless, there is as much of the power of God required, and as much strength of grace required, and as much of the presence and assistance of the Spirit required to work a man off from his bosom sins, from his darling sins, from his beloved sins, as there is required to work him off from all other sins; a conquest here, clearly speaks out uprightness of heart. Eighthly, a godly man may argue thus. He whose heart doth not condemn him (1. Of giving himself over to a voluntary serving of sin. Or, 2. Of making a trade of sin. Or, 3. Of allowing of himself in any course or way of sin. Or, 4. Of sinning, as wicked men sin, who sin studiously, resolutely, affectionately, delightfully, customarily, wilfully, or with their whole will, or with the full consent and sway of their souls. Or, 5. of indulging, conniving or winking at any known sin. Or, 6. Of living in the daily neglect of any known positive duty against light and conscience, or of an ordinary shifting off of any known service hat God requires of him in that place or station wherein God has set him) may have confidence (〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 is boldness, liberty of speech) towards God, 1 John 3.21. But my heart does not condemn me, 1. Of giving myself over to a voluntary serving of sin. Nor, 2. Of making a trade of sin. Nor, 3. Of allowing myself in any course or way of sin. Nor, 4. Of sinning as wicked men sin, viz. studiously, resolutely, affectionately, delightfully, customarily, wilfully. Nor, 5. Of indulging, conniving, or winking at any known sin. Nor, 6. Of living in the daily neglect of any known duty against light and conscience; therefore I may have confidence or boldness towards God, I may use liberty of speech with God, I may use the liberty and freedom of a favourite of heaven, I may open my heart to God, as favourites do to their Prince, viz. freely, familiarly, boldly. When Austin was converted, and his heart sincere with God, he could bless God that he could think of his former evil ways (which were very bad) without fear: O, to what a height of holy boldness and familiarity with God, had this man of God arrived to! But, Ninethly, a godly man may argue thus. To such who are poor in spirit, the Kingdom of heaven belongs, Mat. 5.3. By poor in spirit, is not meant poor in substance, that not being a thing praise worthy in itself, Chrysost. in loc. but the broken and humble in heart, who hath no high thoughts or conceits of himself, but is lowly in his own eyes, as a young child. Blessed are the poor in spirit; that is (non habentes inflantem spiritum) who hath no lofty or puffed up spirit. Augustin. Hilar. Tertullian. The poor in spirit, are those that are lowly, being truly conscious of their own unworthiness. Nulli pauperes spiritu nisi humiles; none are poor in spirit, but the humble. Blessed are the poor in spirit; that is, blessed are they whose spirits are brought into such an humble gracious frame, as willingly, quietly and contentedly to lie down in a poor low condition, when it is the pleasure of the Lord to bring them into such a condition. Blessed are the poor in spirit; that is, blessed are they who are truly and kindly apprehensive and sensible of their spiritual wants, poverty and misery, There are some that are poor in estate, and others that are poor in spirit; and there are some that are poor spirited in the cause of God, Christ, the Gospel and their own souls, and there are others that are poor in spirit; there are some that are spiritually poor, as all are that are destitute of grace, and others that are poor in spirit; there are some that are Evangelically poor, and others that are superstitiously poor; as those Papists who renounce their estates, and vow a voluntary poverty. The poverty that hath blessedness annexed to it, is only an Evangelical poverty. that see their need of God's free grace to pardon them, that see their need of Christ's righteousness to them, that see their need of the Spirit of Christ to purge, change and sanctify them, that see their need of more heavenly wisdom to counsel them, that see their need of more of the power of God to support them, and of the goodness of God to supply them, and of the mercy of God to comfort them, and of the presence of God to refresh them, and of the patience of God to bear with them, etc. that see their need of greater measures of faith to conquer their fears, and of greater measures of wisdom to walk holily, harmlessly, bl●mlesly and exemplarily in the midst of temptations, snares and dangers; and that see their need of greater measures of patience to bear their burdens without fretting or fainting; and that see their need of greater measures of zeal and courage to bear up bravely against all sorts of opposition, both from within and from without; and that see their need of greater measures of love to cleave to the Lamb, and to follow the Lamb whither ever he goes; and that see their need of living in a continual dependence upon God and Christ, for fresh influences, incomes and supplies of grace, of comfort, of strength, whereby they may be enabled to act for God, and walk with God, and glorify God, and bring forth fruit to God, and withstand all temptations that tend to lead the heart from God; and that see nothing in themselves upon which they dare venture their everlasting estates, and therefore fly to the free, rich, sovereign and glorious grace of God in Christ, as to their sure and only sanctuary, Luke 18.13. Phil. 3.9. Blessed are the poor in spirit; that is, blessed are they that are truly apprehensive and sensible of their spiritual poverty, that see themselves fallen in the first Adam from all their primitive purity, excellency, and glory. There are five things we lost in our fall. 1. Our holy Image, and became vile. 2. Our Sonship, and became slaves. 3. Our Friendship, and became enemies. 4. Our Communion, and became strangers. 5. Our Glory, and became miserable. And that see an utter inability and insufficiency in themselves, and in all other creatures, to deliver them out of their fallen estate.) But I am poor in spirit, therefore the Kingdom of heaven belongs to me. Tenthly, a godly man may argue thus. Such as are true mourners are blessed, & shall be comforted, Mat. 5.3. (That is, such as mourn for sin with an exceeding great mourning, that mourn for sin with a funeral sorrow (as the word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 signifies) that mourn for sin, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Beati lugentes. Blessed are they that mourn. The way to Paradise is through the valley of tears. Some report of Mary Magdalen, that she spent thirty years in Galba, weeping for●er sins. as a man mourneth for the loss of his only Son, Zech. 12.10. or as Jacob mourned for Joseph, or as David mourned for Absalon, or as the people mourned for the loss of good Josiah, 2 Chron. 35.24, 25. That mourn for secret sins as well as open, for sins against grace as well as for sins against the Law; that mourn for sin as the greatest evil in the world, that mourns for his own sins, Ezek. 7.16. as David did, Psal. 51. or as Ephraim did, Jer. 31.18, 19 or as Peter did, Mat. 26.75. or as Mary Magdalen did, Luke 7.38. And that mourns for the sins of others as well as for his own, as David did, Psa. 119.136, 158. and as Jeremiah did, Jer. 13.17. or as Lot did, 2 Pet. 2.7, 8. or as they did in that, Ezek. 9.4 That mourns under the sense of his spiritual wants, that mourns under the sense of his spiritual losses, as loss of communion with God, loss of the favour of God, loss of the presence of God, loss of the exercise of grace, loss of the joys of the Spirit, loss of inward peace, etc. or that mourn, not only for their own afflictions and miseries, but also for the afflictions and miseries of Joseph, as Nehemiah did, Neh. 1.2, 3, 4, or as jeremiah did, jer. 9.1.2. or as Christ did when he wept over jerusalem, Luke 19.41, 42. or that mourns because he cannot mourn for these things, or that mourns because he can mourn no more, or that mourns because God has so little honour in his heart, in his house, in his life, in the world, in the Churches.) But I am a true mourner, therefore I am blessed, and shall be comforted. Eleventhly, a godly man may argue thus. They which truly hunger and thirst after righteousness are blessed, and shall be filled, Mat. 5.6. They are not therefore blessed because they hunger and thirst, but because they shall be filled; blessedness will be in fullness, not in hunger; but hunger must go before filling, that we may not loathe the loaves. Aug. de verbis Domini, Serm. 5. (Or they that are hungering and thirsting, as the Greek runs, being the participle of the present tense, intimating, that where ever this is the present disposition of men's souls, they are blessed: He that sees an absolute necessity of the righteousness of Christ to justify him, and to enable him to stand boldly before the throne of God; he that sees his own righteousness to be but as filthy rags, Isa. 64.4. to be but as dross and dung, Phil. 3.7, 8. He that sees the Lord Jesus Christ, with all his riches and righteousness, clearly and freely offered to poor sinners in the everlasting Gospel; he that in the Gospel-glass sees Christ to be made sin for them, that knew no sin, that they may be made the righteousness of God in him, 2 Cor. 5, 21. He that in the same glass sees Christ to be made wisdom, and righteousness, and sanctification, and redemption, to all those that are sincerely willing to make a venture of their immortal souls, and eternal estates, upon him and his righteousness; and he that sees the righteousness of Christ to be a most perfect, pure, complete, spotless, matchless, Some take hungering and thirsting here literally, comparing of it with Luke 6.21 Others understand the words morally, by hungering and thirsting they understand a moral hunger and thirst, which is when men hunger and thirst for justice and judgement to be rightly executed. Psal. 119.5, 10, 20, 131. Judg. 15.18. 1 Chron. 11.18. Psal. 42.1, 2. infinite righteousness, and under these apprehensions and persuasions, is carried out in earnest and unsatisfied hungerings and thirstings, to be made a partaker of this righteousness, and to be assured of this righteousness, and to put on this righteousness as a royal robe, Isa. 61.10. he is the blessed soul; and he that hungers and thirsts after the righteousness of Christ imparted, as well as after the righteousness of Christ imputed, after the righteousness of sanctification, as well as after the righteousness of justification, he is a blessed soul, and shall at last be filled. The righteousness of sanctification, or inherent righteousness, lies in the spirits infusing into the soul those holy principles, divine qualities, or supernatural graces that the Apostle mentions in that, Gal. 5.22, 23. These habits of grace which are severally distinguished by the names of faith, love, hope, meekness, etc. are nothing else but the new nature or new man, which after God is created in righteousness and true holiness, Eph. 4.24. He that hungers and thirsts after the righteousness of sanctification, out of a deep serious sense. of his own unrighteousness; he that hungers and thirsts after the righteousness of sanctification, as earnestly as hungry men do for meat, or as thirsty men do for drink, or as the innocent person that is falsely charged or accused, longs to be cleared and righted, or as Rachel did for children, or as David did after the water of the Well of Bethlehem, or as the hunted Hart doth after the water brooks; he that hungers and thirsts not after some righteousness only, but he that hungers and thirsts after all righteousness, he that hungers and thirsts not only after some grace, but all grace; not only after some holiness, but all holiness; he that hungers and thirsts after righteousness, out of love to righteousness, he that hungers and thirsts after righteousness, from a sight and sense of the loveliness and excellency that there is in righteousness; Phil. 3. 10-15. he that hungers and thirsts after the highest degrees and measures of righteousness and holiness, Psal. 63.1.8. Jer. 15.16. he that primarily, chief, hungers and thirsts after righteousness and holiness, he that industriously hungers and thirsts after righteousness and holiness, he that ordinarily, habitually, constanly, hungers and thirsts after righteousness and holiness, Psal. 119.20. My soul breaketh for the longing that it hath unto thy judgements at all times. By judgements we are to understand the statutes and commandments of God) Mark that word, at all times. Bad men have their good moods, as good men have their bad moods: A bad man may under gripes of conscience, a smarting rod, the approaches of death, or the fears of hell, or when he is Sermon-sick, cry out to the Lord for grace, for righteousness, for holiness; but he is the only blessed man that hungers and thirsts after righteousness at all times, and that hungers and thirsts after righteousness, according to the other forementioned short hints; he is certainly a blessed man, heaven is for that man, and that man is for heaven, that hungers and thirsts in a right manner after the righteousness of justification, and after the righteousness of sanctification.) But I do truly hunger and thirst after righteousness, therefore I am blessed, and shall be filled, etc. Twelfthly, A godly man may argue thus. Such as are truly and graciously merciful, are blessed, and shall obtain mercy, Mat. 5.7. Micha 6.8. Luke 6.36. August. de civet. Dei, 9.13. (Mercy is a commiserating of another man's misery in our hearts, or a sorrow for another man's distress, or a heart-grieving for another man's grief, arising out of an unfeigned love unto the party afflicted. Or more plainly thus: Mercy is a pitying of another man's misery, with a desire and endeavour to help him to the uttermost of our ability. The Hebrew for godly, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Chasid signifies gracious, merciful. The more godly any man is, the more merciful that man will be. Blessed are the merciful, that is, blessed are they that show mercy to others, out of a deep sense of the mercy of God to them in Christ: Blessed are such who show mercy out of love to mercy, out of a delight in mercy; blessed are such as show mercy out of love and obedience to the God of mercy; blessed are such as show mercy to men in misery, upon the account of the image of God, the glory of God that is stamped upon them; blessed are such as extend their piety and mercy, not only to men's bodies, but also to their precious and immortal souls: Soul-mercy is the chief of mercies; the soul is the most precious jewel in all the world, it is a vessel of honour, 'tis a spark of glory, 'tis a bud of eternity, 'tis the price of blood, 'tis beautified with the image of God, 'tis adorned with the grace of God, and 'tis clothed with the righteousness of God; such are blessed as show mercy to others, from gracious motives and considerations, viz. 'Tis free mercy that every day keeps hell and my soul asunder, 'tis mercy that daily pardons my sins, 'tis mercy that supplies all my inward and outward wants, 'tis mercy that preserves, and feeds, and my outward man, and 'tis mercy that renews, strengthens and prospers my inward man, 'tis mercy that has kept me many times from committing such and such sins, 'tis mercy that has kept me many a time from falling before such and such temptations, 'tis mercy that has many a time preserved me from being swallowed up by such and such inward and outward afflictions. Such as show mercy out of a design to exalt and glorify the God of mercy, such who show most mercy to them to whom God shows most mercy; these are blessed, and shall obtain mercy. Now mark, to such who are thus graciously, thus spiritually, thus divinely merciful, do these precious promises belong, Psal. 41.1. Blessed is the man that considereth the poor and needy, Prov. 22.9. He that hath a bountiful eye shall be blessed, for he giveth of his bread to the poor, Prov. 14.21. He that despiseth his neighbour sinneth, but he that hath mercy on the p or, happy is he, Prov. 11.25. The liberal soul shall be made f●t, and ●he that watereth shall be watered also himself. That 2 Cor. 9.8. is very remarkable; And God is able to make all grace abound towards you, that ye always having all sufficiency in all things, may abound to every good work. Behold, how words are here heaped up to make grace, and all grace, and all grace to abound; and who is it to? unto the liberal man, the merciful man, Job 29.13. The blessing of him that was ready to perish came upon me, and I caused the widow's heart to sing for joy, Luke 6.38. Give and it shall be given unto you; good measure, pressed down, and shaken together, and running over, shall men give into your bosom. Behold and wonder at the height of these expressions, that you have in this Text; we account it good measure when it is heaped up, but when it is heaped up and pressed down, that's more; but when it's heaped up and pressed down, and then heaped up and running over again, this is as much as possible can be made, this is as much as heart can wish. O Sirs, those that are of merciful spirits, they shall have mercy heaped up, pressed down, and running over; certainly that man must needs be in a happy and blessed condition, that can be in no condition wherein he shall not have mercy, yea mercy heaped up and running over, to supply all his necessities, Mat. 25.35. Come ye blessed of my father, receive the kingdom prepared for you from the beginning of the world. Come ye blessed, that's their estate; receive the kingdom, that's the issue and reward; and why so? I was hungry, and you gave me meat, I was thirsty, and you gave me drink, etc. But I am truly and graciously merciful, therefore I am blessed, and shall obtain mercy, etc. But, Thirteenthly, A godly man may argue thus. They that are pure in heart, are blessed and shall see God (that is, enjoy him, and live for ever with him) Mat. 5.8. But I am pure in heart, therefore I am blessed and shall see God. By the pure in heart, here in the Text, we may safely understand the sincere and single hearted Christian, 1 Tim. 1.5. Jam. 1.8. 1 Pet. 1.22. Prov. 20.6. Eccl. 2.21. 1 John 1.8. James 10.3. John 3.2. Luke 1.5, 6. in opposition to the double minded Christian, as you may easily perceive by comparing the Scriptures in the margin together. Mark, purity is twofold: First, simple and absolute; and in this sense, no man is pure in this life, no not one. Secondly, respective and in part, and that is the purity here meant. A pure heart, is a plain simple heart, without fraud or guile, like Nathaniel, in whom there was no g●ile; 'tis a heart that is evangelically blameless and sincere. But secondly, purity is opposed to mixture, purity consists in the immixedness of any thing inferior; that metal we account pure metal, which hath not any base than itself mixed with it; if you mix gold with silver, the silver is not made impure by the mixture of gold; but if you mix lead or tin with it, it's made impure. Remember once for all, viz. that a pure heart is such a one as hath cast off and cast out the love and allowance of every known sin, and mingles not with it, though never so small; such a heart as hath renounced every known way of sin, though there is corruption remaining in it, etc. yet it can solemnly and seriously appeal to God, that there is no known way of sin, but it hates, and abhors, and strives against, and will upon no terms allow of. This heart, in the language of the Gospel is a pure heart; yea, 'tis such a heart as dares venture upon the trial of God himself, Psal. 139.23, 24. Search me, O God, and know my heart, try me and know my thoughts, and see if there be any wicked way in me (or any way of pain, or of grief, or of provocation, as the Hebrew hath it, or any course of sin that is grievous to God or man. A gracious heart, a pure heart, can neither allow of any way of wickedness, nor wallow in any way of wickedness, nor make a trade of any way of wickedness, nor give up itself to any way of wickedness. Though sin may cleave to a pure heart, as dross doth to silver, yet a pure heart will not mix nor mingle with sin) and lead me in the way everlasting, or in the way of eternity, or in the way of antiquity, as the Hebrew hath it; that is, J●r. 6.16. that good old way that leads to peace and rest, to heaven and happiness. Evangelical purity of heart lies in this, that it will not admit any known sin to mingle with the frame and purpose of the heart; a pure heart like a pure fountain, will still be a working and a casting out the mud and filth that is in it: Though sin may cleave to a regenerate man, as dross doth to the silver, yet it mingles not with the regenerate part, nor the regenerate part mingles not with it, no more than oil mingles with the water, or water mingles with the oil. Now you know, though the water and the oil touch one another, yet they do not mingle one with another; so though grace and sin, in a regenerate man, may as it were, touch one another, yet they don't mingle one with another. Dear hearts, look, as we truly say, that that gold is pure gold that is digged out of the Mineral, though much dross may hang about it; and as we truly say, that such and such an Air is pure Air, though at times there be many fogs and mists within it; and as we truly say, that such and such springs are pure springs, though mud, and dirt, and filth may be lying at the bottom of those springs; and as we truly say, that face is a fair face, though it hath some freckles in it; so we may as truly say, that such and such a heart is a pure heart, though there may be much sinful dross and filth cleaving to it. The Jews report, that when Noah sent forth his sons to people the world, he delivered to every one of them some Relics of old Adam; it may be fabulous for the history, but 'tis true in the morality, the Relics of his sinful corruptions cleaves close to us all. Beloved, the best, the wisest, the holiest, and the most mortified Christians on earth, Rom. 7.22, 23. do carry about with them a body of sin and death, they have in them a fountain of original corruption, and from this fountain sin will still be arising, bubbling and a boiling up as the scum in a pot over the fire: but mark, as in wine, or honey, or water, though scum and filth may arise, yet the wine, the honey, the water, will be still a purging and purifying itself, and a working and casting it out; so though sin, though corruption, though spiritual filth may, and too often doth, arise in a gracious heart, yet there is a spring of grace, a spring of living water in him, John 4.14. All resistance of sin in a Scripture phrase, is called conquest; for in the resistance of it, there is as much love showed to God as in the conquest of it, though there be not so much power seen. there is a holy cleansing and purifying disposition in a regenerate person, that will still be a working and casting it out. But now mark, in men of impure hearts and lives, the scum doth not only arise, but it seethes and boils in, Ezek. 24.12. She wearied herself with lies, and her great scum went n●t f r●h out of her; notwithstanding all the threaten of God, and all the judgements of God upon her, yet her scum and filthiness boiled in; though God boiled Jerus●lem in the pot of his judgements, yet her scum and filth stuck to every side of her; wicked men's scum and filth doth not only arise, but it also seethes and boils in, and mingles together with their spirits, but so doth not the scum and filth that rises in a gracious heart; a Sheep may fall into the mire, but a Swine delights to wallow in the mire. But, Fourteen, A godly man may argue thus. Such as sin hath not a dominion over, are not under the Law, but under Grace, Rom. 6.14. But sin hath not a dominion over me, therefore I am not under the Law, but under grace. Sin may rebel in a Saint, but it shall never reign in a Saint. Look as those beasts, in that, Dan. 7.12. had their dominion taken away, though their lives were spared and prolonged for a season and a time; so when Christ and grace enters into the soul, they take away the dominion of sin, though they do for a time spare the life of sin. To prevent mistakes, premise with me briefly these few things. First, Rom. 7. that in every regenerate man there are two men, an old man and a new man; or if you please, flesh and spirit. Secondly, The old man, the fleshly part, will incline the soul, and bias the soul, as well to sins against the Gospel, as to sins against the Law, and to great sins as well as to small sins, witness Noah's drunkenness, Lot's incest, Assurs oppression, David's murder and adultery, Solomon's idolatry, and Peter's blasphemy. Thirdly, The old man, the fleshly part is as much in the will, as in any other part of the regenerate man; and therefore, when he falls into heinous sins, he may fall into them with consent, delight and willingness, so far as his will is unrenewed. 1 Thes. 5 22. Though a real Christian be changed in every part, yet 'tis but in part, and imperfect. Fourthly, The old man, the fleshly part is in a regenerate man's members, as well as in his will, and therefore they may be exercised and employed in and about those sins they have consented unto. Fifthly, High sinnings do waste and wound the conscience of a regenerate man, and lay him open to the sore rebukes of God, and call for great repentance, and fresh and frequent applications of the blood of Christ. These things being premised, a Question may be propounded, viz. Quest. What does the dominion of sin import, and wherein does it consist? Now to this considerable question, I shall give these eight following Answers. First, Sin is in dominion, when it hath the absolute and sovereign comma●● of the soul, when it hath an uncontradicted power, when it hath such an authority in the soul to command it as a King doth his subjects, or as the Centurion did his servants, Mat. 8.9. For I am a man under authority, having soldiers under me; and I say to this man go, and he goeth, and to another come, and he cometh, and to my servant do this, and he doth it. Now when sin has such a universal and easy authority and command over the whole man, body and soul, as that it can use them in the service of sin, when and where, and how it pleaseth, than sin is in dominion: where there is a peaceable, Eph. 2.2, 3. uncontrolled, willing, universal subjection of the whole man unto the commands of sin, there sin reigns. But, Secondly, Sin is in dominion, when in a course, when ordinarily there is a quiet, free, willing and total yielding of subjection to the authority, Law and command of sin. Mark, 'tis a full possession, a plenary delight, and a constant content in sin, Rom. 6.13, 14, 15, 16. that speaks out the reign and dominion of sin. Dominion of sin imports a complete and universal resignation of the whole will, and man to the obedience of it. That man that is wholly addicted and devoted to the ways of sin, that man is under the reign of sin; that man whose whole heart is universally married to his lusts, that man is under the dominion of his lusts; when a man does as freely, cheerfully, universally and readily obey his lusts, Eph. 2.3. 1 King. 21.25. Micah 7.3. A man may be subjects as a captive in this or that particular, tyranny of sin, who is not obedient as a servant to all the government of sin, for that takes i● the whole will, and an adequate submission thereof to the peaceable and uncontrolled power of sin. Rom. 7.15, 19, 23 as a child does his father, or a wife her husband, or a servant his Master, or a subject his Prince, than sin is in dominion; when a man sins with greediness, when with Ahab he sells himself to work wickedness, when he commits wickedness with both hands, when he gives himself up or over to all uncleanness and filthiness, when he freely and voluntarily resigns and surrenders up his body and soul to the obedience of sin, than sin reigns, than it keeps the throne; where the dominion of sin is erected, there it sits in the heart, as a King in his Throne, and gives forth its Laws and commands to the soul and body, and those commands are listened and consented to, approved and delighted in, etc. A subject can't in a course more freely, willingly, universally and cheerfully obey the commands of his Prince, than a sinner doth in a course freely, willingly, universally and cheerfully obey the commands of his lasts; and where ever this sad temper of spirit is, there is sin in dominion. But now mark, The Apostle, as Chrysostom and Theodoret observe on Rom. 6.12. doth not say, Let not sin tyrannize, for that is sins own work and not ours; but he says, Let it not reign in you; for when a King reigns, the Subjects do (●s it were) actively obey and embrace his command, whereas they are rather patients than agents in a tyranny. a regenerate man's will riseth against his sin, even then when he is worsted by sin, and led captive by sin: A Tyrant is obeyed unwillingly, the wills of his subjects rise up against his commands, and if his power were not superior to their wills, they would never obey him. Sin is no King, but a Tyrant in the souls of the Saints, and therefore their wills so far as they are renewed, can't but rise against it. O Sirs, remember this for ever, that the molesting, vexing and tempting power of sin, does not speak out its dominion; for sin may molest, and vex, and tempt as an enemy, where it doth not rule and reign as a King; as you see this day in many Nations of the earth, there are many enemies that do molest, vex and tempt the subjects of those Nations, who yet are far enough off from having any rule or dominion over them; but then sin is in dominion, when it commands in the heart as a King in his Throne, or as a Lord in his house, or as a General in his Army, freely, boldly, universally, cheerfully; and when the soul doth as freely, boldly, universally and cheerfully subject itself to sins commands; where men commonly yield up their wills and affections to the commands of sin, there sin reigns; and this is the case of every unregenerate man; but where the will does commonly make a stout opposition to sin, there it reigns not; now this is the case of every regenerate man. That Prince cannot truly be said to reign in that Kingdom, where commonly he meets with stout opposition: So 'tis here; A sincere Christian makes it the great business and work of his life (above all other things in this world) to make all the opposition he can against his lusts, and is throughly resolved to die fight against his sins, as Pietro Candiano (one of the Dukes of Venice) died fight against the Nauritines, It is a harder thing to fight with a man's lusts, than to fight with the cross. Augustine. with the weapons in his hand. A● Caesar said in a battle he fought against one of Pompey's sons, at other times I fought for honour, but now I fight for my life: so a sincere Christian fights against his sins, as for his life. Castellio's opinion was vain, viz. That men are of three sorts, some unregenerate, some regenerating, and others regenerated, and that these last have no combat betwixt flesh and spirit, which is quite cross to Scripture, Rom. 7. 14-24. Gal. 5.17. etc. and contrary to the experience of all Saints, in all the ages of the world. But, Thirdly, When a man is usually peremptory in his sinnings, in the face of all reprehensions and arguments that tend to dissuade him from sin, Prov. 29.1. Jer. 5.3, 4. & 44.15, 16, 17. than sin is in dominion; when the constant bent of the heart is inflamed towards sin, and when the desires of the soul are insatiably carried after sin, and when the resolutions of the soul are strongly and habitually set upon sin, Hos. 2.6, 7. than sin is in the Throne, and then it reigns as a King; when God hedges up the sinner's way with thorns, yet the sinner will break through all to his sin; when life and death, heaven and hell, glory and misery are set before the sinner, Deut. 30.15, 19 & 11.26, 27, 28.29. yet the sinner will be peremptory in his sinnings, though he lose his life, his soul, and all the glory of another world, than sin reigns. But, Fourthly, When men ordinarily, habitually, commonly, are very careful, studious and laborious, to make provision for sin, than sin reigns, Rom. 13. ult. Make no provision for the flesh, to fulfil the lusts thereof; or as the Greek has it, David in an hour of temptation, once made provision for his lusts, 2 Sam. 11.14, 15. but this was not his course, his trade, etc. Make no projects for the flesh, or cater not for the flesh; when a man's head and heart is full of projects, how to gratify this lust, and how to satisfy that lust, and how to fulfil t'other lust, than sin reigns, then 'tis in its throne, Jam. 4.3. Ye ask and receive not, because you ask amiss, that ye may consume it upon your lusts. Both the Law of God and nature, requires me to make provision of raiment, food and physic for my body, and for theirs that are under my charge; but it may cost me my life, my estate, yea my very soul, to make provision for my lusts. Such as ask amiss, shall be sure to ask and miss; he that would make God a Bawd to his lusts, may ask long enough before God will answer; of all affronts there is none to this of making God a servant to our lusts, Hos. 2.8. and where this frame of spirit is, there sin is in dominion. He that abuses mercies to serve his lusts, fights against God with his own weapons, as David did against Goliath, and as Benhadad did against Ahab, with that very life that he had newly given him; such a soul, like the waters of Jordan will at last certainly drop into the dead lake. But, Fifthly, When sin is commonly, habitually sweet, and the soul takes a daily pleasure and delight in it, than it reigns, as you may see by comparing the Scriptures in the margen● together; Joh 20.12, 13. Prov. 2.14. Amos 6.13. Zeph. 3.11. 2 Thes. 2.12. when a man daily takes as joyful contentation and satisfaction in his lusts, and in walking after the ways of his own heart, as he does in his highest outward enjoyments, o● in his nearest and dearest relations, then certainly sin is in dominion. Such men as can go constantly on in a way of wickedness, merely to delight and content the flesh, such men are certainly under the power and reign of sin. Many of the Heathens, who knew what rational delights were, scorned sensual delights as inferior to them: These will one day rise in judgement against many of the Professors in our days. I know there is no real pleasure or delight in sin; if intemperance could afford more pleasure than temperance, than Hiliogabalus should have been more happy than Adam in Paradise; yea, if there were the least real delight in sin, there could be no perfect hell where men shall most perfectly sin, and most perfectly be tormented with their sins. Hark Scholar, said the Harlot to Apulciu●, 'tis but a bitter sweet that you are so fond of. P●●●rh. When an Asp stings a man, it doth at first tickle him, and make him laugh till the poison by little and little gets to his heart, and then it pains him more than before it delighted him. 'Tis so with sin, it may tickle the soul at first, but it will pain it at last with a witness. I have read of a Gallant addicted to uncleanness, who at last meeting with a beautiful Dame, and having enjoyed his fleshly desires of her, he found her in the morning to be the dead body of one that he had formerly been naught with, which had been acted by the Devil all night, and left dead again in the morning; so that the Gallant's pleasure ended in no small terror. And thus 'tis doubtless with all sinful pleasures: What sin is there so sweet or profitable, that is worth burning in hell for, or worth shutting out of heaven for? etc. But, Sixthly, When men commonly take part with sin, when they take up arms in the defence of sin, and in defiance of the commands of God, the motions of the spirit, and the checks of conscience, than sin is in dominion; he that readily, resolvedly and habitually fights sins battles, is sins servant, and without all peradventure under the reign and dominion of sin. Look, as we groundedly conclude, that such men are under the reign and dominion of that King, that they readily, resolvedly and habitually take up arms to fight for; so when the inward faculties of the soul, and the outward members of the body, do readily resolve and habitually take up arms to fight for sin, then and there sin is in dominion, as you may plainly see by consulting the Scriptures in the margin; Rom. 6.19, 20. Eph. 2.2, 3. Titus 3.3. but where the soul readily, resolvedly and habitually strives against it, conflicts with it, and makes war against it, there 'tis not in dominion, there it reigns not, as you may see by comparing the Scriptures in the margin together. Rom. 7.23, 24. Gal. 5.17. Rom. 8.13. That man that can truly appeal to God, and say, Lord, thou that knowest all hearts and things, thou knowest that there is nothing under the whole heavens that I am so desirous and ambitious of as this, that my sins may be subdued, that my strongest lusts may be mortified, and that those very corruptions that my nature, constitution and complexion is most inclined to, may be brought to an under. That man that can appeal to God, and say, O Lord, what ever becomes of me, I will never be reconciled to any known sin; yea, Lord, though I should perish for ever, yet I am resolved to fight against my sins for ever: Let God do what he will against me, I will do all I can against my sins, and to honour my God; that man is not under the reign and dominion of sin. But, Seventhly, When sin commonly rises by opposition, than it reigns. Look, as grace, when it is in the Throne, it rises by opposition, 2 Sam. 6.22. I will yet be more vile. Mark 10.47, Act. 4.6. to the 34 & 5.40, 41, 42. 48. And many charged him that he should hold his peace, but he cried the more a great deal, Thou son of David, have mercy on me; so when sin is in the Throne, it rises higher and higher by opposition. As the more water you cast upon Lime, the more fiercely it burns; so when sin is in its reign and dominion, it flames out the more by opposition; witness the Jews malice and envy against Christ, which when it received but a little easy gentle check by Pilate, Mark 15.12, 13, 14. they cried out so much the more, Crucify him, crucify him. A man that is under the reign and dominion of sin, is like the Rainbow; the Rainbow is never on that side of the world, that the Sun is, but wheresoever it appears, it is in opposition against the Sun; if the Sun be in the East, the Rainbow is in the West, etc. Where sin has the Throne, it will still rise higher and higher by opposition; reprove a swearer for swearing, and he will swear so much the more; yea many times he will swear, that he did not swear, when indeed he did; and so it holds in all other vices that the sinner is given up to. 'Tis said of Catiline, that he was a compound and bundle of warring lusts and vices; the same may be said of all others, where sin is in dominion. But, Eighthly and lastly, If the Lord Jesus Christ hath not dominion over you, than sin has certainly dominion over you: Rom. 6.17, 18. Christ hath no dominion over that soul that sin hath dominion over, and sin hath no dominion over that soul that Christ hath dominion over; Christ and sin cannot have dominion over the same soul at one and the same time, Christ's dominion is destructive and inconsistent with sins dominion, etc. Quest. But how shall I know, whether the Lord Jesus Christ hath dominion over my soul or no? How shall I know whether the Lord Jesus Christ be my Lord, or no? For if I can but groundedly conclude, that Christ is my Lord, than I may very boldly, safely and undoubtedly conclude, that sin is not my Lord; but if Christ be not my Lord, I may more than fear that sin is certainly my Lord. Ans. Sol. Canst thou truly say, in the presence of the great and glorious God, Psal. 139.23, 24. Psal. 26.2. Jer. 11.20. & 17.10. Prov. 17.3. 1 Thes. 2.4. that is the tryer and searcher of all hearts, that thou hast given up thy heart and life to the Rule, Authority and Government of Jesus Christ, and that thou hast chosen him to be thy Sovereign Lord and King, and art truly willing to submit to his dominion, as the only precious and righteous, holy and heavenly, sweet and pleasant, profitable and comfortable, safe and best dominion in all the world, and to resign up thy heart, thy will, thy affections, thy life, thy all, really to Christ, wholly to Christ, and only to Christ. Canst thou truly say? O dear Lord Jesus, other Lords, viz. the world, the flesh, and the devil, have had dominion too long over me; Isa. 26.13. but now these Lords I utterly renounce, I for ever renounce, and do give up myself to thee, as my only Lord, beseeching thee to rule and reign over me for ever and ever: O Lord, though sin rages, and Satan roars, and the world sometimes frowns, Josh. 24.15. and sometimes fawns, yet I am resolved to own thee as my only Lord, and to serve thee as my only Lord; my greatest fear is of offending thee, and my chiefest care shall be to please thee, and my only joy shall be to be a praise, a name, and an honour to thee: O Lord, I can appeal to thee in the sincerity of my heart, that though I have many invincible weaknesses and infirmities that hang upon me, and though I am often worsted by my sins, and overcome in an hour of temptation, yet thou that knowest all thoughts and hearts, thou dost know that I have given up my heart to the obedience of Jesus Christ, and do daily give it up to his rule and government, and 'tis the earnest desire of my soul, above all things in this world, that Jesus Christ may still set up his Laws in my heart, and exercise his dominion over me. Now doubtless there is not the weakest Christian in the world, but can venture himself upon such an appeal to God as this is, and without all peradventure, where such a frame and temper of spirit is, there the dominion of Jesus Christ is set up; and where the dominion of Christ is set up, there sin has no dominion; Mat. 6.24. but where the dominion of Christ is not set up, there sin is in full dominion. Christ's dominion cannot consist with sins dominion, nor sins dominion cannot consist with Christ's dominion. Now by these eight things, if men are not resolved before hand to put a cheat upon their own souls, they may know whether their sins have dominion over them or no, and so accordingly conclude for or against themselves. But, Fifteenthly and lastly, A godly man may argue thus. There is no condemnation to them, who walk not after the flesh, Walking in Scripture, signifies to hold on a course of life, Gen. 5.22. & 17.1. but after the spirit, Rom. 8.1. But I walk not after the flesh but after the spirit, therefore there is no condemnation to me. Walking after the flesh, notes a course of sin; and walking after the spirit, notes a course of godliness: Now to such as keep off from a course of sin, and that keep on in a course of godliness, there is no condemnation, there is not one condemnation; for God the father won't condemn such a person, nor Jesus Christ won't condemn such a person, nor the holy spirit won't condemn such a person, nor the word of grace won't condemn such a person, nor no commandment or threaten will condemn such a person, no nor such a man's own heart nor conscience (if it be rightly informed) won't condemn him; and therefore well may the holy Ghost say to such a one, there is no condemnation to such a one, there is not one condemnation, etc. ☞ Now, thus you see, by comparing spiritual things with spiritual things, and by a rational arguing from Scripture, a man may attain unto a comfortable certainty of his gracious state, and safely and groundedly conclude his interest in Christ. Now this assurance of God's favour, by the witnessing of our own spirits, which assurance is deduced by way of argument syllogistically, is more easily attained than many (may I not say, than most) Christians imagine; for let a gracious man but clear himself of heart-condemning sins, 1 Joh. 3.20, 21. and rationally argue as before has been hinted, and he will speedily reach to some comfortable supporting, soul-satisfying, and soul-quieting assurance, there being an infallible connexion between the forementioned graces, and future glory. These fifteen arguments may well be looked upon as fifteen sure and infallible evidences of the goodness and happiness of a Christians estate. O that you would often, every day think on this, viz. That the undoubted verity of God's promises, proveth an inseparable connexion between true faith and eternal glory, John 3.14, 15, 16. And as Moses lifted up the Serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of man be lifted up; That whosoever believeth in him, should not perish, but have eternal life. God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten Son, that whosoever believeth on him, should not perish, but have everlasting life. John 5.24. Verily, verily (these serious asseverations or protestations amount almost to an oath) I say unto you, he that heareth my words, and believeth on him that sent me, hath everlasting life, and shall not come into condemnation, but is passed from death to life. John 3.36. He that believeth on the Son, hath everlasting life. (He hath it in the promise, he hath it in the first Fruits, Rom. 8.23. he hath it in the earnest, Ephes. 1.13, 14. and he hath it in Christ his Head, Ephes. 2.6.) Mark 16.16. He that believeth and is Baptised, shall be saved, he that believeth not shall be damned. 1 Pet. 2.6. Behold I lay in Zion a chief Corner stone, Elect precious, and he that believeth on him, shall not be confounded. John 6.40. And this is the will of him that sent me, that every one which seethe the Son, and believeth on him, may have everlasting life, and I will raise him up at the last day. Verse 47. Verily, verily I say unto you, he that believeth on me, hath everlasting Life. John 2.25. Jesus said unto her, I am the Resurrection and the Life, he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live. Verse 26. And whosoever liveth, and believeth in me, shall never die. John 20.31. But these are written, that ye may believe that jesus is the Christ the Son of God, and that believing, ye might have life through his name. Look as certainly as the unbeliever shall be cast into outer darkness, so certainly shall the Believer be partaker of the glorious inheritance of the Saints in light; for certainly the Promises are as true as the threaten, Acts 16.30, 31. Believe on the Lord jesus Christ, and thou shalt be saved. Josh. 23.14. chap. 21.45. The Apostle speaks not doubtingly, perhaps thou shalt be saved, nor they do not say, Believe on the Lord Jesus Christ, and it may be thou mayest go to Heaven, but they speak boldly, confidently, peremptorily, believe on the Lord Jesus Christ and thou shalt be saved. O my Soul, what greater certainty and security can any man have, than the infallible promise of that God that is truth itself, who will not, who cannot deny his word. but the same love and free Grace that moved him to infuse grace into his children's souls, will move him also to keep the word that is gone out of his mouth, and to make good whatever he hath promised; thus you evidently see that the Promises prove an inseparable connexion between Grace and glory, between Faith and everlasting Life; so that let me but prove that I have a saving Faith, and the Scriptures last cited, prove infallibly that I shall be saved. O labour as for life, daily to give a firm and fixed assent to the truth of those blessed Promises last cited, and hold it as an indisputable and inviolable Principle, That whosoever believeth on the Lord Jesus Christ, or whosoever hath received Christ as his Lord and Saviour, shall be certainly saved. 1 Tim. 1.15. 1 John 1.9. Heb. 6.17, 18. ●zek. 32.11. and chap. 18.32. 1 John 5.10.14. Jam. 2 19 This is the person that hath the Word, the Promise, the Covenant, the Oath of that God that cannot possibly lie, or die for the pardon of his sin, and for the Salvation of his Soul. Now O my Soul, what security couldst thou ask more of a deceitful man, than that which the great jehovah, ●he faithful God of his own accord hath given to thee, viz. his word, and his. Oath. Now not to believe God upon his Promise and Oath, is to make him a Liar, yea the worst of Liars; yea, 'tis to do worse than the D●vils ●●r they believe and tremble. Though the word of the Lord deserves the greatest credit that any mortals can give unto it, (he being truth itself that hath said it) though it had no Oaths, nor no Asseverations to be its surety, yet God in his infinite condescending love to poor sinners, that he may sink the truth of what he saith deeper into the hearts and minds of his people, and leave the fairer and fuller print in our assents to the same, he sets on the word of Promise with the weight of Asseverations and Oaths; yea, and to all these he hath annexed his Broad Seal, the Lords Supper, and the Privy Seal of his Spirit: O unreasonable unbelief! shall not the Oath of God silence all Disputes? A man would never desire of any honest man, so much as God hath condescended to, for the confirmation of our Faith, witness his Promises, his Covenant, his Oath, and his Seals; and therefore let us give glory to him by believing, and quietly rest upon his faithfulness. O Sirs, that soul that dares not take his sanctification as an evidence (yea, as a choice and sure evidence) of his interest in Christ, and of the Lords precious love to him, according to the Promises of his favour and Grace (several of which hath been but now under consideration) that Soul ought to acknowledge it as his sin, yea as his great sin, for which he deserves to be smartly rebuked, as making God a loud Lyar. O my friends, it is a spiritual peevishness, and sinful crossness that keeps many good men and women long in a sad, dark, doubting, perplexed, and disconsolate condition; and certainly 'tis no small sin to set light by any work of the blessed Spirit, and the joy, comfort, and peace that we might have by it; ah how many are there that fear the Lord, who quench, grieve, vex, and provoke the holy Spirit, by denying his work, and by quarrelling against themselves, and the blessed work of the Spirit in them? Certainly 'tis the duty of every Christian to hear as well what can be said for him, as what can be said against him: Many poor, Psal. 77.2. Psal. 88 Job 15.11. chap. 16.8, 9 weak (and yet sincere) Chr stians are often apt to be too sour, rigid and bitter against their own souls, they love to practise a merciless severity against themselves; they do not indifferently, impartially consider how the case stands between God and their own souls. It is in this case, as Solomon speaks in another. There is that maketh himself rich, Prov. 13.7. Ever since man ceased to be what he should be, he striveth to seem to be what he is not. It is not the outward show, that shows what things are. and yet hath nothing. And there is that maketh himself poor, and yet hath great Riches. That is, there be those in the world that pretend they are rich, and make a show before men as if they were men of great estates, whereas indeed they are exceeding poor and needy. There are not a few that stretch their wing beyond their nest, that bear a port beyond their Estates, that trick up themselves with other men's plumes, laying it on above measure in , in high entertainments, in stately Buildings, in great Attendance, etc. when not worth one groat in all the World, but either they die in Prison, or lay the key under the door, or compound for twelve pence in the pound, etc. And there are others again that are exceeding rich and wealthy, and yet feign themselves, and look upon themselves to be very poor and needy. To apply this spiritually. 'Tis the damning sin of the self-flattering Hypocrite, Rev. 3.17. to make himself rich, to make himself significant, to make his condition better than 'tis: And it is the vanity, the folly, of some sincere Christians, to make their condition worse than indeed it is, to make themselves more miserable and unhappy than indeed they are. Ah Christians, 'tis sad with you, t●s night with you, when you read over the evidences of God's love to your souls, as a man does a Book which he intends to confute. Is it not sad when Christians shall study hard to find evasions to wheel off all those comforts, refresh, cheerings, and supports, that are tendered to them that are due to them, and that they may upon Gospel-grounds justly claim as their portion, as their inheritance. And O that all such Christians would seriously and frequently lay to heart these eight things. First, that they highly dishonour the blessed God, and the work of his Grace, by denying that which he hath done for them, and wrought in them. Secondly, they are spiritual Murderers, they are self-Murderers, they are soul-Murderers; for by this means they stab and wound their own precious souls and Consciences through and through, with many a deadly dart. Now is there any Murder like to spiritual Murder, to self-Murder, to soul-Murder? surely no. But, Thirdly, They are Thiefs, for by this means they rob their own precious souls of that joy, peace, comfort, rest, content, assurance, and satisfaction, which otherwise they might enjoy. Now there is no theft to spiritual theft, and of all spiritual theft, there is none to that which reaches the precious and immortal soul. Mark all prevalent Disputes about our personal integrity, they do hold off the Application and tastes of comfort, though they do not disannul the title and right. Even the good man will walk uncomfortably so long as he concludes, and strongly fears that his Estate is sinful; for sensible comfort riseth or falleth, cometh on, or goeth off, according to the strength of our judgement and present apprehensions; observe, it is not what indeed our estate is, but what we judge of it, which breeds in us sensible comfort, or discomfort, a false heart may (even) break with a timpany of foolish joy upon an erring persuasion o● his estate, and so may a sound sincere heart be very heavy and disconsolate upon an unsound misconstruction and judging of its true condition. But, Fourthly, They bear false witness against Christ, his Spirit, their own Souls, and the work of Grace that is wrought in them. O how many dark, doubting, drooping Christians are there, who, if you could give them ten thousand worlds, yet would never be brought to bear false witness against their poorest Neighbour, Brother, or Friend, and that out of Conscience, because of that Command, Thou shalt not bear false witness, etc. who yet make no Conscience, no bones of it, frequently to bear witness against the Lord Jesus Christ, and his gracious works upon their own hearts? But, Fifthly, they join with Satan and his work, and his suggestions, and with that strong party he has in them, against the Lord Jesus Christ and his work, and his weak party in them. See Mr. Dod on the Commandments, p. 310, 311. and p. 321, 322, 323, 324. Sin is Satan's work, and Grace is Christ's work: Now how sad is it to see a Christian fall in with Satan's work in him, against the work of Christ that is in him. Satan has a strong party in their souls, and Christ has but a weak party; now how unjust is it for them to help the strong against the weak, when they should upon many accounts be a helping the w●ak against the strong, a helping the Lord against the mighty, a helping weak grace against strong and mighty corruptions: An how skilful and careful are many weak Christians to make head against the work of Christ in their own Souls, and to plead hard for Satan and his works in them, as if they had received a Fee from him to plead against Christ and their own Souls. O Christians, that you would be wise at last, and let Baal plead for Baal, let Satan plead for himself, but do you plead for Christ and that seed of God that is in you. Well, remember this, John 1.3, 9 that as fire is often hid under the embers, so grace is often hid under many soul distempers; and as a little fire is fire, though it be even smothered under the embers, so a little Grace is Grace, though it be even smothered under much corruption: Now by these short hints, you may easily perceive how many Royal Commands these poor Christians transgress, who deny and belly the blessed work of the Lord in them. But, Sixthly, They rob the Spirit of all the honour and glory that is due unto him for that blessed work of grace and holiness that he has form up in their hearts; O what a grief and dishonour must it be to the holy Spirit, that when he hath put forth a power in men's hearts, Rom. 8.11. equivalent to that by which the world was created, and by which Christ was raised from the dead, to find it overlookt, and not at all acknowledged. Spiritus sanctus est res delicata, the Holy Spirit is a very tender thing, but do these poor doubting Souls carry it tenderly to him, surely no. Dear Christians, the standing Law of Heaven is, Quench not the Spirit, 1 Thes. 5.19. Now if the word Spirit is not here taken essentially, for the three persons in Trinity, nor yet metonymically, for the fruits of the spirit, but Hypostatically, for the Third person in Trinity, (as some conceive) than you must remember that you may grieve and quench the Spirit, 1. Not only by your enormities, Isa. 63.10. 2. Nor only by refusing the Cordials and comforts that he brings to your doors; yea that he puts to your mouths, Psal. 77.2. 3. Nor only by slighting and despising his gracious actings in others, Acts 2.13. 4. Nor only by Fathering those sins and vanities upon him, Mark, you cannot despise the gifts or graces of any that are sincere, but by interpretation, you judge the Spirit, and despise the Spirit, as it is said of the poor in Prov. 17.5. that are only the B●ats and fruits of Satan and your own hearts. But also in the fifth place, by misjudging and miscalling the precious Grace that he has wrought in your Souls, as by judging and calling your Faith fancy, your sincerity hypocrisy, your W sdom folly, your light darkness, your zeal wildfire, etc. Now O S●rs, will you make Conscience, yea much Conscience of Quenching the Spirit in the four first respects, and will you make no Conscience of Quenching the Spirit in this fifth and last respect? O how can this be! O why should this be? But, Seventhly, They keep Grace at a very great under, for how can Grace spring, and thrive, and flourish, and increase in the soul, when the soul is full of daily fears and doubts, that the root of the matter is not in it, or that the root is still unsound, Job 19.28. 1 Thes. 1.5. or that the work that is passed upon it, is not a work in power, or that 'tis not a special and peculiar work, but some common work of the spirit, which a man may have and go to Hell? But, Eighthly and lastly, They very much discourage, dishearten, and disanimate many poor weak Christians, who observing of them (of whom they have had very high and honourable thoughts, for the Grace of God that they have judged to be in them) to be still a questioning of their integrity, and still a doub●ing of the graciousness and goodness of their conditions, do begin to question their own Estates and conditions, yea, and many times peremptorily to conclude, that surely they have no grace, they have no interest in Christ, and that all this while they have but put a cheat upon their own souls. Now O that all poor, weak, dark, doubting Christians would never leave praying over these eight things and pondering upon these eight things, till they are perfectly cured of that spiritual malady that they have been long labouring under, and which has been very prejudicial to the peace and comfort of their own souls. Dear hearts, a gracious soul may safely, boldly, constantly, and groundedly say that which the Word of the Lord saith: Now the Word of the Lord saith, Matth. 5.3, 4, 6, 8. That the poor in spirit are blessed, and that they that mourn are blessed, and that they that hunger and thirst after Righteousness are blessed, and that they that are pure in heart are blessed, and therefore he is blessed. And assuredly he that cannot embrace and seal to these as true and blessed evidences of a safe and happy condition, is greatly to lament and mourn over his unbelief, and earnestly to seek the Lord to persuade his heart, and to satisfy and overpower his Soul in this thing, as the poor man in the Gospel did, Mark 9.24. And straightway the Father of the Child cried out with tears, Lord I Believe, help my unbelief. O Sirs, the condition of the Promises last cited, being fulfilled, the Promises themselves must certainly and infallibly be fulfilled, else the great and blessed God should lie, Josh. 21.45. chap. 23.14, 15. 1 John 5.10, 11, 12. be unrighteous, unfaithful, and deny himself, which is as impossible as for God to die, or to send another Saviour, or to give his glory to Graven Images. Assuredly the too hard, the too harsh, the too severe, the too jealous thoughts and conjectures, and the too humble (if I may so speak) censures and surmises that many weak doubting Christians have of themselves, or of the goodness or graciousness of their Estates (by reason of the weakness of their Graces, or depth of melancholy, or the present prevalency of some unmortified lusts, or the subtlety of Satan) shall never make void the faithfulness of God, or the Promises of God, which in Christ Jesus are all Yea and Amen. Doubtless God will never shut any poor weak doubting Christian out of Heaven, 2 Cor. 1.20. because through bashfulness or an excess of modesty, or the present darkness tha● is upon his understanding, or through the ungroundedness of some strong fears of an eternal miscarriage, he cannot entertain such good thoughts, such honest thoughts, such gracious thoughts of himself, or of the goodness or happiness of his condition, as he should entertain, and as he would entertain, if once he could but be too hard for the World, the Flesh, and the Devil. O that you would remember this for ever, viz. That the Lord never makes any Promises to support, comfort, cheer, and encourage his people against their sadness, darkness, doubts and droopings, but they shall support, comfort, cheer, and encourage his poor people in that condition, for otherwise the Lord should provide means for an end, out of his infinite Wisdom, love, and tender care and compassion towards his people, and yet they should never attain that end, but thus to imagine is no small folly; yea, 'tis little less than Blasphemy. Well Sirs, this is to be for ever remembered, viz. That whatsoever gift or Grace of God in man brings him within the compass of God's Promises of eternal favours and mercies, that gi●t, that Grace must needs be an infallible sign or evidence of Salvation; but such are the gifts and Graces specified in the fifteen particulars but now cited, and therefore that Soul that really finds those gifts and Graces in himself (or any of them) shall certainly be saved. But, The Ninth Maxim or Consideration. NInthly, Consider this, That in divers men there are divers degrees of Assurance, and in one and the same gracious Soul, there are different degrees of Assurance at divers times, but there is in no man at any time in this life, perfection of degrees, for our understanding and knowledge in this Life is imperfect, both as to the faculty and its acts, 1 Cor. 13.12. For now we see through a glass darkly (Gr. in a Riddle) but then face to face: Now I know in part, but then shall I know even * As, is not a note of equality, but likeness, so that the sense may be this, look as God knoweth me after a manner agreeable to his infinite excellency, so shall I know God according to my capacity, not obscurely, but perfectly, as it were face to face. as also I am known. A clear distinct, immediate, full and perfect knowledge of God is desirable on earth, but we shall never attain to it till we come to Heaven, this Well is deep, and for the most part we want a Bucket to draw withal, the best of men can better tell what God is not, than what he is; the most acute and judicious in Divine knowledge, have and must acknowledge their ignorance, witness that great Apostle Paul, who learned his Divinity among the Angels, and had the Holy Ghost for his immediate Tutor, yet he confesses that he knew but in part; certainly there is no man under heaven that hath such a perfect, complete and full assurance of his Salvation (in an ordinary way) as that one degree cannot be added to the former; Neither is there any repugnancy in asserting an infallible assurance, and denying a perfect assurance, for I infallibly know that there is a God, and that this God is holy just and true, and yet I have no perfect knowledge of a Deity, nor of the holiness justice and truth of God, for in this life the most knowing man knows but in part: Dear friends, in the Church of Christ there are Believers of several growths, there are Fathers, young men, Children and Babes, 1 John 1.13, 14. 1 Pet. 2.2. And as in most families there are commonly more Children and Babes than grown men; so in the Church of Christ there are commonly more weak staggering doubting Christians than there are strong ones, grown up to a full assurance. Some think, that as soon as they be assured, they must needs be void of all fears, and filled with all joy in believing; but this is a real mistake, for glorious and ravishing joy is a separable accident from Assurance, nor yet doth Assurance exclude all doubts and fears, but only such doubts and fears as ariseth from infidelity and reigning hypocrisy. But, The Tenth Maxim or Consideration. TEnthly, Consider we have no ground from Scripture to expect that God should either by a Voice from Heaven, or by sending an Angel from about his Throne, or by any glorious apparitions or strong impressions, or by any extraordinary way of Revelations, assure us that we do believe, or that our Grace is true, or that our interest in God and Christ is certain, or that our pardon is sealed in Heaven, or that we are in a justified state, and that we shall be at last undoubtedly saved, O no! But we are to use all those blessed helps and means that are appointed by God, and common to all Believers, for the obtaining of a particular Assurance that we are Believers, and that our state is good, and that we have a special propriety in Christ, and in all the fundamental good that comes by him. Mark, he that will receive no establishment, no comfort, no peace, no assurance, except it be administered by the hand of an Angel, and witnessed to by some Voice from Heaven, etc. will certainly live and die without establishment, comfort, peace, or assurance. Gregory tells us of a Religious Lady of the Empresses Bedchamber, Vide Gregorii Epistolae á Lapide in 8. ad Rom. v. 16. whose name was Gregoria, that being much troubled about her Salvation, did write unto him, That she should never cease importuning of him, till he had sent her word that he had received a Revelation from Heaven that her sins were pardoned and that she was saved. To whom he returned this Answer, That it was a hard, and altogether a useless matter which she required of him; It was difficult for him to obtain, as being unworthy to have the secret Counsels of God to be imparted to him, and it was as unprofitable for her to know; and that first, because such a Revelation might make her too secure; and secondly, because it was impossible for him to demonstrate and make known unto her or any other, the truth and infallibility of the Revelation which he had received, to be from God, so that should she afterwards call into question the truth of it, as well she might, her troubles and doubtings concerning her Salvation would have been as great as they were before. O therefore let all Believers that would have sure establishment, sound comfort, lasting Peace, and true and sweet assurance of the love of God, and of their interest in Christ, etc. take heed of flying unto Revelations, Visions or Voices from Heaven to assure them of their Salvation, and of the love of God, and of their interest in Christ, etc. If you who are advantaged to consult H story, please to do it, you will find upon Record, that where one hath been mistaken about searching his own heart, and trying his ways, and observing the frame and temper of his own spirit, many hundreds have been eternally deceived and deluded by Voices, Visions, Apparitions, Revelations, 2 Thes. 2.9, 10, 11, 12. and strange impulses and strong impressions, especially among the Romanists; and within these few years, have not many hundreds in this Nation fallen under the same woeful delusions, who are all for crying up a Light within, and a Christ within, etc. And this you are seriously and Conscientiously to observe in opposition to the Pap●sts, who boldly and stoutly affirm, That assurance of a man's Salvation can be had by no other means than by extraordinary Revelation: Witness the Council of Trent, who have long since said, That if any man say that he knoweth he shall certainly persevere, or infallibly be assured of his Election, except he have this by special Revelation, let him be Anathema. Without all peradventure God will one day cross and curse such a wicked Council that curseth, that Anathematizeth his people for asserting and maintaining that that may certainly be obtained in this life, as I have sufficiently proved by ten Arguments in my Treatise called Heaven on Earth, from page 1. to page 26. I think there is a great truth in that confession of Faith that saith, that infallible Assurance doth not so belong to the essence of Faith, 1 John 5.13. Isa. 50.10. Mark 9 24. 1 Cor. 2.12. 1 John 4.13, 14. Heb. 6.11, 12. Ephes. 3.17, 18, 19 2 Pet. 1.10. but that a true Believer may wait long, and conflict with many difficulties before he be partaker of it; yea, being enabled by the Spirit to know the things which are freely given him of God, he may without any extraordinary revelation, in the right use of ordinary means, attain thereunto; and therefore 'tis the duty of every one to give all diligence to make his Calling and Election sure. But, The Eleventh Maxim or Consideration. ELeventhly, Consider that probabilities of Grace, of sincerity, of an interest in Christ, and of Salvation, may be a very great stay, and a singular support, and a special cordial and comfort to abundance of precious Christians that want that sweet and blessed Assurance that their Souls do earnestly breathe and long after. There are doubtless many thousands of the precious Sons and Daughters of Zion comparable to fine Gold, Lam. 4.2. that have not a clear and full Assurance of their interest in Christ, nor of the saving work of God upon their Souls, who yet are able to plead many probabilities of Grace, and of an interest in Christ. Now doubtless probabilities of Grace and of an interest in Christ may serve to keep off fears and doubts, and darkness, and sadness, and all rash and peremptory conclusions against a man's own Soul, and his everlasting welfare, and may contribute very much to the keeping up of a great deal of peace, comfort and quietness in his Soul. The probable grounds that thou hast Grace, and that God has begun to work powerfully, and savingly upon thee, are mercies more worth than ten thousand Worlds; will you please seriously and frequently to dwell upon these ten particulars. First, That though many weak gracious souls don't enjoy communion with God in joy and delight, yet they do enjoy communion with God in sorrow and tears. Hos. 12.4. Isa. 38.3. Psal. 51.17. A man may have communion with God in a heart humbling, a heart melting, and a heart abasing way, when he hath not communion with God in a heart reviving, a heart cheering, and a heart comforting way. 'tis a very great mistake among many weak tender spirited Christians, to think that they have no communion with God in duties, except they meet with God embracing and kissing, cheering and comforting up their Souls: And O that all such Christians would remember this once for all, viz. That a Christian may have as real communion with God in a heart humbling way, as he can have in a heart comforting way; John 20. 11-19. a Christian may have as choice communion with God when his eyes are full of tears, as he can have when his heart is full of joy; when a godly man upon his dying bed was asked which were his most joyful days (either those before his Conversion, or those since his Conversion) upon which he cried out, O give me my mourning days again, Give me my mourning days again, for they were my joyfullest days. Many times a poor Christian has never more joy in his heart than when his eyes are full of tears. But, Secondly, Though many poor weak doubting trembling Christians dare not say that they do love the Lord Jesus Christ, 'Twas a famous saying of Augustine's, he loves not Christ at all, that loves not Christ above all. yet they dare say that they would love the Lord Jesus Christ with all their hearts, and with all their Souls, and they dare say, that if it were in their power, they would even shed tears of blood because they cannot love Christ, both as they would and as they should. Blessed Bradford would sit and weep at Dinner till the tears fell on his Trencher, because he could love God no more. So the poor doubting trembling Christian mourns and laments because he can love Christ no more. A man may love Gold, and yet not have it, but no man loveth God but he is sure to have God, saith Augustine. A good man once cried out, I had rather have one Christ, than a thousand Worlds. Thirdly, Though many poor weak doubting trembling Christians dare not say that they have Grace, yet they dare say that they prise the least dram of Grace above all the gold and silver of the Indies; Cardan saith, that every precious stone hath an egregious virtue in it. The same we may say of every saving Grace. were all the world a lump of gold, and in their hands to dispose of it, they would give it for Grace, yea for a little Grace. Now certainly no man can thus highly prise Grace but he that has Grace. No man sees the worth and lustre of Grace; no man sees a beauty and excellency in Grace, nor no man can value Grace above the gold of Ophir, but he whose heart has been changed, and whose eyes has been opened by the Spirit of Grace. B●t, Fourthly, Though many poor doubting trembling Christians dare not say that their condition is good, that their condition is safe and happy, yet they dare say that they would not for ten thousand Worlds change their conditions with the vain and debauched men of the World, who delight in sin, who wallow in sin, who make a sport of sin, and who live under the Reign and Dominion of sin; they had rather with Lazarus, Luke 16. be full of sores and full of wants, and live and die in rags, and after all be carried by Angels into Abraham's bosom, than with Dives, every day to far sumptuously, and be clothed gloriously, and perish eternally. Though they are poor, and wicked men Rich, though they are debased, and wicked men exalted, though they are empty, and wicked men full, though they are low, and wicked men high, though they enjoy nothing, and wicked men enjoy every thing, yet they would not for as many worlds as there be men in the world, change conditions with them. But, Fifthly, Though poor doubting staggering trembling Christians dare not say that they don't sin, because there is not a just man upon the earth, that doth good and sinneth not, Eccles. 7.20. And because no man can say I have made my heart clean, 1 John 3.6, 8, 9, 10. I am pure from my sin, Prov. 20.9. And because in many things we offend all, James 3.2. And because if we say We have no sin we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us, 1 John 1.8. yet they dare say that they would not willingly, wilfully, wickedly, resolutely, maliciously and habitually sin against the Lord to gain the whole World, though they dare not say they don't sin, yet they dare say, if they might have their choice, they would never dishonour God more, nor Crucify the Lord of glory more, nor grieve the Spirit of Grace more, nor wound Conscience more, nor cloud the face of God more, nor darken their evidences for Heaven more, nor interrupt their communion with God more, etc. But, Sixthly, Though poor doubting staggering trembling Christians dare not say that God is their God, or that Christ is their Redeemer, or that the Spirit is their Comforter, yet they dare say, that if God and Christ and the Spirit, and grace and glory, and holiness and happiness were offered to them on the one hand, and all the honour's pleasures profits delights and carnal contents of the World were offered them on the other hand, they had ten thousand times rather, Cant. 5.10. Deut. 26.17. Psal. 73.25. Phil. 3.6, 7, 8. they had infinitely rather choose God and Christ & the Spirit, & grace & holiness, & everlasting happiness than the contrary. Look as Rachel cried out Give me Water or I die; So these poor hearts are still crying out, O Lord give me thyself, or I die; Give me thy Christ, or I die; Give me thy Spirit and Grace, or I die; Give me pardon of sin, or I die; Lift up the light of thy Countenance upon me, or I die; Bring me under the bond of the Covenant, or I die; O Lord let all these things be done, or I am undone, and that for ever; Lord let the men of this World take the World, and divide it among themselves, let me but enjoy thyself, thy Christ, thy love, and I shall say my Lot is fallen to me in a pleasant place, and verily I have a goodly heritage, Psal. 16.5, 6. But, Seventhly, Though poor doubting staggering trembling Christians dare not say that they have Grace in their own hearts, yet they dare say that they dearly love, Acts 11.23. Psal. 15.4. Psal. 16.3. Lam. 4.2. 1 Thess. 1.2, 3. Heb. 11.38. and highly honour, and greatly prise the Graces of the Spirit which they see sparkling and shining in the hearts and lives and lips of other Saints, And they dare say that there are no men in all the world that are so precious, so lovely, so worthy and so honourable in their eyes, or so high in their esteems as those who have the Image of God, of Christ, of holiness most clearly, fairly and fully stamped upon them. But, Eighthly, Though poor doubting trembling Christians dare not say that they have such strength and power against their sins as they would have, or as they should have, or as many of the dear Saints of God have, who often lead Captivity Captive; Psal. 65.3. Gal. 5.14. yet they dare say, that when the Lord is pleased (now and then by his Spirit, Power, Word, Grace, etc.) to help them, though it be but a little, against their sins, to help them in any measure to subdue their sins, or to assist them to bring any one sin or another to an under, or to arm them against any temptations, occasions or provocations to sin, there are no such times or seasons of joy, comfort, delight, refreshing, and content to their Souls as these are. The language of their Souls in such a day as this is, is this, O that it might be always thus with us! O that every day we might lead Captivity Captive! O that every day we might have our lusts at an under! O that every day we might triumph over the old man! O that every day one lust or another might fall before the power, the Spirit, the presence, the Grace of our Lord Jesus Christ. But, Ninthly, Though poor doubting staggering trembling Christians dare not say that they make so much advantage, Psal. 4.3. Psal. 66.19, 20. Psal. 138.3. Lam. 3.55, 56, 57, 58. so much earnings of the Sermons they hear, or of the Prayers they make, or of the Scriptures they read, or of the communion of Saints that they enjoy, as others do; yet they dare say that they would not for all the World cast off Praying or Hearing, or Reading, or the Communion of Saints, and give up themselves to the ways of sin and Satan and the World. But, Tenthly and lastly, Though poor doubting staggering trembling Christians dare not say that Christ is their Saviour, yet they dare say that they desire and endeavour to honour Christ as their Lord, though they cannot see Christ bestowing himself on them as their Redeemer, John 20. ●8. yet they are willing to make a resignation of themselves up to him as their King; they are willing to resign up their hearts and lives to the Government of Jesus Christ; though they cannot find comfort, yet they will oppose sin; though they cannot comprehend Christ, yet they will not willingly offend Christ; though they cannot see their own propriety in Christ, yet they desire nothing more than that Christ may claim a propriety in them; though they cannot see Christ as a friend, yet they can look upon sin as an enemy; though they cannot close with the Promises, yet they will close with the Precepts; though they cannot close with the Privileges of a Christian, yet they will close with the Services of a Christian; though they cannot share in the comforts of a Christian, yet they will side with the duties of a Christian; though they cannot clear up their interest in Christ, yet they are willing to yield subjection to Christ; though they want strength to throw themselves into the arms of Christ to save them, yet they will cast themselves at the feet of Christ to serve him; though they want the light of comfort and consolation, yet they will walk in the light of commands and directions, Isa. 50.10. All men will grant that these ten things are strong probabilit es of Grace, but give me leave to say that they are without all controversy, most sure, sound, solid and infallible evidences of true Grace, and of an interest in Christ and Salvation; and therefore all those poor doubting staggering and trembling Christians that find all these, or any of these ten things in their own Souls, they ought for ever to bless the Lord, and speak well of his Name upon these accounts. And therefore O my Soul, be thou much in adoring and admiring of free and infinite Grace, that hath wrought all these th●ngs in thee and for thee. But now dear hearts that this eleventh particular concerning probabilities of Grace may the better stick upon you, and be the more seriously minded and weighed by you, I beseech you often to ponder upon these six following things. First, That you have deserved Hell, and therefore for you to have but a probability of going to Heaven, is infinite grace and mercy; you have deserved to be shut up in chains of darkness with Devils and damned Spirits to all eternity, Judas 6. and therefore for you to have a probability of enjoying for ever the presence of God, Heb. 12.22, 23, 24. Isa. 33.14. Christ, the glorious Angels, and the Spirits of just men made perfect in Heaven, is a mercy more worth than ten thousand worlds; you have deserved to dwell with a devouring fire, and to lie for ever under those flames and torments that are easless, endless, and remediless; Psal. 16. ult. and therefore for you to have a probability of satiating and delighting your souls in that fullness of joy, and in those everlasting pleasures that be at God's right hand, is Grace, yea glorious Grace upon the Throne, etc. But, Secondly, Consider that if you cast up a true and faithful account, you will certainly find, that the comfort, the peace, the joy, the quiet, the rest, the satisfaction, the content that the generality of Saints do enjoy, is more from probabilities of Grace, than 'tis from any certainty or assurance that they have of Grace being in their Souls; 'tis more from probabilities of an interest in Christ, than from any assurance of an interest in Christ; 'tis more from probabilities of being saved, than 'tis from any special persuasions that they shall be saved; 'tis more from probabilities of going to Heaven, than 'tis from any raised fixed confidence that they shall go to Heaven; and therefore the people of God have very great cause to bow before the Lord, and to adore his Grace, and for ever to speak well of his name, for the very probabilities of Grace, and of an interest in Christ, and of being saved and glorified. Thirdly, Consider that there have been very many under such dreadful horrors and terrors of Conscience, and under such wrath and displeasure of an angry God, and that have lain trembling upon their dying beds, and that have been even ready to be swallowed up in the gulf of despair, who would have given all the world (had it been in their power) for the very probabilities of Grace. He died desperately, who died with this desperate saying in his month, Spes & fortuna valete, Farewell life and hope together. Despair is Satan's masterpiece, it carries men headlong to Hell, as the Devils did the herd of Swine into the deep. Spira being in a deep despair for renouncing of those Doctrines of the Gospel, which he had once stoutly professed said, That he would willingly suffer the most exquisite tortures of Hell fire for the space of ten thousand years, upon condition he might be well assured to be released afterward. He further added in that hellish and horrible fit, that his dear wife and children (for whose sake principally he turned away from the Gospel, to embrace this present world) appeared now to him as Hangmen, Hags and torturers. A despairing Soul is Magor Missabib, a terror to himself, his heart a Hell of horror, his Conscience an Aceldama, a Field of black Blood: So that as Augustin describes such a one flying from the Field to the City, from the City to his house, from his house to his Chamber, from his Chamber to his bed, etc. So that he can rest no where, but is as if infernal Devils in fearful shapes were still following of him, and still terrifying and tormenting his distressed and perplexed Soul. Now doubtless such poor souls would have given ten thousand worlds (had they so many in their hands to give) and that for the very probabilities of Grace; and how many tempted, deserted, clouded, wounded, and benighted Souls are there, who would think it a Heaven on this side Heaven, if they could but see probabilities of Grace in their Souls? O therefore let not the probabilities of Grace be a small thing in your eyes, but bow the knee, and let the High Praises of God be found in your mouths, even for probabilities of Grace. But, Fourthly, Consider that Sa●an is a very deadly enemy to the least probabilities of grace, and will do all he can to cloud, darken, and obscure probabilities of Grace, since divine vengeance has cut him off from the least hopes, from the least probability of ever obtaining the least dram of Grace or mercy. Let not any think (saith Luther) the Devil is ●ow dead not nor yet asleep, for as he that keepeth Israel, so he tha● hateth Israel never slumbreth or sleepeth. O how does he storm and take on against every probability of Grace and mercy that God vouchsafes to his people for their comfort and encouragement! Satan is an old experienced enemy, almost of six thousand years standing, and he very well knows that probabilities of grace will certainly arm a Christian against many temptations, and sweetly support him under many afflictions, and exceedingly heighten and raise his resolutions; he knows that probabilities of grace will turn crosses into Crowns, storms into calms, and Winter nights into Summer days; Satan knows that probabilities of grace will make every bitter sweet, and every sweet seven times more sweet; and therefore his spirit rises and swells against every probability of grace. Now the greater Satan's rage is against the probabilities of grace, the more thankful we should be for the probabilities grace; 'tis good to move and act cross to him, who in all his actings loves to act cross to the glory of God, and the good of our Souls. But, Fifthly, Consider that from probabilities in outward things, men commonly gather a great deal of comfort, support, quietness, and satisfaction; when the Physician tells the Patient that 'tis probable, yea very probable that he will recover, live and do well, O what a support, comfort, and refreshing is this to the languishing Patient; when there is but a probability of a good Market, how does the Market-man smile; when there is but a probability of good Trading, how does the Tradesman cheer up; when there is but a probability of a good Voyage, how does the Merchants and the Mariners spirits rise; when there is but a probability of a good Harvest, how does the Husbandman sing; when there is but some hopes, some probability of a Pardon for a Condemned man, how does his spirits revive, and how does his heart even leap and dance for joy; and so when a Christian has but some hopes, some probabilities of grace, of an interest in Christ, and of being saved, he may well cheer up and maintain his ground against all fears and doubts, objections and temptations. But, Sixthly and lastly, Consider there is a great deal of grace and mercy in Scripture peradventures, Exod. 32.30. 1 Sam. 9.6. 1 Kings 20.31. 1 Tim. 2.25. as you may easily see by comparing the Scriptures in the Margin together: Scripture peradventures aught to keep down despair, and raise our hopes and our hearts to know that God is favourable, and that sin is pardonable, and that mercy is attainable, and that Hell is avoidable, is no small comfort to a poor doubting trembling Christian. And as there is a great deal of grace and mercy in Scripture peradventures; so there is a great deal of grace and favour in Scripture may-be's, as you may see by comparing these Scriptures in the Margin together. Now if Scripture-peradventures, 1 Sam. 14 6. 2 Sam. 16.12. 2 Kings 19.4. Isa. 37 4. Ezek. 14 11. Amos 5 15. Zeph. 2 3. Dan. 4.27. and Scripture may-be's afford so much support, relief and comfort to your souls as indeed they do, then doubtless probabilities of grace, of an interest in Christ, of going to Heaven, and of being saved, ought very much to support, relieve, cheer, and comfort the hearts of all those that have such probabilities. A gracious soul may say when he is lowest and weakest, Well, though I dare not say that I have Grace, yet I have a peradventure for it; and though I dare not, I cannot say I have an interest in Christ, yet if I have a may-be for it, I ought to bear up bravely and comfortably against all fears and doubts; yea and to take the comfort, and the sweet of all those blessed probabilities of grace, of an interest in Christ, and of being saved, and of all the peradventures and may-be's that are scattered up and down in the Book of God, and with Hannah, to walk up and down without a sad countenance, 1 Sam. 1.18. The Twelfth Maxim or Consideration. TWelfthly, Consider that 'tis a Christians greatest Wisdom and highest concernment, to take the most commodious time for the casting up of his spiritual accounts: If I would know what I am worth for another World, and what I have to show for the inheritance of the Saints in light, than I am to take my heart when 'tis at best, and when I am most divinely prepared and fitted for this great service, then to enter upon it: 'tis no wisdom for a man to go to see his face in troubled waters, or to look for a Pearl in a puddle. There are some particular times and seasons in which 'tis no way safe nor convenient for a Christian to enter upon the trial of his Spiritual estate. Times of desertion and temptation, are rather times and seasons for mourning, watching, restling and seeking of God, than for judging and determining of our conditions. As first, when the body is greatly distempered. 2. When the Soul is greatly tempted by Satan, or sadly deserted by God. 3. When the Conscience is so deeply wounded by some great falls, as that the Soul is filled with exceeding great fear, terror and horror; it is with many poor Christians in this case, as it hath been with some who have been so struck with the fear and horror of death before the Judge, that though they were good Scholars and able to read any thing, yet fear and horror hath so surprised them, that when their lives have been at stake, and the Book hath been given them to read, they have not been able to read one line, one word. So many of the precious servants of Christ, when they have been under wounds of Conscience, and when they have been filled with fears, terrors and horrors, they have not been able to look up to Heaven, nor read their evidences, nor turn to the breasts of the Promises, Psal. 40.12. Psal. 77. Psal. 88 Job 23.8, 9 nor call to mind their former experiences, nor behold the least glimpse of Heavens glories. No man in his wits, if he were to weigh gold, would weigh it in the midst of high winds, great storms and horrible tempests, which would so hurry the balance up and down, this way and that, that it would be impossible for him to weigh his gold exactly. Now the trial of our spiritual estates is like the weighing of gold, Job 31.6. Dan. 5.27. for we are all to weigh ourselves by the balance of the Sanctuary. God himself will one day weigh us by that balance, and if we hold weight when he comes to weigh us, we are safe and happy for ever: But when he comes to weigh us in the balance of the Sanctuary, if we shall then be found too light, it had been good for us we had never been born; when Belshazzar saw the hand-writing upon the wall, his countenance was changed, Verses 5, 6. and his thoughts troubled, and the joints of his loins were loosed, and his knees smote one against another; but what was all this to an everlasting separation from God, and to those endless, easless, and remediless torments that such must endure, 2 Thess. 1.7, 8, 9, 10. who when they are weighed in the balance, shall be found too light? A man that would weigh gold to a grain, The candle will never burn clear whilst there is a thief in it, sin indulged in the conscience, is like Jonah in the ship, which causeth such a tempest, that the Conscience is like a troubled Sea, whose waters cannot rest, or it is like a more in the eye, which causeth a perpetual trouble while it is there. must weigh it in a quiet still place: And so a man that would make an exact trial of his spiritual estate, he must take his Soul when 'tis most serious, quiet, still, and composed; he must take his heart when it is in the best frame, and most disposed to solemn and weighty work. There are some times which are very unapt for a gracious person to sit as Judge upon his Spiritual estate, and to pass sentence upon his own Soul. The best Christians under Heaven do meet with divers inward and outward changes, sometimes the light shines so clear that they can see things as they are, but at other times all is dark and cloudy, and tempestuous, and then they are apt to judge themselves by feeling and new representations, and not according to the truth. O Sirs, remember this once for all, that times of inward or outward distresses are best for Praying, and worst for judging. If a man will at such times pass sentence on himself, or his estate as a Judge, he will certainly judge unrighteous judgement, for then the Soul is not itself, and is very apt and prone to take Satan's work for his own, and to side with him against itself, yea, and then usually it will see nothing, it will think of nothing, it will dwell upon nothing but what makes against itself. 4. When God exercises a man with some exceeding severe and unusual Providences, when God steps out of his ordinary way of Dispensations in his deal with a man: When God sets a man up before all the world as a mark to shoot at, as he did Job. Now a poor Christian is ready to doubt and conclude, Job 7.20. c. 16.12 Surely the Lord has no regard of me, he has no entire love for me, his heart is not certainly towards me, seeing all these sore trials make so much against me; but here the poor Christian is mistaken, as Jacob once was, Gen 42.36. And Jacob their Father said unto them, Me have ye bereft of my children, Joseph is not, and Simeon is not, and ye will take Benjamin away, all these things are against me. Gen. 45.5, 6, 7, 8, 9 But Jacob was out, for all those things made for him, and for the preservation of the visible Church of God in the World. Certainly all the afflictions that befall the people of God, Rev. 3.19. Heb. 12.5, 6. are but his love-tokens. As many as I love I rebuke and chasten, and therefore those Christians are miserably mistaken that take them for testimonies of his wrath, and effects of his disfavour. O Sirs! what can be more absurd, displeasing, and provoking, than for a Christian to make that an Argument of God's hatred, that he intends for an instance of his love? and ye● Christians are apt thus to act. It is observable the Apostle reckons affliction amongst God's honoraries and tokens of respect, Judg. 6.12, 13. Exod. 17.7. Phil. 1.29. For to you 'tis given (saith he) not only to believe, but also to suffer. Which (saith Father Latymer) is the greatest promotion that God gives in this world. Job 7.17, 18. Job (when he was himself) could not but admire at it, that God should make such an account of man, and that he should so magnify him, and dignify him, as to think him worthy of a rod, a whipping; as to think him worth a melting, Prov. 1.32. Psal. 73.5. Eccles. 9.1, 2. and trying every morning, yea, every moment. 'tis certain that great prosperity and worldly glory are no sure tokens of God's love, and 'tis as certain that great troubles and afflictions are no sure marks of God's hatred, and yet many poor Christians, when the waters of affliction rise high, and are ready to overflow them, O how apt are they to conclude that God hates them, and will revenge himself upon them, and that they have nothing of God or Christ, or the Spirit, or Grace in them? Or, 5. Lam. 1.16. When the Spirit the Comforter stands afar off, and witholds those special influences, without which, in a common ordinary way, a Christian cannot divinely, candidly, clearly and impartially transact with God in order to his own peace, comfort and settlement. Or, 6. When either a Christians evidences are not at hand, or else they are so soiled, darkened, blotted and obscured, as that he is not able to read them. Psal. 88 Job 33.10. It is an old saying that Melancholia est vehiculum Daemonum. In the Germane proverb, Luther says it goes for currant, Caput Melancholicum diaboli Balneum, The melancholy head is the Devils bathing place. Or, 7. When a Christian is extremely oppressed with melancholy. Melancholy is a dark and dusky humour, which disturbs both Soul and body, and the cure of it belongs rather to the Physician than to the Divine. It is a most pestilent humour where it abounds, one calls it Balneum Diaboli, the Devil's Bath; 'tis a humour that unfits a man for all sorts of services, but especially those that concern his soul, his spiritual estate, his everlasting condition. The Melancholy person tires the Physician, grieves the Minister, wounds Relations, and makes sport for the Devil. There are 5 sorts of persons that the Devil makes his Ass to ride in triumph upon, viz. the ignorant person, the unbelieving person, the proud person, the hypocritical person, and the Melancholy person. Melancholy is a disease that works strange passions, strange imaginations, and strange conclusions. It unmans a man, it makes a man call good evil, and evil good, sweet bitter, and bitter sweet, light darkness, and darkness light. The distemper of the body oftentimes causeth distemper of soul, for the Soul followeth the temper of the body. A Melancholy spirit is a dumb spirit, you can get nothing out of him, Mat. 9.28, 29. It is no more wonder to see a Melancholy man doubt and question his spiritual condition, than it is to see a child cry when he is beaten, or to hear a sick man groan, or to hear a drowning man call out for a boat. You may silence a Melancholy man, when you are not able to comfort him. Whilst Nabuchadnezzar was under the power of a deep Melancholy, he could not tell whether he was a man or a Beast. Melancholy is the mother of fears, doubts, disputes, and discomforts. and a deaf spirit, you can get nothing into him. Now of all the evil spirits we read of in the Gospel, the dumb and the deaf were the worst; darkness, sadness, solitariness, heaviness, mourning, etc. are the only sweet desirable and delightful companions of melancholy persons. Melancholy makes every sweet bitter, and every bitter seven times more bitter: the melancholy person is marvellously prone to bid sleep farewel, and joy farewel, and meat farewel, and friends farewel, and Ordinances farewel, and duties farewel, and Promises farewell, and Ministers farewel, and his Calling farewell, and 'tis well if he be not even ready to bid God farewel too. Melancholy persons are like Idols that have eyes but see not, and tongues but speak not, and ears but hear not. Melancholy turns truths into Fables, and fables into truths; it turns fancies into realities, and realities into fancies. Melancholy is a fire that burns inwards, and is hard to quench. Now if a Christian be under the power of natural or accidental Melancholy, his work is not now to be a trying his estate, or a casting up of his accounts to see what he is worth for another world, but to use all such ways and means as God hath prepared in a natural way for the cure of Melancholy; for as the Soul is not cured by natural causes, so the body is not cured by spiritual Remedies. Now in the seven cases last mentioned, a Christians work lies rather in mourning, self-judging, self-loathing, self-abhorring, and in repenting and reforming, and in fresh and frequent exercises of Faith on the Lord Jesus, on his Blood, on his Promises, and on his free rich sovereign and glorious Grace, ●hat is displayed and offered in the Gospel, and in a patiented waiting upon the Lord in the use of all holy and heavenly helps for deliverance out of his present straits, trials and exercises, then in falling upon that great work of casting up his spiritual accounts, and of searching into the Records of glory, to see whether his name be Registered in the Book of Life or no. O Sirs, when poor Christians are bewildered, their proper work is to cast themselves upon the Promises, to trust in the name of the Lord, Isa. 50.10. Job 13.15. and to stay themselves upon their God. Job in a cloudy stormy day, resolves to trust ●n the Lord, though he should slay him; and so must you: And O that this rule were more seriously minded, and effectually observed by all doubting, trembling, and staggering Christians. But, The Thirteenth Maxim or Consideration. THirteenthly, Consider you must never judge yourselves unsound, The grand Rule by which we must try and judge of our spiritual and eternal estates, is the word of God, Isa. 8.20. in this Scripture the Prophet plainly shows whither we must go with our doubts, fears, scruples, questions, and with whom we must consult, and of whom we must take advice, and that is the Law and the testimony. or Hypocrites, by those things which the Scripture never makes a Character of an unsound Christian, or of an Hypocrite, or of Hypocrisy. Mark, as you are to receive no comfort, but what is backed with clear Scripture, nor no evidences for the goodness and happiness of your spiritual estate and condition, but such as are backed with clear Scriptures; so you are to receive, you are to admit of no Arguments, nor pleas, nor reasonings, to prove yourself an Hypocrite, or unsound, or that you have no Grace, or that your spiritual estate and condition is not good, but such Arguments pleas, and reasonings, as are backed with clear Scriptures. Now tell me O thou weak doubting staggering trembling Christian, if thou canst, where are those clear Scriptures that proves wand'ring thoughts in Duty, or that proves narrowness or straitness of Spirit in a duty, to be characters of an Hypocrite, or of hypocrisy, or of one that is unsound? tell me O thou sighing Christian, if thou canst, where are those clear Scriptures that proves the want of a good memory for the best things, or the want of those gifts or abilities that many Christians have, to Pray, to speak, to discourse, to open Scripture, or to dispute for the concernments of Christ and his Kingdom, to be characters of an Hypocrite or of hypocrisy, or of one that is unsound? Tell me O thou distressed Christian if thou canst, where are those clear Scriptures that will justify thee to conclude that thou art an Hypocrite, because thou art without the present evidence of thy sincerity? Are there not many of the precious sons and daughters of Zion comparable to fine gold, Isa. 50.10. 1 John 5.13. Gen. 44. Lam. 4.2. who have true Grace and sincerity in their hearts, though for the present it be hid from their eyes? joseph's Brethren had their money in their sacks, though they did not see it, nor know it till they came to their Inn and opened them. So many of the dear children of God have sincerity in their hearts, though for the present they do not see it nor know it. O Sirs! 'tis Christ's work, not Graces, to evidence itself so clearly and fully to our eyes, as to enable us to own it; 'tis one thing for the Spirit of God to work Grace in the Soul, and another thing for the Spirit to shine upon his own work; now till the Spirit shines upon his own work, the Soul is in the dark, 1 Cor. 2.12. the Graces of the Spirit are best seen in the light of the Spirit, as we see the Sun best by his own light: 'tis good for doubting Christians when they are in the dark, to hold fast this conclusion, viz. that they may be upright, though at present they are not able to see their uprightness. Now though this will not bring in a full Tide of comfort into their Souls, yet it will keep them from despair, and it will support and uphold their hearts, till the Spirit, who is a Messenger of a thousand, shall show them their uprightness. Tell me O thou mourning Christian if thou canst, where are those clear Scriptures that proves deadness, dulness, and indisposedness in duty (though it be sadly lamented, bewailed and mourned over, and much striven against, yea though it be the great grief and burden of the Soul) to be characters of Hypocrites, or of hypocrisy, or of one that is unsound? Tell me O thou disquieted Christian if thou canst, where are those clear Scriptures that proves the want of those enlargements, ravishments, joys, comforts, In all Soul cases, God expects we should consult his word, and cleave to his word, without warping or turning aside either to the right hand or to the left, John 12.48. That book that shall try you at last, and that shall save you or damn you in the great day, is the only book by which you must make a judgement of your present and future estates. Clemens of Alexandria, speaking of the Word, saith, it is the touchstone of truth and falsehood. peace or assurance that some others have, to be characters of Hypocrites or hypocrisy, or of one that is unsound? and yet upon the account of the above mentioned things on the one hand, and under a sensible want of the things last cited on the other hand, how exceeding apt and prone are many poor weak doubting trembling Christians, confidently and peremptorily to conclude themselves to be Hypocrites, and to be unsound, and that they have not a dram of Grace, nor no saving interest in Christ at all. O Sirs! remember this once for all, that as you must never admit of any Arguments, Pleas, or Reasonings for the comfort peace and refreshment of your souls, but such as are attended with the evidence of clear Scripture; but such as are backed with pregnant Scriptures: So you must never admit of any Pleas, Arguments or Reasonings, to trouble, vex, perplex, and disquiet the peace of your souls, but such as are attended with clear Scripture evidence, but such as are well backed with Canonical Scripture. Now if this choice Rule were but wisely observed, and carefully, frequently, and conscientiously practised by many weak doubting trembling Christians, how would it set them at liberty from their fears, doubts, and misgivings of heart; how would it knock off all their chains, and wipe all tears from their eyes, and remove that sadness that lies like a load upon their hearts, and how soon would it bring them into a condition of peace, comfort, quietness, and settlement. O Sirs! every working and appearance of hypocrisy, doth not presently prove the person in whom it is to be an Hypocrite. A man may be hypocritical either 1. Really. Or 2. In Opinion and fancy, many of the dear children of God are very apt and prone many times both to suspect and falsely charge the true estate of their souls. A child in a distemper may question the inheritance which is entailed on him, etc. But remember this, if thy heart be upright, all comfort is thy portion, for as our distrustful fears do not prejudice the reality of the estate of grace. So our frequent suspicions that we are hypocrites, does not cut us off from the title and right of promised comforts. Christian's must carefully distinguish between the presence of hypocrisy, and the predominancy of hypocrisy. In the most upright hearts that are in the world, there is more or less hypocrisy remaining in them: All the Saints that ever were in the World, Rom. 7.22, 23. Heb. 12.15. have found more or less of this root of bitterness springing up in them; 'tis not the presence of hypocrisy, but the reign of hypocrisy that damns the soul; that hypocrisy that is discerned, resisted, opposed, and mourned over, will never make a Christian miserable. Where the standing frame and general bend of a man's heart is upright, there the presence of hypocrisy cannot denominate a man an hypocrite. All men must stand and fall for ever according to the standing frame and general bend of their hearts; if the standing frame and general bend of their hearts be sincere, they are happy for ever; but if the standing frame and general bend of their hearts be hypocritical, they are miserable for ever. But, The Fourteenth Maxim or Consideration. FOurteenthly, Consider you must never judge yourselves unsound, or hypocrites for such things, or from such considerations, or by such Arguments or reasonings, which being admitted and granted to be true, will necessarily and unavoidably prove the whole generation of the faithful, Psal. 7●. 15. the whole body of them that fear the Lord, to be unsound, and to be a pack of notorious hypocrites; he that shall judge himself unsound or an hypocrite, because his thoughts and imaginations are, that he is not sincere, Isa. 55.7, 8, 9 for because he is thus and thus tempted, or because he is at particular times and in particular cases thus and thus worsted and captivated by sin, (notwithstanding all the resistance that he is able to make against it, and notwithstanding his hatred of it, and his loathing and judging of himself for it) or because he is thus and thus afflicted in his Family, Jacob, Joseph, Job, David, Heman, Paul, and those worthies in the 11th. of the Hebre●s, have been as much afflicted as thou hast been; now for thee to conclude that thou art not beloved, because thou hast been thus afflicted, this is to conclude against all those worthies, of whom this world was not worthy, Heb. 11.38. or in his Relations, or in his own person; or because he is thus and thus distracted in Prayer, and straitened in Prayer; or because he is sometimes troubled with sad, hard, hideous, and blasphemous thoughts of God; he does in so judging, judge and condemn the whole Generation of the Righteous, for there are none of them but first or last, more or less, have been exercised even as he is, or as he has been exercised: Who dare judge his neighbour, his brother, his friend, an hypocrite, because the hand of the Lord has been various ways lifted up against him, or because Satan has been let lose to play with his grand battery upon him? Now if thou darest not judge thy neighbour an hypocrite upon these accounts, how darest thou to judge thyself an hypocrite upon the very same accounts? When thy neighbour, thy brother, thy friend is thus and thus afflicted, tempted, distressed, etc. thou canst tell them that this has been the common lot of the People of God in all the Ages of the World; thou canst tell them that no man knows love or hatred by these things; and that all things come alike to all; Eccles. 9.1, 2, 3. Isa. 1.25. chap. 27.9. Heb. 12.10, 11. James 5.10, 11. thou canst tell them that the most choicest Saints have been most afflicted, tempted, clouded, and distressed; thou canst tell them that all shall end well, that all shall issue well. Remember the patience of Job, and consider the end that the Lord made with him. Thou canst tell them that thou hast got that good by afflictions, temptations, cloudings, distresses that thou wouldst not exchange for ten thousand worlds. Now if Christians when they are afflicted, tempted, clouded, distressed, would be but as kind, favourable, and merciful to themselves as they are to others in the same condition, how we●l would it be with them, how soon would they get out of the snare. O Sirs, if th●s rule were but prudently considered, and seriously practised, how would the fears, doubts, and darknesses of many poor weak doubting staggering and trembling Christians vanish, and what peace, comfort, and settlement would they quickly find. O Sirs, we must never stand to that judgement which we pass upon our Spiritual estates, which is irrational, or without sufficient ground from Scripture, or which would be to condemn the Generation of the just; we may safely appeal from that sentence of our judgement which acts itself in times of passion, or violent temptation, as he did from Alexander drunk, to Alexander sober, etc. We must not unjustly vex our own hearts, and dash out our integrity, when the sentence that we pass upon ourselves is rather of imagination than of reason. When a man thinks, and thinks again and again that his heart is not sincere with God, though many (if not all) evidences of sincerity appear in him, and when he cannot produce any one inherently distinguishing ground of an hypocrite in himself, why this is but an imaginary judgement, and utterly unreasonable, for this is to condemn the innocent without cause. O Sirs! that soul will never be settled in peace and comfort, which gives way to his own imaginations and passions, and which hath a conceit that every sinful thought, or violent temptation, or more durable conflict with an inward corruption, or the resurrection of some old sin, or frequent distractions in Religious duties, or particular falls or flips into this or that sin, cannot stand with grace, cannot stand with uprightness, cannot stand with singleness and soundness of heart; O that you would for ever remember this, viz. That where a man hath either no ground at all, or those that he hath are false, he should never so settle on them, and yield and entertain them, as to question his estate for them, or for them to shut the door of comfort against his own Soul. But, The Fifteenth Maxim or Consideration. FIfteenthly, Consider in judging of yourselves, and your spiritual estates and conditions, you must always have an eye to your natural tempers, complexions, constitutions, and inclinations, and the sins and temptations that these do lay you most open too, and remember that as in some tempers a little grace makes a very great show; so in other tempers a great deal of grace makes but a very little show. A little gold ring upon an Alabaster hand, makes a more glorious show than a very great Ring upon a leprous hand; the Application is easy. A little water in a long narrow mouthed glass seems to be a great deal, when ten times, yea twenty times as much in a large Cistern is hardly discernible; the application is easy. A little Sugar will serve well enough for sweet Wines, but much more is requisite to sweeten that Wine that is sharp and harsh. A little grace will make a very glorious show in such men and women whose very natural tempers are sweet, soft, gentle, meek, affable, courteous; when a great deal of Grace is hardly discernible in those men and women whose very natural tempers are cross, crooked, choleric, fierce, passionate, ruff and unhewen. As a good man said of an eminent light now in Heaven, That he had Grace enough for ten men, but scarce enough for himself, his natural temper was so bad, which he would himself often lament and bewail, saying to his friends, That he had such a cross crooked nature, that if God had not given him grace none would have been able to have lived one day quietly with him. A sincere Christian may have more roughness of nature, and more sturdiness of passions than is in many a moral man; he that hath more Christianity, may have less Morality, as there is more perfection of animal and sensitive faculties in some bruits than in some men. 'tis an old experienced truth, that those sins are with the greatest pains, labour, travel and difficulty subdued and mortified, which our natural tempers, complexions and constitutions do most strongly incline and dispose us to, and were but those lusts subdued and brought under, it would be no difficult thing to bring all other sins to an under; when Goliath was slain, the Philistims fled; when a General in an Army falls, 1 Sam. 17.51, 52. the common Soldiers are quickly routed. So 'tis here, get but the sins of your natural tempers, complexions and constitutions under your feet, and you will quickly ride in a holy triumph over the rest. When Justice is effectually done upon your constitution sins, 2 Sam. 18.14. ult. other sins will not be long lived, thrust but a dart through the heart of Absolom, and a complete conquest will follow. Now before I close up this particular, let me advise you frequently to consider, that you can never make a true, a right, a serious judgement of yourselves, or of your spiritual estates and conditions, without a prudent eye upon your natural tempers, complexions, and constitutions, granting to yourselves such indulgence and grains of allowance upon the account of your natural tempers, as will stand with sincerity and the Covenant of Grace. But, The Sixteenth Maxim or Consideration. SIxteenthly, Consider, If you cannot, if you dare not say that you have grace, Mark 4.26, 27, 28. yet do not say that you have no Grace, for the being of Grace in the soul is one thing, and the seeing of Grace in the Soul is another thing. A man may have Grace, and yet not know that he has Grace, he may have a seed of God in him, and yet not see it; 1 Joh. 5.13. he may believe, and yet not believe that he does believe; the child lives before it knows that it lives. If you cannot say that your Graces are true, yet do not say they are counterfeit, lest you bear false witness against the real work of the Spirit in you. There are none so apt to question the truth of their Grace as those are that are truly gracious; though Satan cannot hinder the holy Spirit from working true grace in the Soul, 1 John 4.4. Psal. 77. yet he will do all he can to fill the Soul with fears and doubts and jealousies about the truth of that grace that the holy Spirit has wrought in it. When did you ever know the Devil to tempt an Hypocrite to believe that his Graces were not true, and that certainly he had not the root of the matter in him; if you cannot say that you have an interest in Christ, yet do not say that you have no interest in Christ, for a man may have an interest in Christ, and yet not see his interest in Christ, not know his interest in Christ; there are many precious Christians that walk in darkness, who yet have an interest in that Jesus that is all Light, Life, Isa. 50.10. and love; if you cannot say that your pardon is sealed in the Court of your own Conscience, yet do not say that 'tis not sealed in the Court of Heaven, for many a Christian has his pardon sealed in the Court of Heaven, Psal. 51. before 'tis sealed in the Court of his own Conscience. A Pardon sealed in the Court of Conscience, Rev. 2.17. is that new name and white stone which God does not give to every one at first Conversion; God will take his own time to Seal up every Christians Pardon in his bosom. If you cannot say that your name is written in the Book of life, yet do not say that 'tis not written in the Book of life; the Disciples names were first written in Heaven before Christ bid them rejoice, Luke 10.20. because their names were written in Heaven. A man may have his name written in Heaven, and yet it may be a long while before God may tell him that his name is written in Heaven. I you cannot say that the precious Promises are yours, yet do not say that they are children's Bread, and such dainties that your Soul shall never taste of; 'tis not every precious Christian that has an interest in the Promises, Psal. 77. Psal. 88 1 Pet. 1.4. that can run and read his interest in the Promises. If you cannot say that the heavenly inheritance is yours, yet do not say that 'tis not yours, do not say it shall never be yours. A Christian may have a good title to the heavenly inheritance, and yet not be able to make good his title, to clear up his title; as a child in the arms or in the Cradle, may be heir to a Crown, a Kingdom, and yet he is not able to make good his title. If you cannot say that you have Assurance, yet do not say that you shall never have Assurance, for a man may want Assurance one year, and have it the next; one Month, and have it another; Luke 19. 1-10. Acts 16. 29-35. Rom. 11.33. one week, and have it another; one day, and have it another; yea, one hour, and have it another. If you cannot say that you shall certainly go to Heaven, yet do not say that you shall undoubtedly go to Hell, for who made you one of the Privy Counsellors of Heaven, who acquainted you with the secret decrees of God, etc. Now were this Rule but throughly minded, and conscientiously practised, O how well would it go with many tempted, troubled, bewildered, and clouded Christians! O how would Satan be disappointed, and poor souls quieted, composed, and refreshed. But, The seventeenth Maxim or Consideration. SEventeenthly, When ever you cast your eye upon your gracious evidences, it highly concerns you seriously to remember that you have to deal with God in a Covenant of Grace, and not in a Covenant of Works. Every breach of peace with God, is not a breach of Covenant with God. Though the Wife hath many weaknesses and infirmities hanging upon her, and though she may often grieve, provoke and displease her Husband, yet as long as she remains faithful, and truly loving, and in the main obedient to him, though he may alter his carriage towards her, Jer. 3.12, 14, 22. Hos. 14.4. Isa. 43.22. to 26. ch. 57.16, 17, 18, 19 Every thing which is a ground of grief or sorrow to the people of God, is not a sufficient ground of questioning their integrity, or the goodness and happiness of their spiritual estates and conditions. If upon every slip, failing and infirmity, a Christian should question all that ever was wrought in him, and done by God upon him, his life will certainly be made up of fears and doubts, and he will never attain to any settled peace, comfort, or assurance or be able to live that life of joy, praise, and thankfulness that the Gospel calls for. yet he will not withdraw his love from her, or deny his relation to her. No more will God towards his weak miscarrying one's, as you may evidently see by comparing the Scriptures in the Margin together. Doubtless there are many dear Christians whose troubles of Conscience about their spiritual and eternal estates, arises from their looking upon God, and dealing with God in a Covenant of Works. Are there not many precious Christians, who when they fall before temptations, and are worsted by their corruptions, that are ready to question all, and throw up all as lost, and peremptorily to conclude against their own Souls, that all is naught, very naught, stark naught, and that they are Hypocrites, and that God will never own such as they are, nor never accept of such as they are, nor never delight in such as they are, nor never have any thing to do with such as they are, and all this because they do not a right understand the Covenant of Grace, and think that they have to deal with God in a Covenant of Works. Though many Christians do freely and readily acknowledge that there is a Covenant of Grace, yet upon the least stirring of any corruption, or the least conquest that is made upon them by the violence of any temptation, they are so full of fears, faintings, reasonings, diffidences, and despondencies, etc. And they carry it so weakly and unworthily towards the Lord, as if there were no Covenant of Grace at all, or as if they had wholly and only to deal with God in a Covenant of works. Now what a high dishonour is this to the free, rich, infinite, sovereign, and glorious Grace of God, which so sparkles and shines in the Covenant of Grace, and which tells us that our eternal estates shall never be judged by a Covenant of Works, and that the want of an absolute perfection shall never damn a believing Soul, and that the obedience that God requires at our hands, is not a Legal, but Evangelical? O that all those dear Christians who are so apt to be dejected and overwhelmed upon the account of the prevalency of such and such corruptions, and because they fail in keeping Covenant with God, and in walking in a Covenant-relation with God, I say, O that all these would frequently and seriously consider of these three things! First, That so long as a Christian doth not renounce his Covenant with God, so long as he doth not wilfully and wickedly break the bond of the Covenant, the substance of the Covenant is not yet broken, though some Articles of the Covenant may be violated, Psal. 89.30. to 35. 2 Sam. 23.5. (while Christ lies at the bottom of the Covenant, it cannot be utterly broken) As among men there be some trespasses against some particular clauses in Covenants, which though they be violated, yet the whole Covenant is not forfeited; 'tis so here, every jar, every miscarriage doth not break the Marriage-Covenant; no more doth every sin, every miscarriage break the Covenant between God and the Soul. B●t, Secondly, Seriously consider that many weak Christians are much mistaken about the terms and condition of the Covenant of Grace, they think that the condition of the Covenant is perfect and unsinning, obedience, whereas 'tis only sincere obedience. Isa. 54. Isa. 7.8, 9, 10. Jer. 31.33, 34, 35, 36, 37. Mark, that man sincerely obeys and sincerely walks in Covenant with God, who sincerely, who hearty, who ordinarily desires, labours, and endeavours to obey the Law of God, the will of God, and to walk in Covenant with God. Mark, particular actions do not denominate any estate, it is the course of actions which doth denominate a man's walking in Covenant with God, or his not walking in Covenant with God; if his course of actions be sinful, he walks not in Covenant with God; but if his course of actions be holy and gracious, he walks in Covenant with God. Though the needle of the Seaman's Compass may jog this way, and that way, yet the bent of the needle will still be Northward; so though a Christian in Covenant with God may have his particular sinful joggings, this way or that way, yet the bent of his heart will still be to walk in Covenant with God. But, Thirdly, Consider that infirmities, aberrations of weakness, do not nullify or evacuate our Covenant with God, nor hinder our walking in Covenant with God; for if they should, than no man could possibly keep Covenant with God, or walk in Covenant with God; Infirmities God passes by and pardons in course, and will never put them into the account, and therefore they cannot hinder our walking in Covenant with God. Breaches made in the first Covenant were irreparable, but breaches made in the Covenant of Grace are not so, because this Covenant is established in Christ, who is still a making up all breaches. Mark, there are five things which show that the deviations of God's people are only infirmities, and not enormities, weaknesses, and not wickednesses; and the first is this, viz. That they do frequently and principally arise from the subtlety and sudden power of Satan's temptations. 2. 1 Chron. 21.1. Rom. 7.15, 16, 19, 23, 24. That the frame of their spirits is against the evil that they do. 3. Their daily cries, tears, and complaints, speaks it out to be an infirmity, they are in this particular like a lost sheep, or a lost child, or a lost friend. 4. Though they do fall, yet they rise again, though they do step or wander out of the way, yet they do return into the right way again. 5. When they do fall, there is a vast difference, a mighty difference between their falls, and the falls of wicked men that are not in Covenant with God, and that first, in respect of willingness. 2. In respect of choice. 3. In respect of affection. 4. In respect of course. 5. In respect of quietness. 6. In respect of continuance. Mark, When wicked men fall, when men out of Covenant with God fall, than they fall willingly, they fall out of choice, they fall out of affection to fall, they fall in a course, they fall, and they are quiet under their falls; they fall, and continue to fall, Isa. 55.12. to morrow shall be as to day. But persons in Covenant with God, though they do fall, yet they do not fall, nor cannot fall as they do that are out of Covenant with God. For first, There is in all such persons an habitual purpose to keep Covenant with God. 2. An habitual desire to keep Covenant with God. 3. An habitual resolution to keep Covenant with God. 4. An habitual endeavour to keep Covenant with God. Now where 'tis thus, there that man is certainly in Covenant with God, and that man walks in Covenant with God, he is under a Covenant of Grace, his sins are pardoned, and therefore they shall never be his ruin. Isa. 63.17. Doubtless many precious Christians have charged and condemned themselves for those things that the great God will never charge them with, nor condemn them for. Blessed Bradford wrote himself an Hypocrite, a painted Sepulchre, but doubtless God will never bring in such a charge against him. O Sirs, the stir of sin, and the workings of sin, and the prevalency of sin, for particular acts will stand with the Covenant of Grace, though not with the Covenant of Works. You may not by any means conclude that you are not in a Covenant of Grace, because such and such corruptions stirs in you, or because such or such weaknesses now and then breaks forth and discovers themselves, either in your lips or lives: Did Christians but study the Covenant of grace more, and understand better than they do the difference between the Covenant of grace and the Covenant of works, how would their fears and doubts about their spiritual and eternal estates vanish, as the clouds before the Sun when it shines in its greatest strength and glory, etc. 'Twas the saying of an eminent Minister on his deathbed, That he had much peace and quietness, not so much from a greater measure of grace than other Christians had, or from any immediate witness of the spirit, but because he had a more clear understanding of the Covenant of grace than many others, having studied it, and Preached it so many years as he had done. Doubtless had Christians a more clear and a more full understanding of the Covenant of grace, they would live more holily, serviceably, humbly, fruitfully, comfortably and sweetly than they do, and they would die more willingly, readily, and cheerfully than many (may I not say than most) Christians use to do. But, The Eighteenth Maxim or Consideration. EIghteenthly and lastly, That trouble, grief, and sorrow for sin, that drives a man from God, is sinful, and must one day be repent of, and wept over. All true trouble, Hos. 5.14, 15. chap. 6.1, 2, 3. Jer. 31.18, 19, 20. Psal. 51. Hos. 14.1, 2. Psal. 25.11. grief, and sorrow, drives to God, as is evident by the Scriptures in the Margin; Suppose thou hast so and so sinned, yet 'tis a false inference that therefore thou shouldest be discouraged, and let thy hopes sink, and thy heart faint, as if there were no help, no hope, no comfort for thee in thy God. Quest. But when is a man's trouble or sorrow for sin sinful? Answ. 1. When it keeps Christ and the Soul asunder. 2. When it keeps the Soul and the Promises asunder. 3. When it unfits a man for the duties of his place and calling wherein the providence of God has stated him. 4. When it unfits a man for the duties of Religion, either private or public. 5. When it takes off the sweet and comfort of all outward comforts and enjoyments, and renders all our mercies like the white of an Egg, that has no taste or savour in it. 6. When it weakens, wastes or destroys the outward man, all godly sorrow is a friend to the Soul, and no enemy to the body. And thus much for those divine Maxims, Considerations, and Rules that are seriously to be minded and observed in order to the clearing up a man's Interest in Christ, and his title to all the glory of another world. Certainly these Eighteen Maxims, Considerations, or Rules (if God shall please powerfully to set in with them) are of singular use for the clearing up of the saving work of God upon poor souls. And therefore it highly concerns Christians seriously to ponder upon them, as Mary did upon the say of the Angel in her heart. Now these things being premised, I shall come in the next Chapter to lay down some infallible evidences of saving Grace. Luke 2.19. CHAP. II. Containing many choice, precious, and infallible Evidences of true saving grace, upon which a Christian may safely and securely, comfortably and confidently, rest and adventure the weight of his precious and immortal Soul, and by which he may certainly know that it shall go well with him for ever; and that he has a real saving interest in Christ, and shall be everlastingly happy, when he shall be here no more, etc. FIrst, There are some things in regard of sin, and a Christians actings about it, that speaks out a gracious estate, and that discovers a saving principle of Grace to be in the Soul. I shall instance in these Eleven particulars. First, A universal willingness to be rid of all sin, is an infallible evidence of the truth of Grace in a man's Soul; Isa. 28.15, 18. Isa. 30.22. Hos. 14.8. Rom. 7.22, 23, 24. the first saving work of the Spirit upon the soul, is the dividing between sin and the soul, 'tis a making an utter breacls betwixt sin and the soul, 'tis a dissolving of that old League that has been between the sinner and his sin. The first work of the Spirit, is to make a man look upon sin as an enemy and to deal with sin as an enemy, to hate it as an enemy, to loathe it as an enemy, to fear it as an enemy, and to arm against it as an enemy. When the holy spirit takes possession of the Soul, from that day forward the soul looks upon sin with as evil, and as envious an eye as Saul looked on David when the evil spirit was upon him. O, saith Saul, that I were but once well rid of this David; and O (saith the gracious Soul) that I were but once well rid of this proud heart, this hard heart, this unbelieving heart, this unclean heart, this froward heart, this earthly heart of mine, etc. Gen. 26.35. Look as the daughters of Heth even made Rebeccah weary of her life, so corruptions within makes the gracious soul even weary of his life. Many a day have I sought death with tears (said blessed Cowper) not out of impatience, distrust, or perturbation, Restraining grace doth only suppress and abate the acts of sin, it doth never alter the disposition and will of a man as to sin. You may chain up a Lion, but you cannot change the nature of a Lyon. but because I am weary of sin, and fearful to fall into it. Look as when Christ hath won the will, he hath won the man: So when sin hath lost the will, it hath lost the man. The will is the heart; My Son give me thy heart, is, My Son give me thy will; the will is the Fort-Royal of the Soul, 'tis that strong hold that stands out stoutest, and longest against all the Assaults of Heaven; when the will is won all is won, the Castle is won, the heart is won; the man is won when the will is won. A man's judgement and reason may say, I ought t●●●rn from sin, and his Conscience may say, I must turn from sin, or it will be bitterness in the end, and yet the work not done, nor the Soul won; but when the heart says, the will says, I will turn from sin, than the work is done, and the man is won. Where reason saith these lusts ought to be subdued, and the Conscience saith these lusts must be subdued, and the Will saith these lusts shall be subdued, (Psal. 65.3. As for our transgressions, thou sha●t purge them away) there is a saving work upon the Soul. When the will ceases to sin, as Ephraim said to his Idols, Get you hence, what have I any more to do with you, than the work of God is begun in power upon the Soul. A universal willingness to be rid of all sin, speaks the heart to be sound and sincere with God; the enmity that Grace works in the heart against sin, is against the whole kind, 'tis against all sin, as well profitable and pleasurable sins, as disparaging and disgracing sins; and as well against small sins as against great sins; true Grace strikes at root and branch, at head and members, at father and son. A true Israelite would not have one Canaanite left in the Holy Land, he would have every Egyptian drowned in the Red Sea of Christ's blood, Psal. 119.104. I hate every false way, Psal. 139. ult. Search me O Lord, and see if there be any wicked [way] in me, and lead me in the way everlasting. Saving Grace makes a man as willing to leave his lusts, as a Slave is willing to leave his Galley, or a Prisoner his Dungeon, or a Thief his Bolts, or a Beggar his rags. But now take a man that is in his natural condition, and he is as unwilling to part with his sins, as Abraham was to turn Hagar and Ishmael out of doors. Ambrose reports of one Theotimus, that having a disease upon his body, the Physician told him, That except he did abstain from intemperance, drunkenness, uncleanness, etc. he was like to lose his eyes; his heart was so desperately set upon his lusts, that he answered, Vale lumen amicum, Farewell sweet Light then, he had rather lose his eyes, than leave his sins. So they in Micha 6.6, 7. do make very large offers for a dispensation to live in their sins, They offer Calves of a year old, they offer thousands of Rams, and ten thousand Rivers of Oil; yea, they offer their first born for thei●●●ansgressions, the fruit of their bodies for the sin of their souls. Sinners hearts are so glued to their lusts, that they will rather part with their nearest, dearest, and choicest enjoyments, than part with their sins; yea, when they are put hard to it, they will rather part with God, Christ, and all the glory of another world, than they will part with some base bosom lust; witness that young man in the Gospel, who went away sorrowful, because he had great possessions, Matth. 19.21, 22. Look as a man leaves his Wife and Children, Gen. 21.11. Matth. 19 21, 22. 2 Sam. 3.15, 16. Augustin in his youth (before his Conversion) prayed thus, I said indeed with my lips, Lord give, and yet in my heart I was too willing to give longer day, and could have said, Lord, pray not yet, I was even afraid lest thou shouldst hear me too soon, and too soon heal and subdue my corruption for me. Aug. Con. his Country, Estate, and Trade, with tears in his eyes, and sorrow in his heart; so does an unregenerate man leave his lusts, with tears in his eyes, and sorrow in his heart. Very observable is the story of Phaltiel, David had Married Michol, Saul injuriously gave her to another; when David came to the Crown, and was able to speak a word of command, he sends for his wife Michol, her Husband dares not but obey, he brings her on her journey, and then, not without great reluctancy of spirit, takes his leave of her: But what was Phaltiel weary of his Wife that he now forsakes her? O no, he was forced to it, and though she was gone, yet he cast many a sad thought after her, and never leaves looking till he sees her as far as Bahurim, weeping and bemoaning her absence. And just thus 'tis with carnal and unregenerate men, who though for fear, or some other reasons, they shake hands with their sins, yet they have many a longing heart after them, they part, but 'tis upon a force; they part, and yet they are very loath to part asunder. Look as the Merchant throws away his goods in a storm, because he cannot keep them; so carnal ●en in times of sickness and distress, or in times of horror and terror of Conscience, or when death (the King of terrors) knocks at their doors, or when they see Hell gaping to devour them, and God as a terrible Judge standing ready to pass an eternal doom upon them, than they are willing to cast overboard their usury, their drunkenness, their Swearing, their Cursing, their Lying, their Flesh-pleasing, etc. but not out of any hatred to their lusts, but out of love to themselves, and out of fear of being damned, etc. for could they but enjoy their sins and Heaven too, sin and they would never part. But now, were there no danger, no wrath, no hell, no damnation, no separation from God attending sin, yet a gracious Soul would be hearty willing to part with all sin, and to be rid of all sin, upon the account of the vile nature of sin, upon the account of the defiling and polluting nature of sin; of all things in the World, sin is the most defiling thing, it makes us red with guilt, and black with filth, 'tis compared to a menstruous cloth, Isa. 30.22. which of all unclean things in the Law was the most unclean, as some observe; and upon this very account a gracious soul would be willingly rid of it. Secondly, A constant habitual willingness to be rid of all sin, is an infallible evidence of the truth of grace in the Soul; 'tis not a transient willingness to be rid of sin, when a man is either under some outward trouble, or some inward distress, that speaks out the truth of saving grace, but a permanent, lasting, and abiding willingness to be rid of sin does. Pharaoh in a fit, in a fright, when Thunder, and Hail, and Frogs, and Flies were upon him, was then willing to let Israel go, but when his fright was over, and the Judgements removed, he grew prouder and harder than before. So many men, when they are a little Sermon-sick, or under some smart pangs of Conscience, or under some startling or amazing Judgements, O then they will be willing to let Israel go, than they will be willing to let drunkenness go, and pride go, and uncleanness go, and worldliness go, etc. but when their sickness is over, and the pangs of Conscience abated, and Judgements removed, O then they return with the Dog to his vomit, 2 Pet. 2.20, 21, 22. and with the Sow to the wallowing in the Mire again. There was a man well known to a Minister in this City, who in the time of his sickness was so terrified in his Conscience for his sins, that he made the very bed to shake upon which he lay, and cried out all night long, I am damned, I am damned, I am damned; and this man in the days of his outward and inward distresses, made many and great protestations of amendment of life, if God would be pleased to recover him; in a little while he did recover, and being recovered, he was as bad, and as wicked, if not worse than he was before. So in the time of the great sweat in King Edward's days, as long as the heat of the Plague lasted, all sorts and ranks of people were still a crying out, Peccavi; Mercy good Lord, Mercy, Mercy, Mercy! Then Lords and Ladies, and other persons of quality cried out to the Ministers, For God's sake tell us what we shall do to avoid the Wrath of God, take these bags, pay so much to such a one whom I have deceived, and so much restore unto another, whom in bargaining I overreached; O give so much to the Poor, and give so much to such and such Pious uses. But after the sickness was over, they were just the same men that they were before. Men in time of trouble are very ready to cry out, Arise and save us, Jer. 2.27. And with them, Deliver us this time, Judges 10.15. And with the Samaritans, who when God had sent Lions among them, enquired after the manner of his Worship, 2 King's 17.25, 26. And yet after all this to remain as vile and wicked as they did, Jer. 2.20. For of old time I have broken thy yoke, and burst thy bands, and thou saidst, I will not transgress, when upon every high hill, and under every green tree thou wandredst, playing the Harlot. A wicked man's willingness to be rid of his sins is transient, not constant, 'tis like the morning Cloud, and the early dew that passeth away, Hos. 6.4. Hos. 11.7. Psal. 78.34, 37, 57 Hosea 7.16. The Jews were a very unstable people, a people bend to backsliding, a people that would often start aside like a deceitful Bow. Sometimes when the Judgements of God were heavy upon them, or when they were under the reign of some good Kings, than down went their Groves, their Altars, their Idols, and their High places; but soon after you shall have them as much set upon Idolatry as before; sometimes they were willing to be rid of their Idols, and at other times they were mad to go a whoring after their Idols. But now a godly man (when he is himself) he is never unwilling to be rid of his sins, yea, to be rid of all his sins, the fixed, standing, and abiding disposition and bent of a godly man's Soul, of a godly man's will, is to be rid of every sin; and thrice happy is that man that is habitually under such a choice and blessed frame. Thirdly, A transcendent willingness, a superlative willingness, an overtopping willingness to be rid of sin, is an infallible evidence of the truth of Grace in the Soul. When a man's willingness to be rid of his sins overtops his unwillingness; when a man is more willing to be rid of his sins, than he is to continue in sin, than his spiritual state is certainly good. A gracious heart had much rather, if it were put to his choice, live without all sin, than to have allowance to wallow in any sin; he had rather live without the least sin, than to have liberty to live in the greatest, or the most flesh-pleasing sin. 'Tis certain that sin is more afflictive to a gracious Soul, than all the losses, crosses, troubles, and trials that he meets with in the World. 2 Sam. 24.10. David cries not perii, but peccavi; not, I am undone, but, I have done foolishly. He does not cry, Take away the pestilence, but take away the iniquity of thy servant. Dan. 9.5. Nor Daniel cries not out, O we are sadly reproached, we are greatly distressed, we are woefully oppressed; Hos. 14.2. but, We have rebelled. And the Church cries not out, Take away our Captivity, but take away all iniquity; 'tis not take away our chains, but take away our sins; 'tis not take away our afflictions, but take away our pollutions; 'tis not take away all our enemies lives, but take away the lives of all our lusts. 2 Cor. 11.16. ult. And so Paul cries not out of his reproaches, or persecutors, or bonds, or chains, or stripes, or perils, Rom. 7.23. or prisons (he rather glories in these). But he cries out of a Law in his Members, rebelling against the Law of his mind, and bringing of him into Captivity to the Law of sin, which is in his Members. Paul does not cry out, O wretched man that I am, who shall deliver me from all my sorrows and sufferings; Verse 24. But O wretched man that I am, who shall deliver me from this body of death. A sincere heart (when he is himself) had much rather be rid of his sins than of his sufferings; yea of the least sins, than of the greatest sufferings. 'Twas a sweet saying of Bernard, I had rather (saith he) that God should better my heart, than remove his hand; I had rather that God should continue my strokes than my sins. And the same noble spirit was working bravely in Job, when he was under the heavy hand of God, See Job 7.20, 21. Job 34.31, 32. Surely it is meet to be said unto God, I have born chastisement, I will not offend any more. That which I see not, teach thou me; if I have done iniquity, I will do no more. But now graceless men are much more willing to be rid of their afflictions, See Exod. 10.17. than to be rid of their sins, witness Pharaoh, who cries out, take away the Frogs, Exod. 8.8. Then Pharaoh called for Moses and Aaron, and said, Entreat the Lord that he may take away the Frogs from me, and from my people, and I will let the people go, that they may do Sacrifice unto the Lord. 'Tis not entreat the Lord, that he would take away this proud heart, or this hard heart, or this besotted heart, or this blind mind, or this perverse will, or this benumbed Conscience that is in me and my people, but entreat the Lord that he may take away the Frogs from me and my people. A graceless heart is more abundantly willing to be freed from punishment the effect of sin, than 'tis willing to be freed from sin, the cause of punishment. A gracious heart sees more filthiness in sin than in Frogs, and had rather be rid of his sins, than of all the Frogs or Toads that be in the World. See what a sad spirit was upon the children of Israel, in that Numb. 21.6, 7. Heb. Burning Serpents, thus they are called, from the effect of their biting, which caused a mortal burning, and consequently such an excessive thirst as killed them. And the Lord sent Fiery Serpents among the people, and they by't the people, and much people of Israel died. Therefore the people came to Moses, and said, We have sinned, for we have spoken against the Lord, and against thee, pray unto the Lord that he take away the Serpents from us. Now mark, in the fifth verse you have them murmuring against God, and Moses, and divine dispensations, and nauseating of the Wheat of Heaven as light meat, because they came lightly by it; they distrust the Providence of God, they let fly at God, their spirit swells against the holy one of Israel, and they scorn, deride, revile, and contumeliously and despitefully speak against Moses; and though they had often smarted for these sins, yet they are at them again; upon this God sends an Army of Fiery Serpents among them, and they by't and devour many of them. And now they run to Moses (who but a little before they had despised) and are very importunate with him to pray to the Lord to take away the Serpents from them. They do not desire Moses to improve his interest in Heaven, that God would take away their proud hearts, their distrustful hearts, their murmuring hearts, etc. but that God would take away the Serpents; they were much more desirous to be rid of their Serpents, than they were to be rid of their sins. So those in Jer. 30.15. Why criest thou for thine affliction? thy sorrow is incurable, for the multitude of thine iniquity; because thy sins were increased, I have done these things unto thee. They do not cry out of their sins, but they cry out of their afflictions. Why criest thou for thine affliction? unsound hearts are more ready and willing to be rid of their afflictions, than they are willing to have their Souls bettered, or their lives mended, or their lusts subdued by them. Pilate was unwilling to condemn Jesus, witness his seeking to release him, and his washing his hands, and his pleading his innocency, etc. Matth. 27.17, 18, 22, 23, 24. but yet the prevailing part of his will carried him forth to deliver up Jesus to be scourged and Crucified, v. 26. So Herod was unwilling to behead John Baptist, witness that word, The King was exceeding sorry, Mark 6.26. But yet the prevailing part of his will carried him forth to cut off John's head, v. 27. whose head was more worth than Herod's Kingdom. So Darius was very unwilling to cast Daniel into the Lion's Den, witness his being sore displeased with himself, and witness his setting his heart on Daniel to deliver him, and witness his great unquietness of spirit, for he could neither eat nor drink, nor sleep, the night after he was cast into the Lion's Den; and witness his great joy at daniel's safety, Dan. 6.14, 18, 19, 20. All which did clearly argue a very great unwillingness that Daniel should suffer, and yet the prevailing part of Darius his will carried him forth to sacrifice Daniel to the Lions; yea to that which was worse, viz. the lusts of his enemies, v. 16, 17. By all these instances, 'tis most evident that the prevalent part of a wicked man's will, stands most strongly byafsed towards sin. But now the prevalent part of a Christians will, is to be rid of sin: If the Lord should say to a gracious Christian, Ask what thou wilt, O Christian, and it shall be granted to thee; the Answer would be, Lord rid me of my sins, Lord take away mine iniquities, Lord mortify my corruptions, Lord whoever lives, let these lust die, Lord drown these Egyptians in the Sea of thy Son's blood, who have so violently and unweariedly pursued after the Blood of my precious Soul; Lord kill and crucify all these sinful evils, that have killed and Crucified the Lord of life and glory. Psal. 5.2, 7. Lord wash me throughly from mine iniquity, and cleanse me from my sin. Lord purge me with Hyssop, and I shall be clean; wash me and I shall be whiter than Snow: Lord, carnal reason, and flesh and blood, would fain have such and such pleasurable sins, and such and such profitable sins indulged and spared, but Lord, the earnest, the ardent desires of my soul are, that I may be rid of them, and that Justice to the height may be done upon them. Lord be but the death of my sins, and my soul shall say, My lot is fallen in a pleasant place, and verily I have a goodly heritage. Lord cleanse me but from all filthiness, both of flesh and spirit, and I shall cry Hosanna to thee, Matth. 21.9. Psal. 16.6. 2 Cor. 7.1. Lord let me but out live my lusts, and follow them to the Grave before others follow me to my Grave, and I shall say it is enough. And thus every gracious Soul is more willing to be rid of his sins, than he is to keep his sins. A Porter cannot be more willing to be rid of his burden, nor a sick man to be rid of his disease, nor a Beggar of his nasty lousy rags, nor a Prisoner of his chains, than a gracious Soul is willing to be rid of his lusts, etc. Fourthly, That Soul that does not (nor, through Grace assisting, will not) allow himself, or indulge himself in a course of sin, or in the common practice of any known sin, that Soul is certainly a gracious soul. The evil that I do, Rom. 7.15. I allow not. So Psal. 119.1, 3. Blessed are the undefiled in the way, that walk in the Law of the Lord, they also do no iniquity; that is, they allow not themselves in the practice of any iniquity. Blessed souls live not in the service of sin, they live not in an ordinary practice of any iniquity. 1 John 3.9. Whosoever is born of God, doth not commit sin, for his seed remaineth in him, and he cannot sin, because he is born of God. He that has the seed of God, the seed of Grace and Regeneration in him, he cannot allow himself in away of sin, he cannot give himself over to a voluntary serving of sin, he cannot make a Trade of sin. So Prov. 16.17. The highway of the upripht is to departed from evil, (that is) it is the ordinary, usual, constant course of an upright man to departed from eull. An honest Traveller may step out of the King's Highway into a house, a Wood, a Close, but his work, his business is to go on in the King's Highway. So the business, the work of an upright man is to departed from evil; 'tis possible for an upright man to step into a sinful path, or to touch upon sinful facts; but his main way, his principal work and business, is to departed from iniquity: As a Bee may light upon a Thistle, but her work is to be gathering at Flowers; or as a Sheep may slip into the dirt, but its work is to be grazing on the Mountains, or in the Meadows. Certainly there is no man in the world so abominable wicked, but that he may now and then (when he is in a good mood, or when he is under distress of Conscience, or bleeding under a smarting rod, or beholding the hand-writing upon the Wall, or under a sentence of death) depart from evil; but this is not his course, this is not his business, this is not his work, this is not his highway. Thiefs do but now and then step into the King's Highway to take a purse, they do not keep the King's Highway. But now the upright man's Highway, his common and ordinary course, is to departed from evil, and therefore he cannot allow himself liberty to walk in an evil way. Titus 2.11, 12. For the Grace of God that bringeth Salvation, hath appeared to all men, (without distinction of Nations, Sex, Age, or condition) teaching us, that denying ungodlyness and worldly lusts, we should live soberly, righteously, and godly in this present World. Under the name of ungodliness, he compriseth all the breaches of the first Table; and under the name of worldly lusts, he compriseth all inordinate desires against the second Table; and those three words, soberly, righteously, and godly, have a threefold reference; the first to ourselves, the second to our neighbour, and the third to God. We must live soberly in respect of ourselves, righteously in respect of our neighbours, and godly in respect of God. And this is the sum of a Christians whole duty. Now if the Grace of God which bringeth Salvation, teaches Saints to deny ungodliness and worldly lusts, then certainly Saints that are taught by that Grace, cannot live, nor allow themselves in ungodliness or worldly lusts; without all peradventure Heaven is for that man, and that man is for Heaven that can appeal to Heaven, that he allows not himself in the practice of any known sin. Thus David did, Search me O Lord (says he) and know my heart, Psal. 13●. 24. try me, and know my thoughts, and see if there be any wicked way in me. 'Tis a most sure sign, that sin hath not gained a man's heart nor consent, but committed a rape upon his Soul; when he allows not himself in it, but cries out bitterly to God against it, as Paul did, Rom. 7. If the ravished Virgin under the Law cried out, she was guiltless, Deut. 22.25, 26, 27. Certainly such as cry out of their sins, and that would not for all the world allow themselves in a way of sin, such are guiltless before the Lord. That which a Christian does not allow himself in, that he does not do in divine account, etc. But now the whole Trade, the whole life of formal and carnal Christians, is nothing else but one continued web of wickedness; there is no wicked unregenerate person in the world, but lives in the daily practice of some known sin or other; but allows himself in some Trade or way of wickedness or other, as you may evidently see by comparing of these following Scriptures together, Prov. 1.20. to 33. Jer. 5.3. Jer. 44.16, 17, 18, 19 Jer. 9.3, 4, 5, 6. Jer. 7.8, 9, 10, 11, 12, 13, 14, 15, 16. Psal. 50.16, 17. Isa. 66. 3. Matth. 7.23. Rom. 6.12, 13, 19 Rom. 8.5. Luke 13.27. Ephes. 2.2, 3. Phil. 4.19. Titus 3.3. 2 Pet. 2.14. Sin is a sinners absolute work, it is his main work, and the sinner is besides himself, besides his Calling (as it were) when he is besides his sin. Fifthly, He that conflicts most with heart-sins, and is most affected with spiritual sins, Psal. 19.12. Psal. 119.113. I hate vain thoughts. Psal. 30.6, 7. Isa. 64.7. and that laments and mourns most over secret sins, invisible sins, sins that lie most hid and remote from the eyes of the World, he is certainly a gracious soul; Grace in truth, and grace in power, will rise and conflict, and make head against the most inward and secret vanities of the Soul, as against secret self-love, and secret hardness of heart, Isa. 63.17. and secret unbelief, Mark 9.24. and secret carnal confidence, and secret hypocrisy, and secret envy, and secret malice, and secret vainglory, and secret fretting and murmuring, and secret lustings, and secret run out of the Soul after the meat that perisheth, and secret pride; hence Hezekiah humbles himself for the pride of his heart; 2 Chron. 32.25. 2 Sam. 24.10. Psal. 42.11. and so David, he humbles himself for the pride of his heart in numbering of the people. And how does the same Prophet chide himself for sinful dejection of spirit, Psal. 73.22. Why art thou cast down O my Soul, and why art thou disquited in me? And how does he at another time be-fool himself, and be-beast himself, for his secret grudging and fretting at the prosperity of the wicked. So foolish was I and ignorant, I was as a beast before thee. And so Paul was most affected and afflicted with a law in his members rebelling against the law of his mind; Inward pollutions and defilements did sit closest and saddest upon his spirits. And the same Apostle in that 2 Cor. 7.1. is for keeping down the filthiness of the spirit, as well as the filthiness of the flesh; he is for inward cleansing, as well as for outward cleansing. Rom. 7.22, 23, 24. Having therefore these Promises, (dearly beloved) let as cleanse ourselves from all filthiness of the flesh and spirit, perfecting holiness in the fear of God: So Mr. Bradford was a man that had attained to so great and eminent a height of holiness, that Doctor Taylor (the Martyr) calls him, That Saint of God John Bradford; and yet O how sadly does he bewail his secret hypocrisy. True Grace makes opposition as well against the being of sin in a man's nature, Col. 3.5. as against the break out of sin in a man's life. True Grace will make head against the corruptions of the heart, as well as against the excursions of the feet; 'tis as willing and desirous to be rid of a polluted heart, as 'tis willing and desirous to be rid of a polluted hand. It would fain have, not only sinful acts, but also sinful dispositions; and not only irregular actions, but also inordinate affections mortified and subdued. O friends! heart-sins are root-sins, they are the springs that set all the wheels a going, the Fountain that sets all the streams a running, the fire that sets the Furnace a smoking, the Bellows that sets the fire a burning. Certainly a proud heart hath more of Satan in it than a proud look, and a wanton heart is more vile than a wanton eye, and a murderous or adulterous heart, is worse than a murderous or adulterous act, etc. And therefore true grace makes head against heart-sins, against spiritual sins, against the most inward secret sins, against those very sins that lie not within the reach of reason, or the Sword of the Magistrate, or the piercing eye of the most knowing or observing man in the World, but are only obvious to an omniscient eye. But now carnal men, as they make little of outward sins, so they make nothing of heart-sins, of spiritual sins. If they are not drunkards, nor swearers, Matt. 19. 16-27. nor extortioners, nor whoremasters, nor cursers, nor cheaters, nor oppressors, nor liars, nor persecutors; if they are good negative Christians, than they think themselves very good Saints, and in a very fair way for heaven, and that no man can say Black is their eye; when their hearts are as full of evil thoughts, and secret lusts, as Ignorance, Atheism, unbelief, pride, envy, discontent, anger, formality, hypocrisy, indifferency, lukewarmness, deadness and hardness, etc. as the Sun is full of light, or as Hell is full of darkness. Restraining grace, common grace, only makes head against gross enormities, against palpable vanities, as you may see in the Scribes and Pharises; but saving grace makes head against heart-sins, against spiritual sins. Common grace is all for washing the outside, but Saving grace is for washing the inside as well as the outside. Common grace is only for washing the feet and the head, but Saving grace is for washing both feet, head, and heart. Look as in a dark night we can only see those stars that are of the greatest magnitude; Matth. 23. John 13.9, 10. so by the starlight of natural Conscience, the natural man can only see those sins that are more great and gross. Natural convictions can reach no further than natural light, but spiritual convictions reach to the most inward, secret, spiritual, and undiscernible sins. Certainly that is a sincere heart, a heart more worth than gold, that smites a man for inward sins as well as for outward sins; for sins done in a corner, as well as for sins acted upon the house top; for spiritual sins as well as for fleshly sins; for sins against the Soul, as well as for sins against the body; for sins committed in a Closet, as well as for sins committed on the most public Stage. Certainly that trouble and grief that springs from heart-sins, from spiritual sins, from secret sins, bears a more immediate relation to the holiness of God, who only observes them, and is offended by them, and so is a most sure and infallible evidence of saving Grace, and of the work of the spirit in power upon the Soul. When open commissions do humble and abase the heart, and secret inclinations to sin do even break and burst the heart asunder, than the heart is certainly sincere with God. A Christian will readily grant that his God is a good God, and that Jesus Christ is the chiefest of ten thousand, and that the Gospel is a glorious Gospel, and that the Promises are precious Promises, and that the Ordinances are blessed Ordinances, and that the lively communion of Saints is the Sweetest communion in all the world. But yet he will say, I have such a proud heart, such a hard heart, such a flight heart, such a carnal heart, etc. and I am so vexed and molested with sinful motions, and with sinful imaginations, and with sinful inclinations, and with Atheistical rise, and with private murmur, and with secret unbelieving, and that in despite of all my conflictings, and strive, and prayings, and mournings, and sigh, and groan, and complain; that I am oftentimes even weary of my life: And if this does not speak out Christ within, and grace within, and the Spirit within such a Soul, I know nothing. O friends! remember this once for all, viz. That the main Battle, the main warfare of a Christian lies not in the open field, it lies not in visible skirmishes, but his main quarrels and conflicts are most within, and his worst and greatest enemies are them of his own house, they are them of his own heart. A little grace at first conversion, may reform an ill life; but it must be a great deal of grace that must reform an ill heart. A little grace may make a man victorious over outward gross sins, but it must be a great deal of grace that must make a man victorious over inward sins, secret sins, spiritual sins, heart-sins, yea, a through conquest of these sins will hold a man play all his days. But, Sixthly, He that abstains from sin, he whose heart rises against sin, he that sets himself against sin, because of the evil nature of sin, 2 Cor. 7.1. I have read of the Ermine, that she will rather die than be got into the dirt to defile her beautiful skin. And rather than Joseph will defile his beautiful soul by defiling his Master's bed, he will to a dirty Dungeon. He had rather that the Irons should enter into his Soul, Psal. 105.18. than that sin should enter into his Conscience: He had rather that his chains should eat into his flesh, than that sin should pollute his soul. Isa. 59.1, 2. Amos 3.6. Acts 5.39. because of that vileness and filthiness that is in sin; he certainly has a principle of Grace, a seed of God in him. He who refrains from sin, and whose heart rises more against sin, because of the purity of the Law which forbids sin, then because of the severity of the Law which condemns sin, is certainly under the power of renewing Grace, of saving Grace. Psal. 119.140. Thy word is very pure, therefore thy servant loveth it: 'tis only pure Grace that can enable a man to love the Word for its purity. The Apostle to set forth the formidable evil that is in sin, expresses it thus, Rom. 7.13. That sin might appear to be sin. He could find nothing more evil and odious to express it by than itself. Sin is so great an evil, that it cannot have a worse Epithet given it. Paul can call it no worse than by its own name, sinful sin. Had the Apostle said that sin might appear to be a snare, a Serpent, a Viper, a Toad, a Plague, a Devil, a Hell, etc. he had said much, but yet not enough to set forth the transcendent evil that is in sin, and therefore he calls it sinful sin. All other evils are but outward, they only reach the name, the body, the estate, the life, but sin is an inward evil, a spiritual evil, an evil that reaches the precious and immortal Soul, and therefore is the greatest evil. Death puts an end to all other troubles, viz. poverty, sickness, disgrace, scorn, contempt, crosses, losses, etc. but sin is so great an evil, that death itself cannot put an end to it, Eternity itself shall never put a stop, a period to this evil of evils. All outward evils can never make a man the subject of God's wrath and hatred. A man may be poor, and yet precious in the eyes of God, he may be greatly abhorred by the World, and yet highly honoured by God; he may be debased by men, and yet exalted by God. But now sin is so great an evil, that it subjects the sinner's Soul to the wrath and hatred of God; all other evils do but strike at a man's present well-being, but sin strikes at a man's eternal well-being; all other evils can never hinder a man's communion with God, a man may have communion with God in poverty, in sickness, in Prison, in Banishment; but sin is so great an evil, that it interrupts communion with God, it cuts off communion with God. All outward evils are God's creatures, Is there any evil in the City that the Lord hath not done. But sin is the Devil's creature, 'tis a brat of his own begetting, yea, 'tis worse than the Devil, 'tis that which has turned glorious Angels into infernal Devils. All other evils do not fight against the greatest good, but sin is that grand evil that fights against the greatest good, it fights against the being of God, the essence of God, the glory of God. Peccatum est Deicidium, sin is a kill of God, 'tis a murdering of God; Sin is a universal evil, 'tis all evil, 'tis nothing but evil, there is not one drop, one spark of good to be found in any sin; but now in all outward evils, there is some good, there is some good in poverty, in sickness, in war, in death, but there is not the least good in sin, sin is the sole object of God's hatred, he hates nothing but sin, he is angry with nothing but sin, he has forbid nothing but sin, he has revealed his wrath from heaven against nothing but sin, so great an evil is sin. Sin is that grand evil that has Midwived all other evils into the world. 'Twas sin that drowned the old world with water, 'twas sin that destroyed Sodom with fire and Brimstone, Judges 5.8. Psal. 107.34. Deut. 28.21. 'twas sin that laid Jerusalem on heaps, 'twas sin that has Midwived Sword, Famine, and Pestilence into the World, 'twas sin that laid the Foundation of Hell, that laid the cornerstone in that land of darkness, for before sin there was not Hell. 'Twas sin that Crucified the Lord of glory. Now O how great must that evil be that has ushered in all these great evils into the World. Rom. 8.7. Sin is enmity against God, God hath no enemy in the World but sin, and those whom sin hath made him; Sin hath set all the World against the Lord of glory; 'tis sin that has turned men into incarnate Devils, and that has drawn them out to fight against God, and Christ, and their own Souls, and the things of their everlasting peace. Now when a man looks upon sin as the greatest evil in the world, and his heart rises and is enraged against it, because of the vile, filthy, odious and heinous nature of it; 'tis a clear evidence that such a man has the Divine nature in him, take that one instance for all, Psal. 19.12, 13. Keep back thy servant from presumptuous sins. But why does David pray thus, So (says he) shall I be innocent from the great transgression. Mark, he does not pray thus, Lord keep me from presumptuous sins, that so I may be free from troubles without, and from terrors within, or from Hell beneath; but Lord keep me from presumptuous sins, that so I may be innocent from the great transgression. He does not say, so shall I be free from the great correction, but so shall I be free from the great transgression. That's a heart worth gold, that is more sensible and more affected with the evil that is in sin, than with the evil that comes by sin. Aug. Epist. 144. 'Twas a weighty saying of Austin, That man (says he) which fears Hell, he doth not fear to sin, but fears to burn; but that man fears to sin, that fears sin as he would fear Hell. Common Grace never works a man thus to fear sin, but renewing grace doth. Common convictions carry the Soul out to look more on the evil that comes by sin, than on the evil that is in sin; and hence it comes to pass, that Souls under common convictions, are more affected and afflicted at the fear of Hell, and dread of wrath and damnation, than they are affected or afflicted at the vileness, odiousness, and heinous nature of sin. When an unsanctified person is angry with sin, and chides sin, and falls out with sin; and makes some head against sin, 'tis either because it hath cracked his credit, or clouded his honour, or hindered his profit, or imbittered his pleasure, or provoked his friends, or incensed the Magistrate, or enraged his Conscience, or exposed him to shame, disgrace, or contempt here, and Hell hereafter. B●t never because a holy God is dishonoured, a righteous Law transgressed, a blessed Saviour frequently Crucified, or the blessed Spirit greatly grieved. The child will not touch the Coal because it will burn him, and the prudent man will not touch the Coal because it will s●●t him. A gracious heart rises against sin because of its defiling and polluting nature, but an unsanctified heart rises against sin because of its burning and damning nature. A sanctified person hates sin, because it pollutes his soul, but an unsanctified person hates it because it destroys his soul. A sanctified person loathes sin, and abhors sin, because it fights against God's holiness; but an unsanctified person loathes it, and abhors it, because it provokes and stirs up God's Justice. A sanctified person detests sin, because of the Hell that is in sin; but an unsanctified person detests sin, because of the Hell that follows sin, etc. But, Seventhly, Where there is an irreconcilable opposition in the Soul against sin, there is a saving work of God upon that man's heart. Where there is such a detestation of sin, and such an enmity raised in the soul against sin, as that the Soul cannot, The contrariety to sin which is in a real Christian, arises from an inward gracious nature which is opposite to the whole species or kind of sin, as contrarieties of nature are to the whole kind. As light is contrary to all darkness, and fire to all water. So that this contrariety to sin arising from the inward man, is universal to all sin, etc. nor will not, upon no terms in the World, admit of any Truce or Reconciliation with sin, there is Christ and Grace form in the heart. The War between a gracious heart and sin, is like the War between Rehoboam and Jeroboam, 1 Kings 14.30. There was war between Rehoboam and Jeroboam all their days. The Oracle said to the Cirrheans (Noctes diesque belli gerendum), they could not be happy unless they waged war night and day; no more can we, except we perpetually fight against our lusts. O friends! A gracious heart that is weary of sin, will certainly and habitually fall a striving against it, Gal. 5.17. The flesh lusteth against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh, for these two are contrary the one to the other. Now contraries are naturally expulsive each of other: Such a pair as a Jacob and an Esau; such Twins as an Isaac and an Ishmael, cannot lie quietly together in the same womb; no nor live quietly together in the same house, but there will be a mutual prosecuting and persecuting each of other. Fire and Water may as well agree in the same Vessel; as grace and sin in the same heart. True Grace hath a real repugnancy and contrariety to all sin; and remember this once for all, that saving Grace is not contrary to sin because it is open and manifest, nor to sin because it is private and secret, nor to sin because it is of this or that consequence, but to sin as sin, whether public or private, because both the one and the other are contrary to the Law of God, the will of God, the glory of God, the nature of God, the designs of God, etc. As it is with true light, though it be but a beam, yet it is universally opposite to all darkness; or as it is with heat, though there be but one degree of it, yet it is opposite to all cold. So true Grace, it is opposite to all sin, it cannot comply with any known sin. Look as sin and Grace were never born together, and as sin and Grace shall never die together, so sin and Grace can never be reconciled together. There is a natural contrariety between sin and Grace, and therefore you can never reconcile them in the heart. The opposition that Grace makes against sin, is inward as well as outward, 'tis against sin wheresoever it is. Nothing will satisfy a gracious soul but the destruction of sin, Rom. 6.6. Knowing this, that our old man is Crucified with him, that the body of sin might be destroyed, that henceforth we should not serve sin. The Greek word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, that is here rendered destroyed, signifies weakened, and the strength of it broken, and made idle, fruitless, and uneffectual. So Psal. 51.2. Wash me throughly (or multiply to wash me, or play the Fuller upon me) from mine iniquity. (David looked upon his sin, his stain, to be so inveterate, so ingrained, that it would hardly be ever gotten out till the cloth were almost rubbed to pieces) and cleanse me from my sin. David was as desirous to be cleansed of the Leprosy of sin, as ever any poor Leper was willing to be cleansed of his Leprosy under the Law; And so ver. 7. Purge me with Hyssop and I shall be clean, wash me, and I shall be whiter than Snow. All the Sacrifices of expiation of sin in the old Law, were done by blood, and that blood was sprinkled upon the people by a bunch of Hyssop, so called from the Hebrew word Ezob, by reason of the nearness of the sound. In the legal sprinklings made with Hyssop, was shadowed out the washing away of sin through the blood of Christ. Rev. 1.14. Job 9.30. The Bride's garments are made white in the blood of the lamb, and not by any washings in Snow water: When a gracious Soul looks upon sin, he cries out, Lord raze it, raze it down to the ground, Lord let not one stone be left upon another. In every gracious Soul, there is such a detestation and such an indignation against sin, that neither Mountains of Gold, nor Rocks of Pearl, nor honour, nor applause, nor favour on the one hand, nor frowns nor threats, nor neglects, nor scorns, nor contempt on the other hand, 〈◊〉 win the Soul over to sin, or make the Soul one with sin. Look how it was between the Lord and Amalek, so it is between a gracious soul and his sins. Now if you turn to that Exod. 17.16. you shall find how it was between the Lord and Amalek, Because the Lord hath sworn, that the Lord will have war with Amalek from Generation to Generation; Or as the Hebrew has it, The hand upon the throne of the Lord, God's hand is la●d upon his own Throne, as swearing to root out Amalek; or because Amaleks hand is lifted up against God's Throne, that is the Church, (so called in Jer. 4.21. and Crown of Glory, Isa. 62.3.) therefore God will have perpetual wars with Amalek. God could as soon be reconciled to Amalek, as a gracious Christian can be reconciled to his sins. Others sense the words thus, that Moses had a solemn Oath (as it were laying his hand upon God's Throne) for asseveration and assurance, that he and the people will have an irreconcilable war with the posterity of Amalek. And so every gracious soul is resolved to make an irreconcilable war with sin. But now where there is only common Grace, there a man deals by his sins as David did by his son Absolom, banish him his Court for a time, and afterwards receive him into full favour, and court him as much or more than before. An unsound heart may fall out with his sin, and be very angry with its sin, for the consequence of it, for the shame it brings upon his person, for the blot it leaves upon his name, and for the stinging guilt and convulsion fits which it causeth in his Conscience, and yet this very person be in a very close and strict league with sin, and his heart inwardly and strongly adhering unto sin. But a gracious heart will be still a restraining of sin, a curbing of sin, a crossing of sin, a making head against sin, and a withstanding it in all its workings. Anger may be reconciled, but hatred cannot. Eightly, Where the very prevailings of sin are ordinarily made serviceable to high and holy, to gracious and spiritual ends, Ezek. 16.61, 63. Ephes. 2.7, 6, 7. there certainly is a saving work of God upon that man's soul. As when they produce more Soul-loathing, Soul-humiliation, Self-judging; Self-abasement, Self-abhorring; or when they fill the Soul with a grea● 〈◊〉 admiration of the freeness and riches of Grace, or when they keep down pride, and prevent the despising of others, or produce holy shame, or when they make the blood of Christ more precious and dear to the Soul, or when they engage a Christian so much the more to watch and pray, and pray and watch, that he may either be kept from the hour of temptation, or in the hour of temptation, or when every fall makes sin more bitter to the soul than ever, and Christ more sweet to the Soul than ever, and all the means of Grace more delightful to the Soul than ever, and heaven more desirable to the Soul than ever; or when sin is made the prevention of sin, or when sin through the overruling hand of Grace is made an occasion of more Grace; as that good man said, As I get hurt by my Graces, So I get good by my sins. You know all the falls and knocks, and blows, that children get that are learning to go, do but make them cleave the closer and hang the faster upon the Nurse's skirts, or about the Mother's neck. So when all a Christians falls do but work him to cleave the closer, and hang the faster upon the strength of Christ, and to be still a drawing more and more virtue and power from Christ; then is the prevalency of sin made serviceable to holy and gracious ends; and where God ordinarily thus works, there is certainly a work of God in power upon that Soul, 2 Cor. 7.11. For behold, this self same thing that ye sorrowed after a godly sort, what carefulness it wrought in you, yea, what clearing of yourselves, yea, what indignation, yea, what fear, yea, what vehement desire, yea, what zeal, yea, what revenge, in all things you have approved yourselves to be clear in this matter (this Scripture I have fully opened in my eighth sign of godly sorrow, in this book, and to that I refer you). The Mother by suffering the child to get one fall, keeps the child from many a fall, and so 'twas with these Corinthians. Adam's fall was an inlet to abundance of grace; and his unrighteousness did usher into the world the most glorious Righteousness of Jesus Christ. Hezekiah falls, and by his fall, 2 Chron. 32.25, 26, 31. God gives him a clearer and fuller sight of his own heart than ever he had before in all his days. Sin is no gainer, but a loser by every fall of the Saints. God does, and will, by the overruling hand of his grace, make the very miscarriages of his people to be glorious inlets to more eminent degrees of Grace and holiness. God hath a great Revenue of glory from the very infirmities of the Saints; and the Saints have a great Revenue of comfort from their very miscarriages, by the wise, powerful, overruling, and sanctifying hand of God. God is that powerful, that skilful Physician, that can make an Antidote, and Sovereign remedy of sin, that is the most deadly poison in all the World. God does and will make the very sins of his people to further the Salvation of his people, according to that golden promise Rom. 8.28. God never suffers his people to fall into any sin, but out of a design to break the neck and back of that sin they fall into: God suffered David to fall into those two great sins of Murder and Adultery, but by these very falls he broke the very back of those sins, for we never read that ever he fell into those sins the second time. And so God suffered Peter to deny him once, but by that sore fall God broke the neck of that very sin, for we never read that ever he denied Christ any more at the voice of a Damsel; yea, 'tis very observable, that Peter's courage and boldness for the truth, received a very high advance by those deep wounds that he had formerly given them, when he denied the Lord that bought him. After his sore falls, for courage and boldness he carries the Bell from all the Apostles, as you may see in Acts 4.12. It is the nature of true Grace to gather strength by every wound. Grace gathers strength by contraries, as Fire doth when it is compassed about with coldness by an Antiper stasis. By all a Ch istians falls his graces grow brighter and stronger. At the long run, a Christian by all his falls loses nothing but his dross, his chaff, his scum, his filth. Now he that finds his sins thus overruled for the good of his soul, he is certainly a gracious Soul. O Sirs! remember this for ever, viz. That the oftener an Hypocrite, or a Formalist falls, the more ground and strength his sins get upon him, and so will continue to do, till all that Grace and goodness which he seemed to have had, be quite extinguished. But, Ninthly, Where a bare naked command of God is commonly, ordinarily of that power, force and authority with the soul, as to curb sin, and restrain the soul from sin, and to arm and fence the soul against the encroachments and commands of sin, there is certainly a saving work, a powerful work of God upon that Soul. When a man can say to Heaven and Hell, stand you by for the present, and to precious Promises, stand you by for the present, and to Divine threaten, stand you by for the present, here is a Command of God that forbids such and such actions, and therefore I cannot, I dare not do this or that wickedness, Gen. 39.9. and sin against the Lord, there is certainly a principle of Grace in that man's heart. That is a great word of David, Psal. 119.161. My heart standeth in awe of thy word. When a naked command from God does so over-awe the heart, as that it dares not sin against God, then doubtless the heart is sincere with God. A child does not stand in more awe of the rod, nor a servant of a beating, nor a Favourite of his Prince's frowns, than a real Christian (when he is himself) stands in awe of the Word. So Psal. 119.11. Thy Word have I hid within my heart, that I might not sin against thee. When a man hides the Word in his heart as a Treasure, that he may not lose it, and as a Rule that he may not transgress it, than his heart is indeed right with God. When the Law of God in a man's heart, arms him against the lusts of his heart and life, then doubtless his heart is sound with God. So Psal. 17.4. By the words of thy lips, I have kept me from the paths of the destroyer; or as some read the words, According to the command and charge of thy words, I have kept me from the sinful ways, manners, behaviours, etc. of the destroyer, or the cruel man. Matth. 28.18, 19, 20. Acts 10.41, 42. Christ commanded his Apostles to make him known to the World, and to Preach the everlasting Gospel, and to make known those Mysteries and Riches of Grace that were hid in former Ages. The Jewish Authority threatens them and commands them not to speak at all, nor teach in the name of Jesus, Acts 4.17, 18. But the command of Christ carries it with the Apostles against all their threaten and commands, verse 19.20. But Peter and John answered and said unto them, Whether it be right in the sight of God, to hearken unto you more than unto God, judge ye; For we cannot but speak the things which we have heard and seen. When the commands of Authority run counter-cross to the commands of God, the commands of God must be obeyed, though the greatest Authority under Heaven should be displeased and enraged. God never gave the greatest Authority in the world, any Authority to act contrary to his commands. Disobedience to unlawful commands, is no disobedience. woe to h●m that obeys the commands of men in opposition to the commands of God, 1 Cor. 9.16. For though I preach the Gospel, I have nothing to glory of; For necessity is laid upon me, yea, woe is unto me if I Preach not the Gospel. Now 'tis infinitely better to fall under the displeasure of men, than to fall under the woes of God. The Jews under a pretence of their Authority, command the Apostles not to Preach Jesus to the people; but the commands of Christ carry it with the Apostles against all their contrary commands. The Apostles (who were like to Bottles of new Wine, that must either vent or burst) knew very well that 'twas not obedience to men's commands that could excuse their disobedience to God's commands. So in that third of Daniel, the commands of the great God carried it with the three Children against all the dreadful threaten, proud boasting●, and Idolatrous commands of King Nabuchadnezzar. Certainly the commands of sin are of all commands the vilest commands, they are all illegal, sin hath no ground, no reason to command our souls; Sin is but a Usurper, a Traitor, and therefore h●s no Authority over us. All sins commands are purely sinful, they are plain and notorious rebellions against the Laws of Christ, the life of Christ, and against the Crown, Honour, and Dignity of Jesus. All sins command's are grievous, burdensome, and painful commands; of all yokes, none so heavy as that which sin lays upon the sinner; hence sin is compared to a talon of Lead, Zach. 5.7. to show the weightiness and burthensomness of it; and hence 'tis that sinners are said to weary themselves in committing iniquity, Jer. 9.5. And hence 'tis that wicked men are laid to travel with iniquity, Psal. 7.14. to show what anxious pain and trouble they have in bringing about their wickedness. Behold he traveleth with iniquity; or as the Hebrew has it, he shall travel, or he continually traveleth, he takes as great pains to go to Hell, as a travelling woman doth to be delivered. Wicked men are as laborious, and as restless and unquiet in the practice of wickedness, Prov. 4.14, 15, 16. as a woman in labour is when the pangs of Travel are upon her. Sugared poisons go down pleasantly, O but when they are down, they gall, and gnaw, and gripe the very heartstrings asunder, 'tis so with sin. Lastly, the commands of sin are extremely unreasonable, what an unreasonable thing is it to command a man to run into the fire, or to drown himself in the water, or to strangle himself, etc. Now all the commands of sin tend directly and intentionally to the burning, drowning, strangling, and destroying of the sinner. All sins commands tend to the dishonour of God, the breach of his righteous Laws, and the damnation of the precious and immortal Soul. Now where the commands of God do commonly carry it, against all the commands of sin, there the Soul is certainly sincere with Go●. That we own perfect obedience to Gods will, to God's commands, is evident enough several ways, and in particular from the universal obedience of all Creatures, I mean those which are without reason, sense, or life, for they inviolably observe his commands, Isa. 48.13. Mine hand hath laid the Foundations of the earth, and my right hand hath spanned the Heavens; when I call to them they stand up together, as prepared to execute his commands. The insensible parts of the world are so compliant with his will, as to contradict their proper natures to serve his glory. Fire descends from Heaven at his command, Gen. 19.24. 2 Kings 1.10, 11, 12. And the fluid Sea stands up at his command, Exod. 14.22. Now what a sad thing is it that Christians should at any time prove disloyal and rebellious, when all inferior Creatures do with one consent serve and glorify the great God. But, etc. Tenthly, Constant desires, and earnest and constant endeavours to avoid and shun all known appearances of sin, Where do you read in all the Scriptures, of any one Hypocrite that ever made Conscience of shunning and avoiding the appearances of sin. evidences the truth and reality of Grace in the Soul. Certainly that man is a true Nathaniel that makes it his business his work, to abstain from all appearances of evil. An Hypocrite loves the appearance of good more than goodness itself, and a sincere Christian hates the very appearance of evil, as well as the evil itself. He who hates a person, loathes his very picture. A wicked man may abstain from broad-faced evils, but commonly he is very bold and venturous upon appearing evils. O what vain Apologies do many make in these days for long hair, gaudy Apparel, Antic Fashions, Spotted Faces, Naked Breasts, Wanton Behaviours, Effeminate Dalliances, and a thousand other suspicious practices and vanities. But now a man that is truly gracious, he makes Conscience, not only of shunning real gross, known evils, but also of shunning the very likeness of evil. His heart does not only rise against real sins, but he is very shy of that which looks like sin. When joseph's Mistress took hold of him and said, Lie with me, he left his garment in her hand and fled, and got him out, Gen. 39.12. Joseph would not be found in the company of his impudent brazenfaced Mistress, that could so barely and basely, so boldly and frequently, solicit him to defile his Master's bed, and to damn two Souls at once, her own and his, that so he might avoid the very appearance of evil, the very suspicion of sin. By wanton touches and dalliance, mental Adultery is often committed, and therefore Joseph flies, as being unwilling to touch her, or to be touched by her. 1 Cor. 9.11, 12, 13, 14, 15. And so Paul refused the using his liberty in taking a lawful maintenance for his labours, lest a sinister interpretation of covetousness and mercenary affection should have been put upon it by his Adversaries. And so the same Apostle would needs have Titus and two others chosen by the Church, to join with him in carrying the benevolence of the Church of Macedonia to Jerusalem, because he was very careful to avoid all suspicion of dealing ill in that business, 2 Cor. 8.20, 21. Avoiding this, that no man should blame us, in this abundance that is Ministered by us: Providing for honest things, not only before the Lord, but also before men. So Daniel would not defile himself with the portion of the King's meat (that is, say some, Dan. 1. ●. he would not defile his Conscience by eating such unclean meats as were forbidden under the Law, for the Babylonians did eat of divers meats, as of Swine, Hares, etc. and of sundry sorts of Fishes and Fowls which were forbidden by God unto the children of Israel, Levit. 11. Deut. 14) nor with the wine which he drank (but in the Hebrew the plural number is used, of his drinks, whence some gather, that the King drank divers sorts of Wines, which were also set before Daniel and his companions), therefore he requested of the Prince of the Eunuches, that he might not defile himself. daniel's living at a full Table, and his feeding upon Kingly dainties, might have been, not only a means to ensnare him, and drown him in the sensualities of the Court, but it would have carried with it also too great a show of daniel's conformity to the Courts manners and customs, and have been too great an appearance of daniel's forgetfulness of the sore and miserable calamities and matchless miseries of the captive Church, who sat sighing and groaning and mourning in her cruel bondage, and had none to comfort her, or speak peace unto her; and therefore Daniel purposed in his heart (or set it upon his heart, or laid it upon his heart, as the Hebrew may be read) that he would not defile himself with the portion of the King's meat, etc. that so he might avoid all shows or suspicion of evil. 'Tis very observable, that in the Law of the Nazarite (who did for a time special, consecrate himself to God, that besides his not coming to the dead, and suffering his hair to grow.) 'Twas ordained of God that he should abstain from these six things. 1. From Wine and strong drink. 2. From the Vinegar of Wine or strong drink. 3. From any Liquor of Grapes, though it were but the water wherein they were steeped. 4. From the green or moist Grape. 5. From the dried Grape or Raisin. 6. From the husk or kernel of them, Num. 6.3, 4. Had the Nazarite eaten but the skin of the Grape or Raisin, he had broken the Law. Now hereby the Lord would teach us, that those that separate themselves from the world, to be in a special manner serviceable to the Lord, they must avoid not only that which is plain sin, downright sin, or such sins that men may run and read, but also that they must shun and be shy of the very appearances of sin. It was good counsel that Liv●a gave her husband Augustus, Dio in vita. It behoveth thee (said she) not only not to do wrong, but not to seem to do so, etc. We must shun and be shy of the very show and shadow of sin, if either we tender our credit abroad, or our comfort at home, walking in the power of holiness lies much in shunning the very appearance of sin. The Primitive Christians would not endure that any Christian should look towards Jerusalem praying, because they would avoid the least show of Judaisme. And indeed there are great reasons why every Christian should avoid whatever may have the suspicion of sin; and this will be evident, if you please but seriously to consider of these eight following particulars. First, Consider those clear and plain commands of God which makes this duty to be a duty, as that 1 Thess. 5.22. Abstain from all appearance of evil. God requires us not only to abstain from all apparent sins, but also from all appearance of sin; we must do nothing which hath a show or shadow of sin; 'tis duty to abstain from whatever is of an ill show, or an ill report. And so God commands us to hate the garment spotted with the flesh, Judas 23. Saints must abhor every thing that carries with it but a savour or suspicion of uncleanness. Hence that saying of the Jews, Remove thyself from filthiness, and from all that which hath a show of it. See Drusius praeterit, in 1 Thess. 5.22. The Apostle alludes to legal uncleanness, which was contracted by touching the houses, the vessels, or the garments of unclean persons, Levit. 15. Christian's must not only hate uncleanness, but they must hate every thing that looks like it, or that has the least communion with it. So in that Deut. 12.30. Take heed to thyself that thou be not snared, by following of them, after that they be destroyed from before thee, and that thou inquire not after their gods, saying, how did these Nations serve their gods? even so will I do likewise. God does not only command his people to abstain from gross Idolatry, but he also commands them to take heed of all those ways and means, and inquiries that might tend to draw them to Idolatry, or that might carry with them the least show or appearance of Idolatry. 'Tis observable in the Law, that God commanded his people not only that they should Worship no Idol, but that they should demolish all the Monuments of them, and that they should make no Covenant, nor have any affinity with those who Worshipped them; and all to avoid the very shows of Idolatry, and to prevent his people from being drawn by those means to commit Idolatry with them. And so Exod. 23.7. Keep thee far from a false matter. Every good man must stand aloof off, he must keep at a distance both from the occasions of sin, and from the appearance of sin. So Prov. 5.8. Remove thy way far from her, and come not nigh the door of her house. He that is farthest from fire, is safest from burning, and he that is most remote from the water, is in least danger of drowning. It is no small wickedness to approach near the door of wickedness; he who approaches near the door of a Whore's house, Prov. 22 14. and ch. 23.27. is already in the door of whoredom. It argues too much mind to be in the house, for any one knowingly, willingly, to come near the door of it. O how should a man dread the coming into that house, where he must needs either perish, or else overcome? Certainly 'tis infinite better not to be in danger of perishing, than being in danger not to perish. So Hosea 4.15. Though thou Israel play the harlot, yet let not Judah offend, and come not ye unto Gilgal, neither go ye up to Beth-aven, nor swear the Lord liveth. Gilgal was once the Key of Canaan, situate between Jordan and Jericho, famous for sundry services there performed to God, as might be easily showed by many instances; but now Gilgal was basely abused to Idol-Worship; and hence 'tis that God charges them not to come near it, that so they might avoid both the show and danger of Idolatry; and 'tis upon the same account that God charges them not to go up to Beth-aven. By these Scriptures 'tis evident that God would have his people to abstain from all shows and appearances of sin. But, etc. Secondly, The holiness of God, and the honour of God, calls aloud upon all Christians to avoid the suspicion of sin. God is so essentially holy, so unmixedly holy, so universally holy, so eminently, so transcendently holy, so superlatively holy, so originally, radically, and fundamentally holy; he is so Independantly holy, so unchangably, so constantly, and so exemplarily holy, that he cannot but hate and abhor the very appearance of evil. Look as apparent sins stir up the judicial anger of God against sinners, so the appearance of sin stirs up the Fatherly anger of God against Saints. A gracious heart knows, That God is of purer eyes than to behold iniquity, Hab. 1.13. and therefore he keeps at a distance from the appearance of iniquity, of all men in the world none honour God at so high a rate as those that keep most aloof off from the appearance of evil. Many by their apparent evils have lived God, and Christ, and the Gospel, and their Profession, and precious Ordinances, into disgrace, scorn, and contempt; and O that we would all make it our great business, by abstaining from all appearance of evil, to live God, and Christ, and the Gospel, and our Profession, and precious Ordinances, into a greater credit, praise, and honour than ever. He keeps farthest off from dishonouring God, that keeps farthest off from the appearance of sin. But, etc. Th●rdly, This is the way of ways for a man to keep himself clear from other men's sins, that man that abstains from the appearance of sin, is very rarely guilty of other men's sins, Men many times by venturing upon the appearances of sins, come to wrap themselves up in the guilt of other men's sins. Effeminate Dalliance is an appearance of evil, and had Joseph been toying, and playing, and sporting with his Mistress in a wanton manner, how soon might he have wrapped himself up in the guilt of his Mistresses burning Lusts. He that would not tempt nor entice others to sin, must keep off from the very appearance of sin. Certainly there is not the holiest man in the World, but has sins enough of his own to sad him, though not to sink him; to humble him, though not to damn him; to abase him, though not to deject him; and therefore how much does it concern the best men in the World to abstain from the very appearance of sin, that so they may not bring upon themselves the guilt and burden of other men's sins. 'Tis very well observed by some, that a more grievous punishment is reserved for them which cause others to sin, than for them which sin by their occasion; thus the Serpent was punished more than Eve, 2 Kings 9. 30-ult. compared with 1 Kings 22.34, to ●9. and Eve more than Adam. And so Jezabel who tempted and provoked Ahab to sin, was punished with a far greater and sorer punishment or Judgement than Ahab himself was. To sin (saith one) hath not so much perdition in it, as to make others to sin; and therefore as you would never draw others to sin, keep off from all appearance of sin; O that all Superiors, Inferiors, and equals, would lay this counsel to heart. But, Fourthly, The keeping off from all appearances of evil, is the best and noblest way under heaven, to keep a good Name, and to keep a good Conscience. Now a good Name, and a good Conscience are Jewels more worth than all the Sceptres and Mitres in the World, and there is no Wisdom in the World to that which leads a man by the hand to secure his Name and his Conscience, Prov. 22.1. A good Name is rather to be chosen than great Riches, and loving favour rather than Silver and Gold. So Eccles. 7.1. A good name is better than precious Ointment, the one being but a presume of the Nostrils, the other a perfume of the heart. 'Tis observable the Princely Preacher does not say, A great Name is better than Precious Ointments, but a good Name is better than precious Ointments. Ointments are here named, because in those Eastern parts they were laid up in the King's Treasury, even among his most precious things, Isa. 39.2. And Hezekiah was glad of them, and shown him the house of his precious things, the Silver, and the Gold, and the Spices, Exod. 30 22-23. Exod. 28.41. 1 Sam. 16.13. Psal. 89.20. Heb. 1.9. Isa. 61.3. Amos 6 6. Esth. 2.12. Psal. 23.5. Luke 7.46. Psal. 92.10. Deut. 33.24. Prov. 21.20. and the precious Ointments, etc. Precious Aromatical Ointments were things greatly in use and esteem amongst the Israelites, and a special part of their Treasures, as is evident by the Scriptures in the Margin. And yet a good Name (which hath its Foundation in virtue, and in a holy, innocent, blameless, harmless, and exemplary life) is better than those most precious Ointments. And 'tis observable that the initial letter of the Hebrew word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Tob, that is here rendered Good, is bigger than ordinary, to show the more than ordinary excellency of a good name and fame amongst men. 'Twas good counsel the Moralist gave, when he said, whatsoever commodity you lose, be sure yet to preserve that Jewel of a good Name. A good renown is better than a golden girdle, say some. And a man's eye and his good Name, can bear no jests, say others. And if I may but keep a good Name, I have wealth enough, said the Naturalist. O friends! as ever you would keep a good Name, keep off from the very appearance of evil, for the very appearance of evil will both Eclipse and wound a man's name and his Conscience at once. Certainly a man were better not to live, than to outlive his good Name. A man's good Name is like a piece of white Paper, which if once blotted, will very hardly be got out again, so as to leave no Print of it behind; it is like a fair structure long time a rearing, but quickly ruined; or like a Merchant's estate, long a getting, but lost in a moment. And therefore how much does it concern every Christian to keep his Name as he would keep his life, and this he can never do, except he keeps off from the appearance of evil. 'Tis his Name only that shall be kept green and flourishing, like the Rod of Aaron, that was laid up in the Tabernacle, who keeps off from the appearance of evil. He takes the best and the wisest course under heaven to preserve his good Name in the World, and to maintain the peace of his Conscience, who is most studious and industrious to abstain from all appearances of evil. But, etc. Fifthly, The appearance of evil may very much offend, scandalise, stumble, and tempt weak Christians, and therefore it highly concerns us to keep off from the very appearance of evil. The more Grace any man hath in his own heart, the more fearful he will be of stumbling or offending those that have less. Venturing upon the appearance of evil, may not only defile my own Conscience, but also wound my weak Brother's Conscience, and therefore it concerns me to be very shy of the appearance of evil. If in things of an indifferent nature, I must deny my own liberty, 1 Cor. 8.11, 12, 13. chap. 10.25, 28. (as I must) rather than grieve or offend, or wound the Conscience of a weak Brother for whom Christ hath died. O how much more than I must I shun the very resemblance of sin, considering how wonderful apt weak Christians are to be offended, and stumbled, when they see others so bold as to venture upon the appearance of evil. Alexander's Macedonians having offended him, laid by their Arms, put on mourning Apparel, and came running in Troops to his Tent, where, for almost three days together, they remained with loud cries and tears, to testify their remorse for offending him; and shall we make nothing of offending those weak Christians that are the price of Christ's blood, and the travel of his soul, the Lord forbidden. Besides, our venturing upon the appearance of evil, may prove a great temptation to weak Christians, not only to venture upon seeming evils, but also to venture upon real evils; doubtless many weak Christians have been drawn to apparent evils, by observing others to venture upon the appearance of evil. 'Tis commonly seen, that when strong Christians will adventure upon appearing evils, weak Christians will be emboldened thereby to commit real evils, 1 Cor. 8.8, 9, 10. But meat commendeth us not to God, for neither if we eat are we the better, neither if we eat not are we the worse. But take heed lest by any means this liberty of yours become a stumbling block to them that are weak. For if any man see thee which hast knowledge, sit at meat in the Idols Temple, shall not the Conscience of him which is weak, be emboldened to eat those things which are offered to Idols? When the weak shall see men of knowledge communicating with Idolaters in their Feasts, their Consciences will be emboldened and confirmed in their old Superstition about those Idols, which they were beginning to leave, returning now a fresh to a more reverend esteem and service of them than ever, etc. O friends, as you would not offend the weak, as you would not tempt the weak, keep off from all shows and appearances of evil, etc. But, Sixthly, Christians venturing upon appearing evils, will exceedingly harden and encourage wicked men to commit real evils. 'Tis very natural and customary with wicked men to make use of the appearing infirmities of the Saints, as excuses and Apologies to bear them out in their greatest enormities and wickednesses. Why did not such and such knowing eminent Christians do thus and thus! and we have gone but one step beyond them, and is that so great and heinous a crime? they have been playing and sporting themselves about the pit, and we are but slipped or stepped into the pit. They have been sitting and bibbing with such and such company, and we have but taken two or three merry cups more than ordinary in the same company, and is that so great a sin? etc. O Sirs! As we should walk wisely towards those that are without, 1 Thess. 4.12. Judas 22. so we should walk compassionately towards those that are without. Of some have compassion, making a difference. Jer. 9.1. Did not Jeremy wish that his head were waters, and his eyes a Fountain of tears, that he might weep day and night for the slain of the daughter of his people? Did not Samuel mourn for Saul? 1 Sam. 15.25. Luke 19.10. Luke 10. 30-35. Phil. 3.20. Levit. 19.17. 1 Sam. 17.34. Gen. 31.40. Did not Christ weep over Jerusalem? Did not the compassionate Samaritan bind up his wounds, pouring in Oil and Wine, who fell among Thiefs in his going from Jerusalem to Jericho. Did not Paul weep over those that were enemies of the Cross of Christ: Yea, shall we show pity and compassion to an Ox or an Ass that is fallen into a Ditch. Nay, shall David rather venture upon a Lion than lose a Lamb? Shall Jacob rather endure heat by day, and cold by night, than neglect his Flock? Shall Moses fight with odds, rather than the Cattle shall perish with thirst. Nay, shall Xenocrates a Heathen, show compassion to a poor Sparrow, that being scared and pursued by a Hawk, flew into his bosom for succour, etc. And shall not we have that compassion on poor sinners precious and immortal Souls, as to abstain from the appearance of sin, which may more ways than one prove so exceeding prejudicial to them, etc. Jer. ●●. 50. Wicked men are wonderful prone to watch for the Saints haltings; Christians are lights upon a high Hill; yea, they are Stars in the Firmament of the Church, and therefore every man's eye is upon them, and if wicked men can but discern the least indecency, the least appearance of any eccentric, or irregular motion, O how readily will they let fly against God, and the Gospel; against Religion, and against all that have a Profession of Religion upon them. Now the honour of God, and the credit of the Gospel, should be so dear and precious in the eyes of every Christian, that he should rather choose to die, than to venture upon the least apparition of sin, whereby the honour of God may be clouded, or the credit of the Gospel impeached or eclipsed; or the Soul of a poor sinner endangered or worsned; both the least sin, and the least appearance of sin must be avoided and prevented, the Cockatrice must be crushed in the Egg, else it will soon become a Serpent; the very thought of sin, if not thought on, will break out into action, action into custom, custom into habit, and then both body and Soul are in the ready way of being irrecoverably lost. Camerarius tells us a sad story of two Brothers, who walking out in the evening, and seeing the Element full of bright spangling Stars, one of them being a Grazier, wished that he had as many Oxen as there were Stars in the Firmament; then said the other Brother, If I had a Pasture as big as all the World, where would you keep the Oxen? he answered, In your Pasture: What said the other, whether I would or no? Yes said his Brother. The matter was very light, 'twas but a little evil, or an appearing evil, but it fell out very heavily, for presently they fell to words, and then drew one upon another, and in the close killed one another. O friends, as you love the lives of sinners, and as you love the Souls of sinners, keep off from all appearance of evil. But, Seventhly, Other precious Saints have abstained from all appearances of evil, witness Joseph, Paul, Daniel, etc. but lately cited. And to these let me add that great instance of Augustine, who retracted even Ironies because they had the appearance of evil. And so the Primitive Christians would not let up Lights and Bays at their doors, though for this they were persecuted as enemies to the Emperor, Tertullian. because the Temple, and the doors of Idolaters were wont to be thus garnished. 2 Sam. 24.21, 22, 23, 24. And so David refused to take the Threshing floor, and Threshing instruments, and Oxen, etc. of Araunah as a gift, but would needs buy them at a price, and this he did, partly out of a Divine nobleness, and partly to avoid the very show of Covetousness. Now why has God left all these famous Precedents upon Record, but on purpose to encourage his Saints in all Ages, to abstain from all appearing evils, as well as from all apparent evils. Certainly God looks that we should so eye the best, the highest, the worthiest, and the exactest examples, as that we should make it our great business and work to come up to them, and to imitate them to the life. O friends! the examples last cited should be very awakening, very persuading, very convincing, and very encouraging; because in them you may see that though abstinence from the appearance of evil be a difficult thing, yet 'tis a possible thing. Shall we love to look upon the Pictures of our friends, and shall we not much more love to look upon the holy examples of those eminent Saints that had the lively picture of Grace, and the lovely Image of Christ fairly stamped upon their hearts and lives. 'Tis both our Mercy and our duty to eye the examples, and to follow the footsteps of those Christians that have been most eminent in Grace, as you may plainly see by comparing of these Scriptures together, Prov. 2.20. Heb. 6.12. 1 Thes. 1.6. Phil. 4.9. 2 Tim. 3.10, 11, 12. Heb. 12.1. Phil. 3.17. 1 Cor. 11.1. Titus 2.7. He that would fain write a fair hand, had need have his eye often upon his Copy; and he that would fain abstain from all appearance of evil, he had need often to eye the gracious examples of such who have made Conscience of abstaining from appearing evils as well as from apparent evils. But, Eighthly and lastly, Consider what some refined Heathens, and civilised Pagans have done in this very case; There are stories of Heathens that would not look upon excellent Beauties, lest they should be ensnared. D●mocrit●● plucked out his own eyes to avoid the danger of uncleanness. Socrates speaketh of two young men that flung away their Belts, when being in an Idol-Temple, the lustrating water fell upon them, detesting, saith the Historian, the garment spotted by the Flesh. Alexander would not see the woman after whom he might have lusted. Scipio Africanus warring in Spain, took New- Carthage by storm, Aure victor. at which time a beautiful and noble Virgin fled to him for secure to preserve her Chastity, he being four and twenty years old, (and so in the heat of youth) hearing of it, would not suffer her to come into his sight, for fear of a temptation, but caused her to be restored in safety to her Father. So when Dem●sthenes the Orator, was asked an excessive sum of money to behold the beautiful Lais, he answered, He would not buy repentance so dear, neither was he so ill a Merchant as to sell eternals for temporals. Nor Caesar would not search Pompey's Cabinet, lest he should find new matters of revenge. Memorable is the story of the children of Samos●ta, that would not touch their Ball, but burned it, because it had touched the Toe of a wicked Heretical Bishop, as they were tossing and playing with it. Now shall some refined Heathens, shall civilised Pagans abstain from the appearance of evil, from occasions and temptations to sin? and shall real Christians fall short of them? Shall blind nature do more than Grace? Shall men fallen in the first Adam, do more than those that are raised and enlivened by the second Adam? But to prevent all mistakes, let me add, though many Heathens have abstained from the appearance of some evil, yet they have not abstained from the appearance of all evil; neither have they abstained from the appearance of any evil out of a hatred of evil; nor from any principles of saving light, or life, or love; nor out of any regard to any Royal Law of God; nor out of any regard to the honour or glory of God, but either out of vainglory, and popular applause, the Polestars by which they steered all their actions, or out of Hypocrisy, which set a tincture and Die upon all their actions; what Writer hath more golden Sentences than Seneca, against the contempt of Gold, yet (if Tacitus, and others of his contemporaries may be credited) none more rich, none more covetous than he, as if out of design he had persuaded others to cast away their money, that he himself might come and gather it up again, etc. And thus you see that there are very great reasons why every Christian should avoid the very show, suspicion, or appearance of evil, etc. But, Eleventhly and lastly, He that sets himself resolutely, mostly, habitually, against his bosom sins, his constitution sins, Psal. 18.26. his most prevalent sins, etc. he has certainly a saving work, a powerful work of God upon his Soul. True Grace will make a man stand stoutly and steadfastly on God's side, and work the heart to take part with him, against the most darling sins, though they be as right hands or as right eyes. True Grace will lay hands upon a man's most beloved lusts, and cry out to Heaven, Lord Crucify them, Crucify them, down with them, down with them even to the ground. Lord do Justice, do signal Justice, do speedy Justice, do exemplary Justice upon this Head-lust, this Master-sin. Lord hue down root and branch, let the very stumps of this Dagon be broken all in pieces. Lord curse this wild Figtree, that never more Fruit may grow thereon. Certainly God and Christ is set up highest in that man's heart, who bends most of his thoughts, strength, and endeavours against his constitution sins, against the sins of his Place, Calling, condition and complexion. 'Tis very observable, that the Jews, after they had been in the Babilonish Furnace for Idolatry, they ever hated and feared that sin as much as the child dreads the Fire; yea, they would die any death rather than admit an Idol. Josephus tells us how stoutly they opposed Pilate and Petronius, that would have set up Caesar's Statue in their Temples, offering their throats to the Swords of the Soldiers, rather than they would endure that Idol in God's house. O when once the heart of a Christian comes thus to be set against all his Golden and Silver Idols, than we may safely say, Behold a true Israelite in whom there is no guile. He that finds his lusts, his bosom, his darling lusts, begin to fall before him, 〈◊〉. 6. 1●. as H●m●● once begun to fall before Mor●eoai; he may safely and confidently conclude that he is of the seed of the Jews, and that the seed of God abideth in him. 1 John 3.9. (But having discoursed so largely as I have concerning bosom sins, darling lusts, head-corruptions, in my other writings, I need say no more at this time) And thus you see that there are Eleven particulars in regard of sin, and a Christians acts about it, that speaks out a true saving work of Grace to be in the Souls of the Saints. But, etc. Secondly, Where the constant, ordinary, standing, and abiding purpose, disposition, frame, and general bend of a man's heart, soul, spirit, desires, and endeavours are fixed and set for God, for Grace, for Holiness, in heart and life, there is a most sure and infallible work of God passed upon that man's soul; the constant bent, and the settled purpose of a true child of God, is for God, for Grace, for Holiness in heart and life, Psal. 119.112. Psal. 40.8. Psal. 39.1. Psal. 101.3. 2 Cor. 1.12. Psal. 119 4, 5, 20. 2 Chron. 19.3. 2 Chro. 30.18, 19 Neh. 1.11. Isa. 26.8, 9 I have inclined my heart to keep thy Statutes always, even to the end. Verse 38. Establish thy Word unto thy Servant, who is devoted to thy fear. Verse 44. So shall I keep thy Law continually, for ever and ever. Verse 45. And I will walk at liberty, for I seek thy Precepts. Acts 24.16. And herein do I exercise myself, to have always a Conscience void of offence toward God and toward men. Heb. 13.18. Pray for us, for we trust we have a good Conscience, in all things willing to live honestly. Gracious Souls do strongly affect that which they cannot easily effect, Psal. 119.57. Thou art my Portion O Lord, I have said that I would keep thy words. Some read this Verse thus, Lord I have said, my portion shall be to keep thy words. Holy David was fully determined and resolved in himself, to keep Gods Royal Law, in spite of the World, the flesh, and the Devil. And so Barnabas exhorted the Disciples, that with purpose of heart they would cleave unto the Lord, Acts 11.23. As if all piety and truth of Grace consisted in Gracious purposes of heart. Certainly when the bend of a man's mind, and the settled purpose of a man's Soul, and the unfeigned desires of his heart, are for God, for Grace, for holiness, in heart, in life, than the estate and condition of that man is safe and happy. 'Tis very observable, that that great Apostle Paul, Though the Needle or the Seaman's Compass may jog this way and that way, yet the bent of the Needle w●ll still be Northward. So though a Christian may have his particular sinful joggings, this way or that way, yet the bent of his heart will still be God-wards. Una actio non denominat. in his spiritual conflict, lays a very great stress upon these things, witness Rom. 7. ver. 16. If then I do that which I would not, I consent unto the Law that it is good. So Verse 18. For to will is present with me. So Verse 19 For the good that I would, I do not, but the evil which I would not, that I do. So Verse 21, 22. I find then a Law, that when I would do good, evil is present with me. For I delight in the Law of God after the inward man. So Verse 25. So then with the mind I myself serve the Law of God. Certainly, the truth, the lise, and power of Grace, of Holiness, of Regeneration, is not so much seen in our actions, as in the renewing and sanctifying of our minds and wills, according to that Rom. 12.2. Be ye transformed (or Metamorphosed, as the Greek has it) by the renewing of your mind. No man is to judge of the soundness or sincerity of his Spirit by some particular acts, but by the constant frame and bent of his Spirit, and by his general conversation in this world; If particular actions might determine whether a man had Grace or no Grace, whether he were in Christ or not in Christ; whether he were a Saint or not a Saint; whether he were sincere or unsound, we should many times conclude, that those had no Grace who indeed have, and that they were not in Christ who indeed are, and that they are no Saints who indeed are, and that they are not sincere, who certainly are true Nathaniels. The best Saints have had their extravagant motions, and have very foully and sadly miscarried as to particular actions, (even then when the constant course and bend of their spirits have been God-wards and Christ-wards, and Holiness-wards, and Heaven-wards, &c) witness David's Murder and Adultery. Noah's Drunkenness, Lot's Incest, joseph's Swearing, Jobs Cursing, Jonahs' Vexing, Peter Denying, and Thomas his not believing. Such twinkle do and will accompany the highest and fairest stars. As he who feet it best may be found sometimes all along, and the neatest person may sometimes slip into a slow. He that cannot endure to see a spot upon his , may yet sometimes fall into a Quagmire. So the holiest and exactest Christians may sometimes be surprised with many infirmities and unevennesses, and sad miscarriages. Certainly particular sinnings are compatible with a gracious frame, though none are with a glorious condition. Though no darkness, no clouds can be mixed with the Sun in Heaven, yet both may be in the Air which is enlightened below. Our best estate on earth is mixed, and not absolute. Glory annihilates all sinful practices, but Grace only weakens them; the most sincere Christian is but an imperfect Christian, and hath daily cause to mourn over his infirmities, as well as he has cause to bless God for his Graces and mercies. Well Sirs! Look as every particular stain doth not blemish the universal fineness of the Cloth, so neither doth this or that particular fact disprove and deny the general bend of the heart; particulars may not decide the estate either way, 'tis true, a man by a particular sinning is denominated Guilty, but by no one particular can a man's Estate be challenged, either for good or bad. He that shall judge of a Christians estate by particular acts, though notorious bad, will certainly condemn the Generation of the Righteous. We must always distinguish betwixt some single good actions, and a series of good actions. Mere particular actions do not conclude (either way) the estate of the Soul, an hypocrite may do some good act, and an upright person may do some sinful act. A man must give in Judgement for, or against himself according as the habitual purpose and temper of his heart stands, etc. It is not this or that particular good action, but a continued course of holy Actions that denominates us holy. Certainly, as there is no man so holy, but sometimes he falls into this or that particular sin; So there is no man so wicked, but sometimes he falls in with this or that particular duty, witness Pharaoh, who in a fit desires Moses and Aaron to pray for him; and witness Balaam, who in a good mood desires to die the death of the Righteous; and witness Saul, who under a pang condemns himself, and justifies David. And so witness Ahabs humbling of himself, and Ninevehs repenting, and Foelix his trembling, and Herod's hearing of John Baptist gladly. Now look as every sin which a godly man falls into (through infirmity) doth not presently denominate him ungodly, so neither will a few good actions done by a wicked man prove him godly. 'Tis what the course and tenor of the life is, that must be most diligently and wisely observed, for every man is as his course is; if his course be holy, the man is so; if his course be wicked, the man is wicked. There is a Maxim in Logic, viz. that no general Rule can be established upon a particular instance; and there is another Maxim in Logic, viz. that no particular instance can overthrow a general Rule. So here, as no man can safely and groundedly conclude from no better Promises than from some few particular actions (though in themselves materially and substantially good) that his heart is therefore sincere; 'Tis not a pang of the Soul, nor a mood, nor a fit of an Ague, nor a flash of Lightning nor a man's being as the morning dew, but his habitual purpose, resolution and inclination to good, that evidences the man to be really good. Psal. 119.20. My soul breaketh for the longing that it hath unto thy Judgements at all times, etc. A sheep may slip into a slow as soon as a Swine; and an Appletree may have a fit of barrenness, as well as a Crabtree. But the sheep loves not to wallow in the Mire as the swine does. And though the Appletree be barren one year, yet it brings forth fruit the next. so on the contrary, no man ought to conclude, because of some gross particular sinful actions, and extravagant motions, that his heart is unfound. O Sirs! we are not to make a Judgement of our states and conditions by some particular actions, whether they are good or evil, but we are to make a Judgement of our states and conditions, by the general frame, bend, and disposition of our hearts, and by the constant tenor of our lives. 'Tis certain, that God accounts every wicked man guilty of all those sins, wickednesses, and vanities, which the settled purpose, desire, bend, bias, and frame of his Soul inclined him to, though he doth not actually commit them, Matth. 5.28. He that looketh on a Woman to lust after her, hath committed Adultery already with her in his heart. A man may commit Adultery, and yet not touch a Woman. There are many thousands that die of the wound in the eye. So 1 John 3.15. Whosoever hateth his Brother is a Murderer. A man may commit Murder, and yet not kill a man, yea he may commit Murder and yet not touch a man. Prov. 23.7. For as he thinketh in his heart, so is he. The man is as his mind is. God esteems of wicked men according to their hearts, and not according to their words. So 'tis as certain that the Lord accounts every godly man to do all that good, that the settled purpose, frame, bend, bias, and unfeigned desires of his Soul inclines him to, 2 Cor. 8.12. If there be first a willing mind, 'tis accepted. So Heb. 11.17. By Faith Abraham when he was tried, offered up Isaac, and he that had received the Promises, offered up his only Son; that is, in disposition and full purpose of heart, and willingness of mind, which God accepted for the deed; a true intent is in God's account as a real act. So David had a purpose, a mind, a will to build God a house, and for this God commends him, 1 Kings 8.18. And the Lord said unto David my Father, whereas it was in thy heart to build a house unto my Name, thou didst well that it was in thy heart; yea, God rewards him for it, as if he had actually done it, and tells him in his ear that he would build him an house, 2 Sam. 7.27. So when that servant that owed his Lord ten thousand Talents, had showed his readiness and willingness, and resolvedness to pay all. Lord have patience with me, and I will pay thee all, Matth. 18.26. (a thing as impossible for him to do, as 'tis for us to keep the whole Law, and not to fail in one point; but his desires, his mind, his will, his purposes was to do it) well, and what does his Lord do? why his Lord had compassion on him, and loosed him, and forgave him the debt, v. 27. his Lord took this for full and current payment, he accepted of the will for the deed. So when Zacheus had unfeignedly professed his purpose and willingness to make restitution, Christ presently replies, This day is Salvation come to thy house, Luke 19.9. Certainly the Lord accounts that Soul a true Believer, and a blessed Soul, that unfeignedly desires to believe, witness that Matth. 5.6. Blessed are they which do hunger and thirst after Righteousness, for they shall be filled. And 'tis as certain that the Lord accounts that sinner a true penitent, that doth unfeignedly desire, purpose, and resolve to repent, to break off his sins, and to turn to the Lord, as you may see in that great instance of the Prodigal, Luke 15.18, 19, 20. I will arise and go to my Father, and will say unto him, Father, I have sinned against Heaven, and before thee, and am no more worthy to be called thy Son, make me as one of thy hired Servants. And he arose and came to his Father; But when he was yet a great way off, his Father saw him, and had compassion, and ran and fell on his neck, and kissed him. Assoon as ever the Prodigal did but purpose and resolve to repent, and return to his Father, the compassions of his Father are kindled and turned towards him, and he does not go, but runs and falls on his neck, and in stead of kicking and killing, there is nothing but kissing and embracing a returning Prodigal. God always sets a higher value upon our dispositions, than upon our actions, 2 Cor. 8.10. 1 Cor. 9.17. 1 Pet. 5.2. Exod. 25.2. Philemon 14 and in our best services he esteems more of our wills, than he does of our deeds, as is evident by the Scriptures in the Margin. Every good man is as good in the eye and account of God, as the ordinary frame and bent of his Spirit speaks him to be. Every man is as holy, as humble, as heavenly, as spiritual, as gracious, as serious, as sincere, as fruitful, as faithful, as watchful, etc. as the settled purposes, desires, resolutions, and endeavours of his Soul speaks him to be. Hence Noah is said to be a just man, and perfect or upright in his Generation, Gen. 6.9. And hence Job is said to be a perfect and an upright man, one that feared God and eschewed evil, Job 1.1.8. And hence David is said to be a man after Gods own heart, 1 Sam. 13, 14. And to fulfil all his wills, Acts 13.22. here the Greek word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, is wills, to note the universality, and sincerity of his obedience. And hence Zacharias and Elizabeth are said to be both righteous before God, walking in all the Commandments and Ordinances of God blameless, Luke 1.5, 6. Hence the Church is said to be all fair, Cant. 4.7. Thou art all fair my love, and there is no spot in thee. And hence those hundred forty and four thousand Saints that had their Fathers Name written in their Foreheads, Rev. 14.1. are said to be without fault, v. 5. And in their mouth was found no guile, for they are without fault before the Throne of God. God in the Covenant of Grace, and upon the credit of his Son's blood, and for the glory of his Free Grace and favour, is graciously pleased to accept of his people, and to approve of his people, and to delight in his people, and to interpret his people, according to the common bent, frame, disposition, resolution, unfeigned desires, and constant endeavours of their Souls. But, etc. Thirdly, If your obedience be the obedience of Faith, than your estate is good, than you have assuredly an infallible work of God upon your souls. Quest. But how shall we know whether our obedience be the obedience of Faith or no? how may a man discern when his obedience springs from Faith? Answ. You may certainly know whether your obedience be the obedience of Faith or no, by these following particulars. First, That obedience that springs from Faith, is a full obedience, a universal obedience. David did look upon his universal obedience as a special testimony of his uprightness, Psal. 119.6. Then shall I not be ashamed, when I have respect unto all thy Commandments. Mark! the Psalmist doth not say, When I obey all thy Commandments, then shall I not be ashamed; but, When I have a respect to all thy Commandments, then shall I not be ashamed. Now a respect to all God's Commandments, notes an inward awe and reverential eye towards every duty that God requires. The rule is good and true, Quicquid propter deum fit, equaliter fit, he who doth serve and obey God for God's sake, will equally obey all that God commands him. No one Command is unjust or unreasonable to him● whose heart is upright in obedience, etc. Seneca describing a virtuous man, (Epist. 120.) saith of him, that he is Idem semper, et in omni actu par sibi. Bacharti from ●achar, the word notes a careful and diligent choice, upon good trial and proof. The words according to the Hebrew, may be read thus, Then shall I not blush when my eye is to all thy Commandments. Now you know the Traveller hath his eye towards the place whither he is going, and though he be short of it, yet he is still a putting on, and pressing forwards all he can to reach it. So when the eye of a Saint is to all the Commands of God, and he is still a pressing forwards towards full obedience, such a Soul shall never be put to the blush; such a Soul shall never be ashamed in the great day of our Lord Jesus. So Acts 13.22. I have found David the son of Jesse, a man after mine own heart, which shall fulfil all my will. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. all my wills, to note the sincerity and universality of his obedience. So Acts 24.16. And herein do I exercise myself, to have always a Conscience void of offence toward God, and toward men. So Heb. 13.18. We trust we have a good Conscience, in all things willing to live honestly. That obedience that springs from Faith, doth neither dispute Divine Commands, nor divide Divine Commands one from another. Zacharias and Elizabeth were both righteous before God, walking in all the Commandments and Ordinances of the Lord blameless, Luke 1.5, 6. That obedience that springs from Faith, is a full obedience, a universal obedience; It is universal in respect of the subject, the whole man, and 'tis universal in respect of the object, the whole Law. Mark! he who obeys sincerely, obeys universally, though not in regard of practice (which is impossible) yet 1. In regard of his will and desires, his will and desire is to obey all, Rom. 7.18. For to will is present with me. Psal. 119.5. O that my ways were directed to keep thy Statutes. 2. In respect of election or choice, he chooses to obey all. Psal. 119.173. Let thine hand help me, for I have chosen thy Precepts. The word here rendered chosen, signifies to choose upon trial and examination, I have chosen thy Precepts before all, and above all other things. I have chosen thy Precepts for my chiefest good, and for my only treasure. I have chosen thy Precepts to own them, to follow them, and to obey them. 3. In respect of approbation, he approves of all the Commands of God, as holy, just, and good; he highly approves of those Royal Commands that he cannot perfectly obey, Rom. 7.12. Wherefore the Law is holy, and the Commandment holy, just, and good. And Verse 16. I consent unto the Law that it is good; He assents to the Commands of God as holy, and he consents to them as good. 4. In respect of affection, he loves all the Commands of God, he dearly loves those very Commands that he cannot obey, Psal. 119.97. O how I love thy Law! Such a pang of love he felt, as could not otherwise be vented, but by this pathetical exclamation, O how love I thy Law! Verse 113. I hate vain thoughts, but thy Law do I love. Verse 163. I hate and abhor lying, but thy Law do I love. Verse 119. Thou puttest away all the wicked of the earth like dross, therefore I love thy testimonies. Verse 127. Therefore I love thy Commandments above Gold, yea above fine Gold. Verse 159. Consider how I love thy Precepts. Verse 167. My Soul hath kept thy testimonies, and I love them exceedingly. 5. In respect of valuation or esteem, he highly values all the Commands of God, he highly prizes all the Commands of God, as you may see by comparing these Scriptures together, Psal. 119.72, 127, 128. Psal. 19.8, 9, 10, 11. Job 23.12. 6. In respect of his purpose and resolution, he purposes and resolves, by divine assistance, to obey all, to keep all, Psal. 119.106. I have sworn, and will perform it, that I will keep thy righteous Judgements. Psal. 17.3. I am purposed that my mouth shall not transgress. 7. In respect of his inclination, he has an habitual inclination in him to keep all the Commands of God, 1 Kings 8.57, 58. 2 Chron. 30.17, 18, 19, 20. Psal. 119.112. I have inclined my heart to perform thy Statutes always, even to the end. 8. In respect of endeavours, they endeavour to keep all, Psal. 119.59. I turned my feet unto thy testimonies. There is no man that obeys God truly, who doth not endeavour to obey God fully, and thus you see in what respects that obedience that flows from Faith, is a full obedience, a universal obedience. A child of God obeys all the commands of God in respect of his sincere desires, purposes, resolutions, and endeavours; and this God accepts in Christ for perfect and complete obedience. This is the glory of the Covenant of Grace, that God accepts and esteems of sincere obedience as perfect obedience. Such who sincerely endeavour to keep the whole Law of God, they do keep the whole Law of God in an evangelical sense, though not in a legal sense. In the work of Conversion, Ezek. 11.19, 20. God infuseth all Grace together, and writes not one particular Law in the hearts of his children, but the whole Law, which is a universal Principle, inclining the Soul impartially to all. The gracious Soul sincerely falls in with every command of God (so far as he knows it), without prejudice or partiality, he dares not pick and choose what commands to obey, and what to reject, as Hypocrites do; he hath an eye to see, an ear to hear, and a heart to obey the first Table as well as the second, and the second as well as the first; He doth not adhere to the first, and neglect the second, as Hypocrites do; neither doth he adhere to the second, and contemn the first, as profane men do. All saul's, Jebues, Judas', Demas', Scribes, Pharises, and temporaries, Matth. 23.23. they are still partial in their obedience, for while they yield obedience to some commands, they live in the habitual breach of other Commands. Jehu boastingly calls out, 2 Kings 10.29, 30. Come see my zeal for the Lord of Hosts. But if Jehosaphat had gone a little further, he might have seen his Calves too, contrary to God's Commands. Herod heard John Baptist gladly, and did many things; but if John will be close and plain with him, Mark 6. he shall then first lose his liberty, and then his head for his labour. A sincere Christian loves all the known Commands of God, and prizes all the Commands of God, and sees a Divine Image, Majesty, and Authority stamped upon all the Commands of God: And therefore the main bent and disposition of his Soul, ●s to obey all, and to be subject to all the Commands of God. Let me in a few particulars open this great truth a little more fully to you. And therefore take me thus. First, A sincere Christian will endeavour to obey God in suffering Commands, as well as in doing Commands, in losing as well as gaining Commands; an unsound Christian, he loves cheap obedience, he is willing to fall in with those Commands that are not chargeable or costly; he loves a cheap Gospel, and a cheap Ministry, and a cheap Membership, and a cheap Communion of Saints, etc. But when his obedience comes to be chargeable, when his obedience to Divine Commands may cost him his health, his strength, his Liberty, his Riches, his Estate, his Friends, his Credit, his Name, etc. then he retires, John 6.60. than he cries out Durus sermo, it is a hard saying, who can bear it? this is a hard Commandment, who can obey it? When Religion is attended with freedom, honour, and safety; when Religion is attended with Riches, Pleasures, and Applause, then unsound hearts will put forwards; but when these part, than they bid Religion farewel. As you see in the young man in the Gospel, Matth. 19.20. to 25. who was willing to follow Christ, so long as he might be no loser in following of him; but when it came to this, that he must part with his Riches, or with Christ, than he falls off, and went away sorrowful, because he had great possessions. But now a sincere Christian will obey even the most chargeable and costly Commands of God, as you may see in that little book of Martyrs, tenth and eleventh Chapters of the Hebrews; and as you may see in the three Children in Daniel, in the Disciples, Matth. 19 27. in the Primitive Christians, and in the Martyrs in the Marian days. But, Secondly, If your obedience springs from Faith, than you will endeavour to obey God in relative Commands, as well as in absolute Commands; you will not only hear, and pray, and read, and meditate, and fast, and mourn; but you will labour to be good in your Relations, both as a Husband, a Father, a Master, a Magistrate, a Minister. Remember this for ever, every one is that really that he is relatively. Many make a great Profession, and are under a great Name, and have great parts and gifts, and can discourse rarely well on any subject, whose houses are not Bethels, but Bethavens, not little Temples, but little Hells. One, writing of the Italian women, saith that they were Angels in the streets, Saints in the Church, and Devils in their houses; this is very applicable to many high Professors this day, who are very forward in the general Duties of Religion, and yet make little Conscience of relative duties; but he whose obedience springs from Faith, he will make Conscience of relative commands as well as of absolute commands: Whatever Command hath the stamp of God, the Authority of Heaven upon it, though it seem never so small, he dares not disobey it; if he sees a beam of divine Majesty sitting upon the face of any Command, he will submit to it; you know men will not refuse a penny if the King's stamp be upon it, so if the Authority of God be stamped upon the least Command, a sound Christian will yield subjection to it, as well as the greatest. Mark, if a man make no Conscience of relative Commands, though his general conversation as a Christian be never so admirable, yet he hath great cause to suspect himself and his estate, and that his heart is not right in the sight of God. Acts 8.21. O that you would seriously consider! that relative and domestical Graces and duties do more demonstrate true piety and godliness than public duties, than general duties do; for Pride, Vainglory, Self-ends, and a hundred other outward, carnal considerations, may put a man upon the general duties of Religion, as you may see by the Scriptures in the Margin, Isa. 58.1, 2, 3, 4, 5. Hos. 5.14. Zech. 7.4, 5, 6, 7. and as you may see in the Scribes and Pharises throughout the New Testament; but it argues both truth and strength of Grace to be diligent and conscientious in the discharge of relative duties, and this is the true reason why the Apostles in their Epistles, do so frequently, so earnestly, and so strongly, by variety of motives press Christians to the performance of those relative duties that lie upon their hands. But, Thirdly, If your obedience springs from Faith, than you will endeavour to obey God in affirmative Commands as well as in negative Commands. You will not only lo●k upon what God would not have you to do, but you will also look to see what God would have you to do. Luke 16. 19-29. Matt. 25. 24-31. Dives was no● cast into Hell for oppressing Lazarus, but for not showing mercy to Lazarus: He was not damned because he took any thing from him, but because he gave nothing to him. The evil servant did not riot out his Talon, but omitted the improvement of it, for which he was cast into outer darkness Nor those Reprobates in the same Chapter did not rob the poor Saints, but omitted the relieving of them, which was their ruin. Deut. 23.3, 4. Moab and Ammon were banished the Sanctuary to the tenth Generation, for a mere omission, because they met not Gods Israel in the Wilderness with bread and water. Look as the omission of good diet breeds diseases, so the omission of Religious duties will either make work for Repentance, Luke 18.11. or for Hell, or for the Physician of Souls. Mark, there is many a man's Religion lies merely in negatives, he is no Swearer, no Drunkard, no Adulterer, no Oppressor, no Defrauder, etc. A formal Professors obedience to Divine Commands, does principally lie in negatives, he considers not so much what the Command requires, as what it prohibits, and he pleases himself rather in abstaining from evil, than in doing of good; in being outwardly reform, than in being inwardly renewed; he thinks it enough that he turns from sin, though he makes no Conscience of turning to God: If you ask him concerning affirmative Commands, there you will find him speechless. Ask him, art thou holy? art thou humble? art thou heavenly? art thou sincere? art thou a Believer? dost thou set up God as the great object o thy fear? dost thou love God with a superlative love? is the Sabbath of the Lord a delight unto thee? etc. Now here you strike him dumb, he looks upon the neglect of these things as no sins, Isa. 8.13. Psal. 18.1. Isa. 58. 1● because they are not such scandalous sins as the others are. Remember Sirs, sinful omissions many times leads to sinful commissions, as you may see in the Angel's tha● fell from Heaven to Hell; and as you may see in Adam, who fell from his highest glory, into a woeful gulf of sin and misery. But, Fourthly, If your obedience spring from Faith, than you will endeavour to obey God in the Spirit of the Command, as well as in the letter of the Command. In every Command of God there is an intra, and an extra, one part of Christ's Law binds the Flesh, and another part binds the Spirit, Thou shalt do no Murder, Matth. 5.21.22. Verse 27, 28. there is the letter of the Command. Thou shalt not be angry with thy Brother without a cause, there is the Spirit of the Command. Thou shalt not commit Adultery, there is the letter of the Command: Thou shalt not look upon a Woman to lust after her, there is the Spirit of the Command. The Pharisees of old did not look to the Spirituality of the Law, but only to the Letter of the Law; they rested wholly upon an outward conformity to the Law, when their hearts were full of Hellish lusts, they were all for the outside of the Law, they regarded not the inside of the Law; they were all for washing of Platters and Cups, and for beautifying of Tombs, like an Adulteress, Matth. 23.23. Phil. 3.6. Rom. 7.9. Can a man come up to all affirmative and negative Precepts in his outward conversation; yet if he were not spiritual in all these, his obedience would be but as a body without a Soul. The Pharisees rise high in their outward obedience, and yet Christ clearly and fully convinces them, that they were wretched Adulterers and Murderers, though they were not guilty of any such outward crimes, etc. whose care is to paint, and set a fair face upon a foul matter; they were all for paying Tithe of Mint and anise and Cummin; but they regarded not the inside of the Law, they omitted the weightier matters of the Law, viz. Judgement, Mercy, and Faith. While Paul walked by the letter of the Command, he was blameless in his own account; but when he came to walk by the Spirit of the Command, then sin revived, and he died. Friends, there are the more general duties of Religion, as Hearing, Praying, Reading, Receiving, Fasting, Repeating, Discoursing, etc. Now these all lie in the very letter of the Command, and there are the more inward and spiritual duties of Religion, as the exercise of Faith, fear, love, hope, joy, patience, contentation, humble submission, and choosing of God, and cleaving to God, and delighting in God, and admiring of God, and exalting of God, and following hard after God, and holy Meditation, and Self-examination, etc. Now all these lie in the very spirit of the Command. Now in the exercise of these more spiritual duties, our fellowship and communion with God mainly lies. In the more general duties of Religion, an hypocrite may manifest the excellency of his gifts, but in the more spiritual duties of Religion, a sincere Christian doth manifest, both the excellency and efficacy of grace. Mark, an unsound heart looks no further than to the bare letter of the command, to bare hearing, and bare praying, and bare preaching, and bare fasting, and bare giving, and bare receiving, and bare suffering; he looks no further than to that part of the command which only binds the flesh, or outward man; and if he does but observe that in the gross, he thinks he hath done marvellous well; like a melancholy man that matters not what melody and harmony he makes, so he does but touch the strings of the instrument: But now, a found, a sincere Christian, he looks to the Spirit of the command; and if he does not come up to that, in sincere desires, in gracious purposes, in fixed resolutions, and in cordial endeavours, he can have no peace, no rest, no quiet, no comfort. O Sirs! as ever you would see God, and enjoy God another day, you must labour, not only to obey the letter of the command, but also to bring your hearts to the sincere obedience of the Spirit of the command. This is a very close, piercing, distinguishing and discovering sign. But, Fifthly, If your obedience springs from faith, than you will labour, not only to obey God in the matter, but also in the manner of the command, not only in the substance of the command, but also in the circumstance of the command. God requires the manner as well as the matter; and God looks upon that work as not done, that is not done in a right manner. Did not the Lord command sacrifice? and did not Cain offer sacrifice? Gen. 4.5. and yet God had no respect to him, nor to his offering, because his sacrifice was not offered up in a right manner, his offering was not offered up by a hand of faith; he offered his offering, but because he did not offer himself as an offering to God, his offering was rejected by God. A work may be materially good, Luther. that is not formally and eventually good, and this was Cain's curse. How frequently did God command the Jews to pray? Isa. 1.15. and yet he plainly tells them, When you spread forth your hands, I will hid mine eyes from you; yea, when you make many prayers, I will not hear. He commanded them to sacrifice, and yet he saith, To what purpose is the multitude of your sacrifices? Verse 11. and all because they did not manage their prayers, nor sacrifices, in a right manner; their hands were full of blood, and their hearts were full of sins, and their lives were full of lewdness; and therefore all their services were vain oblations, yea, an abomination to God. An unfound heart looks no further than to the substance of the command; if he has heard, and prayed, and fasted, and read, and repeated, and given alms, and received the Lord's Supper, he strokes himself, and blesses himself, and hugs himself, and thinks all is well, and so he looks no further: But now a sound sincere Christian, he looks to the circumstance as well as the substance, to the manner as well as to the matter of the command; when he prays, he labours to pray fervently, earnestly, Jam. 5.17, 18. he labours to get his heart into his prayers; when he hears, he will hear with attention and intention of spirit; when he walks, Mich. 6.8. 1 Pet. 2.12. & 3.1, 2, 3. 1 Thes. 2.10. 2 Cor. 1.12, Psal. 110.3. he endeavours to walk wisely, humbly, faithfully, fruitfully, circumspectly, exemplarily, winningly, convincingly, blamelessly; when he obeys, he desires and endeavours to obey freely, willingly, cheerfully. O Sirs! if we pray, and pray not fervently; if we hear, and hear not fruitfully; if we obey, and obey not willingly; if we show mercy, Isa. 58.13. and do it not cheerfully; if we sanctify the Sabbath, and not with delight, all is worth nothing, all will come to nothing. Mark, there are some circumstances accessary, some necessary, some wherein the being, and some wherein the well being of a duty doth consist; and if you abstract these from them, the duty is worth nothing; take away fervency and humility from prayer, take away faithfulness and fruitfulness from hearing, and take away willingness and delight from obedience, and all will be worth nothing. God regards not only the matter, but the manner. Criton the Papist could say, That God loved better Adverbs than Nouns, not to pray only, but to pray well; Non bonum sed bene agere, Not to do good, but to do it well, is the great wisdom of a Christian; what is the Sun without light, or the fountain without water, or the body without the soul, or wood without fire, or a bullet without a gun, or a Ship without a rudder? no more are words in prayer, without the spirit of prayer. God looks more at the manner, than at the matter of your prayers. And let thus much suffice to confirm the first particular. But, Secondly, That obedience that springs from faith, is an obedience that is only grounded upon the Word of God, the Commands of God, Ps. 119.4, 5. Thou hast commanded us to keep thy precepts diligently; O that my ways were directed to keep thy Statutes! Isa. 8.20. To the Law and to the testimony, if they speak not according to this word, it is because there is no light in them. Mat. 5.18. For verily I say unto you, till heaven and earth pass, one jot or one tittle shall in no wise pass from the Law, till all be fulfilled. John 10.35. If he called them Gods, unto whom the word of God came, and the Scripture cannot be broken. Chap. 12.48. He that rejecteth me, and receiveth not my words, hath one that judgeth him; the word that I have spoken, the same shall judge him in the last day. 2 Tim. 3.16, 17, All Scripture is given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, f●r reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteousness, that the m●n of God may be perfect, throughly furnished unto all good works. Now the reasons why that obedience that springs from faith, is an obedience that is only grounded upon the Word of God; the Commands of God, are these five. And the first is drawn from the supremacy and sovereignty of God, who alone is to prescribe to man his duty; he is our great Lord and Master, he is our Lord and Lawgiver, Isa. 33.22. For the Lord is our Judge, the Lord is our Lawgiver, the Lord is our King, James 4.12. There is one Lawgiver, who is able to save and to destroy; who art thou that judgest another? Now by the Laws of this Lord and Lawgiver, we must square all our actions. Look, as it would be very absurd in a servant to do that work which he thinks meet, and not what his Master commands; so 'tis as absurd for men to think, that God will accept of this or that at their hands, when they can't plead his superscription and authority for what they do. God will one day say to such, Who hath required this at your hands? Isa. 1.12. O Sirs! you must lay the command of God as a foundation for what you do, or else all your buildings, though never so glorious, will certainly totter and fall; in all you do, you must be able to say, Thus saith the Lord; or else after you have done your best, you may be undone for ever. But, Secondly, God's promise and blessing is only annexed to God's command; he that will have the sweet of the promise, and the blessings of heaven, he must look that his obedience be bottomed upon divine commands; in holy actions 'tis not thy performance, nor thy grace, nor thy warmth, nor thy zeal, but the command and the promise that is annexed to it, that will bear thee out; Gal. 4.28. Heb. 6.17. therefore we are called children of the promise, and heirs of the promise. The children of God in all their obedience, should still keep an eye upon the command of God, and the promise of God, as ever they would run the race that is set before them, Heb. 12.1. But, Thirdly, Our obedience must be grounded and bottomed upon a divine command, because of that great corruption, pollution, blindness and darkness which is upon our minds and understandings, which would carry us to what not, if we were not to steer our Christian course by divine commands. Col. 2.20, 21, 22. The Apostle condemns those things which had a show of humility and great mortification, because they were not bottomed upon a divine command; and Christ condemned many practices of the Scribes and Pharisees, because they were not bottomed upon a divine command. As you may see by comparing the 6, 15. and 23. Chapters of Matthew together. But, Fourthly, Our obedience must be bottomed upon a divine command, because else we can never be able to bear up our hearts comfortably, courageously, confidently and resolutely, under all the afflictions, Psal. 44 9— ult. Ezek. 28.12, 22. oppositions, temptations, persecutions and discouragements that we meet with in the ways of the Lord, and in doing the work of the Lord. All the Messages that the Prophets delivered, were still grounded upon a divine command, Acts 4.19, 20. & 5.29. Thus saith the Lord; and this steeled their spirits in the work of the Lord, this made them resolute and undaunted in the midst of all the afflictions and oppositions that they met with: And so 'twas a word of command that raised the spirits, and encouraged the hearts of the Apostles in the work of the Lord, in the face of all the oppositions, threaten and buffet that they met with from the civil powers. You know Absalon lays his bloody command upon his servants, as their highest encouragement to that bloody work of killing his brother Amnon, 2 Sam. 13.28. Now Absalon had commanded his servants, (his Assasines) saying, Mark ye now when Amnons' heart is merry with wine, and when I say unto you, smite Amnon, then kill him, fear not: have not I commanded you? be courageous, and be valiant; or sons of valour, as the Hebrew runs. And so a Christian must lay the command of God before him, as his highest encouragement to do what God requires of him, etc. Fifthly and lastly, Our obedience must be bottomed and grounded upon the commands of God, to difference and distinguish ourselves from all hypocrites, formalists, superstitious and profane persons, whose obedience is sometimes bottomed upon the Traditions of men, and sometimes upon the commandments of men. 'Twas the sin of the Ten Tribes, that they complied with the command of Jeroboam and his Princes, Isa. 29.13, 14. Mat. 15.1 to 10. Mark 7.8 to 10. Hos. 5.11, 12. to worship the Calves at Dan and Bethel; and for this the wrath of the Lord fell heavy upon them. Ephraim is oppressed and broken in judgement, because he willingly walked after the commandment. And sometimes their obedience is bottomed upon the examples of men, sometimes their obedience is bottomed upon the examples of their forefathers and ancestors, Jer. 44, 17, 18, etc. Joh. 7.48, 49. Jer. 10.3. The customs of the people are vain, etc. and sometimes upon the examples of great men. This was that which the Pharisees objected against believing on Christ; Have any of the Rulers, or of the Pharisees believed on him? but this people who knoweth not the Law are cursed. And sometimes they bottom their obedience upon the example of the multitude. This was Demetrius his argument against Paul, Acts 19.26, 27. on the behalf of Diana, that all Asia and the world did worship her; and therefore the doctrine of Paul, that they be no Gods which are made with hands was false, and not to be suffered. This hath always been, and is still the common plea of many, We do but as the most do; and sure a great many eyes can see more than one or two: And hereupon they exclaim against others for their singularity, because they won't do as the rest of their neighbours do. But, Thirdly, That obedience that springs from faith, is a growing obedience, 'tis an abounding obedience; such a man's desires, will, study and labour, is to get up to the highest pitch of obedience, to get up to the highest round in Jacob's ladder, Rev. 2.19. I know thy work, and charity, and service, and faith, and thy patience, and thy works; and the last to be more than the first. The Angel of the Church of Thyatira, 'Tis not every believers happiness always to make a progress in grace. Solomon and Asa, and others, run retrograde. Saints have their winter seasons; they have their decaying times, and withering times, as well as their thriving times, their flourishing times, Rev. 2.4. is commended, First, for his love. 2. For his charity. 3. For his faith. And, 4. For his patience: And in the general course of his life, he daily became more excellent; for his latter works were more than the first, that is, they were more manifest proofs of his constancy, and more worthy of praise than the first. This faithful Pastor is commended for his holy progress in grace and holiness. So Paul, Phil. 3.12. Not as though I had already attained, either were already perfect; but I follow after, if that I may apprehend that for which also I am apprehended of Christ Jesus. Ver. 13. Brethren, I count not myself to have apprehended; but this one thing I do, forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching forth unto those things which are before. Ver. 14. I press towards the mark, for the prize of the high calling of God in Christ Jesus. The Greek word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, doth emphatically import, a pressing, with an eager pursuit after the mark: It is the same word that signifies to persecute, because the earnestness of his spirit in pressing toward the mark, now is the same that it was in the persecution of those that pressed toward the mark before. Look, as good runners, when they come near unto the mark, stretch out their heads, and hands, and whole bodies, to take hold of them that run with them, or of the mark that is before them; so he in his whole race so laboured unto that which was before, as if he were still stretching out his arms to take hold of it. If such a man might have his choice, he would be the most humble, the most holy, the most heavenly, the most mortified, the most patiented, the most contented, the most thankful, the most fruitful, the most active, the most zealous, and the most selfdenying Christian in the world; 1 Pet. 1.15, 16. Mat. 5. if he might have his choice, he would be holy as God is holy, and perfect as his heavenly father is perfect; he would do the will of God on earth, as those Princes of glory, the Angels, do it now in heaven, viz. freely, readily, cheerfully, delightfully, universally, reverentially, and unweariedly, &c. if he might have his choice, Eccl. 9.10. he would exercise every grace, and perform every duty, with all his might; he sees so much excellency and beauty in God and Christ, that he can't be at rest till he be swallowed up in the enjoyment of them; he sees so much excellency in grace, that nothing but perfection of grace will satisfy him; he makes perfection not only his utmost end, but he also labours after perfection with his utmost strength and endeavours. When God is made the one of a man's desires, the one of a man's affections, the one of a man's life and comfort, then will he be the one of a man's endeavours too. That obedience that springs from faith (when 'tis not wintertime with a Christian) is a fruitful obedience, 'tis an abounding obedience, 'tis a progressive obedience. Look, as the mercy and favour of God to a believer, is not stinted nor limited, so the obedience of a believer to God is not stinted or limited; but now the obedience of hypocrites is always stinted and limited; this command they will obey, but not that; this duty they will do, but not that; this work they will attend, but not that, etc. Fourthly, That obedience that springs from faith, is the obedience of a son, not of a slave; 'tis a free voluntary evangelical obedience, and not a legal, servile, and forced obedience, Psal. 110.3. Thy people shall be willing in the day of thy power, in the beauties of holiness; in the Hebrew, 'tis willingness in the plural number, to show their exceeding great willingnesses, Psal. 27.8. When thou saidst, seek ye my face, my heart said unto thee, thy face Lord will I seek. By face is meant, 1. God himself, Exod. 20.3. Before my face; that is, before me. 2. His favour, Jer. 18.17. I will show them the back, and not the face, in the day of their calamity. Now, no sooner had God given forth a word of command, for the Psalmist to seek himself, and to seek his favour, but presently his heart did echo to that command; Thy face Lord will I seek. So Jer. 3.22. Return ye back-sliding children, and I will heal your back-slidings; behold, we come unto thee, for thou art the Lord our God. Every gracious soul hath the duplicate of God's Law in his heart, and is willingly cast into the mould of his Word, Rom. 6.17. Ye have obeyed from the heart, the form of doctrine that hath been delivered to you, or whereto you were delivered (as the words may be read) They did not only obey, but they obeyed from the heart, their hearts were in their obedience, Psal. 40.8. I delight to do thy will, O my God yea, thy Law is within my heart, Col. 1.12. Phil. 1.8. Jer. 31.33. or in the midst of my bowels, as the Hebrew runs; these note the tenderest affections. There is the counterpane of the Law written, yea, printed upon every gracious heart; a godly man will live and die with the Law of God stamped upon his heart. O ●eata Apocalypsis (said that Martyr, catching up the Revelation that was cast into the same fire with him to be burnt) O Blessed Revelation! how happy am I to be burned with thee in my hands? It was Christ's meat and drink to do his Father's will; and the same mind is in all the Saints, John 4. Phillip 2.5. Rom. 7.22. as was in Christ Jesus: They delight in the Law of God after the inward man. True obedience flows from principles of heartiness and love within, and not from by and base respects and ends, that are carnal and worldly. It is observable, that John's obedience was as ample and as large as God's command, 2 King. 10.30. And the Lord said unto Jehu, because thou hast done well in executing that which is right in mine eyes, and hast done unto the house of Ahab according to all that was in mine heart, thy children of the fourth generation, shall sit on the throne of Israel. And yet because his heart was not in his obedience, and because he did not purely act for God, but for himself, that he might bring about his own designs, he met with a revenge instead of a reward; as you may see in that, Hos. 1.4. And the Lord, said unto him, call his name Jezreel, for yet a little while, and I will avenge the blood of Jezreel upon the house of Jehu. Jehu's heart was not in his obedience, he had a dispensatory conscience; for though he rooted out Baal's worship, yet the golden Calves must still continue: He destroyed Idolaters, but not Idolatry; and this carnal policy brought down vengeance and misery upon him and his posterity. Artaxerxes goes far, Ezra 7.23. Whatsoever is commanded by the God of heaven, let it be diligently done. To what a height doth this Heathen Prince rise? He will do anything for God, he will do every thing for God that he requires. But mark, what is that which moves him to it? Is it love to God? is it delight in God? O no! all his obedience proceeded from nothing but fear of wrath and vengeance, as is evident in the latter part of the verse; For why should there be wrath upon the Realm of the King, and of his Sons? Or, as the Hebrew runs, Why should there be boiling or foaming anger, great indignation? As it is rendered and made the utmost degree of divine displeasure, in that Deut. 29.28. Some read these words, Against the Realm of the King and his Sons, as distinct one from another, and not depending one upon another, thus; Against the Realm, the King and his Sons; and this reading the Original will bear: And this reading shows, That as the King feared God's wrath against himself, so also against his Realm and Children; and accordingly he was the more studious and careful to escape it; blind nature was afraid of divine wrath, ●zek. 26.25, 26, 27. and therefore was the more sedulous to prevent it. O, but now a true child of God, he has the Law of God written, not only in his understanding, but also in his heart and affections; and this is that which makes his obedience to be pleasing and delightful to him; so that if he might be free from the injunctions and directions of the Word (with the servant in the Law) he would not value such a liberty; Exod. 21.4, 5, 6, etc. he would not swear, nor lie, nor be drunk, nor whore, nor dissemble, nor cheat, nor run into all excess of riot if he might, because in his soul he has a principle of grace, and an inward contrariety and antipathy against it; Eccl. 9.2. he would not cease to hear, to read, to pray, to meditate if he might, because his soul takes a delight & sweet complacency in these things; there is a principle within him agreeable to the precept without him, which makes all religious performances to be easy and pleasurable to him. Look, as the eye delights in seeing, and the ear in hearing, so a gracious heart (except when 'tis under a cloud of dissertion, or in the School of temptation, or under some grievous tormenting afflictions, or sadly worsted by some prevalent corruption) delights in obeying: Actions of nature, you know, are actions of delight; and so are all those actions that spring from a new nature, a divine nature, etc. Fifthly, That obedience that springs from faith, is a transforming obedience; it mightily altars and changes a man, from impurity to purity, from sin to sanctity, 2 Cor. 3.18. Rom. 12.1, 2. from unrighteousness to righteousness, from earthly-mindedness, to heavenly-mindedness, from pride to humility, from hypocrisy to sincerity, etc. Such as please themselves with this, That they are no changelings, and that they are whatever they were, Acts 8.13. these are still in the gall of bitterness, and bond of iniquity. That obedience of the Romans, Rom. 16.19. which was said to have come abroad unto all men, was an exemplary obedience, and a transforming obedience. Certainly, Gospel-obedience is a grace of much worth, and of great force upon the whole man; for when it is once wrought in the heart, it worketh a conformity to all God's holy will. But having spoken more largely of this in my other writings, let this touch here suffice, etc. Sixthly, That obedience that springs from faith, is a constant obedience, 'tis a fixed and resolved obedience, not in respect of practice and continued acts (for in many things we offend all. Ja●. 3.2. Eccl. 7.20. Prov. 20 9 1 Kings 8.46. 1 Joh. 1.8. Psal. 17.3. There is not a just man upon the earth, that doth good and sinneth not: Who can say I have made my heart clean, I am pure from my sin? There is no man that sinneth not; If we say we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us.) etc. But in respect of a Christians sincere desires, bend of will, purpose of heart, resolution of soul, and faithful endeavours, Psal. 119.20. My soul breaketh for the longing that it hath unto thy judgements at all times. Ver. 112. I have inclined my heart to keep thy Statutes always, even to the end. Ver. 33. Teach me, O Lord! the way of thy Statutes, and I shall keep it unto the end. Job 17.9. The righteous shall hold on his way, and he that hath clean hands, shall be stronger and stronger. So Isa. 40.29, 30, 31. Job 2.3. Mark, the renewed man hath at all times a desire to fear the name of the Lord, Neh. 1.11. A will to live honestly at all times. Heb. 13.18. And it hath some endeavours and exercise of Spirit, to keep always a conscience void of offence towards God and men, Acts 24.16. The Israelites in their marches toward the holy Land, were many times interrupted by divers enemies; but yet they advanced in their course, as soon as they could get rid of their enemies: So though the believer be many times interrupted in the course of his obedience, by many fierce temptations, and strange working of corruptions; yet after the temptation is over, the believer returns to the course of obedienc● with greater forwardness, 2 Cor. 7.1. and with redoubled strength and courage, and in the end perfects his course of holiness in the fear of the Lord. Mark, the appearing motion, and walking of an unregenerate man in a way of righteousness and holiness, is but artificial from the engine of hypocrisy, and self-interest, like the flying of Ar●hitus his artificial Dove; and therefore having no inward principle of life, it en●●●eth not; but the motion and walking of a man, renewed by grace in ways of holiness and righteousness, is like the natural living motion of birds, it continues as long as life continues, and as every thing in motion, the nearer it comes to the centre, the more swiftly it moves: So the nearer the believer, through time to his rest in heaven, the more propense he is in all his motions towards God; he forge is the things that are behind, and reacheth forth unto those things that are before. Phil. 3.13. That obedience that springs from faith, is a fixed and resolved obedience, like David's worthies, it will break through an host of Philistines, through an Army of difficulties, impediments and discouragements, that it may be found doing the will of God. To make this a little more clearly and fully out, observe with me these few things. First, No contrary commands of men, shall take this man off from his obedience to the commands of God, Acts 4.19. Chap. 5.29. etc. Secondly, No stream of evil examples, no current of corrupt times, shall bear them down in ways of obedience, Josh. 24.15. I and my household will serve the Lord, though all Israel should serve Idols. And Noah was upright with God, and walked with God in his generation, when the whole world was overspread with violence, and all flesh had corrupted their ways, Gen. 6.9. Chap. 7.1. Thirdly, No worldly profit or advantage shall bribe this man from his obedience, Heb. 11.8. Abraham will obey and follow God, though he forsakes all the benefits and contentments of his native Country, and of his Father's house, not knowing where his lot should fall, etc. Fourthly, No carnal disputes or reasonings with flesh and blood shall dissuade him from his obedience, Heb. 11.7. Noah might have raised many objections against that strange attempt of building an Ark, a work of an hundred and twenty years' continuance; but Noah waves all disputes, and falls upon building of the Ark, according to the command of God. So Paul, as soon as he was converted, he was commanded by God to preach to the Gentiles; he might have made abundance of objections against that service, but instead of objecting, he falls closely to his Master's work, and never consults with flesh and blood, Gal. 1.15, 16, 17. Fifthly, No flood of natural affection shall hinder them in the way of their obedience. When God commanded Abraham to offer up Isaac as a Burnt-Offering, he goes about it readily, and never acquaints Sarah with it, lest she should have hindered him in his obedience, and he goes three day's journey to effect it, Gen. 22. compared with Heb. 11.17, 18, 19 When God commands, Abraham will not stick at it, though it be to offer up a Son, a natural Son, and not an adopted son; an only Son, and not one of many; a Son of the Freewoman, and not of the Bondwoman; a Son of his old age; a Son of the Promise; a Son in whom all the Nations of the earth should be blessed; a Son of his love and delight; a Son that made the good old man laugh and be merry; (Isaac signifies laughter) a Son that was grown up to some years, witness the Wood of the offering that he laid upon him, Gen. 22.6, 7. And this was the commendation of Levi, By Urim and Thummim, some understand sincerity of life, and soundness of doctrine. Deut. 33.8, 9 And of Levi he said, let thy Thummim and thy Urim be with thy holy one, (Urim and Thummim, signify light and perfection according to their best derivation in the Hebrew tongue, and they are here put in the plural number, lights and perfections, to note the plenty as well as the excellency of divine Graces) whom thou didst prove at Massah, and with whom thou didst strive at the waters of Meribah. Who said unto his Father and to his Mother, I have not seen him, neither did he acknowledge his Brethren, nor knew his own children. This relates to that Heroical fact of the Levites, Exod. 32.26.29. when at the commandment of Moses they slew their Idolatrous Brethren that had Worshipped the Golden Calf, not sparing those that were most nearest allied to them, but did execute God's Judgements upon Parents, Brethren and Children, as if they had been mere strangers to them: the Levites were so impartial in God's cause, as not to acknowledge either Father or Mother, Brother or Children against his Command. Natural affections are strong, but supernatural obedience is stronger. Some have well observed that the Married Martyrs, who were Parents of many children (as Rogers, Watts, Guest, Rawlins, etc.) suffered with most alacrity. Sixthly, No terrors, no threats, no reproaches, no afflictions, no oppositions, no persecutions, no bonds, no banishments, no dangers, no deaths, shall deter them or affright them from their obedience; as will evidently appear by comparing of these Scriptures together, Psal. 44.16. to 21. Acts 20.23, 24. Acts 21.12, 13. and chap. 24.14. Dan. 3.14— 19 Rev. 12.11. This is most evident in the Histories of the ten Persecutions, and in all other Histories, both of a former and a later date, etc. Physicians observe a difference 'twixt the natural and preternatural heat in men's bodies; the preternatural heat, which ariseth from distemper, may be more for the present, but as it exceeds for measure, so it abates for time, because the natural heat is a more equal and moderate, and durable heat, every part hath an equal share, and it is not extreme, and yet it continues. Thus it is with Hypocrites and upright persons in the matter of obedience. The hypocrite may (in a kind of preternatural heat) in a hot fit, in a present heat, fall upon hearing, and reading, and praying, and reforming of his Family, and upon leaving of this sin and that; and upon casting off this vain company and that, and upon associating of himself with this good company and that. B●t this hot fit does not last, the cold fit takes him again, and then he shakes hands with all his duties, and loses all his good inclinations, and lays aside all his warm resolutions. Job 27.8, 9 Hosea 6.4. Psal. 78.36, 37. Will the Hypocrite pray always? Ephraim's goodness was as a morning Cloud, which soon vanisheth, and as the early dew which is soon dried up by the Sunbeams; they were both false and fickle, unsteady and unstable; constant only in inconstancy; their hearts were never right with God, for they were not steadfast in his Covenant. There are four times wherein an Hypocrite may express a great readiness and forwardness to Religious duties. First, When he is under terrors and distress of Conscience; O how for a little ease! a little rest! a little quiet! a little comfort! what wont the Hypocrite do? etc. Secondly, When he is under sore and heavy afflictions, Hos. 5.15. So Pharaoh and Ahab, etc. In their affliction they will seek me early. Isa. 26.16. Lord in trouble have they visited thee, they poured out a Prayer when thy chastening was upon them. Psal. 78.34. When he slew them, than they sought him. It is a reproach to some, No Penny, No Paternoster. And it is a shame to others, No Plague, no Paternoster; no punishment, no Prayer, etc. Thirdly, When Religion is in fashion, when 'tis a credit to be a Professor, and when Profession is the Highway to profit and preferment; in the warm Summer of prosperity, when there is no hazard, no danger, no loss to be a Christian, who then so forward in Religious duties as the Hypocrite? but when the Sun of Persecution is up, than he falls away, Matth. 13.5, 6. Fourthly, When others presence, counsel, and examples, have an influence upon them, 2 Chron. 24.2, 17-23. O now they keep close duties! Joash did that which was right in the sight of the Lord all the days of Jehoiada the Priest; but when Jehoiada was dead, Joash serves Groves and Idols, and turns a deaf ear to those Prophets that testified against him, and gives Zechariah the Son of Jehoiada his Passport out of the World, for inveighing against his evil manners, and the wicked courses of his Princes and People. Whilst the good Judges lived, the Israelites kept close to the service of God, Judges 2.7. And the people served the Lord all the days of Joshua, and all the days of the Elders that outlived Joshuah, who had seen all the great works of the Lord that he did for Israel. Judges 17.6. Chap. 21.25. But when the good Judges were dead, the Israelites did what was right in their own eyes, every man's lust was his Law. Whilst Moses was present, there was no talking of a Golden Calf, but no sooner was his back turned, but the Israelites make a Golden Calf, and worship it when they had done, Exod. 32. 1-9. etc. But now mark, that obedience that springs from Faith, that is a constant obedience, that is constant in opposition to fits and starts, and imports the course and bend of a Christians life, which is always to walk with God, to cleave to God, to follow God, and to obey God. But, Seventhly and lastly, That obedience that springs from Faith, is directed to right ends. Gospel obedience has always Gospel ends atttending of it. Quest. What are they? Answ. They are these nine. First, To testify our thankfulness to the Lord for all his favours and benefits that we have received from him, Psal. 103.1, 2, 3, 4. Psal. 116.12. etc. Secondly, To recover the Image of God again to the height of what we are able. The first Adam lost the Image of God by his disobedience. Now this Image of God we recover again in Christ our second Adam; but so, as that the more enlightened, the more holy, the more humble, the more heavenly, the more righteous, the more gracious, and the more obedient we are, Ephes. 4.24. the more we recover of this Image of God, which consists in knowledge, righteousness, and true holiness. Now saith the Believer, my intent is to recover that precious Image of God which I lost in the first Adam, and therefore do I labour to come up to the highest pitches of obedience, because the higher I rise in my obedience, the more I shall recover of the lost Image of God; I know that I lost this Image by partaking of the disobedience and pollution of the first Adam; and I know that I have recovered in part the same Image, by partaking of the obedience and holiness of the second Adam: And I yet further know, that the more holy and obedient I am, the more I shall be like to that God, that is holiness itself, and the more I shall recover of that blessed Image, which consists in perfect holiness. Thirdly, not for the justification of their persons, for that is only by Christ's complete obedience, which is made theirs by Faith, 1 Cor. 1.30. Col. 2.10. But for the testification of their justifying Faith, according to that of the Apostle, Jam. 2.17, 18, 26. etc. Fourthly, That they may imitate the Lord Jesus, that they may be the more conformable to Christ their head, who proposes his holiness to Believers as a pattern for them to follow, as a Copy for them to write after, 1 John 2.6▪ He that saith he abideth in him, Matth. 11.28, 29. ought himself also to walk even as he walked. Now saith the Believer, O how holy, how humble, how heavenly, how meek, how compassionate, how zealous, how exemplary, how convincing, how winning, how obedient was he, when in this World! and therefore O my Soul! look to it, that thou makest it thy business, thy work, thy Heaven, to imitate the Lord Jesus to the utmost that thou art able to ●each too. Fifthly, Though not for the obtaining of Salvation, that being made sure to us by Christ, yet for the obtaining of Assurance of Salvation, and for the making of our Calling and Election sure, according to that word, 2 Pet. 1.5— 11. Sixthly, That they may keep up their communion with God; for though the Union the Saints have with God by Christ, depends wholly upon that which is without, viz. their being married to Christ, and clothed with his Righteousness; yet the Communion which the Saints have with God through the Spirit, hath much dependence upon a Saints walking, and upon his obedience: So that if a Saint shall dare to walk carnally and loosely, Jer. 3.14. Isa. 49.1, 2. though he shall not break the Marriage-knot, and lose his union, yet he will by such sinful practices grieve the Spirit, and lose his communion with God. But on the other hand, when a Believer walks spiritually, graciously, obedientially, O what sweet communion! what delightful communion! what high communion! what commodious communion! what Soul-satisfying, Soul-ravishing, Soul-filling, Soul-contenting communion with God does he then enjoy! When the Child walks wisely, and obedientially before his Father, what sweet and delightful converses and communion is there between the Father and the Child? but if the child walk foolishly, stubbornly, rebelliously, disobediently, the prudent Father will carry it severely, strangely, frowningly, and at a distance, though his heart be still full of love to, his child; and though he won't disinherit him, yet he want be familiar with him. The application is easy, etc. Seventhly, To keep down the body, and to bring it into subjection to the soul, 1 Cor. 9.27. But I keep under my body, and bring it into subjection. By spiritual exercises the Apostle d d subdue his flesh to the obedience and discipline of the spirit; in former times they had several exercises, as wrestling, and running for the prize. Now, such as were slow, pursy, unwieldy, and lazy, were cashiered; they would not admit such to be of their society or company, who wrestled and run for the prize: Them that were admitted to those exercises, kept their bodies at an under, and did not pamper their bodies with dainties and delicates. To these the Apostle alludes, of idleness there comes no goodness; when the spirit is not acting in that which is good, that the flesh may be kept under, the flesh will take an advantage to be very active in those things that are evil, that the spirit may be kept under; the flesh is like an unruly beast, which through rest, idleness, and high feeding, grows wild and masterless. Now, the only way to tame this beast, is to work him hard; so the way of ways to keep the body under, is to keep up the soul as much as may be, in the full exercise of holiness and obedience; such as have most pampered their bodies, Deut. 32.13, 14, 15, 16, 17. Jer. 5.7, 8, etc. Rev. 3 16, 17, 18. have been the greatest enemies to their own souls; and how many are there this day, that pamper their bodies, but starve their souls? that adorn their bodies, but defiles their soul? that trick and trim up their bodies with gold, and silver, and silks, whilst their souls are naked of all grace, holiness and goodness? like the Laodiceans of old. The body itself, if you set too high a price upon it, will make a cheap soul; a man may be as happy in Russet, as in Tissue; and he is certainly an unhappy man, whose outside is his best side; our bodies are but dirt handsomely tempered, and artificially form; we derive our pedigree from the dust, and are a kin to clay; and therefore we need not scruple the keeping of it under by holy exercises, and by all ways of Gospel-obedience, etc. Eighthly, To the profit and advantage, both of sinners and Saints; 1. To convince sinners, to silence sinners, and to stop the mouths of sinners; let but one man that walks wisely, humbly, circumspectly, convincingly, exemplarily, blamelessly, come into a Town, a Parish, a Family, made up of drunkards, swearers, Sabbath-breakers, whoremasters, etc. and his holy walking, will convince them, and condemn them, 1 Pet. 2.12, 15. Chap. 3.13, 16. 2. To the profit, advantage and encouragement of the Saints. The strict exact walking Christian, provokes the slight lose Christian to mend his manners, and to order his steps and conversation aright; and the lively active Christian, puts the dull, heavy, sluggish Christian to a blush, and spurs and quickens him up to a more lively walking with God; and the warm, flaming, zealous, burning Christian, puts heat and warmth into the cold, formal, frozen Christian; and the free, liberal, bountiful Christian, provokes others to be free, noble, and liberal, for the supply of the necessities of the Saints, 2 Cor. 9.1, 2. Chap. 8.1, 2, 3, 4, 19, 20, etc. The ninth and last (though not the least end) is the honour and glory of the great God. God's grace is the spring, and God's glory is the end of all a Christians obedience; God's glory is the ultimate end, Rom. 14.7, 8. Phil. 1.20, 21. the primary end, the universal end, the Sea to which all a Christians actions, like so many Rivers, move and bend: 'Tis true, many poor, low, mean, base ends, may creep into a Christians performances; but here mark, 1. They are disallowed. 2. They are loathed and abhorred. 3. They are resisted and striven against. 4. They are lamented and mourned over. 5. The gracious soul would willingly be rid of them; if a Christian might have his choice, he would never be troubled with any base end any more. Beloved, you must always distinguish between a man's settled and his suggested ends; a man's settled end may be one things, and his suggested end another thing. Now for ever remember this; That the great God always makes a judgement of men according to their settled ends, according to the universal frame of their spirits, and not according to those ends that may be suggested to them, by the world, the flesh, or the devil. It is in this case, as it may be with a man that shoots at a mark, he aims aright at the mark, but his elbow may meet with a jog, which may carry the arrow quite another way than what he intended; or as it is with a man that is sailing to such a Haven, or to such a Harbour, he steers a right course by his Compass, but the winds blowing contrary, and the Sea running high, he is forced into such a creek, or such a Harbour, which he never intended, etc. Is it requisite for the clearing of the sincerity of our hearts, Qu. that we have a continual eye to the glory of God in every action we do? First, Ans. You must distinguish between an actual aim and intention, and an habitual aim and intention. For the first, an actual aim and intention of the Spirit, in every particular action that a man doth to the glory of God, is utterly impossible, whilst we carry about us with a body of sin and death: The Angels and spirits of just men made perfect, do thus actually aim at the glory of God in all they do; but 'tis a work that will be too high and too hard for us, whilst we are here in a polluted estate. This was so high a mark, that Adam missed it in his innocency; no wonder then if we often miss it in our sinful state and condition. But, Secondly, There is an habitual inclination in us in every action we do, to aim at the honour and glory of God, though there be not the actual intention of the spirit in every action we do; it is with us, as with a man travelling towards a Town or City, he thinks in the morning to go to such a Town, such a place, where he purposes to lie the first night, and therefore sets forth towards it; and though he doth not think of this every step he takes, yet it's his purpose in his journey, to rest there at night; or as it is with a man that comes to Church, his end is to hear the Word of the Lord; yet in every word he hears spoken, he hath not the thought of his end upon his spirit, but he is there by virtue of his first intention: So here, though in every particular there be not an intention of spirit to levelly this or that action to the glory of God, yet it is the main drift and habitual scope of a man's spirit, that God's glory may be the end of all his actions. Thirdly, There is a mediate, and there is an immediate eyeing or looking to the glory of God; as when I forbear such or such a sin, because God by such a command hath forbidden it, or I do such or such a duty, because God hath commanded it. Now, in eyeing of the command of God, I eye the glory of God immediately, though not mediately. But, Fourthly, In some particular or special cases, I ought actually to eye the glory of God: As, 1. In some eminent or extraordinary service that I am to do for Christ. Or, 2. In some special testimony that I am called to give for Christ or his Gospel. Or, 3. In some great thing that I am called to suffer for Christ, or his Gospel, or his interest. But, Fifthly, The more a Christian actually eyes the glory of God in all he does, the more, 1. He glorifies God. 2. The nearer you are the life of heaven, and the more you act like the glorious Angels, and the spirits of just men made perfect. 3. The more will be your joy, comfort and peace, both in life and death, and in the day of your account. 4. The more strong will be your confidence and assurance, that your spiritual estate is good, and that you shall be saved for ever. 5. The better you will be able to bear up under all the false, hard, and sour censures of this world. 6. The more you will be temptation proof. 7. The more glorious and weighty will be your crown of glory at last; he shall be highest in heaven, who has actually aimed most at the glory of God in this lower world. And thus you see how you may know whether your obedience is such an obedience as springs from faith, or 〈◊〉 Now, if upon trial you shall find, that your obedience is the obedience of faith, than you may safely and groundedly conclude, that you have a saving work of God upon your hearts. But, Fourthly, A gracious heart is an uniform heart. Ubiquity is a sure evidence of integrity. He that is truly good, will be good in bad times, and in the worst of places; Psal. 119.112. 1 John 3.9. Hosea 6 4. principles of grace and holiness, are lasting, yea, everlasting; they are not like the morning cloud, nor the early dew. A gracious soul will be steady and fixed in his principles, in the worst times, in the worst places, and under variety of dispensations; let times and places be what they will, he will not dishonour his God, nor blemish his profession, nor wound his conscience to preserve his safety, or to secure his liberty. An upright man is a right man: So 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Jashar is rendered by the Septuagint, Judg. 17.6. He is one that will not be bowed or bend by the sinful customs or examples of the times and places where he lives. Gen. 6.9. Abraham was righteous in Chaldea, and Noah was perfect in his generation, though it was the worst in the world; and Lot was just in Sodom, Job 1. and Job was upright in the Land of Uzz, which was a place of much profaneness and superstition; and Nehemiah was courageous and zealous in Damascus, and Daniel was holy, yea, eminently and exemplarily holy in Babylon. The several generations wherein these holy men lived, were wholly devoted to wickedness and superstition, and yet these precious, gracious souls had wholly devoted themselves to the Lord and his service: Psal. 119.20. So David, My soul breaketh for the longing it hath to thy judgements at all times! Let the times be never so dangerous, licentious, superstitious, idolatrous or erroneous, yet David's heart was strongly carried forth to God's judgements; that is, to his Word (for under this title, Judgements, you are to understand the whole Word of God.) So there were some in Sardis that were of the same spirit, with the worthies last mentioned, Rev. 3.4. Thou hast a few names, even in Sardis, which have not defiled their garments, and they shall walk with me in white, for they are worthy. Psal. 119.1, 2, 3. In polluting times pure hearts will keep themselves pure; a holy heart will keep himself undefiled, even in defiling times, Rev. 14.4. These are they which were not defiled with women; when others are besmeared all over, Dan. 3.17, 18, 19, 20. he will keep his garments white and clean. The three Children, or rather the three Champions, were so highly resolved to keep themselves pure from the abominations of their day, that it was neither Nebuchadnezars music that would flatter them, nor his fiery furnace that could scare them from their God, or from their Duty, or from their Religion. Let the times never so often turn, you shall find that he that is really holy, he will be holy under every turn; no turns shall turn him out of a way of holiness, Job. 17.9. The righteous shall hold on his way, and he that hath clean hands, shall be stronger and stronger. The Laurel keeps its freshness and greeness in the Winter season; a gracious soul is semper idem, let the wind, Psal. 125.1. and the world and the times, turn which way they will, a gracious soul for the main, will still be the same; he is like mount Zion which cannot be removed, Job 27.5, 6. Till I die, I will not remove my integrity from me; my righteousness I hold fast, and will not let it go; my heart shall not reproach me so long as I live. A gracious heart is (in some measure) like the heart of God, without variableness or shadow of changing. That Christian that is not for substance, Jam. 1.17. the same that once he was, was never what he ought to be. A gracious heart is firm and fixed for God and godliness, both in prosperity and in adversity; take him among the good or among the bad, take him in storms or calms, in Winter nights or in Summer days, take him among friends or foes, take him at bed or board, take him in health or sickness, take him in an Ordinance or out of an Ordinance, take him in his work or take him at his recreations, take him in his commerce or in his converse, take him living or take him dying, and you shall still find that the bias of his soul is still God-wards, Christ-wards, Holiness-wards, and Heaven-wards. A gracious man will stand his ground, Josh. 24.15. Psal. 112.7. Mal. 3.6. The poor Heathen could say, that change of place causeth not any change of mind, etc. Calum non ani●●● 〈◊〉 qui tr●●●a●e c●rrunt Horat. l. 1. ep. 11. and hold his own in all changes, his heart being fixed upon an unchangeable God. The Philosophers good man is (Tetra-gonos) four-sqaure; cast him where you will, like a die, he falls always square and sure: So cast a gracious man where you will, and into what company you will, and into what condition you will, yet still he falls sure and square for God and godliness. Let the times be never so sad, nor never so bad, yet a gracious soul will keep his hold; he will let all go, he will let every thing go, before he will let his God go, or his Religion go, or his integrity go. A gracious Christian is like gold. Now, cast gold into the fire, or into the water; cast it upon the dunghill, or into the kennel; cast it among the poor, or among the rich; among the religious, or among the superstitious, etc. yet still it is gold, still it retains its purity and excellency: So cast a gracious Christian (who is the only golden Christian in the world) into what condition you will, and into what company you will, yet still he will retain his purity, his innocency Lapidaries tell us of the Chelydonian stone, that it will retain its virtue and lustre, no longer than it is enclosed in gold: A fit emblem of an hypocrite, who is only good while he is enclosed in golden prosperity, safety and felicity. An unsound Christian like green timber shrinks, Mat. 13.6. when the Sun of persecution shines hot upon him. The heat of fiery trials, cools the courage of an unsound Christian. If you put water into a Tub, it will have the shape of the Tub that you put it into; or if you put water into a glass, it will have the shape of the glass you put it into. This is the very picture of an unsound heart; but a sincere Christian is like a massy vessel of gold, that keeps its own shape and figure, at all times, in all places, and in all companies; unsound hearts, they will be righteous among the righteous, and licentious among the licentious; they will be as the company is amongst which they are cast; with the good they will be good, and with the bad they will be bad; with the zealous they will be zealous, and with the superstitious they will be superstitious; and with the lukewarm they will be lukewarm; they are for all times and tides, they are for any turn that will serve their turn, they are for any Mode that will bring either profit or pleasure to them; they are like Alcibiades, of whom it was said, that he was (●●●nium horarum homo) a man for all times; for he could swagger it at Athens, and take any pains at Thebes; he could live most sparingly at Lacidaemon, and bib among the Thracians, and hunt among the Persians; they are like the Chameleon, ready to change their hue with every one they converse with; they are like Polypus, that resembleth every stone that it sticketh to; or they are like the Buskins anciently used in Tragedies, Lucian. that would serve either leg alike; they are as fit for one society as another; or like the Players that used them, such as acting Princely parts, wear royal apparel, keep state, and demean themselves gravely and soberly, Sen. ep. 76, etc. so long as they are in public view upon the Stage; but when they have done acting, are no sooner off the stage, but they pass presently into another habit, and retain neither Princely behaviour nor apparel, but are most beggarly, base and debauched, either in private among themselves, or among their companions like themselves. Unsound hearts can accommodate themselves to the times, and comply with them what ever they be; with Proteus' they will transform themselves into all shapes, as the times change so will they; what the times favour, that they will favour; what the times commend, that they will commend; what the times cry up and admire, that they will cry up and admire; and what the times frown upon and condemn, that they will frown upon and condemn. Look as curious and well-drawn Pictures seem to turn their eyes every way, and to smile upon every one that looks upon them; so these can turn with the times, they can look as the times look, and smile as the times smile, they can say with the times, and sail with the times; sometimes they can act one part, and sometimes another part, as the times require; if the times require a large profession, they can make it; if the times be speak them to leave their Religion at the Church door, they can leave it. But now, a sincere Christian, he will labour to be so much the more gracious, by how much the more the times are licentious. A sincere Christian is like gold; if you cast it into the fire, it will not waste; if you throw it into the water, it will not rust, it will retain its own purity and excellency, wherever you dispose of it. But Fifthly, a gracious heart sets himself most against his darling-sin, his bosom-sin; against the sin of his complexion, constitution, Heb. 12.1. inclination, and calling, etc. There is some one sinful quality that is more predominant in the heart of man, Paceatum in delitiis. Aug. than any other; there is some one Dalilah, some one darling sin that a man is more apt to play withal, and to hug in own bosom, than any other; there is usually some one sin that is favourite, some one sin which the heart is most fond of, and which the bias of the soul doth most naturally and strongly incline towards. Pliny writeth of some families, that had privy marks on their bodies, peculiar to those of that line; and so every man hath as it were his privy sin, which is most justly and peculiarly called his; as in a ground that lieth untilled amongst the great variety of weeds, there is usually some master weed, one among the rest that is rifer and ranker than all the rest: And as it is in the body of man, that although in some degree or other, more or less, there be a mixture of all the four elements, not any of them wholly wanting, yet there is some one of them predominant that gives the denomination; in regard whereof some are said to be of a sanguine, some of a phlegmatic, some of a choleric, and some of a melancholic constitution. Now thus 'tis in the souls of men; though there be a general mixture and medley of all evil and corrupt qualities, yet is there some one usually that is paramount, more powerful and prevalent, that swayeth and showeth forth itself more eminently, and more evidently than any other of them do; and from this therefore, more frequently and apparently discovering itself, is the denomination wont to be given, whereby some are styled ambitious, some lascivious, some envious, some malicious, some haughty, some hasty, and the like; or as in every man's body there is a seed and principle of death, yet some are more prone to die of a Fever than of a Dropsy, and others are more prone to die of a Dropsy than of a Fever, etc. So though original sin hath spread itself over all our noble and ignoble parts, yet every man hath his particular inclinations, to one kind of sin rather than another; and this may properly be called a man's own sin, his own evil way. Now mark, a gracious heart makes most head, most opposition against his darling sin, against his complexion sin, against those sins that were once as dear to him as his right hand, or as his right eye, or as Dalilah was to Samson. Herodias to Herod, Isaac to Abraham, and Joseph to Jacob, Psal. 18.23. I was also upright before him, and I kept myself from mine iniquity: That is, from my darling sin, whereunto I was most inclined and addicted; what this bosom sin was that he kept himself from, In that, 1 Sam. 21.2, 8. he tells three or four round lies, and the like he did in that, 1 Sam. 27.8, 10. is hard to say: Some suppose his darling sin was lying, dissembling, for it is certain he often fell into this sin, Psal. 119.29. Remove from me the way of lying; others suppose it to be some secret iniquity, which was only known to God and his own conscience; others say it was uncleanness, and that therefore he prayed, that God would turn away his eyes from beholding vanity, Psal. 119.37. Others juge it to be that sin of disloyalty which Saul and his Courtiers falsely charged upon him: Well, be it this or that, it is enough for our purpose, that his heart did rise against that very sin, that either by custom or complexion, or some strong inclination, he was most naturally apt, ready and prone to fall into. This is the laying of the axe to the root of the Tree; and by this practice David gives a clear proof of the integrity of his heart. Jer. 17.1, 2. Hos. 2. ●. Isa. 31.6, 7. & 44.9. etc. Idolatry was the darling sin of the people of Israel; they called their Idols delectable or desirable things; they did dearly affect, and greatly delight in their Idols: But when the Lord in the day of his power, wrought savingly and gloriously upon their hearts, Oh! how did their hatred and indignation against their Idols rise? as you may see, Isa. 30.22. Ye shall defile also the covering of thy graven images of silver, and the ornament of thy moiten images of gold; thou shalt cast them away as a menstruous cloth, thou sha●t say unto it, get thee hence. They were so delighted and enamoured with their Idols, that they would lavish gold out of the bag (or they waste or spend riotously, as the Hebrew runs) that they might richly deck them up, Isa. 46.6. After the return of the Jews out of Babylon, they so hated and aborted Idols, that in the times of the Romans, they chose rather to die, than to suffer the Eagle, which was the imperial arms to be set up in their Temple. and set them forth in the greatest glory and bravery. O, but when the Lord should make a glorious turn upon their spirits, than they should readily and roundly deface, defile and disgrace their Idols, than they should hate and abhor them, than they should so detest and loathe them, that in a holy indignation, they should cast them away as a menstruous cloth, and say unto them, get ye hence, pack, be gone, I will never have any more to do with you. And so in that, Isa. 2.20. In that day (that is, in the day of his people, vers. 17.) A man shall cast his idols of silver, and h●s idols of gold, which they made, each one for himself to worship, to the Moles and to the Bats: In the day when God should exalt himself in the souls of his people, and before the eyes of his people, they should express such disdain and indignation against their Idols, that they should not take only those made of Trees and Stones, but even their most precious and costly Idols; those that were made of silver and gold, and cast them to the Moles and to the Bats; that is, they should cast them into such blind holes, and into such dark, filthy, nasty and dusty corners, as Moles make under ground, and as Bats roost in: So when Christ, and grace, and holiness comes to be set up in men's hearts and lives, than all their darling sins, their bosom lusts, which are their Idols of silver, and their Idols of gold, these are with a holy indignation cast to the Moles and to the Bats, they are so loathed, abhorred, abandoned and cashiered, that they desire they may be for ever buried in oblivion, and never see the light more. Idols were Ephraim's bosom sin, Hos. 4.17. Ephraim is joined (or glued, as the word signifies) to Idols, let him alone. But when the dew of grace fell upon Ephraim, as it did, in Chap. 14.5, 6, 7. Then saith Ephraim, What have I any more to do with Idols? ver. 8. Now Ephraim loathes his Idols as much or more than before he loved them, he now abandons and abominates them; though before he was as closely glued to them as the wanton is glued to his Dalilah, or as the enchanter is glued to the Devil, from whom by no means he is able to stir; (as the words in the fountain imports) When it was the day of the Lords power upon Ephraim, than Ephraim cries out, What have I any more to do with Idols? O, I have had to do with them too long, and too much already: O, how doth my foul now rise against them? how do I detest and abhor them? Deut. 13.6, 7, 8, 9 Surely I will never have more to do with them. The Scripture tells us, That if father, or mother, or brother, or sister, or kinsman, or friend, should go about to draw a man from God, his hand should be first upon him, to put him to death. Now, bosom sins, complexion sins, they seek to draw a man's heart from God; and therefore a gracious soul can't but rise up against them, Gen. 27.41. and do his best to stone them, and to be the death of them. The days of mourning for my father are at hand (saith bloody Esau) then will I slay my brother Jacob; ('tis a bloody speech of a vindictive spirit, whom nothing would satisfy but innocent blood) So saith the gracious soul, The days of mourning for the death of my dear Saviour, are now at hand, and therefore I will slay my bosom lusts, my constitution sins; now will I be revenged on them for all the dishonours that they have done to God, and for all the wounds that they have made in my conscience, and for all the mercies that they have embittered, and for all the favours that they have prevented, and for all the afflictions that they have procured, and for all the duties that they have hindered. Judg. 16.28. Samson pleads hard with God, that he might be avenged on the Philistines for his two eyes; and so doth the gracious soul plead hard with God, that he may be avenged on his bosom lusts, on his complexion sins, which have put out his two eyes, which have so blinded him that he has not for a long time been able to see God, or Christ, or the things that belong to his external, internal or eternal peace. The next of kin in the Law, was always the avenger of blood, and to him it appertained to hunt after the murderer, to bring upon his head the innocent blood that he had shed; if therefore we will show ourselves brethren or sisters of Christ, or any thing of kin unto him, we must even be the avengers of his blood upon bosom sins, upon complexion sins; for, for them as well as others was his blood shed. O Sirs! what bosom sin is there so sweet or profitable that is worth a burning in hell for, or worth a shutting out of heaven for? surely none. This a gracious soul seriously weighs, and accordingly he sets himself against the Toad in his bosom, against his darling sins, against his complexion sins. But now, unsound hearts are very favourable to bosom sins, to complexion sins; they say of them as Lot of Zoar, Gen. 19.20. Is it not a little one? and my soul shall live. And as David once said concerning Absalon, 2 Sam. 18.5. Deal gently for my sake with the young man, even with Absalon; beware that none touch the young man Absalon, Ver. 12. And the King said, is the young man Absalon safe? Ver. 29. An unsound heart is as fond of his bosom sins, 2 King. 5.18. of his complexion sins as Jacob was of his Benjamin, or as Jeha was of his calves, or as Naaman was of his Idol Rimmon, or as Judas was of bearing the bag, or as Herod was of his Herodias, Acts 19 or as Demetrius was of his Diana, or as the Pharisees were of devouring widows houses, Mat. 23. and of having the uppermost seats in the Synagogues, and of being saluted in the market places, with those glorious titles, Rabbi, Rabbi. The besotted sinner is most engaged to his bosom sins, his complexion sins, and therefore 'tis as bitter a thing as death for him to part with them; Mich. 6.6, 7. he had rather part with burnt-offerings and calves of a year old; he had rather part with thousands of Rams, and with ten thousand Rivers of oil; yea, he had rather part with his firstborn, than with his bosom sin; Job 20.12, 13. he is ready to give the fruit of his body, for the sin of his soul. Let God frown or smile, stroke or strike, lift up or cast down, promise or threaten, yet he will hid and hold fast his bosom sin; let God set life and death, heaven and hell, glory and misery before him, yet will he not part with his bosom sins; let God wound his conscience, blow upon his estate, leave a blot upon his name, crack his credit, afflict his body, Jer. 20.3, 4. writ death upon his relations, and be a Magor-missabib, a terror to his soul, yet will he not let go his darling sins. An unsound heart will rather let God go, and Christ go, and heaven go, and all go than he will let his darling lusts go: But now a sound Christian, a throuhgout Christian, he sets himself most against the Dalilah in his bosom, against the Benjamin, the son, the sin of his right hand. A sincere Christian looks upon bosom sins, upon complexion sins as the most God-provoking sins; there are no sins so provoking to God's jealousies and justice, as bosom sins; he looks upon bosom sins, complexion sins, a the most dangerous sins; he looks upon bosom sins, complexion sins, as the worst thing in all the world; he looks upon bosom sins, complexion sins, as more ugly and horrid than the devil himself, or than hell itself; he looks upon bosom sins as the great make-bates between God and his soul, and between his conscience and his comfort; Isa. 59.1, 2. Lamen. 3.8, 44. he looks upon bosom sins as those enemies that have provoked God often to turn a deaf ear to all his prayers; he looks upon his bosom sins as so many Judas' that have often betrayed him into the hands of the devil; he looks upon his bosom sins as the waters of Marah, that has embittered all his mercies; he looks upon his bosom sins as the only things that have often clouded the face of God; he looks upon his bosom sins as dead flies in the box of precious ointment that spoils all, and accordingly with all his might he sets himself against them. 1. He fights most against these. 2. He weeps most over these. 3. He watches and a●ms most against these. 4. He prays most against these. 5. He resolves most against these. And 6. He lays the axe of repentance most to these, etc. But pray Sir, before you close up this Chapter, lay down some sure and infallible evidences of the goodness, graciousness and happiness of their estates and conditions, who are but weak in grace, who are but babes of grace, that so they may have their portion, satisfaction, support and consolation as well as others. Ans. I shall endeavour to do it, and therefore thus. Sixthly, True desires of grace is grace, true desires after Christ, and grace, and holiness, is grace; he who does sincerely desire to believe, he does really believe; and he that does sincerely desire to repent, he does really repent; and he that does sincerely desire to obey the Lord, 1 Pet. 2.3, 4. 2 Chron. 30.18, 19 Mat. 7.8. Psal. 42.1, 2. Psal. 63.1. etc. and to fear the Lord, and to serve the Lord, he does really obey the Lord, and fear the Lord, and serve the Lord. It is the first step to grace, for a man to see his heart void of grace; and it is the first degree of grace, for a man to desire grace. Mark, all true desires of grace, have the very nature and truth of grace in them. As there is true fire in a spark, as well as in a flame, and true water in a drop, as well as in a stream, and true light in a beam, as well as in the Sun, and true gold in the very filings of gold, as well as in the whole wedge of gold; the least of any thing partakes of the nature of the whole. Isa. 55.1, 2. & 65. 1. John 7.37. True desires of grace argues a state of grace and salvation, Psal. 38.9. Lord thou knowest all my desire, my groan is not hid from thee. Mat. 5.6. Blessed are they which do hunger and thirst after righteousness, for they shall be filled; or as the Greek runs (after the participle of the present tense) they that are hungering and thirsting; intimating, that where ever this is the present disposition of men's souls, they are blessed, Rev. 22.17. And let him that is a thirst come; and whosoever will, let him take the water of life freely. Augustin. Where there are sincere desires of grace, there are the seeds of grace, the conception of grace, the buds of grace. Sincere desires of grace are those holy seeds, those divine beginnings of grace in the soul, out of which grace springs and grows up to its measure and perfection. O Sirs! look as no man can sincerely seek God in vain, so no man can sincerely desire grace in vain. A man may love gold, yet not have it; but no man loveth God, but is sure to have him. Wealth a man may desire, and yet be never the nearer for it; but grace no man ever sincerely desired and miss it: And why? it is God that hath wrought this desire in the heart, and he will never frustrate the desire that himself hath there wrought; let no man say, I have no faith, no repentance, no love, no fear of God, no sanctifying, no saving grace in me. Doth he see a want of those things in himself? yes, that is it which so grieves him, that he cannot love God, stand in awe of him, trust in his mercy, repent of sin as he should; yea, but doth he seriously and unfeignedly desire to do thus? yes, he desires it above all things in the world, and would be willing (as it were) to buy even with a whole world the least measure, or dram, or drop only of such grace. Now let me ask him, who is it that hath wrought this desire in him? Not the Devil, for he would rather quench it than kindle it in him; not his own corruption, for that is naturally averse to every thing that is good, it must needs then be the work of the Spirit of God, who works in us both to will and to do of his own good pleasure, and who pronounceth all them blessed that thus desire after grace. Kemnitius, Ursini Catechis. When I have a good desire, saith one, though it doth scarcely show itself in some little slender sigh, I must be assured that the Spirit of God is present, and worketh his good work. Wicked men do not desire the grace of the holy Spirit, whereby they may resist sin, and therefore they are justly deprived of it; for he that earnestly desireth the holy Ghost hath it already, because this desire of the spirit cannot be but from the Spirit. Taffnies' Book of the marks of God's children. Our faith, saith another, may be so small and weak, as it doth not yet bring forth fruits that may be lively felt in us; but if they which feel themselves in such an estate, desire to have these feelings (namely of God's favour and love) if they ask them of God's hands by prayer, this desire and prayer are testimonies that the Spirit of God is in them, and that they have faith already; for is such a desire a fruit of the flesh or of the Spirit? it is of the holy Spirit, who bringeth it forth only in such as he dwells in, etc. Then those holy desires and prayers being the motions of the holy Ghost in us, are testimonies of our faith, although they seem to us small and weak. As the woman that feeleth the moving of a child in her body, though very weak, assureth herself that she hath conceived, and that she goeth with a live child: So if we have these motions, these holy affections and desires before mentioned, let us not doubt but that we have the holy Ghost (who is the Author of them) dwelling in us, and consequently that we have also faith. Again, saith the same Author. 1. If thou hast begun to hate and fly sin; 2. If thou feelest that thou art displeased at thine infirmities and corruptions; 3. If having offended God, thou findest a grief and a sorrow for it; 4. If thou desire to abstain from sin; 5. If thou avoidest the occasions of sin; 6. If thou dost thy endeavours against sin; 7. If thou prayest to God to give thee grace, all these holy affections proceeding from none other than from the Spirit of God, Phil. 2.13. 2 Cor. 8.10, 12. aught to be as so many pledges and testimonies that he is in thee. It is as impossible for us naturally to do the least good, or to desire the least grace, as 'tis for a Toad to spit Cordials. Sincere desires after God, and Christ, and Grace, is sometimes the all that the people of God find in themselves. This was all that Nehemiah could say of himself, and the rest of his brethren, Neh. 1.11. That they did desire to fear God's name. And so the Church, Isa. 26.8. The desire of our soul is to thy name, and to the remembrance of thy holiness. And vers. 9 With my soul have I desired thee in the night. So the Spouse, Cant. 3.1, 2, 3. So David, Psal. 27.4. Psal. 42.1, 2. Psal. 63.1. They must needs be sure of grace that have an unfeigned desire of it. This is a Maxim that we must live and die with, viz. That no man can truly desire grace, but he that hath already grace; certainly he that desireth grace, hath grace to desire it. It is an infallible sign, that that man hath already some measure of grace that doth seriously desire to have it; he would never seriously desire to fear God, who stands not in some awe of him already; nor he would never seriously desire to love God, who has not in him some love to God already; nor he would never seriously desire to believe, who has not in him some faith already; nor he would never seriously desire to repent, that hath not repent already; nor he would never seriously desire sanctifying grace, whose heart in some measure is not already sanctified by the spirit of grace. It is the very essence of righteousness, saith one of the Ancients, for a man to be willing to be righteous. Angustine, Pars magna bonitatis, est vell● fieri bo●um. Sen. Ep. 34. And the poor Heathen could say, It is a principal part of goodness, for a man to be willing to be good. It is natural for every one to desire his own natural good, but to desire spiritual grace, holiness, sound sanctification, faith unfeigned, the true fear of God, serious repentance, etc. is more than ever any natural man did or can do. No man did ever desire to eat which had not eaten before, nor no man did ever desire to believe, that did not believe before; all true desires after faith spring from faith as the root of them. Certainly wicked men don't, nor can't so much as desire saving grace, Job 21.14. Isa. 53.2. and that, First, Because grace is above the reach of nature, 1 Cor. 2.14. But the natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God, for they are foolishness unto him; neither can he know them, because they are spiritually discerned. The water riseth no higher than the springs from whence it came; so natural men can ascend no higher than nature: Spiritual things can neither be discerned nor desired, but by those that are anointed with the eyesalve of the Spirit. The natural man is dark and blind, and he sees no beauty nor excellency in grace, that he should desire it, or be in love with it. Man in his natural estate is without, Eph. 2.12. There are five without 'tis, 1. Without Christ, 2. Without the Church, 3. Without the Promise, 4. Without hope, 5. Without God in the world. Now every natural man being under these five withouts, how is it possible that he should have any serious desires after grace? Such is the corruption of our nature, that if you propound any divine good to it, it is entertained as fire by water, or wet wood with hissing; propound any evil, then 'tis like fire to straw, 'tis like the foolish satire that made haste to kiss the fire, 'tis like that unctuous matter which Naturalists say sucks and snatches the fire to it with which it is consumed. Rom. 8.7. The contrariety and enmity that is in every natural man's heart, against God, and Christ, and grace, and holiness, may sufficiently satisfy us, that the natural man is a mere stranger to serious and sincere desires after God, or Christ, or grace, or the great things that belong to his everlasting peace. Such sincere and serious desires as these, Oh, that Christ were mine, Oh, that I were married to his person, Oh, that I were clothed with his righteousness, Oh, that my soul were adorned with his grace, Oh, that I was filled with his Spirit, Oh, that he would be my King to rule me, and my Prophet to teach and instruct me, and my Priest to make an atonement for me; Oh, that I might enjoy choice and high communion with him, Oh, that I might sin no more against him, Oh, that I may do nothing unworthy of him, Oh, that after death I might live for ever in the enjoyments of him, etc. I say such serious and sincere desires are not to be found in the natural man's breast. Secondly, Because grace is contrary to nature. The wisdom of the flesh is enmity against God, Rom. 8.7. Fire cannot desire water, nor water fire, because they are contrary, one expelling the other; for either the water will quench the fire, or else the fire will lick up the water: So here, nature would have a man love himself, and seek himself, and exalt himself; but grace will have a man love God, and seek God, and exalt God, etc. Take nature when 'tis most adorned, enriched, raised, elevated, etc. yet than you shall find it at enmity with God and grace. Ergo, etc. Thirdly, Because grace is not only above nature, and contrary to nature, but it is even a hell to nature; grace and holiness is a hell to a natural man. See my Treatise on holiness, page 64, 65, 66. Look as a glorified estate would be a hell to every wicked person, (Coelum est altera gehenna damnatorum, saith one of the Ancients; Heaven is another hell to the damned) so would a gracious estate also. Grace puts a man to take up the Cross of Christ, to deny his natural self, his sinful self, his religious self, his relative self, and to give up a man's self to the strictest and exactest ways of God, and to crucify his lusts, and to pull out his right eye, and to cut off his right hand, etc. And oh! what hard work is this, yea what a hell is this to nature? etc. Fourthly, Wicked men don't, nor can't so much as truly and seriously desire saving grace; witness their daily withstanding and slighting the offers of grace. Compare these Scriptures, Prov. 1.20.— ult. Chap. 8.1.— 12. Ezek. 24.13. Mat. 23.37. Luke 19.41, 42, etc. Fifthly, Wicked men don't, nor can't, so much as truly and seriously desire saving grace; witness their common, ordinary, habitual provoking, vexing, quenching, resisting and grieving of the spirit of grace. Turn to these Scriptures, Gen. 6.3. Isa. 63.10. Act. 7.55. Eph. 4.30. Sixthly, Wicked men don't, nor can't truly and seriously desire saving grace; witness that enmity, hatred, rage and madness that is in them against the Saints, whose hearts and lives are enamelled with grace, Gen. 3.15. Psal. 34.21. Psal. 44.10. Job 31.29. Amos 5.10, etc. I have read of a desperate wretch, that when he came to die, he gave good portions to all his children but one, and to him he would give but twelve pence; and being asked the reason of it, he made answer, he was a Puritan; I have heard him say, said his wretched father, That he had a promise to live on; let us now see whether a promise will maintain him or no. Certainly, wherever there are true serious desires after grace, there is a dear love to those upon whose hearts the work of grace is past. Now by these short hints, 'tis evident enough, that wicked men don't, nor can't sincerely, seriously desire grace; certainly such that are poor in spirit, and that mourn for their spiritual defects, and that hunger and thirst after grace and holiness, after a righteousness imparted and a righteousness imputed, must confess themselves to be in a blessed estate, and consequently in a state of grace; (for what true happiness is there out of it?) or else they must contradict our Saviour, and charge truth itself with untruth, who hath pronounced them blessed that are so qualified, so affected. Were this well weighed and seriously considered of, how would it comfort, refresh, support and stay up many a troubled soul? and what a wellspring of life would this be to many a wounded spirit? Doubtless the greatest part of a Saints perfection in this life (witness Paul's own ingenious confession after fourteen years' conversion, Rom. 7.15, 18, 19, 21, 22. say some; and who ever went beyond him? and how exceedingly do most fall short of him?) consisteth rather in will than in work, and in desire and endeavour more than in deed. There is so much good in good desires, that it is the main that the godly have to speak of, and to reckon of; make an inventory of a Christians estate, and search every room, if you find not these you find nothing; and if you set these down in the inventory, you set down even all he is worth for another world. Daniel is called a man of desires, and so is every gracious man, a man wholly made up of gracious desires. Dan. 10 11. Mark, God makes a judgement upon the sons of men, according as their desires stand; he that desires to steal, he is a Thief in the account of God; and he that desires to commit adultery, he is an adulterer in the account of God; and he that desires to oppress, he is an oppressor in the account of God; and he that desires to deceive, he is a deceiver in the account of God; and he that desires to persecute, he is a persecutor in the account of God; and he that desires to profane the Sabbaths of God, he is a profaner of the Sabbaths of God in the account of God, etc. Look, as every wicked man is as bad in the account of God, as his desires are bad; so every godly man is as good in the account of God, as his desires are good; he that sincerely desires to believe, he does believe in the account of God. Mr. Perkins in his grain of mustardseed. The desire (saith one) to believe in the want of faith, is faith; though as yet there want firm and lively grace, yet art thou not altogether void of grace; if thou canst desire it, thy desire is the seed, conception or bud of what thou wantest. Now is the Springtime of the ingraffed Word or immortal seed cast into the furrows of thy heart, wait but a while, using the means, and thou shalt see that leaves, blossoms and fruits will shortly follow, etc. Another saith, Ursin. Faith in the most holy is not perfect, nevertheless, whosoever feels in his heart an earnest desire to believe, and a striving against his doubts, he both may and must assure himself, that he is endued with true faith. And he that sincerely desires to repent, Mr. Fox. he does repent in the account of God. Holy Bradford writing to Mr. Jo. Careless, saith, Thy sins are undoubtedly pardoned, etc. for God hath given thee a penitent and believing heart; that is, a heart which desireth to repent and believe, Let thy desires be before God, and he which seethe in secret, shall reward thee openly; thy desire is thy prayer, and if thy desire be continual, thy prayer is continual, etc. for such a one is taken of him (he accepting the will for the deed) for a penitent and believing heart indeed. And he that sincerely desires to mortify sin, he does mortify sin in the account of God; and he that sincerely desires to walk with God, he does walk with God in the account of God; and he that sincerely desires to honour God, he does honour God in the account of God; and he that sincerely desires to deny himself, he does deny himself in the account of God; and he that sincerely desires to be weaned from the world, he is weaned from the world in the account of God; and he that sincerely desires to be conformable to God, he is comformab●e to God in the account of God; and he that desires to grow in grace, he does grow in grace in the account of God; and he that sincerely desires to improve mercies, he does improve mercies in the account of God; and he that sincerely desires to glorify God in the hour of his visitation, he does glorify God in the hour of his visitation in the account of God. A gracious man may make a better judgement of his estate by his sincere desires, than he can by his duties; and so a wicked man may make a better judgement of his estate by his desires, than he can by his words or works. I have been the larger upon this evidence, because of its great usefulness to weak believers. But, Seventhly, No man can sincerely desire grace for grace sake, viz. faith for faith's sake, and love for love's sake, and humility for humilities sake, and uprightness for uprightness sake, and meekness for meekness sake, and holy fear for holy fears sake, and hope for hopes sake, and holiness for holiness sake, and self-denial for self-denials sake, etc. but he that has true grace. Mark, no man can sincerely and seriously desire grace, for the inward beauty, glory and excellency of grace, Psal. 45.13. 2 Cor. 3.18. but he that has true grace. The King's daughter is all glorious within, though within is not all her glory; grace differs nothing from glory but in name, grace is glory in the bud, and glory is grace at the full; grace is glory militant, and glory is grace triumphant; grace has an inward glory upon it, which none can see and love, but such as have grace in their own hearts: Wicked men can see no beauty, no glory, no excellency in grace, why they should desire it, or be taken with it; Isa. 53.1, 2, 3, 4. and no wonder, for they could see no beauty, nor excellency, nor glory, nor form, nor comeliness in Christ the fountain of grace, why they should desire him, and be taken with him. Though next to Christ grace is the most lovely and desirable thing in all the world, yet none can desire it for its own loveliness and desirableness, but such as have a seed of God in them; though grace be a pearl of price, though it be a jewel more worth than the gold of Ophir, though it be a beam of God, a spark of glory, a branch of the divine nature; yet carnal hearts can see no glory nor excellency in it, that they should desire it. If carnal eyes were but opened to see the excellency of grace, Mirabiles sui excitaret amores, it would ravish the soul in desires after it; but grace's beauty and glory is inward, and so it is not discerned but with spiritual eyes. Plato was wont to say, if moral virtues could be seen with bodily eyes, they would stir up in the heart extraordinary flames of admiration and love. 1 Cor. 2.14 ult. I might say much more of grace; Grace, 1. Puts an excellency, it puts a lustre and beauty upon men's persons. Prov. 12.26. 1 Pet. 34, 5, etc. The righteous is more excellent than his neighbour; and pray what makes him so but grace? Dan. 11. 2●. Wisdom makes a man's face to shine; riches, and honours, and dignities, and royal ornaments, and costly fare, and noble attendants, don't put an excellency and glory upon man; witness Antiochus, Saul, Haman, Herod, Dives, etc. but saving grace does; the graces of the Spirit are that chain of pearl that adorns Christ's Bride. 2. Grace puts an excellency upon all a man's duties; By faith Abel offered unto God a more excellent sacrifice than Cain; faith put an excellency upon Abel's sacrifice. 3. Grace puts an excellency upon all a man's natural and acquired excellencies; it puts an excellency upon beauty, honour, riches, name, arts, parts, gifts. Now, how excellent and glorious must that be, that puts an excellency upon all our excellencies? 4. Grace makes a man conformable to God and Christ. 5. 1 John 4.17. 1 John 1.1, 2. 2 Cor. 13.14. Zech. 3.7. Mal. 2.2. Prov. 2.11, 12. Grace fits a man for communion and fellowship with Father, Son and Spirit. 6. Grace fits a man for the choicest services. 7. Grace turns all things into a blessing. 8. Grace fills the soul with all spiritual excellencies. 9 Grace preserves a Christian from the worst of evils, viz. sin. 10. Grace sweetens death, it makes the King of terrors to be the King of desires. 11. Grace renders a man acceptable to God, and that's the height of a Christians ambition in this world, 2 Cor. 5.9. Wherefore we labour (〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, we are ambitious) that whether present or absent, we may be accepted of him. The Apostles made it their ambition to get acceptance in heaven: riches, and honours and gifts, and arts, and parts, etc. may commend us to men; but 'tis only grace that commends us to God, and that renders us lovely in his eyes. 12. Grace will eternalise your names, grace will perfume and embalm your names, Heb. 11.2. By faith the Elders obtained a good report. Ver. 39 And these all having obtained a good report through faith received not the promise. Nothing raises a man's name and fame in the wo●ld like grace. A man may obtain a great report without grace, nothing below grace will perpetuate a man's name. Acts 6 5, 3. The seven Deacons that the Church chose were gracious men, Act. 10.1, 2, 3, 4, 22. and they were men of good report, they were men well witnessed unto, well testified of, as the Greek word imports. Act. 9.10, 20. compared with Chap. 22.12. Cornelius was a gracious man, and he was a man of good report among all the Nation of the Jews. Ananias was a gracious man, and he was a man of a good report. Gaius and Demetrius, they were both gracious men, and they were men of good report, witness that third Epistle of John. How renowned was Abraham for his faith? and Moses for his meekness? and Jacob for his plain-heartedness? and Job for his uprightness? and David for his zeal? and Joshua for his courage? Heb. 11.4. Psal. 112.6. Prov. 10.7. Holy Abel hath been dead above this five thousand years, and yet his name is as fresh and fragrant as a Rose, to this very day. Grace will make your names immortal; The righteous shall be in everlasting remembrance: The memory of the just is blessed, but the name of the wicked shall rot. Wicked men many times outlive their names, but the names of just men outlive them; when a gracious man dies, he leaves his name as a sweet and as a lasting scent behind him, his fame shall live when he is dead. According to the Hebrew the words may be read thus; The memory of the just shall be for a blessing; the very remembering of the just shall bring a blessing upon them that remember them. When a gracious man dies, as he carries a good conscience with him, so he leaves a perfumed name behind him. Grace is the image of God, the delight of God, the honour of God, the glory of God; grace is the purchase of Christ, and the birth of the Spirit, and the pledge of glory; grace is the joy of Angels, the glory of man, and the wonder of the world; what's the body without the soul? what's the cabinet without the jewels? what's the Sun without light? what's the fountain without water? what's Paradise without the Tree of Life? what's Heaven without Christ? That's a soul without grace. Now every gracious soul sees a real, internal excellency, beauty and glory in grace, and accordingly it is carried out in its desires after it; it sees such an innate excellency, beauty and glory in that faith, wisdom, humility, meekness, patience, zeal, self-denial, heavenly-mindedness, uprightness, etc. that sparkles and shines in such and such Saints, that it many times strives with God in a corner, even to sweat and tears, that it may be bedecked and enriched with those singular graces that are so shining in others. O, that I had the wisdom of such a Christian, and the faith of such a Christian, and the love of such a Christian, and the humility of such a Christian, and the meekness of such a Christian, and the zeal of such a Christian, and the integrity of such a Christian, etc. O, that my soul was but in their case! I don't covet their riches but their graces: Oh, that I had but those graces! Oh, that I had much of those graces, that sparkles and shines in the hearts and lives of such and such Christians! I see a beauty and glory upon Sun, Moon and Stars, yea upon the whole Creation, but what's that to that beauty and glory that I see stamped upon grace? And this fires his heart with desires after grace. But, Eighthly, No man can sincerely desire all grace, every grace, or the whole chain of graces, but he that has true grace. 2 Pet. 1.5, 6, 7, 8, 9 Vain men, when they are under some outward or inward distresses, may to serve their present turns, desire (in a cold, formal, customary way) patience, or contentation, or meekness, or hope, or faith, etc. but they don't, nor can't, whilst they are wicked, whilst they are in their natural estate, Act. 8.19. to 25. whilst they are in the gall of bitterness and bond of iniquity, sincerely desire every grace, especially those particular graces that are most opposite to their master sin, to their darling lusts, to their constitution sins, to their complexion sins, to those particular lusts that are to them as dear as their right eyes or right hands. Austin before his conversion, he was much given to whoredom, and he would often pray, Lord, give me continency, but not yet; Lord, give me continency, but not yet; he was afraid lest God should have heard him to soon, as himself confesseth. Wicked men would be very sorry if God should take them at their words, and in good earnest answer the cold and lazy desires of their souls: If when the drunkard in a good mood should desire sobriety, God should take him at his word, he would be very angry; or if when the unclean person should desire chastity, continency, God should answer his desires, he would not be very well pleased; if when the covetous person, should (under some pangs of conscience) desire a free, a charitable, a noble, generous spirit, God should take him at his word, he would be sorely displeased. The same may be said of all other sorts of sinners; but now a real Christian, though he be never so weak, yet he seriously desires every grace, he is for every link of the golden chain of graces, he finds in his own heart, sins that are contrary to every grace, and therefore he desires every grace, that he may make head against every sin; and he finds his heart and life so attended and surrounded with all sorts and kinds of temptations, that he earnestly, seriously, and frequently desires the presence and assistance of every grace, that so he may be temptation-proof, yea, victorious over every temptation; and he sees and feels the need of every grace, to fill up every place, station and condition wherein the Lord has set him, and therefore he begs hard for every grace; and he sees a beauty, and a glory, and an excellency upon every grace, and therefore he desires every grace as well as any one single grace, which no hypocrite or profane person in the world does. But, Ninthly, No man can sincerely and seriously desire grace for gracious ends and purposes, but he that has true grace in his soul. Joh. 1.1, 3, 4 & 2.6. Mat. 11.29, 30. No man can truly desire grace, that he may enjoy communion and fellowship with the Father, the Son, and the Spirit, and that he may be made comformable to Christ, and that he may be serviceable and useful to the interest of Christ, and that he may walk even as Christ walked, Psal. 119.32. 1 Joh. 5.4, 5. Rom. 14.7, 8. Phil. 1.20. in the exercise of every grace, and that he may be rid of his sins, yea all his sins, especially his special sins; and that he may run the ways of God's commands more easily, more readily, more delightfully, more resolutely, more patiently, more unweariedly, and more zealously; and that he may be made victorious over the world, the flesh, and the devil; and that he may so live, as to be a praise, a name, an honour, and a glory to Christ; and that after all, and by all, he may be prepared and fitted for an eternal fruition and enjoyment of Christ, but he that has true grace in his soul. Now, every weak believer is able to appeal to God, that he desires grace for gracious ends and purposes, as for the ends last cited, and others of the like nature with them. Wicked men may in a fit desire grace, Act. 8.18, 19, 20. as Simon Magus did desire the holy Ghost to get money by it, or when they are under some pangs of conscience, they may desire grace to be rid of their horrors and terrors, or when they are upon a dying bed they may desire so much grace as may keep them out of hell, and bring them to heaven; but in all this they look no further than self, they are far from desiring of grace for gracious ends and purposes. There is nothing in all the world that the great God so much regards as man; All these things have my hands made, but to this man will I look, Isa. 66.2. Nothing in man so much as the heart; My son, give me thy heart. That is the Mount Zion which God loveth above all the dwellings of Jacob, and nothing in the heart, so much as the aim and end of it. Let a man's profession be never so glorious, let him be never so abundant in the performance of duties, let his desires after this and that good thing be never so strong, yet if his ends be wrong, all his pretensions and performances are but beautiful abominations. Did David pray three times aday? Mark 12.40. Luke 18.12. Mat. 6.2. Luke 11.42. Mat. 23. so did the Pharisees. Did David and Daniel fast? so did the Pharisees, and that twice in the week. Did Cornelius give alms? so did the Pharisees. Did Abraham pay tithes? so did the Pharisees, they tythed their very Mint and Rue, but their ends being wrong, their time was lost, and their pains was lost, and their duties was lost, and their alms was lost, and their souls was lost, and that for ever. God writes a nothing upon all those services wherein men's ends are not right, Jer. 32.23. But, Tenthly, No man can sincerely desire & earnestly endeavour after the highest pitches of grace, but he that has true grace; though the weak Christian has but a little grace in his heart, Phil. 3.12, 13, 14, 15, 16, etc. yet he has the top of grace, the perfection of grace in his sincere aims, in his sincere desires, and in his earnest and constant endeavours; and if the weakest Saint might have his desires, his mind, his wish, his will, his choice, he would never sin more, he would never dishonour Jesus Christ more, he would never grieve the spirit of grace more, he would yield unsinning obedience, he would obey in this lower world, as the Angels, and as the spirits of just men made perfect do obey in that upper world; Heb. 12.22, 23. Luke 17.5. the weakest Christian has his eye to the highest round in Jacob's ladder, and fain he would be at the top of it; and Oh, how sweet is every Providence, and every Ordinance, and every duty, and every mercy, and every opportunity, that helps his soul more Christ-wards, and heaven-wards, and holiness-wards! sincere desires, and serious endeavours to grow in grace, 2 Pet. 3.18. 1 Pet. 2.2. 1 Joh. 5.13. 1 Joh. 3.9. is an infallible evidence of the truth of grace. Look, as a man may have grace and not know it, so a man may grow in grace and yet not discern it. As in the lopping of a Tree there seems to be a kind of diminution and destruction, yet the end and issue of it is better growth; and as the weakening of the body by Physic seems to tend to death, yet it produceth better health and more strength; and as the Ball by falling downward riseth upward, and water in pipes descends that it may ascend, so the Christians spiritual growth, when seemingly dead and declining, and to stand at a stay, is still carried on by the hidden method of God to increase; for every true Christian is a member of a thriving body, in which there is no Atrophy, but a continual issuing of spirits from the head; The righteous shall flourish like the Palm tree, Psal. 92.12, 13, 14. The Palm tree never loseth his leaf or fruit, Pliny. Grace grows not alike in all Saints; in the parable, some brought forth thirty, some sixty, and some a hundred fold. so that life being wrought by the spirit of life never dyeth, but is always upon the growing hand (except in the dark winter night of desertion and temptations) ripening and increasing even in the midst of all ordinary troubles and trials. The Apostle tells us, that the whole body of Christ (whereof every true Christian is a limb) is so compact together in itself, and so firmly fastened with certain spiritual nerves and ligaments to the head, that from it there is by them conveyed to each part a continual supply of spiritual grace, both sufficient to furnish it, and to further the growth of it. Let me give a little further light into this particular, by this similitude: A man is bound for the East-Indies, and shapeth his course thitherward, but by the way is put often off by cross winds to the Westward; he is by contrary winds compelled to put into divers Harbours, and to make some stay by the way there, either to shift off stormy weather, or to take in fresh water, or to stop a leak, or to get some fresh provisions; and yet all this while we truly say, he is going on in his way in his voyage, because his settled purpose and constant resolution is to make to his Port, his Haven whither he is bound, and all these seeming lets shall help forward his voyage. It is so in spiritual things, for our very growth in grace consists much in sincere desires, in fixed resolutions, and in faithful endeavours to grow in grace. Aristot. Rhet. l. 1. c. 11. Seneca l. 2. c. 27. Phil. 3.13. Aristotle makes it the mark of a good man, that he studieth how he may grow better than he is, not contenting himself with any degree or measure of goodness. And another Heathen observes, that the earnest desire of what men would have, maketh them forgetful of what they have. I forget what's past (saith the Apostle) and press on to what is before. Their eye is more upon what they want, than upon what they have. It is with good Christians in this case, as it is with rich worldlings; that like men in a race, have their eye on those that be before them, not on those that come after them, they are ever eyeing those that seem to outstrip and outgo them in wealth, and think they have nothing, and that they are but poor men, so long as they come short of such and such, who are rich and great in the world: And so it is with many precious Christians, they have still their eye fixed upon those whose examples they either read of, or whose courses and graces they are eye-witnesses of; and hereupon they think that they have no grace, or else that they make no progress in grace, at least worth speaking of, so long as they come behind and fall short of such and such, who are very eminent, or most eminent in grace and holiness; and upon this account it is, that they make such sore complaints of their spiritual wants, and of their slow progress in grace and holiness, and that they can hardly perceive but that they stand still at a stay. Now mark, these sad complaints of theirs, and their serious desires to grow in grace, is a sure and infallible evidence of the truth of grace in them; yea it is a sure argument that they love grace as it is grace, that they love grace for grace sake, which none can do but such as have grace. 'Tis a sure sign that he was never truly good, that desireth not to be better (ille non est bonus qui non vult esse melior) yea, he has very great cause to fear, that his heart is naught, very naught, if not stark naught, that desireth not to be as good as the best, to be as gracious as he that is most gracious, and to be as holy as he that is most holy. Well Sirs, this will be found an everlasting truth, viz. That no man can sincerely desire, and habitually endeavour after the highest pitches of grace, but he that hath true grace. Eleventhly, No man can always desire grace, but he that has true grace, constant desires after grace, argues the reality of grace; Isa. 26.7, 8, 9 Cant. 2.1, 2, 3, 4. Psal. 106.3. constant desires after grace, speaks out a state of grace, Psal. 119.20. My soul breaketh for the longeth that it hath unto thy judgements at all times. Pliny speaks of a golden vine which never withereth. All gracious desires are such golden desires as never whither: Take a Christian when you will, and where you will, and among whom you will, and in what condition you will, and still you shall find his heart full of gracious desires. Num. 23.10. O, that I had grace! O, that I had much grace! etc. Balaam in a fit, in a good mood, desires to die the death of the righteous, but his desires were fleeting and flashy, they were transient, not permanent. Some poor sinners, Dan. 5.6. when they are in a good mood, or under some distress of conscience, or under some grievous trials, or when they see the hand-writing upon the wall; and when death, which is the King of terrors, and the terror of Kings knocks at their doors; O! than they cry out, O, that we had grace! O, what shall we do for grace! O, send to such a Minister, and to such a Christian, whom we have hated, scorned, reproached and opposed, and desire them to be earnest with God, Hos. 6.4. Psal. 78.37. Psal. 5.9. that he would give us grace, for now we see, that without grace there is no escaping of hell, nor no coming to heaven. But all these desires of theirs are but like the morning cloud, or the early dew that quickly passeth away: But now if you look upon the weak Christian, as you shall commonly find a tear in his eye, a sigh in his breast, and a complaint in his mouth; so you shall always find desires in his heart after grace, O, that I had grace! O, that I had much grace! O, that I did but excel in grace! O, that I had as much grace as such a Christian! O that I had a greater exercise of grace! Psal. 42.1, 2, 3. Psal. 63.1, 2, 3, 8. Whatever outward or inward changes may attend a Christian in this world, yet you shall still find him full of holy desires, and breathe, and hankerings, and long after God, and Christ, and grace, and holiness; O, that I had more of these! O, when shall I have more of these! O, that God would cut me short in any thing, yea in every thing, rather than cut me short in these things, that the desires of my soul are so much running after! These desires of theirs may further be set forth by a spring between a couple of hills; the spring will always run through those lets that stop it, or else it will run over those lets, for it cannot cease running if it be a living spring; so the desires of a gracious soul will still be running after God, and Christ, and grace, etc. The good desires of bad men after God, and Christ, and grace, and holiness, are like water in a Cistern, that quickly runs out; but the desires of a godly man after God, Christ, grace, holiness, are like water in a fountain that is still a running. An unsound Christian is never good at all times, he is only good by fits, and starts, and turns sometimes when he is Sermon-sick, or under a smarting rod, or a gauled conscience, or when he is under some heavy cross, or sad loss; O, than he will be good! O, than he will have God, and he will have Christ, and he will have grace, and he will have heaven; but this good frame, this good temper of his is not lasting, 'tis not abiding, 'tis like a vapour that quickly vanishes, or like a windmill that goes as long as the wind fills the sails, but no longer. These are like Sigismond the Emperor, who when he was sick, would be very godly; but when he was well, none more wicked. But, Twelfthly, No man can sincerely desire to abound and excel most in those particular graces which are most opposite and contrary to those particular sins which his natural temper, constitution, complexion, calling, or condition, does most expose him and incline him to, but he that has true grace, but he whose heart is sincere with God, Psal. 18.23. I was upright before him, and I kept myself from mine iniquity. If passion be a sincere Christians head-lust, than his desires run most out for meekness; if pride, than his desires are most for humility; if earthliness, than his desires are most for heavenly-mindedness; if unbelief, than his desire, Luke 17.5. are most for faith; you shall then find him with the Disciples, crying out, Lord, increase our faith. But now, though a wicked man's heart rise against every grace, yet it rises most strongly against those particular graces which are most opposite and contrary to those particular lusts which are a wicked man's bosom lusts, Mat. 26.8, 9 his darling sins, etc. Hence the covetous heart rises and swells most against liberality, as you see in Judas, Rev. 3.15, 16, 17. Luke 19 What need this waste? Flesh and blood looks upon all as lost that is laid out upon Christ, his servants and services. And the lukewarm Christians heart rises and swells most against zeal and fervency; and the griping Usurers heart rises and swells most against restitution; Job 21.14, 15. and the adulterer's heart rises and swells most against purity, chastity, continency; and the ignorant man's heart rises and swells most against light and knowledge; Eccles. 7.10. the ignorant man is willing to go to hell in the dark, and ready, and bold enough to conclude, that we never had such sad and bad times as we have had, since there hath been so much preaching, and so much hearing, and so much fasting, and so much praying, and so much light and knowledge in the world. But now it is quite otherwise with a true child of God, Rom. 7.22, 23. for his heart rises and swells most against the Toad or Toads that are in his own bosom; and the daily and earnest desires of his soul are, that God would make him eminent in every grace, yea that God would make him most eminent in those particular graces which are most opposite and contrary to those particular lusts and corruptions which more peculiarly, more especially he hath cause to call his iniquity, Psal. 49.5. or the iniquities of his heart, and of his heels. Look, as we have some dirt, more or less, that will still cleave to our heels whilst we are in a dirty world; so there is some defilements and pollutions that will still be cleaving to all our duties, services, ways and walkings in this world, which we may well call the iniquity of our heels. Now a gracious heart rises most against these, etc. Thirteenthly, No man can truly love grace in another, but he that has true grace in his own soul. 1 John 3.10. No man can love a Saint as a Saint, but he that is a real Saint; no man can love holiness in another, but he that has holiness in his own soul; no man can love a good man for goodness sake, but he that is really good; We know that we have passed from death to life, 1 John 3.14. This Text you have opened in the first Maxim of this Book. because we love the brethren. Sincere love to the brethren is a most evident sign of a Christians being already passed or translated from death to life; that is, from a state of nature into a state of grace; such a poor soul that dares not say that he has grace in his own heart, yet dares say before the Lord, that he loves, delights, and takes pleasure to see the holy graces of the Spirit sparkling and shining in the hearts, lives and lips of other Saints, secretly wishing in himself that his soul were but in their case; and that dares say before the Lord, Psal. 15.1, 4. Psal. 16.3. He that loves his brother (saith Augustine) better knows his love wherewith he loves, than his▪ brother whom he loves. that there are no men in all the world that are so precious, so lovely, so comely, so excellent, and so honourable in his account, in his eye, as those that have the Image of God, of Christ, of grace, of holiness most clearly, most fairly, and most fully stamped upon them. When a poor Christian can rejoice in every light, in every Sun that outshines his own; when he sees wisdom and knowledge shining in one Saint, and faith and love shining in another Saint, and humility and lowliness shining in another Saint, and meekness and uprightness shining in another Saint, and zeal and courage shining in another Saint, and patience and constancy shining in another, and then can make his retreat to his closet, admiring & blessing of the Lord for the various graces of his Spirit shining in his children, and be frequent and earnest with God, that those very graces might shine as so many Suns in his soul; doubtless such a poor soul has true grace, and is happy, and will be happy to all eternity. In Tertullian's time, the Heathen would point out the Christians by this mark, See how they love one another. Now to prevent mistakes, I shall show you the several properties of sincere love to the Saints. First, True love to the Saints is spiritual, it is a love for the Image of God that is stamped upon the soul, 1 John 5.1. Every one that loveth him that begat, 1 John 4.7. loveth him also that is begotten of him. A soul that truly loves, loves the father for his own sake, and the children for the father's sake. If the Image of God be the loadstone that draws out our love to the Saints, than our love is real to them; he that does not love the Saints as Saints, he that does not love them under a spiritual notion he hath no true affection to them. Naturally we hate God, Gen. 3.15. 1 John 3.12. because he is a holy God, and his Law because it is an holy Law, and his people because they are a holy people. 'Tis only the Spirit of God that can enable a man to love a Saint for the image of God that is in him; many there are which love Christians for their goods, not for their good; they love them for the money that is in their purses, but not for the grace that is in their hearts; many like the Bohemian Cur, fawn upon a good suit. Love to the Saints for the Image of God stamped upon them, is a flower that does not grow in nature's garden. No man can love grace in another man's heart, but he that hath grace in his own; men do not more naturally love their parents, Prov. 29.10. Ezek. 25.15. and love their children, and love themselves, than they do naturally hate the image of God upon his people and ways. I have read of one who was so lusty and quarrelsome, that he was ready to fight with his own image so often as he saw it in a glass. O! how many are there in these days, that are still a quarrelling and fight with the image of God wherever they see it? True love is for what of the divine nature, for what of Christ and grace shines in a man; it is one thing to love a godly man, and another thing to love him for godliness: Many love godly men as they are Politicians, or Potent, or Learned, or of a sweet nature, or affable, or related, or as they have been kind to them; but all this is but natural love, but to love them because they are spiritually lovely, because of the seed of God in them, because they are all glorious within, John 1.3.9. Psal. 45.13. is to love them as becometh Saints, it is to love them at a higher and nobler rate, than any hypocrite in the world can reach too. The Wasps fly about the Tradesman's shop, not out of love to him, but the honey and fruit that is there. But, Secondly, True love to the Saints is appretiating; a gracious soul sets the highest price, and the greatest value and esteem upon those that are gracious, Psal. 15.4. He honours them that fear the Lord; Psal. 119.119. Psal. 1.4. he looks upon the wicked as lumber, but upon the Saints as jewels; he looks upon the wicked as dross, but upon the Saints as the gold of Ophir; he looks upon the wicked as chaff, but upon the Saints as wheat; 1 John 12. he looks upon the Saints as sons, but upon the wicked as slaves; Heb. 1. ult. he looks upon the Saints as heirs of salvation, but upon the wicked as heirs of damnation. Gracious souls do not value persons by their great Places, Offices, Names, Professions, Arts, Parts, Gifts, gay , gold Chains, Honours, Riches, but by what they are worth for another world. As the great God, so gracious souls look not how rational men are, but how religious; not how great, but how gracious; not how high, but how holy, Psal. 16.3. and accordingly they value them. My goodness extends not to thee, but to the Saints that are in the earth, and to the excellent in whom is all my delight. Prov. 12.26. The righteous is more excellent than his neighbour. 'Tis grace that differences one man from another, & that exalts one man above another. A gracious man, though never so poor, and low, and contemptible in the world, is a better man than his wicked neighbour (though he be never so great or rich in the world) in the eye, account, and esteem of God, Angels and Saints, there is no man to the gracious man: The Sun doth not more excel and outshine the Stars, than a righteous man doth excel and outshine his unrighteous neighbour. Prov. 28.6. Better is the poor that walketh in his uprightness, than he that is perverse in his ways, though he be rich. A gracious man prefers a holy Job upon the dunghill, before a wicked Ahab upon the Throne: he sets a higher price upon a gracious Lazarus, though clothed with rags and full of sores, Luke 16. than upon a rich and wretched Dives, though he be clothed gloriously, and fares sumptuously every day. This is, and this must be for a lamentation, Psal. 45.13. Wicked men may highly prise and admire a the common gifts of the Saints, as Pharaoh admired at the wisdom of Joseph, and Nabuchadnezzar admired at the wisdom of Daniel; but they never prise nor admire at their graces. Every one that doth evil, hateth the light, Joh. 3.20. that this poor, blind, mad, besotted world rates and values men according to their worldly interest, greatness, glory and grandeur; but gracious souls, they rate and value men by their graces, by their inward excellencies, and by what they are worth for eternity; in the eye of a gracious man; there is no wife to a gracious wife, no child to a gracious child, no friend to a gracious friend, no neighbour to a gracious neighbour, no Magistrate to a gracious Magistrate, no Minister to a gracious Minister, no Master to a gracious Master, nor no servant to a gracious servant; internal excellencies carries it with a gracious man, before all external glories. The Jews say, that those seventy souls that went with Jacob into Egypt, were as much worth as all the seventy Nations in the world: Doubtless, seventy gracious persons in the esteem and judgement of those that are gracious, are more worth than a whole world, yea than seventy worlds of graceless persons. Well Sirs, remember this; No man can truly prise, and highly value grace in another, but he that hath grace in his own heart. Some prize Christians for their wit, others prise them for their wealth; some prise them for their birth and breeding, others prise them for their beauty and worldly glory; some prise them for the great things that have been done by them, others prise them for the good things that they have received from them; some prise them for their eagle's eyes, others prise them for their silver tongues, and others prise them for their golden parts; but he that is truly gracious, he prizes them for the grace of God that is in them, he sets the highest value upon them for their holiness, No unregenerate person hath a love to all the Saints; for though he seems to love some, yet he loathes others; he is guilty of sinful partiality, having the faith of our Lord Jesus Christ in respect of persons. They seem to love the rich, and despise the poor, James 2. etc. But, Thirdly, True love to the Saints is universal to one Christian as well as another, to all as well as any, to poor Lazarus as well as to rich Alraham, to a despised Job as well as to an admired David, to an afflicted Joseph as well as to a raised jacob, to a despised Disciple as well as to an exalted Apostle, Eph. 1.15. Wherefore I also, after I heard of your faith in the Lord jesus, and love unto all the Saints. Col. 1.4. Since we heard of your faith in Christ jesus, and of the love which ye have to all the Saints. Faith in Christ Jesus maketh love to all the Saints; therefore they go commonly coupled in Paul's Epistles. It was the glory of the Ephesians and Colossians, that their faith and love reached to all the Saints; their love was not a narrow love, a love confined to some particular Saints, but it was universal to all Saints, Phil. 4.21. Salute every Saint in Christ jesus; the meanest as well as the richest, the weakest as well as the strongest, the lowest as well as the highest, and those that have many infirmities as well as those that have fewer infirmities, Eph. 1.21, 22, 23 1 Pet. 2.17. and those that have but mean parts and gifts, as well as those that have the strongest parts, and the most raised gifts. All Saints have the same Spirit, the same Jesus, the same Faith, etc. they are all fellow-members, fellow-travellers, fellow-soldiers, fellow-Citizens, fellow-heirs, and therefore must they all be loved with a sincere and cordial love: Love is set upon the brotherhood, upon the whole fraternity of Believers, and not here and there upon one. Divine love casts an eye of favour upon grace in rags, upon a dunghill, in a dungeon, a den, a prison, a fiery-furnace; Psal. 16.3. grace is as lovely in the illiterate as in the greatest Scholar, in the servant as in the Master, in the maid as in the Mistress, in the child as in the Father, in the subject as in the Prince, in the buyer as in the seller, etc. Look, as all our delight must be in the Saints, so our delight must be in all the Saints. 'Tis sad & sinful to contemn our poor brethren; and yet this was the very case of the Corinthians, 1 Cor. 11.21, 22. for they in their love-feasts carried it so unequally, that one was hungry, to wit, the poor; and another was drunken, to wit, the rich: And this made the Apostle put that question to them; What? have ye not houses to eat and drink in? or despise ye the Church of God, and shame them that have not? or put them to shame that have nothing? And the Apostle james doth very roundly reprove and condemn that partial love that was generally among the Jews in his days, jam 2.1, 2, 3 4. My brethren, have not the faith of our Lord jesus Christ, the Lord of glory, with respect of persons; for if there come unto your assembly, a man with a gold ring, in goodly apparel, and there come in also a poor man in vile raiment, and ye have respect to him that weareth the gay clothing, and say unto him, sit thou here in a good place, and say to the poor, stand thou there, or sit here under my footstool; are ye not then partial in yourselves, and are become judges of evil thoughts? Not that the Apostle doth simply or absolutely prohibit a civil differencing of men in place from others; for it cannot be denied but that there is a holy and warrantable respect of persons, in respect of their age, callings, gifts, graces and greatness in the world; but when the rich man's wealth is more regarded than the poor man's godliness; and when men carry it so to the rich, as to cast scorn, contempt, disgrace and discouragement upon the godly poor. They that respect a rich man that has but a little grace, before a poor man that is rich in grace, are worthy of blame. All true born sons love to see the image and picture of their father, though hung in never so poor a frame, and in never so mean a cottage: So the true born sons of God, they love to see the image of God, the picture of God upon the poorest Saints. 'Tis sad to prefer a worldly lustre before heavenly grace, a gold ring before a rich faith, a chain of gold before a chain of grace. Non ex personis fidem, sed ex fide personas. Tertul. Ver. 5. Harken my beloved brethren, hath not God chosen the poor of this world, rich in faith, and heirs of the Kingdom? It is a vile thing, saith one of the Ancients, to have the faith of Christ in respect of persons. We do not judge of faith by persons, but of persons by faith. 'Tis the great wisdom of a Christian, not to judge of men by their outwards, but by their inwards; not by their externals, but by their internals; not by what they are worth for this world, but by what they are worth for that other world. The poorest Saints are God's portion, Deut. 32.9. They are his pleasant portion, Jer. 12.10. They are his peculiar treasure, Exod. 19.5. They are his jewels, Mal. 3.17. They are the apple of his eye, Zech. 2.8. They are his glory, Isa. 4.5. They are the crown of his glory and royal diadem, Isa. 62.3. and therefore 'tis a dangerous thing to flight them, to disown them, to look frowningly upon them, or to carry it unworthily towards them. Pompey told his Cornelia, It is no praise to thee to have loved (Pompeium Magnum) Pompey the Great, but if thou lovest (Pompeium miserum) Pompey the miserable, thou shalt be a pattern for imitation to all posterity: So I say, it is no great matter to love those that are rich and pious, great and gracious, high and holy; but to love the poor Saints of God in their lowest and most miserable condition, when they have not a rag to cover them, nor a crust to refresh them, nor a fire to warm them, nor a friend to stand by them, nor a penny to help them; this is praiseworthy, this speaks our much of God, of Christ, of grace within. Romanus the Martyr, who was born of noble Parentage entreated his persecutors, that they would not favour him for his Nobility; For it is not (said he) the blood of my Ancecestors, but my Christian faith that makes me Noble. 'Tis not race, nor place, but grace that makes a man truly noble; without a peradventure, he that loves one Saint for the image of God that is upon him, he cannot but fall in love with every Saint that bears the lovely image of the Father upon him; he cannot but love a Saint in rags as well as a Saint in robes, a Saint upon the dunghill as well as a Saint upon the throne; usually those Christians that have least of the world, have most of Christ; commonly those Christians that have least of the world, have most of heaven in their hearts, houses and lives. But, Fourthly, True love to the Saints will extend to those that are most remote in respect of place, Rom. 5.26. as well as to those that are near. They of Macedonia and Achaia made a contribution for the poor Saints at Jerusalem. 3 John 5. The Saints of Macedonia and Achaia did freely and cheerfully contribute to the poor Saints at Jerusalem, whose faces probably they had never seen. And Gaius is commended for his love to strangers. A gracious man that has an estate, a treasury, an inheritance, he is like a common fountain that freely gives out to strangers as well as to near neighbours. A great fire will warm those that sit far from it, as well as those that sit near unto it: So sincere love will extend and stretch out itself to those Saints that are most remote; gracious souls do dearly love and highly value those Saints whose faces they have never seen, nor are like to see in this world, and from whose hands they have not received the least civility; and all upon the serious reports that they have had of the grace of God that has been sparkling and shining in them, Rom. 12.9. 1 Pet. 1.22. 1 John 3.18. whose habitations are at a great distance from them. A sincere love, an unfeigned love, a hearty love will be running out towards those that live most remote from us, if we do but understand that God is in them and with them of truth. But, Fifthly, Our love to the Saints is right, when we love them best, and most in whom the spiritual and supernatural causes of love are most sparkling and shining; where grace draws the affections, there the more grace we see, the more we shall love, Psal. 16.3. My goodness extendeth not to thee, but to the Saints that are in the earth, and to the excellent, in whom is all my delight. Psal. 45.19. There are Saints, and there are excellent Saints. The Hebrew word that is here rendered excellent, signifies magnificent ones, noble ones, glorious ones, wonderful ones. O Sirs! there are some Saints that are magnificent in grace, noble in grace, glorious in grace, wonderful in grace. Now this is certain, if grace be the true reason why we love any, than the more excellent, the more magnificent any are in grace, Psal. 15.4. the more highly we shall prise them, and the more dearly we shall love them, and the more abundantly in our hearts we shall honour them. Look, as grace rises higher and higher in the same person, so we shall rise higher and higher in our love to the same person; Dan. 9.23. John 21.20. Daniel was greatly beloved, and john was singularly beloved; and why? but because they were more eminently gracious than others were. Where there is most grace, there God is most honoured, and there Christ is most exalted, and there the Spirit is best pleased, and there Religion is most adorned, and there Satan is most dethroned, and there the world is most conquered, and there sin is most subdued, and there duties are most exactly performed; and therefore, there the gracious soul can't but love best and most. There are some that seem to love such and such godly men, whose judgements are weak and light, little, and parts low, and grace small; who yet look with a squint eye, an envious eye upon every Sun that outshines their own, upon every one's graces and excellencies that are more sparkling than their own. Though pride and envy have received their deaths-wound at the souls first conversion, yet they are not quite slain in a believer; there is an aptness even in real Saints, Luk. 7.16, 17, 18, 19, 20, 21, 22, 23. to grudge and repine at those gifts, graces and excellencies in others that outshine their own. John's disciples muttered and murmured, because Christ had more followers and admirers than John; and that spirit that lived in John's disciples, is still alive to this very day. This is, and this must be for a lamentation. Well Sirs, look as the fairest day hath its clouds, the finest linen its spots, the richest jewels their flaws, the sweetest fruits their worms; so when many precious Christians are not themselves, when they are in an hour of temptation, when their corruptions are up, and their graces down, they may and too often do, Num. 11.29. envy and repine at those graces, excellencies and abilities that do overcast, cloud, Heb. 12.15. darken and outshine their own. The best of men are but men at the best, and there is still those bitter roots of pride, vainglory, self-love, envy, etc. remaining in them, that occasions their hearts to rise and swell, yea sometimes to cast disgrace upon those excellencies in others that themselves want: As that great man that could not write his own name, Eusebius speaks of him, in his Ecclesiastical History, etc. and yet called the liberal Arts, A public Poison and Pestilence. This spiritual disease is mostly to be found among Christians that are got into some of the highest forms in Christianity; take your ordinary common Christians, and they commonly rejoice most where they see most grace: And so do your Christians in a higher form too, when they come to themselves, and to make up their accounts, and have wept over those cursed roots of bitterness that are so apt to be sprouting out. Now, there is no greater argument that our grace is true, and that we do love others for grace sake, than our loving them best that have most grace, though they have but little of the world. A pearl is rich if found on a dunghill, though it may glister more when set in a ring of gold; so many a poor believer is rich in grace, and precious, and glorious in the eye of Christ, and should be so in ours, though like Job he sits upon a dunghill; though in the eyes of the world he may seem to glister most, when adorned with riches, honour and outward pomp. If grace be the true reason why we love any person, than the more grace that person hath, the more we shall love him. A godly man loves all that are godly, but he loves them most, that excel most in the power, purity and practice of godliness, etc. But, Sixthly and lastly, True love to the Saints is constant, 'tis permanent, John 13.1. & 15.12. etc. 1 Cor. 13.8. Love never faileth, Heb. 13.1. Let brotherly love continue. 'Tis a love like that of Christ's, who loved his to the end. 1 Joh. 4.16. He that dwelleth in love dwelleth in God, and God in him. Our love to our brother must not only lodge with us a night and away, but we must dwell in brotherly love. Look, as our love must be sincere without hypocrisy, so it must be constant without deficiency; that love was never true that is not constant; true love like the pulse, will still be beating, it will still be working and running out to the person beloved; true love will not fawn upon a Christian when high, and frown upon him when low; it will not kiss him upon the throne, and kick him upon the dunghill. The grounds and causes of their love are constant, viz. God's commands, their spiritual relations, and the truth of grace in their souls; and therefore their love can't but be constant. Prov. 17.17. Christian friendship makes such a knot, that great Alexander cannot cut, etc. A friend (saith Solomon) loves at all times, and a brother is born for adversity. Euripides hit it, when he said, That a faithful friend in adversity, is better than a calm Sea to a weatherbeaten Mariner. He that truly loves, will love in adversity as well as in prosperity, in storms as well as in calms, in winter nights as well as in Summer days; he that sincerely loves the Saints, he will love them as well when men frown upon them, as when they smile upon them; as well when men strike them, as when they struck them; as well when men cast them down, as when they lift them up; as well when men cry, Crucify them, crucify them, as when they cry Hosanna, Hosanna, to them. Consalvus (a Spanish Bishop and Inquisitor) wondered how the Christians had that Commandment, Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself, so indelibly printed in their hearts, that no torture could blot it out, and make them confess and betray one another, or cease from loving one another. Hieron. I have read of one Ursinus a Christian Physician, who being to suffer Martyrdom for the Gospel of Christ, began to waver and faint; which when Vitalis a holy man saw, he stepped to him, and though he knew it would cost him his life, yet he thus comforted and encouraged him, saying, What, have ye been heretofore so industrious to preserve men's bodies, and will you now shrink at the saving of your own soul? Be courageous, fear not, etc. For which faithful counsel, he also was condemned to death, and suffered accordingly. Ruth 1. A true friend is neither known in prosperity, nor hid in adversity. True love is like that of Ruth's to Naomi, that of Jonathan's to David, permanent and constant. Job 6.15, 16. Many there be whose love to the Saints is like Job's brooks, which in the Winter, when men have no need of them, overflows with tenders of service, and shows of love; but when the season is hot and dry, & the poor thirsty traveller stands in most need of water to refresh him, than the brooks are quite dried up. They are like the Swallow, that will stay by you in the Summer of prosperity, but fly from you in the Winter of adversity. It is observed by Josephus of the Samaritans, Joseph Anti. lib. 11. p. 286. that when ever the Jews affairs prospered, they would be their friends, and profess much love to them; yea, they would vaunt of their alliance, saying, That they were near akin, and of the race of Ephraim and Manasses the sons of Joseph: But when the Jews were in trouble and affliction, and brought to an under, than they would not own them, Lib. 11. p. 272. Lib. 12. p. 304. Lib. 13. p. 322, 323. etc. nor have any thing to do with them; yea, than they would set themselves with all their ●ight against them, as the same Historian tells us. This age is full of such Samaritans; yet certainly, such as truly love, they will always love; such as truly love the people of God, they will love them to the end. In the primitive times it was very much taken notice of by the very Heathen, that in the depth of misery, when fathers and mothers forsook their children, Christians (otherwise strangers) stuck closely one to another, their love of Religion, and one of another, proved firmer than that of nature. They seem to take away the Sun out of the world (said the Orator) who take away friendship from the life of man; for we do not more need fire and water, than constant friendship. Though wicked men may pretend great love to the Saints, yet their love is not constant; Gen. 31.24, 29. & 33 1, 2, 3, 4, 5. Dan. 6. God sometimes indeed overrules their spirits with a very strong hand, as he did Laban's and Esau's, or as he overruled the spirits of the Lions to preserve Daniel, and of the Ravens to feed Elijah; but so soon as that overruling providence is over, they are as they were before. God for a time gave the Israelites favour in the eyes of the Egyptians, but before and after they were their utter enemies. But now a gracious soul, he loves the Saints at all times, his love to them is constant. But, Fourteen, That soul that dares not say that he has grace, yet can truly say before the Lord, that he prizes the least dram of grace above ten thousand thousand worlds, certainly that soul has true grace in him. Doubtless there are none that can prise grace in their understandings and judgements above all the world, Mic. 6.6, 7. Phil. 3.18, 19 Mat. 19.16. to 25. Psal. 2.21. but such as are first taken out of the world by grace. There is no man on earth whose heart is void and empty of grace, but sets a higher value and price upon his lusts, or upon his relations, or upon his honours, or riches, or pleasures, or upon this or that worldly enjoyment, than he does upon grace, or the fountain of grace; yea, how many thousands are there that set a higher price or value upon a Hound, a Hawk, a Horse, a Harlot, a good Trade, a fair Estate, a rich inheritance, yea upon the very toys and trifles of this world, than they do upon God, or Christ, or grace? 'Twas never yet known in the world, that ever God sent such a man to hell, who prized grace above heaven itself, who had rather have grace and holiness without heaven, than heaven itself without grace and holiness. Fifteenthly, That soul that dares not say that his condition is good, yet can say in truth of heart before the Lord, that he would not change his condition with the vain, carnal, formal and profane men of the world, for ten thousand worlds; that man is certainly for heaven, and heaven is certainly for that man: we may be very highly, and groundedly confident, that God will never cast that man to hell among devils and damned spirits at the great day, who in his day of life would not choose to be in the condition of the men of the world, for as many worlds as there be men in the world. Look, as none meet in heaven, but such as are like to like in their renewed natures, principles and practices; so none meet in hell but such as are like to like in their old natures, Deut. 22.10. 2 Cor. 6.14, 15, 16, 17, 18. principles and practices. That God that would not suffer an Ox to be yoked with an Ass in this world; nor a Believer with an Infidel; will never suffer such to be yoked with devils and damned reprobates in that lower world, who would not to gain many worlds be willingly yoked with wicked men in this world; certainly they shall never be a Christians companions in that other world, whose society and company, and whose wickedness and baseness have been a grief, a torment, a hell to him in this world, Psal. 119.53, 136. Jer. 9.1, 2. Ezek. 9.4, 6. 2 Pet. 2.7, 8. When Mrs. Katherine Brettergh was upon her dying bed, and most grievously assaulted by temptations; in the midst of her sore conflicts, this was no small support and comfort to her, That surely God would not send her to hell to live for ever among such wicked persons, whose company and whose sin was a burden to her in this world, etc. But, Sixteenthly, James 3.2. Eccles. 7.20. Prov. 20.7. Joh. 1.1, 8. That soul that dares not say that he does not sin, (For in many things we offend all; and there is not a just man upon the earth that doth good and sinneth not; and who can say, I have made my heart clean, I am pure from my sin? And if we say we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us) yet can say in uprightness before the Lord, that he would not willingly, resolutely, maliciously, wilfully, wickedly and hab tually sin against the Lord to gain a world; that soul that done't nor won't through grace assisting, Psal. 119.1, 3. 1 John 3.9. allow himself or indulge himself in a course of sin, or in a trade of 〈◊〉 in the common practice of any known sin, that soul is certainly a gracious soul. Rom. 7.15. The evil that I do I allow not. 'Tis one thing for a man to sin, 'tis an other thing for a man to allow himself in sin; 'tis one thing for a godly man to step into a sin, Psal. 139 24. and 'tis another thing to keep the road of sin. Search me and try me, and see if there be any way of wickedness in me (or as the Hebrew runs, Any way of pain, or of grief, or of provocation) that is, any course of sin that is grievous or provoking to the eyes of divine glory. A real Saint can neither allow of sin, nor wallow in sin, nor be transformed into the image of sin, nor mix itself with sin. 'Tis possible for a sincere Christian to step into a sinful path, or to touch upon sinful facts, Gal. 6.1. Prov. 16.17. and now and then in an hour of temptation, to slide, to trip, and to be overtaken unawares; but his main way, his principle work, is to departed from iniquity. As a true traveller may now and then step a few steps out of his way, who yet for the main keeps his way, keeps the road; or as a Bee may now and then light upon a thistle, but her main work is to be gathering at the flowers; or as a Sheep may now and then slip into the dirt, or into a slow, but its main work is to be grazing upon the mountains. Certainly, O soul, if sin be now thy greatest burden, it shall never hereafter prove thy eternal bane. God never yet sent any man to hell for sin, to whom sin has commonly been the greatest hell in this world. God has but one hell, and that is for those to whom sin has been commonly a heaven in this world. That man that hates sin, and that daily enters his protest against sin, that man shall never be made miserable by sin. Sin in a wicked man is like poison in a serpent; it is in its natural place, it is delightful to a sinner; but sin in a Saint is like poison in a man's body, it is offensive, and the heart rises against it, and is carried forth to the use of all divine Antidotes whereby it may be expelled and destroyed; nothing will satisfy a gracious soul, but the heart blood of his lusts. Now, he shall never be damned for his sins, whose heart is set upon killing his sins. Seventeenthly, Such a poor soul that dares not say, that God is his God; or that Christ is his Redeemer, or that he has a work of grace upon his heart; yet can say with some integrity of heart before the Lord, that if God and Christ, grace and glory, holiness and happiness were offered to him on the one hand, and all the honours, pleasures, profits, delights, and carnal contents of the world were offered him on the other hand, he had infinitely rather ten thousand thousand times choose God and Christ, grace and glory, holiness and happiness, than the contrary. Certainly such a soul has true grace in him, and a saving work passed upon him; for none can freely, seriously, habitually, resolutely, choose God and Christ, grace and glory, holiness and happiness, as their (summum bonum) chiefest good, but such who are really good. 1 John 4.19. Deut. 7.6, 7, 8, 9 & 26.17, 18, 19 Look, as our love to God is but an effect of his love to us; We love him because he first loved us; so our choosing of God for our God, is but an effect of God's choosing us for his people; we choose him because he first chose us: Such, who in their serious choice, set up God and Christ above all other persons and things, such God will certainly make happy and blessed for ever. God never did, nor never will, reject those, or damn those, who really choose him for their God, and for their great all. The greatest part of the world choose their lusts rather than God, and the creatures rather than Christ; Luke 12.21. they choose rather to be great than gracious, to be rich in this world than to be rich towards God, to be outwardly happy than to be inwardly holy, Mat. 10.42. to have a heaven on earth than to have a heaven after death, and so they miscarry for ever. That soul that with Mary has chosen the better part, that soul with Mary shall be happy for ever; every man must stand or fall for ever as his choice has been. But, Eighteeenthly, Canst thou truly say in the presence of the great and glorious God, that is the searcher of all hearts, Psal. 139.23, 24. that thou hast given up thy heart and life to the rule, authority and government of Jesus Christ? and that thou hast chosen him to be thy Sovereign Lord and King, and art truly willing to submit to his dominion, as the only precious and righteous government, and as the only holy and heavenly, swee● and pleasant; profitable and comfortable, safe and best dominion in all the world, and to resign up thy heart, thy will, thy affections, thy life, thy all, really to Christ, wholly to Christ, Isa. 26.13. and only to Christ? Canst thou, O poor soul! look up to heaven, and truly say, O dear Lord Jesus! other Lords, viz. the world, the flesh and the devil, have had dominion too long over me; but now these Lords I do hearty renounce, Isa. 33.22. I do utterly renounce, I do for ever renounce, and do give up myself to thee as my only Lord, beseeching thee to rule and reign over me for ever and ever: O Lord! though sin rages, and Satan roars, and the world sometimes frowns, and sometimes fawns; yet I am resolved to own thee as my only Lord, and to serve thee as my only Lord; and my greatest fear (by divine assistance) shall be of offending thee, and my chiefest care shall be to please thee, and my only joy shall be to be a praise, a name, and an honour to thee. O Lord, I can appeal to thee in the sincerity of my heart, Psal. 65.3. Rom. 7.23. that though I have many invincible sins, weaknesses and infirmities that hang upon me; and though I am often worsted by my sins, and overcome in an hour of temptation, yet thou that knowest all thoughts and hearts, thou dost know that I have given up my heart and life to the obedience of Jesus Christ, and do daily give them up to his rule and government; and 'tis the earnest desire of my soul, above all things in this world, that Jesus Christ may still set up his Laws in my heart, and exercise his dominion over me. Now certainly, there is not the weakest Christian in all the world, but can venture himself upon such an appeal to God as this is; and without all peradventure, where such a frame and temper of spirit is, there the dominion of Jesus Christ is set up; and where the dominion of Christ is set up, there sin has no dominion; for the dominion of sin, and the dominion of Christ are inconsistent, and therefore such a soul is happy, and will be happy to all eternity. But, Cant. 8.5. Acts 11.21, 22, 23 Psal. 71.16. Isa. 61.10. Nineteenthly, That man that will venture his soul upon Christ, and that will lean upon Christ, and cleave to Christ with full purpose of heart, and that will cleave to his blood, and cleave to his righteousness, and cleave to his merits and satisfaction, in the face of all fears, doubts, disputes, cavils and objections; and though it cannot clear its title to Christ, yet will stay and hang itself upon Christ for life and happiness; that man is certainly a Believer, and will be everlastingly saved. Though he slay me, yet will I trust in him; Job 13.15. if I must die, I will die at his feet, and in the midst of death expect a better life; Mat. 15.22 to 28 that man acts faith to purpose that can love a frowning God, and hang upon an angry God, and follow hard after a withdrawing God, Psal. 63.1, 8. yea and trust in a kill God, as here. Job had his Feverish sits, and his impatient slips, and yet he kept up his heroical resolution to lean upon the Lord, whilst he had but one minute to live; and this speaks out not only the truth, but also the strength of Job's faith in the midst of his extraordinary combats; when the soul is peremptorily and habitually resolved to cleave to the person of Christ, and to cleave to the merits of Christ, Gen. 2.24. Ruth 1.14, 15, 16, 17. Est. 4.16. and to cleave to the transactions of Christ with the Father, for the salvation of sinners (as the wife cleaves to her husband, or as the child cleaves to the father, or as Ruth cleaved to Naomi, or as the Ivy cleaves to the Oak) with an If I perish, I perish, then 'tis safe, then 'tis happy, then 'tis out of the danger of hell, then 'tis within the Suburbs of heaven. God never did, nor never will cast such a man to hell, whose soul is drawn forth to a secret resting, saying, leaning and relying alone upon Christ, for the obtaining of all that good, and all that glory that he has purchased, and his father has promised. But, Lastly, That man that makes it his principle care, his main business, his work of works, to look to his heart, to watch his heart, and to reform his heart, that man doubtless has a saving work of God upon his heart. There are two things which a gracious soul most looks at; his God and his heart. Though a gracious man looks to the cleansing of his hands, yet his principle care is the reformation of his heart, the cleansing of his heart, according to that of the Apostle James; Cleanse your hands ye sinners, and purify your hearts ye double minded. And that of the Prophet Jeremiah; James 4.8. Jer. 4.14. O Jerusalem, wash thine heart from wickedness, that thou mayest be saved. Man must labour after a clean inside, as well as a clean outside; the conversation must not be only unspotted before the world, but the heart also must be unspotted before God; the heart is as capable of inward defilements as the body is of outward defilements. 2 Cor. 7.1. O Sirs! though heart-defilement is least taken notice of, yet heart-defilement is the worst defilement, and the most dangerous defilement in the world; heart-defilement is spiritual defilement, Eph. 6.12. Vide ●●za. and spiritual defilement is the defilement of devils, which of all defilement is the most hateful, odious and pernicious defilement. The hypocrites only care is to keep his life from defilement, but the sincere Christians care is mainly to keep his heart from defilement; for he very well knows, that if he can but keep his heart clean, he shall with more ease keep his life clean; if the fountain be kept pure, the streams will run pure: The heart is the spring of all actions, and therefore every action is as the spring is from whence it flows; if the spring be good, the action is good that flows from it; if the spring be evil, the action is evil that flows from it. M●●. 2.35. A good man out of the good treasure of his heart, bringeth forth good things; and an evil man out of the evil treasure of his heart, bringeth forth evil things. Certainly, the great work of a Christian lieth with his heart; the reformation of the heart is the highest and choicest part of reformation, Prov 23.26. because it is the reformation of the noblest part of man, and is that which God looks most after: The reformation of the heart, is indeed the heart of reformation; there is nothing reform to purpose, till the heart be reform; if the heart be naught, all is naught; if that be very naught, all is very naught; if that be stark naught, all is stark naught; but if that be reform, all is reform. A gracious man's watch is mainly about his heart; Create in me a clean heart, Psal. 51.10. Psal. 86.11. Psal. 119.36. Psal. 119 80. Psal. 27.8. See Psal. 119.2. Acts 8 37. Heb. 8.10. Jer. 31 33. O God, and renew a right spirit within me; Unite my heart to fear thy name. Incline my heart unto thy testimonies. Let my heart be sound in thy statutes, that I be not ashamed. When thou saidst, seek my face, my heart answered, Thy face Lord will I seek. Psal. 119.10. With my whole heart have I sought thee. Ver. 11. Thy word have I hid in my heart, that I might not sin against thee. Incline my heart unto thy testimonies, and not unto covetousness. Rom. 1.9. The heart of man is the fountain of life or death, and therefore sin in the heart, in some respects, is worse and more dangerous than sin in the life; and hence 'tis that the sincere Christian doubles his guard about his heart. Luther hit it, when he said, I more fear what is within me, than what comes from without; the storms and winds without do never move the earth, 'tis only vapours within that causeth earthquakes, as Philosophers observe. Mat. 23. 25-30. Hypocrites (as our Saviour testifies) are all for the outside, they wash the platters and the cups, and beautify the tombs like an adulteress, whose care is to paint and set a fair face upon a foul matter; but now a sincere Christian, Psal. 50.23. though he has a special respect to the well-ordering of his life, yet his main business and work is about his heart; O, that this ignorant heart were but more enlightened! O, that this proud heart were but more humble! O that this profane heart were but more holy! O, that this earthly heart were but more heavenly! O, that this unbelieving heart were but more believing! O, that this passionate heart were but more meek! O, that this carnal heart were but more spiritual! O that this lukewarm heart were but more zealous for God, and Christ, and the Gospel, and the great concernments of eternity! O, that this slight heart were but more serious! O, that this dull heart were but more quickened! O, that this dead heart were but more enlivened! etc. The highest and hardest work of a Christian lieth with his heart. Mark, common light, common conviction, education, enforcement of conscience, principles of common honesty and morality, the eye of man, the fear of man, the examples of man, the laws of man, and the rewards of man, with a hundred other things, may be very prevalent to reform the life, to regulate the outward conversation, and to keep that in some due decorum; and yet all these things will be found too weak, too low to change the heart, to reform the heart, to mend the heart, to purify the heart. Acts 15.9. To this great work there are principles of a higher nature required, Purifying their hearts by faith. 'Tis not a guard of moral virtues, but a guard of saving graces that can keep the heart in order; to reform the heart, to keep the heart in a gracious frame, is one of the best and hardest works in the world, Prov. 4.23. Keep thy heart with all diligence, for out of it are the issues of life. The Text is about matter of life and death. The words are mandatory, for all counsels in Scripture carry in them the force of a command. In the words you have two things observable, 1. A duty enjoined, Keep thy heart with all diligence. 2. The reason or motive enforcing it, For out of it are the issues of life. In the duty there are two things considerable, 1. Here is the subject matter, the thing that is to be done, and that is, Keep thy heart. This duty is charged upon all, in peremptory and undispensable terms. 2. Here is the manner how it must be done, and that is, With all diligence. Keep. The Hebrew word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Natsar to keep, hath various significations, but the main is to keep in safe custody; we should keep our hearts as under lock and key, that they may be always at hand when the Lord shall call for them, etc. Thy heart. By the heart the we are not to understand that particular vital member of the body, that in common speech we call the heart. Heart is not here taken properly for that noble part of the body, which Philosophers call the primum vivens, etc. ultimum moriens, the first that lives, and the last that dies. But by heart in a metaphor, the Scripture sometimes understands some particular noble faculty of the soul; sometimes the heart is put for the understanding, Rom. 1.21. Their foolish heart was darkened, that is, their understanding was darkened; sometimes 'tis put for the will and affections, Mat. 22.37. So Prov. 23.26. Deut. 10.12. Thou shalt love the Lord thy God, with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy mind; that is, with thy will, and with all thy affections. The will is the chiefest power of the soul, as the heart is the principal part of the body; Mat. 8. and it commands all the affections as the Centurion did his servants; Job 27.6. sometimes 'tis put for the conscience, 1 Joh. 3.20. If our heart condemn us, God is greater ●han our heart, and knoweth all things; that is, if our conscience condemn us justly, than our case must be assuredly sad, because God knows much more by us than we know by ourselves, and can charge us with many sins that conscience is not privy to; Psal. 19 12. sometimes 'tis put for the memory, Psal. 119.11. Thy word have I hid in my heart; that is, in my memory. So Luke 2.19. But here 'tis taken comprehensively for the whole soul, with all its powers, noble faculties and endowments, together with their several operations; all which are to be watched over. With all diligence; or as the Hebrew runs, With all keeping. The Hebrew word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Shamar signifies, Cato, Cicero, Seneca, Socrates, and others, have laid down excellent rules for the government of the outward man; but n one for the government of the heart. to keep with watch and ward. A Christian is to keep a perpetual guard about his heart. A Lapide notes, that the Hebrew word is borrowed from military affairs. We should keep our hearts as soldiers keep a Garrison, with watch and ward. Lavater jumps with him, and tells us, that the word Shamar is taken from a besieged Garrison, begirt by many enemies without, and in danger of being betrayed by treacherous Citizens within; in which danger the soldiers upon pain of death are commanded to watch. Junius reads the word thus, Keep thy heart; Supra omnem custodiam, above all keeping. So Hierom reads, Prae omni custodia, above all keeping keep thy heart; that is, keep, keep, watch, watch, etc. So Rhodolphus reads it, Prae omni custodia; and so we read it in the Margin of our Bibles. And the Syriack reads it in the same manner that our English doth. Cum omni cautione, with all caution and wariness we are to keep our hearts. O, what guards and double guards! O, what watches, and double watches should men put upon their hearts! These words keeping, keep, import both a universal watchfulness over the heart, and a diligent watchfulness over the heart, and a constant watchfulness over the heart; and thrice happy are those persons who keep such a watch upon their hearts. A man is to keep his eye, and keep his mouth, and keep his feet; but above all keeping, he is to keep his heart. 'Tis a duty incumbent upon every Christian to keep his own heart; Keep thy heart, Thyself; thou mayest make another thy Park-keeper, or thy Housekeeper, or thy Shopkeeper, or thy Cashkeeper, or thy Horsekeeper, or thy Nursekeeper; but thou must be thy own Heart-keeper. Keep thy heart with all diligence; some understand this of all kind of watchfulness. The Hebrew word is applied to several sorts of keeping. As, First, It is applied to those that are the keepers of a prison, Gen. 39.21, 22, 23 So Job 7.12. where dangerous Felons or Malefactors are to be looked to, that they don't break away, 1 King. 20.39. Keep this man; so Joseph was made the Keeper of the prison. The Hebrew word is the same with that, in Prov. 4.23. Now, O ●ow diligent! how vigilant are men in looking after their prisoners? even so should we be in looking after our hearts, etc. Secondly, It signifies to keep, as men would keep a besieged Garrison, Hab. 2.1. or City, or Castle, in time of war. So 'tis used in that, Hab. 2.1. Now, what strong guards, what watchful guards do men keep up at such a time? A gracious heart is Christ's Fort-royal. Now, against this Fort Satan will employ the utmost of his strength, art & craft; and therefore how highly does it concern every Christian to keep a strong guard, a constant guard about his heart. But, Thirdly, It signifies to keep, as the Priests and Levites kept the Sanctuary of God, the Temple of God, and all the holy things that were committed to their charge: So the word is often used by the Prophet, Ezek. 44.8, 15, 16, etc. The Temple, and all the vessels of the Temple were to be kept pure, and clean, and sweet. Our hearts are the Temples of God, the Temples of the holy Ghost; and therefore we should always keep a strong and diligent guard about them, that nothing may pass in or out, that may be either displeasing, provoking or grieving to them. But, Fourthly, The word signifies to keep, as a man keeps his life, Job 10.12. Thy visitation hath preserved (here is Shamar) my life. Now with what care, with what diligence, with what labour, with what watchfulness do men labour to preserve their natural lives? what a guard, what a watch do men daily set about their lives; the same they should set about their hearts. But, Fifthly, Men should keep their hearts, as they keep a rich treasure of money, or jewels, or plate. Now, to preserve a rich treasure, what locks, what bolts, what bars, All our spiritual riches are in our hearts. A good man may say with Bias, omnia mea mecum parto, all my goods I carry about with me. what chains are made use of? Our hearts are jewels more worth than all the Kingdoms, Crowns and Sceptres of this world. There are few men that know how to value a God, a Christ, a Gospel, a Covenant of grace, a Heaven, or their own hearts, as they should. What are mountains of gold, and rocks of pearl, to the heart, the soul of man? The heart is that pearl of price for which a man should venture his all, and lay down his all. O then! what a guard, what a watch should a man continually keep upon his heart? The heart is Camera omnipotentis Regis, the presence chamber of the King of heaven; and upon this account it becomes a Christian always to keep a guard upon his heart; he keeps his heart best who keeps it as his choicest treasure, etc. But, Sixthly, Men should keep their hearts, as a fond father keeps his only child; the fond father will still keep his child within doors, he will still have him under his eye, and in his presence, that so no hurt, no harm may befall him day or night. Our eye should be still upon our hearts, or else they will give us the slip, and play the wantoness with us. But, Seventhly, Men should keep their hearts, as Lovers keep the love-tokens that are mutually sent one to another; they love to be often a looking upon them, and a thinking of them, and a talking of them; and will be sure to keep the strictest and the strongest guard upon them: So a Christian should still be a looking upon his heart, and a thinking upon his heart, and a speaking of his heart (either of the badness of it, or of the wants of it) and a keeping of the strictest and strongest guard upon his heart. But, Eighthly, A man should keep his heart as a man keeps his house, when he is afraid and in danger of being rob by thiefs in the night. O! how wakeful, and watchful, and active will a man now be? but what's a man's house to his heart? A man's heart is in ten thousand times more danger than his house, and accordingly his guard should be most about his heart. But, Ninthly, A man should keep his heart, as men keep their gardens that are full of choice, rich, rare, ripe fruits and dowers. Now, what care, cost, and pains men are at to keep such gardens, you well know: And O, that you did but every day more and more experimentally know what it is to spend your greatest care and pains about your hearts, which are Christ's garden, his bed of spices, where all grace's flourish! Cant. 4. ult. Tenthly and last, A man should keep his heart, as spruce men and women do their fine ; O, they won't endure a speck, a spot upon them! 'Tis your wisdom, and O, that you would more and more make it your work to keep your hearts from all sinful specks and spots! Let not others be more careful to keep their outsides clean, than you are to keep your insides clean; for what are clean to a clean heart? 'Tis better to go to heaven in ragged with a clean heart, than to go to hell in fine with an unclean heart. Doubtless that man that makes it his business to keep his heart as men keep dangerous Felons or Traitors, or as soldiers keep their Garrisons or Castles when closely besieged, or as the Priests and Levites kept the Sanctuary of God, or as a man keeps his natural life, or as a man keeps a rich treasure, or as a fond father keeps an only child, or as Lovers keep their love-tokens, or as a man keeps his house when he is in danger to be rob, or as a man keeps his pleasant garden, or as spruce men and women keep their fine ; that man is doubtless a true Nathaniel, a man that has a work of God passed in power upon his soul; yea that man whose sincere desires, and whose gracious purposes, and fixed resolutions, and faithful endeavours is to guard and watch his heart, according to the particulars we have now hinted; that man without a peradventure is a gracious man, and one that has the root of the matter in him, and shall be happy to all eternity. Look, as no man can hear as he would and should, nor pray as he would and should, nor believe as he would and should, nor repent as he would and should, nor walk as he would and should; so no man can keep his heart as he would and should: but if a man makes it his great business and work to keep his heart, to watch his heart, to reform his heart, to better his heart, he is accepted of God, and shall be blessed forever. 'Tis one of the greatest and clearest evidences of grace, for a man to make it his greatest business, work and concernment in this world, to keep his heart always in a gracious frame, Cant. 5.2. 2 Kings 22.19. 2 Chron. 32.26. James 5.11. Eccles. 5.1, 2. Col. 3.1, 2. 2 Cor. 7.11. to keep his heart always in a wakeful frame, in a watchful frame, in a tender frame, in a believing frame, in a repenting frame, in an humble frame, in a patiented frame, in a serious frame, in a heavenly frame, and in a jealous frame; for the more gracious the heart is, the more suspicious it will be. Satan has a strong party, a numerous party, an old party, a subtle party in all our hearts; and therefore it highly concerns us to watch our hearts with a holy jealousy: O Sirs! God hath never said, Above all keep keep your Shops, or above all keep keep your Estates, or above all keep keep your Flocks, or above all keep keep your Bags, or above all keep keep your Friends, or above all keep keep your Bodies, or above all keep keep your Names, or above all keep keep your Conversations; but he hath said, above all keep keep your hearts. Look, Fron. lib. 2. as the heart is the fountain of natural life, and if it fail life fails; and therefore it is strongly secured with ribs about it, it is guarded in a castle of flesh and bones; so is the soul the fountain of spiritual life, 2 Cor. 7.1. 1 Thes. 5.13. etc. and runs invisibly through all the body. Fountains were to be kept pure by the Roman Laws of the twelve Tables; and the heart that is the spring and fountain of all actions, is to be kept pure by the Laws of the great God. Men keep the heart principally from hurt, because every wound there is mortal. O, that men were as wise for their souls! God's eye is mainly upon the heart. The heart well guarded and watched, keeps all in security. Alexander was safe while Antipater kept the watch; so all within that little world Man, will be safe while the heart is strongly guarded. The heart is the fountain, the root, the store-house, the primum mobile, the great wheel that sets all a going; and therefore above all keep keep your hearts. 'Tis a foolish thing to watch the outworks, and leave the Fort-Royal without a guard; so 'tis a foolish thing to watch the outworks, the eye, the ear, the tongue, the hand, the feet (though these must all be watched) and to leave the heart, which is a Christians Fort-Royal, without a guard. Omnia si perdas, animam servare memento. If all things else must needs be lost, Yet save thy soul what e'er it cost. He that makes it his business to watch, and weep, and sigh, and groan most over his own heart, he doubtless is in a gracious estate; he that makes it his work, his daily work, his greatest work, 3 John 2. his work of works, to keep a continual guard upon his heart, he certainly is in a blessed estate; he that lamentingly cries out, O, that my soul did but prosper as my body! O, that my inward man were but in as good a frame as my outward man! O, that this proud heart were but more humble! O, that this hard heart were but more softened! O, that this carnal heart were but more spiritual! O, that this earthly heart were but more heavenly! O, that this unbelieving heart were but more believing! O, that this passionate heart were but more meek! O, that this slight heart were but more sericus! O, that this blind heart were but more enlightened! O, that this dull heart were but more quickened! O, my heart, my heart! when wilt thou be better? O, my God, my God when shall my heart be better? O, bring it into a gracious frame, and for ever keep it in a gracious frame! He that thus lamentingly cries out of his heart, he certainly has an honest heart, and will be happy for ever. O Lord, my memory is weak, and my utterance is bad, and my understanding is dark, and my gifts are low, and my affections are flat, and my temptations are strong, Psa. 39 22, 23, 24 and my corruptions are prevalent; but thou who art the great heart searcher, thou knowest that I would fain have my heart in a better temper; I had rather have my heart brought into a gracious frame, and kept in a gracious frame, than to have all the riches of the Indies, than to be an Emperor, yea than to be King over all the earth. If it be indeed thus with thee, thou art blest, and shalt be blest for ever, 2 Cor. 8.12. For if there be first a willing mind, it is accepted according to that a man hath, and not according to that he hath not (I know the Apostle speaks this in point of alms, but 'tis applicable to the case in hand, and to a hundred other cases.) God measures his people not by their works, but by their wills; if their wills be to be more holy, humble, heavenly, and to have their hearts always in a most gracious frame, than they are accepted of God; for every good man is as good in the eye of God, in the judgement of God, and in the account of God, as he would be. Not long before famous Mr. Banes died, some friends that were with him in his Library (which was an excellent one) fell a commending of it; I, saith he, there stand my books, but the Lord knows that for many years lost passed, I have studied my heart more than Books. O, no Minister to him, no Scholar to him who studies his heart more than his books; nor no Christian to him who studies his heart more than his day-books, or more than his Shop-books, or that studies his heart more than his countinghouse, or that studies his heart more than a good bargain, etc. That man is for heaven, and heaven is for that man, who makes it his greatest business in this world to watch his heart, to guard his heart; the hypopocrite looks most to externals, but the sincere Christian looks most to internals; the hypocrites main watch is about his lips, but a sincere Christians main watch is about his heart; the hypocrites main work lies without doors, but the sincere Christians main work lies within doors. All know that know any thing, that both nature and grace begin at the heart, but art gins at the face. A painter doth not begin a picture at the heart; a picture hath but a face, but an outside. And as nature gins at the heart, but art at the face; so grace gins at the heart, but hypocrisy at the face, at the outside of Religion. Every man is that really that he is inwardly. Rom. 2.28, 29. He is not a Jew which is one outwardly, neither is that circumcision which is outward in the flesh; but he is a Jew which is one inwardly; and circumcision is that of the heart, in the spirit, and not in the letter, whose praise is not of men but of God. Certainly, that man that makes it his great business to watch his heart, and to keep his heart always in a gracious frame, that man is a gracious man. 'Tis true, our hearts are like our watches, seldom got to go well; and when they do go well, how hard a work is it to keep them going well? The motions of our watches are not constant; sometimes they go faster, and sometimes they go slower, and often they stand in need of mending. Though in these and many other respects, our hearts are like our watches, yet if we make it our grand work to keep a constant guard upon our hearts, and our main design in this world to have our hearts brought and kept in a gracious frame, our spiritual estate is good, and we shall be happy for ever, etc. In my other Writings there are variety of special evidences, which the Christian Reader (if he please, and if need require) may make use of, in order to the further clearing up of his gracious estate; and therefore let these twenty suffice at this time. And thus much for this Chapter, etc. CHAP. III. Now in this Chapter I shall treat of sound, saving repentance, of repentance unto Life; yea, of that Evangelical repentance that hath the precious Promises of remission of sin and salvation running out unto it. My purpose at this time is not to handle the doctrine of Repentance at large, but only to speak so far of it as may speak it out to be evidential of the goodness and happiness of a Christians spiritual and eternal condition. NOw before I come to open myself more particularly, give me leave to premise this in the general, viz. That there is a repentance that does accompany salvation, 2 Cor. 7.10. For godly sorrow worketh repentance to salvation not to be repent of, but the sorrow of the world worketh death. Jer. 4.14. O Jerusalem, wash thy heart from wickedness, that thou mayest be saved. Acts 11.18. When they heard these things, they held their peace, and glorified God, saying, Then hath God also to the Gentiles granted repentance unto life. Mat. 18.3. And Jesus said, verily I say unto you, except you be converted and become as little children, ye shall not enter into the kingdom of heaven. Acts 3.19. Repent ye therefore, and be converted, that your sins may be blotted out, when the times of refreshing shall come from the presence of the Lord. Having premised thus much in the general, give me now leave to say, That there are three parts of true, sound, saving repentance, unto all which forgiveness of sin is promised: And the First is contrition or grief of heart for sins committed. Now this is called sometimes godly sorrow, 2 Cor. 7.10. and sometimes a contrite spirit, Isa. 66.2. and sometimes a broken and contrite heart, Psal. 51.17. and sometimes the afflicting of our souls, Levit. 16.29. and sometimes the humbling of the heart, 2 Chron. 7.14. Lamen. 3.20. and sometimes a mourning, Zech. 12.10. and sometimes a weeping, Mark 14.72. All repenting sinners are mourning sinners. David reputes and waters his couch with his tears, Psal. 6.6. Hezekiah reputes and humbles himself for the pride of his heart, 2 Chron. 32.26. Ephraim reputes, and Ephraim bemoans himself and smites upon his thigh, and is even confounded, Jer. 31.18, 19 Marry Magdalen reputes, and weeps, and washes Christ's feet with her tears, Luke 7.38. The Corinthians repent, and they were made sorry after a godly manner, 2 Cor. 7.9. Repentance in the Hebrew is called Nacham, an irking of the soul; and in Greek Metamelia, after grief; and Metanoia, after wit; and in the Latin, Poenitentia. All which do import, that contrition or sorrow for sin, is one part of true repentance. O! the sighs, the groans, the sobs, the tears, that are to be found among repenting sinners, Luth. Tom. 3.457. etc. Luther hit the Mark, when he said, What are all the Palaces of the world, to a contrite heart; yea, heaven and earth, seeing it is the seat of divine Majesty? Secondly, 'Tis very observable, that all mourning persons for their sins, are within the compass of the promise of forgiveness of sins, Zech. 12.11. In that day there shall be a great mourning in Jerusalem, as the mourning of Hadadrimmon in the valley of Megiddo, Zech. 13.1. In that day there shall be a fountain opened to the house of David, and to the inhabitants of Jerusalem, for sin and for uncleanness, Jer. 31.18. I have surely heard Ephraim bemoaning of himself, etc. Ver. 20. I will surely have mercy on him; or as the Hebrew has it, I will having mercy, have mercy on him. As soon as Ephraim's heart is troubled for his sins, Gods bowels are troubled for Ephraim; as soon as Ephraim, like a penitent child, falls a weeping at God's foot, God like a tender indulgent father falls a bemoaning of Ephraim. Ephraim could not refrain from tears, and God could not refrain from opening his bowels of mercy towards him. So Isa. 57.15. And how can the contrite heart be indeed revived and cheered without forgiveness of sins, without a pardon in the bosom? Melancthon makes mention of a godly woman, who having upon her deathbed been in much conflict, and afterwards much comforted, broke out into these words: Now, and not till now, did I understand the meaning of these words, Thy sins are forgiven. There is no comfort to that which arises from the sense of forgiveness, Isa. 40.1, 2. Comfort ye, comfort ye my people, saith your God; speak ye comfortably to Jerusalem, and cry unto her that her iniquities are pardoned. And why is the mourning soul pronounced the blessed soul, (Mat. 5.4. Blessed are they that mourn, for they shall be comforted) but because the mourning soul is the pardoned soul? But what is that sorrow or mourning for sin, Qu. that is a part of true repentance? The resolution of this question is very necessary for the preventing of all soul-deceits and mistakes, and for the quieting, settling and satisfying of souls truly penitent; and therefore I shall give these eight following Answers to it. First, It is a sorrow or grief that is spiritual, that is supernatural; no man is born with godly sorrow in his heart, as he is born with a tongue in his mouth. Godly sorrow is a plant of God's own planting, 'tis a seed of his own sowing, 'tis a flower of his own setting, 'tis of a heavenly offspring, 'tis from God, and God alone: The spirit of mourning is from above, 'tis from a supernatural power and principle; there is nothing that can turn a heart of stone into flesh, but the spirit of God, Ezek. 36.25, 26. Godly sorrow is a gift from God, Job 23.16. God makes my heart soft. No hand but a divine hand can make the heart soft and tender under the sight and sense of sin. Nature may easily work a man to mourn, and melt, and weep, under worldly losses, crosses and miseries, as it did David's men, 1 Sam. 30.4. But it must be grace, it must be a supernatural principle that must work the heart to mourn for sin. Secondly, godly sorrow is a sorrow for sin as sin, 'tis a mourning rather for sin than for smart; 'tis not so much for loss of goods, lands, wife, child, credit, name, etc. but for that a holy God is offended, a righteous Law violated, Christ dishonoured, the Spirit grieved, and the Gospel blemished, etc. Peter's sorrow was godly, but Judas his sorrow was worldly; Peter mourns over the evil of sin, but Judas mourns over the evil of punishment. David mourns over his sin, Against thee, thee only have I sinned, and done this evil in thy sight, Psal. 51.4. And so 2 Sam. 24.10. And David's heart smote him after he had numbered the people; and David said unto the Lord, I have sinned greatly in that I have done, and now I beseech thee, O Lord, take away the iniquity of thy servant, for I have done foolishly. David does not cry out, take away the threatened famine, but take away the iniquity of thy servant; nor he does not cry out, take away the enemies of thy servant, but take away the iniquity of thy servant; nor he does not say, take away the pestilence from the Land, but take away the iniquity of thy servant. But now when Pharaoh was under judgements, he never cries to the Lord to take away his sins, his pride, his hardness, his obdurateness, his envy, his malice, his hatred, etc. but he cries out, take away the judgement, take away the judgement, take away the frogs, take away the louse, take away the caterpillars, etc. But under all these dreadful and amazing judgements that he was under, such a word as this never fell from his lips, take away my sin, O Lord, take away my sins; thy judgements do terrify me, but my sins will damn me, and therefore what ever becomes of my life, kingdom and crown, take away my sins and save my soul. David saw sin to be a greater evil, than flying before his enemies, or than famine or pestilence was; and therefore he desires rather to be rid of his sins, than to be rid of the punishment that was due to his sin; but Pharaoh saw no such evil in sin, and therefore he cries out, take away the plague, take away the plague. And Job upon the dunghill cries out, I have sinned, what shall I do unto thee, O thou preserver of men? Job Job 7.20. does not cry out, O, I have lost all my substance, I am bereft of all my children, I am set as naked upon the dunghill as ever I was born; my friends reproach me, my wife tempts me to curse my God, which is ten thousand times worse than to curse myself; Satan persecutes me, and God has not only forsaken me, but is also become a severe enemy to me, etc. Job cries out of his sin, and not of his sufferings; a deep sense of his sins swallows up as it were, all sense of his sufferings. And so that great Apostle Paul does not cry out, O wretched man that I am, that bonds attend me in every place, and that I have neither house nor home to go to, and that I am despised, scorned, reproached and persecuted, and that I am accounted factious, seditious, rebellious, erroneous, and that I am looked upon as the offscouring of the world, etc. O no, but he cries out of his sin; O wretched man that I am! who shall deliver me from this body of death? Rom. 7.23, 24. So the Prophet Micah, I will bear the indignation of the Lord, because I have sinned, Micah 7.9. Though of all burdens the indignation of the Lord be the greatest burden, yet divine indignation is but a light burden in comparison of sin. A gracious soul can better stand under the burden of God's indignation for sin, than it can stand under the burden of sin itself, which hath kindled that indignation, etc. Thirdly, Godly sorrow is a great sorrow, 'tis a superlative sorrow, 'tis a sad and serious sorrow; a sincere mourning is a deep mourning, it springs from serious and deep apprehensions of the great anger and deep displeasure of God, and of the woeful nature, demerit, burden, bitterness, vileness and filthiness of sin, etc. The blessed Scripture seems to make godly sorrow a superlative sorrow, calling it a great mourning, like the mourning of Hadadrimmon in the valley of Megiddo, and a bitterness, as one is in for his firstborn, Zech. 12.10, 11. And so the Church, My bowels are troubled within me, mine heart is turned within me; for I have grievously re●elled, Lamen. 1.20. And David watered his couch with his tears, Psal. 6.6. And Mary Magdalen wept much, as Well as she loved much, Luke 7. And Peter went out and wept bitterly, Mat. 26. ult. Clement observes, that all the time that Peter lived after this great fall, he would every night, when he heard the cock crow, fall upon his knees and weep bitterly. Hosea 7.14. Look, as shallow brooks make the greatest noise, so hypocrites and formalists may howl, and roar, and cry, and make more noise than the true penitent; but yet the sorrow of a true penitent is more inward, secret, solid, still and deep. As you know the deepest Rivers run most silently, and make least noise, so the deepest sorrow makes least noise. The mourning of repenting souls, Ezek. 7.16. Isa. 51.20. Isa. 59.11. under the apprehensions of their sins, is like the mourning of Doves; but the mourning of wicked men under the apprehension of their sins, is like the bellowing of Bulls, and roaring of Bears. Fourthly, A sincere mourning is an extensive mourning, 'tis an universal mourning. Godly sorrow and grief extends itself, not only to some sins, but to all sins, great and small. Look, as a holy heart hates all sin, so a holy heart mourns over all sin that it sees and knows to be sin. God hates one sin as well as another, and he has forbid one sin as well as another, and he has revealed his wrath from heaven against one sin as well as another, and he is provoked by one sin as well as another, and Christ is crucified by one sin as well as another, and the Spirit is grieved as well by one sin as by another, and the Gospel is reproached by one sin as well as another, and the conscience is wounded by one sin as well as another, and Satan is gratified by one sin as well as another, and wicked men's mouths are opened by one sin as well as another, and young comers on in Religion are stumbled, grieved and offended by one sin as well as another, and the soul is endangered by one sin as well as another. An unsound heart may mourn for great sins, that make great wounds in his conscience and credit, and that leave a great blot upon his name, or that waste or rot his body, or destroy his estate, or that expose him to public scorn and shame, etc. Prov. 5. 8-14. but for sins of omission, for wand'ring thoughts, idle words, deadness, coldness, slightness in religious duties and services, unbelief, secret pride, self-confidence, and a thousand more such gnats as these he can swallow without any remorse. But now godly sorrow is of a general extent, it mourns as well for small sins as for great. David's heart smote him, as well for cutting off the lap of Saul's garment, as it did for killing of Uriah with the sword. A gracious soul weeps over many sins, that none can charge upon him but God and his own conscience, Psal. 19.12. O cleanse thou me from secret faults. Yea, let me say that godly sorrow and grief extends not only to a man's own sins, but also to the sins of others as well as his own, Ezek. 9.4, 5. And this you may see also in David, Psal. 119.53, 136, 158. And in Jeremiah, Jer. 9.1, 2, 3. And in Paul, Phil. 3.18. And in Lot, 2 Pet. 2.7, 8. And if you please to turn to my Treatise on Holiness, you may see seven special arguments for this their practice, Page 139 to pag. 145. and therefore a touch in this place may suffice. Fifthly, Godly sorrow is a lasting sorrow, 'tis a durable sorrow; as long as a Christian continues sinning, he can't but continue mourning. David's sins were always before him, Psal. 51.3. though his Absalon nor his Bathsheba were not ever before him. Godly sorrow will every day follow sin hard at hells. Look, as a wicked man (in respect of his desire and will to sin) would sin for ever, if he should live for ever; so I may say, if a godly man should live for ever, he would sorrow for ever. After Paul had been converted many years (some think fourteen) you shall find him a mourning and lamenting over his sins, Rom. 7. An ingenious child will never cease mourning, till he ceases from offending an indulgent father. Though sin and godly sorrow were never born together, yet whilst a believer lives in this world, they must live together. And indeed holy joy and godly sorrow are no ways inconsistent, Psal. 2.11. yea, a godly man's eyes are always fullest of tears, when his heart is fullest of holy joy, etc. A man may go joying and mourning to his grave, yea to heaven at the same time. But now the sorrow, the grief of wicked men for sin, 'tis like a morning cloud, or the early dew, or the crackling of thorns under a pot, or a Post that quickly passeth by, or a dream that soon vanisheth, or like a tale that is told, etc. their sorrowful hearts and mournful eyes soon dry up together. As you may see in Esau, Ahab, Pharaoh and Judas; but the streams of godly sorrow will last and run, as long as sin hangs upon us, and dwells in us, 1 Cor. 15.9. I am the least of the Apostles, that am not meet to be called an Apostle, because I persecuted the Church of God. Psal. 25.7. Remember not the sins of my youth, nor my transgressions. David prayeth to the Lord, not only to forgive but also to forget, both the sins of his youth, and the sins of his age. David remembered all his faults, both of former and of later times. David was well in years when he defiled himself with Bathsheba; and this he remembers and mourns over, Psal. 51. And 'tis very observable, that God charged his people for to remember old sins, Deut. 9.7. Remember and forget not how thou provokedst the Lord thy God to wrath in the wilderness. Repentance is a grace, and must have its daily operation as well as other graces, witness the very covenant of grace itself, Ezek. 16.62, 63. I will establish my covenant with thee, and thou shalt know that I am the Lord, that thou mayest remember and be confounded, and never open thy mouth any more, because of thy shame, when I am pacified towards thee for all that thou hast done. Certainly a true penitent can no more satisfy himself with one act of repentance, than he can satisfy himself with one act of faith, or or with one act of hope, or with one act of love, or with one act of humility, or with one act of patience, or with one act of self-denial. Godly sorrow is a Gospel-grace that will live and last as well and as long as other graces, 'tis a spring that in this life can never be drawn dry. Sixthly, Godly sorrow is a divorcing sorrow, it divorces the heart from sin, it breaks that ancient league that has been between the heart and sin; It is an excellent saying of Austin, He doth truly bewail the sins he hath committed, who never commits the sins he hath bewailed. there is a strong firm league between every sinner and his sin, Isa. 28.15, 18. but when godly sorrow enters, it dissolves that league, it separates between a sinner and his sin, it sets the soul at an everlasting distance from sin. The union between the root and the branches, the foundation and the building, the head and the members, the father and the child, the husband and the wife, the body and the soul are all near, very near unions; yet that between a sinner and his sin seems to be a nearer union. Observable is the story of Phaltiel. 2 Sam. 3.14, 15, 16. You know when David had married Michol, Saul injuriously gave her to another; but when David came to the crown, and sent forth his Royal commands that his wife should be brought to him, her husband dares not but obey, brings her on her journey, and then not without great reluctancy of spirit, takes his leave of her. But what was Phaltiel weary of his wife, that he now forsakes her? O no, he was enforced, and though she was gone, yet he had many a sad thought about parting with her, and he never leaves looking till he sees her as far as Baharim, weeping and bemoaning her absence. Just thus stands the heart of every unregenerate man towards his sins, as Phaltiel's heart stood towards his wife. But when the springs of godly sorrow rise in the soul, the league, the friendship, the union that was between the sinner and his sins, comes to be dissolved and broken in pieces, Hosea 14.8. All godly sorrow sets the heart against sin; he that divinely mourns over sin, can't live in a course of sin; when of all bitters God makes sin to be the greatest bitter to the soul, than the soul bids an everlasting farewell to sin; now the soul in good earnest bids adieu to sin for ever. O Sirs! ☜ this is a most certain Maxim (to live and die with) that either a man's sins will make an end of his mourning, or else his mourning will make an end of his sin; for he that holds on sinning, will certainly leave off mourning (no man can make a trade of sin, and yet keep his heart in a mourning frame) but he that holds on mourning for sin, will certainly leave off the trade of sin, holy grief for sin, will sooner or later break off all leagues and friendships with sin. Isa. 59.1, 2. As sin makes a separation between God and a man's soul, so godly sorrow makes a separation between a man's soul and his sin. All holy mournings over sin, will by degrees issue in the wasting and weakening of the strength and power of sin, nothing below the death and destruction of sin will satisfy that soul that truly mourns over sin. But now, though you may find an unsound heart sometimes a lamenting over his sins, yet you shall never find him a leaving off his sins. Pharaoh lamented over his sin, crying out, I have sinned, Exod. 9.27. & 10.16. the Lord is righteous, and I and my people are wicked. And again, Then Pharaoh called for Moses and for Aaron in haste, and he said, I have sinned against the Lord your God, and against you. But though you find him here lamenting and complaining over his sin, yet you never find him leaving or forsaking of his sin. So Saul could cry out, he had sinned, but yet he still continued in his sin; he acknowledged that he did evil in persecuting of David, and yet he still held on persecuting of him. An unsound heart mourns over sin, and yet he holds on in a course of sin; he sins and mourns, and mourns and sins, and commonly all his mourning for sin does but the more embolden him in a way of sin; but the gracious soul says with Job, Job 34.32. If I have done iniquity, I will do it no more. He laments over sin and leaves it, he confesses it and forsakes it, and he is as willing to forgo it, as he is willing that God should forgive it. Seventhly, All (and if you please I shall give you many things in one) godly sorrow is the fruit and effect of Evangelical faith, it flows from faith as the stream from the fountain, the branch from the root, and the effect from the cause, Zech. 12.10. They shall look upon him whom they have pierced, and shall mourn for him, as one mourneth for his only son, and shall be in bitterness for him, as one that is in bitterness for his firstborn. Look, as all legal sorrow flows from a legal faith, as you may see in Ahab's and the Ninevites, so all Evangelical sorrow flows from an Evangelical faith; They shall look upon him whom they have pierced, and mourn. All gracious mourning flows from looking, from believing; nothing breaks the heart of a sinner like a look of faith; all tears of godly sorrow drop from the eye of faith; godly sorrow rises and falls, as faith rises and falls; faith and godly sorrow are like the fountain and the flood, which rise and fall together. The more a man is able by faith to look upon a pierced Christ, the more his heart will mourn over all the dishonours that he has done to Christ; the more deep and wide the wounds are that faith shows me in the heart and sides of Christ, the more my heart will be wounded for sinning against Christ. Again, godly sorrow is not an enemy, but a friend to holy joy. I have read of a holy man, who lying upon his sick bed, and being asked which were his joyfullest days that ever he had, cried out, O give me my mourning days, give me my mourning days again, for they were the joyfullest days that ever I had. The higher the springs of godly sorrow rise, the higher the tides of holy joy rise; his graces will flourish most, who Evangelically mourns most. Grace always thrives best in that garden (that heart) that is watered most with the tears of godly sorrow. He that grieves most for sin, will rejoice most in God; and he that rejoices most in God, will grieve most for sin. Again, the more a man apprehends of the love of God, and of the love of Christ; and the more a man tastes and is assured of the love of the Father, and of the love of the Son, the more that person will grieve and mourn, that he has offended, provoked and grieved such a Father, and such a Son. Remember this, as a man's assurance of peace and reconciliation with God rises, so his grief for sin rises; the more clear and certain evidences a man has of the love and favour of God to his soul, the more that man will grieve and mourn for sinning against such a God. There is nothing that thaws and melts the heart, that softens and breaks the heart, like the warm beams of divine love; as you may see in the case of Mary Magdalen, Luk. 7. she loved much, and she wept much, for much was forgiven her; a sight of the free grace and love of Christ towards her, in an act of forgiveness, broke her heart all in pieces. A man can't stand under the shinings of divine love with a frozen heart, nor yet with dry eyes; the more a man sees of the love of Christ, and the more a man tastes and enjoys of the love of Christ, the more that man will grieve and mourn for all the dishonours that he has done to Christ. The more an ingenious child sees, and tastes, and enjoys of his father's love, the more he grieves and mourns that ever he should offend such a father, or provoke such a father, who has been so loving and indulgent towards him. Injuries done to a friend cut deep, and the more near, and dear, and beloved a man's friend is to him, the more a man is afflicted and troubled for any wrongs or injuries that are done to him; and just so 'tis between God and a gracious soul. The free love and favour of God, and his unspeakable goodness and mercy manifested in Jesus Christ to poor sinners, is the very spring and fountain of all Evangelical sorrow; nothing breaks the heart of a poor sinner like the sight of God's free love in a Redeemer. A man can't seriously look upon the firstness, the freeness, the greatness, the unchangeableness, the everlastingness, and the matchlessness of God's free favour and love in Christ, with a hard heart, or with dry eyes, Ezek. 36.31. compared with vers. 25, 26. O! who is there that has but one spark of ingenuity, that can read over that heart-breaking Scripture with dry eyes? Isa. 43.22, 23, 24. See Isa. 57.17, 18, 19 But thou hast not called upon me, O Jacob, but thou hast been weary of me, O Israel; thou hast not brought me the small of thy offerings, neither haste thou honoured me with thy sacrifices, I have not caused thee to serve with an offering, nor wearied thee with incense; thou hast bought me no sweet cane with money, neither haste thou filled me with the fat of thy sacrifices, but thou hast made me to serve with thy sins, thou hast wearied me with thine iniquities, Now a man would think, after all this horrid abuse put upon God, this would certainly follow: Therefore I will plague and punish thee, therefore my wrath shall smoak against thee, therefore my soul shall abhor thee, therefore I will shut up my loving kindness in displeasure against thee, therefore I will show no more mercy towards thee, therefore I will hid my face for ever from thee, therefore I will take vengeance on thee, therefore I will rain hell out of heaven upon thee, etc. O! but read and wonder, read and admire, read and stand amazed and astonished, read and refrain from tears if thou canst, ver. 25. I, even I am he that blotteth out thy transgressions for mine own sake, and will not remember thy sins. The Prophet's expression in that, Zech. 12.10. is very observable; They shall look upon him whom they have pierced, and they shall mourn for him, as one that mourneth for his only son. Now 'tis observable in a father's mourning for an only son, there is nothing but pure love, sincere love, hearty love; but in a sons mourning for his father, there may be and often is a great deal of self-love, self-respect, because the child may run and read in his father's death, his own loss, his own ruin, his own undoing; but in the father's mourning for an only son, a man may run and read the integrity, purity, and ingenuity of the father's love; and 'tis only such a love as this as sets the soul a mourning and a lamenting over a crucified Christ. The thoughts and fears of wrath, of hell, and of condemnation, works unsound hearts to mourn; but 'tis the sight of a bleeding, dying Saviour that sets ingenious, gracious souls a mourning. Eighthly and lastly, Godly sorrow, grief or mourning, may be known by the inseparable concomitants or companions that attend it and wait on it, 2 Cor. 7.11. and they are these seven. First, What carefulness or study; 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. 1. Concomitant of godly sorrow. the word notes the serious intention of the mind, and the diligence and dexterity of the soul in shunning and avoiding sin, and arming of the soul against all occasions and temptations thereunto. The great care of the repenting soul is to leave all sin, to shake off all sin, to avoid all sin, and to weaken, and subdue, and bring under all sin. O! the care, the caution, the circumspection, the vigilancy, the strive and the struggle of the repenting soul against temptations and corruptions. 2. Concomitant of godly sorrow. Secondly, Yea what clearing of yourselves, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, Apology or defence; which is not done either by denying of sin, or by excusing of sin committed, but by confession of sin, As the child makes his defence and apology to his father, not by denying or defending his faults, but by confessing and disclaiming of them; so does the penitent soul carry it towards God. and disliking of sin, and bewailing of sin, and by walking quite cross and contrary to the sin confessed, disliked and bewailed; as Zacheus did, Luke 19.8. and as the Jailor did, Acts 16.33. The true penitent has no ways to clear himself, but by arraigning, judging and condemning of himself, 1 Cor. 11.31. For if we would judge ourselves, we should not be judged. When men judge themselves, and condemn themselves, God is prevented, and the Devil defeated, as having nothing to say against them but what they have said before; ☞ when men acknowledge their sins, and aggravate their sins, and pass the sentence of condemnation upon themselves for their sins, they shall find their acquittance from them fairly drawn in the blood of Christ. Repentance for sin takes off the guilt of sin, and sin bewailed is as if it had never been committed; and this becomes the soul's Apology, Ezek. 18.21, 22. 3. Concomitant of godly sorrow. Thirdly, Yea what indignation or stomach, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, wrath unto grief; it notes the very rising of the stomach with rage, and a being angry unto fretting, fuming and sickness. Again, it notes the very height of anger and rage. The true penitent is not so exceeding angry with himself for any thing, as he is angry with himself for his sins. Indignation here imports the turning of all the passions of the soul wholly against sin. There are no men in the world so hot and angry against themselves for their sins, Isa. 2.20. as penitents are; witness those that polluted the Idols that they had perfumed, Isa. 30.22. witness David, Psal. 73.22. witness Ephraim, Hosea 14.8. and witness Paul, Rom. 7.22, 23. There are none that fret, and fume, and chafe at themselves for sin, as penitent souls do; there are none that loathe themselves, that abhor themselves, and that are weary of themselves, upon the account of their sins, like penitent souls. 'Tis not this thing, nor that, nor this enemy, nor that, nor this party, nor that, nor this design, nor that; but sin that is the main, the grand object of a penitents hatred, scorn, wrath, rage, reproach, disgrace and contempt, etc. He that would be angry and sin not, must be angry at nothing but sin. If some men would but spend more of their anger and indignation against their sins, they would not be so angry as they are with their brethren, that in disputable things differ from them. Fourthly, Yea what fear of God's displeasure, 4. Concomitant of godly sorrow. and of doing any more so wickedly before the Lord. Penitent souls are of all souls the most trembling souls, the most timorous souls, Prov. 28.14. Blessed is the man that feareth always. The penitent Christian has still a jealous eye upon his own heart, words and ways; he is very apt to suspect a snake under every flower, and to fear a snare in every creature-comfort. The child dreads the fire; he that has been once stung hates a snake, he that has been in danger of drowning, trembles at the thoughts of going by water; and he that has once broke his leg, rides and walks with a fear of diligence and vigilancy all his life after. I have read of the Dove, that she is afraid of every feather that hath grown upon a Hawk; the very sight of any of the Hawks feathers, brings as much terror upon her, as if she saw the Hawk herself; such a native dread is (it seems) implanted in her, that it detests and abhors the very sight of any such feather. In every penitent God implants such a holy fear, such a filial fear, such a reverential fear, such a fear of diligence and vigilancy, that the penitent Christians heart rises, detests and abhors, not only gross sins, but the least motions, inclinations and temptations to sin. They that have paid dear for past guilt, that have known what an aching heart, a wounded conscience, and a bleeding soul means, that have experienced what the frowns of God, the threaten of God, and the wrath of God means, will certainly beware of sin, watch and war against it, and fear to fall into it. 5. Concomitant of godly sorrow. Fifthly, Yea what vehement desire, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, it signifies such a desire of fervency, that can admit of no delay; it notes such a desire as produces diligence, activity, and industry. The true penitent is full of fervent and vehement desires to be rid of his sins; Rachel was never more vehement and fervent in her desires after children, nor David after the water of the well Bethlehem, nor the hunted Hart after the water-brooks, nor the betrothed Virgin for her marriage day, nor the Apprentice for his freedom, nor the Captive for his ransom, nor the Soldier for the conquest, nor the sick Man for his cure, nor the condemned Man for his pardon, than the true penitent is vehement and fervent in his desires to have his lusts subdued, Rom. 7.22, 23, 24 mortified and destroyed. Many a day have I sought death with tears (said blessed Cowper) not out of distrust, impatience or perturbation, but because I am weary of sin, and fearful of falling into it. If you ask the penitent, why do you hear, pray, read, and apply yourself so seriously, so frequently, so unweariedly, and so constantly to all sin-subduing administrations? he will tell you, 'tis out of a vehement and fervent desire that he has to he rid of his sins. If you ask him again, why he is so much in complaining against sin, in mourning over sin, and in warring against sin? etc. he will tell you, out of a vehement and earnest desire that he has to be fully and finally delivered from sin. 6. Concomitant of godly sorrow. Sixthly, Yea what zeal. Zeal is an extreme heat of all the affections set against sin, and working strongly towards God. David's zeal did eat up his sin as well as himself. And Paul was as zealous in propagating the Gospel, as he had been furious in persecuting of it. Many men's zeal is hot and burning, when scorns and reproaches are cast upon them; but the penitent man's zeal is most hot and burning, when Religion is scorned, Saints persecuted, truth endangered, and the great and dreadful name of God blasphemed, etc. The zeal of a true penitent will carry him on in a course of godliness, and in a course of mortification, in spite of all the diversions and oppositions that the world, the flesh, and the devil can make. Holy zeal is a fire that will make its way through all things, that stands between God and the soul. The true penitent is unchangably resolved to be hid of his sins what ever it cost him; who ever escapes, who ever lives, he is fully determined his lusts shall die for it; only remember this, though zeal should eat up our sins, yet it must not eat up our wisdom, no more than policy should eat up our zeal. Seventhly, Yea what revenge. The true penitent revenges himself upon himself for his sins, 7. Concomitant of godly sorrow. not by whips and scourges as the Papists do; 1 Cor. 9.27. A penitent sinner loathes the very scars of his sins after they are healed, Nazian. but by buffetting the flesh, and bringing it into subjection by fasting and prayer, and by crossing of his lusts, and loading of them with chains, and by dividing the sword of mortification against them, and by withholding from them that fuel that might feed them, and by the use of all other holy exercises, whereby the old man, the body of sin and death may be subdued to the obedience and discipline of the Spirit of God. Holy revenge will show itself by contradicting of corrupt self, and by a severe chastising and punishing of all those instruments that have been servants to the flesh; as you may see by the daughters of Israel in dedicating their looking-glasses, by which they had offended, Exod. 38.8. to the service of the Sanctuary; Acts 19.19. and as you may see by the Ephesians burning of their costly and curious books before all men; Luke 7. and by Marry magdalen's wiping of Christ's feet with her hair, wherewith formerly her fond and foolish lovers were enticed and entangled. And the same spirit you may see working in Zacheus, Luke 19.8, 9 and in the Jailor, Acts 16.23, 24, 29, 30, 31, 33, 34. And so blessed Cranmer thrust his right hand first into the fire, that being the hand by which he subscribed the Popish Articles, revengfully crying out, This unworthy right hand, this unworthy right hand, as long as he could speak. The common language of holy revenge is this; Lord, pour out all thy wrath, and all thy fierce anger, and all thy fiery indignation, upon this lust, and that lust; Lord, bend thy bow, and shoot all the arrows of thy displeasure, into the very heart of my strong corruptions; Lord, when wilt thou rain hell out of heaven upon this proud heart, this unbelieving heart, this unclean heart, this worldly heart, this froward heart, this treacherous heart of mine, etc. I have read of Hannibal, that when he saw a pit full of the blood of his enemies, he cried out with much content and delight, O, beautiful sight! So when a penitent Christian sees his spiritual enemies, his strong corruptions, all in a gore blood. O! how delightfully and rejoicingly does he cry out, O, beautiful sight! O, blessed sight, that ever I have seen! Exod. 15. When the children of Israel saw the Egyptians dead upon the Seashore, than they sang a song of praise; the Application is easy. O Sirs! let no man deceive his own immortal soul; for 'tis most certain, that repentance to life hath all these lively companions attending of it. Sound repentance, and the companions of it, are born together, and will live and continue together till the penitent soul changes earth for heaven, grace for glory. And let thus much suffice for the first part of true repentance, etc. The second part of true repentance lies in confession of sin, which flows out of a contrite heart; I mean, not a bare, formal, empty confession (such as is common amongst the worst of sinners, as that we are all sinners, and stand in need of a Saviour, God help us, God be merciful unto us, etc.) but of such a confession of sin as ariseth from a true sight and full sense of sin, and from the due apprehensions of a righteous Law that is transgressed, and a holy God that is provoked, etc. When tongue and heart goes together, when the tongue speaks out of the abundance of the heart, when the tongue is the faithful interpreter of the heart, freely, ingenuously and humbly acknowledging iniquity, transgression and sin; and the penitent judging himself worthy of death, of wrath, of hell, and unworthy of the least mercy and favour from God, etc. Now such a confession as this is you shall find in repenting sinners; and if you look again, you shall find those persons so confessing to be under the capacity of the promise of the forgiveness of their sins, etc. First, You shall find repenting sinners confessing their sins, Ezra 9.6. O my God, I am ashamed and blush to lift up my face unto thee, my God; for our iniquities are increased over our head, and our trespass is grown up unto the heavens. Repenting sinners confess their sins, etc. Ver. 10. And now, O our God, what shall we say after this? for we have forsaken thy commandments, etc. Psal. 51.3. I acknowledge my transgressions, and my sin is ever before me. Ver. 4. Against thee, thee only have I sinned, and done this evil in thy sight, Dan. 9.4, 5. I prayed unto the Lord my God, and made my confession, and said, O Lord, the great and dreadful God, etc. We have sinned and committed iniquity, and have done wickedly, and have rebelled, even by departing from thy precepts, and from thy judgements, etc. Ver. 8. O Lord, righteousness belongeth unto thee, but unto us confusion of face, as at this day. Luke 15.18. I will arise and go to my father, and will say unto him, father, I have sinned against heaven and before thee. Ver. 19 And am no more worthy to be called thy son, etc. 1 Cor. 15.9. For I am the least of all the Apostles, that am not meet to be called an Apostle, because I persecuted the Church of God, 1 Tim. 1.13. Who was before a blasphemer, and a persecuter, and injurious, etc. Isa. 53.6. All we like sheep have gone astray, we have turned every one to his own way, and the Lord hath laid on him the iniquity of us all. I might easily produce a hundred other Scriptures to prove that repenting sinners are confessing sinners, but let these suffice, etc. Secondly, If you please to cast your eyes upon other Scriptures, you shall find these penitent confessing sinners to be expressly under the promises of the forgiveness of sins, Confessing penitents are under the promises of forgiveness, etc. Turn to that, Job 33.27, 28. and ponder upon it. Prov. 28.13. He that covers his sins, shall not prosper; but he that confesseth and forsaketh, shall have mercy. etc. 1 John 1.9. If we confess our sins, he is faithful and just to forgive us our sins. Psal. 22.5. I acknowledged my sin unto thee, and mine iniquity have I not hid; I said, I will confess my transgressions unto the Lord, and then forgavest the iniquity of my sin, Se●ah. Levit. 26.40, 41, 42. If they shall confess their iniquity, and the iniquity of their fathers, with their trespass which then trespassed against me, and that also they have walked contrary unto me; and that I also have walked contrary unto them, and have brought them into the land of their enemies; if then their uncircumcised hearts be humbled, and they then accept of the punishment of their iniquity: This will I remember my covenant with Jacob, and also my covenant with Isaac, and also my covenant with Abraham will I remember. Jer. 3.12, 13. Return thou backsliding Israel, saith the Lord, and I will not cause mine anger to fall upon you, for I am merciful, saith the Lord; only acknowledge thine iniquity. And observable is that prayer of Solomon, 1 King. 8. 47-50. If they shall bethink themselves, and repent and make supplications to thee, saying, we have sinned, and have done perversely, we have committed wickedness; then hear thou their prayer, and forgive thy people that have sinned against thee. Qu. But what are the properties or qualifications of true penitential confession of sin? Ans. They are these eight that follow. First, 'Tis free, 'tis voluntary, not forced, not extorted. Nehemiah, Ezra, Job, David, Daniel, Paul, Acts 26.10, 11. Ezra 9.9. Neh. 9 Daniel 9 Psal. 5. Job 49.4, 5. etc. were free and voluntary in the confession of their sins, as all know that have but read the Scripture. The true penitent confesses his sins with much candour, ingenuity and freedom of spirit; he is as free in his confession of sin, as he has been free in the commission of sin; his confessions are like water which runs out of a spring with a voluntary freeness, but the confessions of wicked men are like water that is forced out of a still with fire; their confessions are forced and extracted merely from sense of pain and smart, or from fear of punishments, etc. Pharaoh never confessed his sin till God brought him to the rack, Exod. 10.16. 1 Sam. 15.24. Num. 22. 23-35. Mat. 27.3, 4, 5. nor Saul till he was in danger of losing his Crown and Kingdom, nor Balaam till he sees the Angel stand with his drawn sword ready to slay him, nor Judas till horror of conscience and the pangs of hell had surprised him, and taken fast hold on him. Wicked men cast out their sins by confession, as Mariners do their wares in a storm, wishing for them again in a calm; the confessions of wicked men are commonly extorted or squeezed out, either by some outward trouble, or by some inward distress; but penitential confession is free and ingenuous, arising from an inward detestation of sin, and from the contrariety of the heart to sin; and therefore were there no rod, no rack, ho wrath, no hell, the true penitent would very freely and readily confess his sins; when God is most free in bestowing of mercies, then are they most free in confessing their iniquities, Hos. 14.1, 2, 3, 4. Look, as that is the best wine that flows from the grape with least pressing, and as that is the best honey which drops from the honeycomb without crushing; so those are the best confessions that flow, that drop freely, voluntarily from the soul, etc. Secondly, True penitential confession is full as well as free. That confession is not sincere that is not full; Lam. 1.18, 19 God loves neither halting nor mincing confessions. These undid the Pharisee, Luke 18.11. As penitential confessions are not extorted, so they are not straitened; sin must be confessed in its particular species and parts, all known sins must be confessed fully, plainly, particularly, as you may see by turning to these Scriptures, Leu. 26.40, 41, 42. & 19.21. Judg. 10.10. Psal. 51. 1 Sam. 12.19. 1 Tim. 1.13. Acts 26.10, 11. Dan. 9.5, 6, 7, 8-17. Leu. 16.21, 22, etc. Some there be that deny their sins with the Harlot, Prov. 30.20. Such is the way of an adulterous woman, she eateth and wipeth her mouth, and saith, I have done no wickedness. And others there be that father their sins on others, as Adam did, Gen. 3.12. and as Eve did, ver. 13. and as Aaron did, Exod. 32.22. and as Saul did, 1 Sam. 15.22. And many there are that hid their wickedness, that conceal their wickedness, as that proud Pharisee did, Luk. 18.11, 12. That expression of the Prophet Hosea, Hosea 10.13. You have ploughed wickedness, is rendered by the Septuagint, You have concealed wickedness, and indeed there is nothing more common to a wicked heart, than to keep closely his sin, than to cover and hid his transgressions. And certainly, this is that sore disease, that our first parents were sick to death of, almost six thousand years ago; and therefore 'tis no wonder if we are all infected with it. Job 31.33. We are but flesh and blood says one, it is my nature says a second, I cannot help it says a third, I am not the first says a fourth, 'twas bad company drew me says a fifth, if it be a sin I am sorry for it says a sixth, if it be naught I cry God mercy says a seventh. And thus wicked men are as hypocritical in their confessions as they are in their professions, etc. Man by nature is a vain glorious creature, apt to boast and brag of the sins that he is free of, but unwilling to confess the sins that he is guilty of. There are no men so prone to conceal their own wickedness, as those that are most forward to proclaim their own goodness. There are many that are not ashamed to act sin, who yet are ashamed to confess sin; but certainly of all shame, that is the most shameful shame, that leads a man to hid his sins. But now the true penitent he makes conscience of confessing small sins as well as great sins, secret sins as well as open sins, Psal. 90.8 Psal. 19.12. David confesses not only his great sins of murder and adultery, but he confesses also his self-revenge intended against Nabal, and of his knife being so near saul's throat, when he cut off the lap of Saul's garment. A true Penitent is much in confessing and lamenting over that secret pride, that secret fleshliness, that secret worldliness, that secret hypocrisy, that secret vain glory, etc. that is only obvious to God and his own soul. But 'tis quite otherwise with wicked men; for they confess their grosser sins, but never observe their lesser sins; they confess their open sins, but never lay open their secret sins. Cain confesses his murdering of his brother, but never confesses his secret enmity that put him upon washing his hands in his brother's blood. Pharaoh confesses his oppression of the children of Israel, but he does not confess the pride of his heart, nor the hardness of his heart. Judas confesses his betraying of innocent blood, but he never confesses his covetousness, that put him upon betraying of the Lord of glory. And others have confessed their Apostasy, who have never confessed their hypocrisy that hath led them to Apostasy, etc. Well, this is certain, that those little sins, those secret sins, that never break a sinner's sleep, do often break a believers heart. Thirdly, As true penitential confession is full, so 'tis sincere, 'tis cordial; 'tis not a feigned, nor a formal, nor a mere verbal confession, but an affectionate confession; 'tis a confession that has the mind, the heart, the soul as well as the lip in it. Psal. 51.31. Jer. 18.19, 20. Isa. 26.8, 9 Ezra 9.6. Psal. 38.4. Job 42.6 Luke 18.13. The penitent man's confession springs from inward impressions of grace upon his soul, he heels what he confesses, and his affections go along with his confessions. The poor Publican smote upon his breast and confessed. Look, as the sick man opens his disease to his Physician, feelingly, affectionately; and as the Client opens his case to his Lawyer, feelingly, affectionately; so the penitent opens his case, his heart to God, feelingly, affectionately; cold, careless, verbal, formal, customary confessions are no small abominations in the eye of God, Jer. 12.2. Such men's confessions will be their condemnations at last, their tongues will one day cut their throats; though confession to men is a work of the voice, yet confession to God must be the voice of the heart. Sometimes the heart alone is sufficient without the voice, as you may see in Hannah, 1 Sam. 1.13, 14, 15. but the voice is never sufficient without the heart, as you may see in that, Isa. 29.13. Such who make confession of sin to be only a lip-labour, such instead of offering the calves of their lips (as the Prophet requires, Hosea 14.2.) do but offer the lips of calves. Heart-confessions (without words) shall be effectual with God, and carry the day in heaven, when all formal, verbal confessions, though they are never so eloquent or excellent, shall be cast as dung in sinners faces, Isa. 1. 12-16. Marry Magdalen weeps, and sighs, and sobs, Luke 7.38. but speaks neve● a word; and yet by her heart-confessions she carries it with Christ, as is evident by his answer to her, Luke 7.48. H● said unto her, thy sins are forgiven thee. Penitent souls confess sin feelingly, but wicked men's confessions make no impressions upon them, their confessions run through them as wate● runs through a pipe, without leaving any impression at all upon the pipe. Wicked men do no more taste nor relish the evil of sin, the poison of sin, the bitterness of sin in any of their confessions, than the pipe does taste or relish the water that runs through it. Such who confess sin formally, or rhetorically, and yet love sin dearly, hearty, shall never get good by their confessions; certainly such confessions will never reach the heart of God, that do not reach our own hearts; nor such confessions will never affect the heart of God, th●t do not first affect our own hearts. Such as speak very ill of sin with their tongues, and yet secretly wish well to sin in their hearts, will be found at last, of all men the most miserablest. But, Fourthly, As penitential confession is sincere and cordial, Ezra 10.3. so 'tis distinct and not confused. The true penitent has his particular and special bills of indictment, he knows his sins of omission, and his sins of commission; he remembers the sins that he hath most rejoiced and delighted in, he can't forget the sins that have had most of his eye, his ear, his head, his hand, his heart; the by-paths in which he has most walked, and the transgressions by which God has been most dishonoured, his conscience most wounded, and his corrupt nature most pleased & gratified, Psal. 51.3. are always before him. An implicit confession is almost as bad as an implicit faith; wicked men commonly confess their sins by wholesale, we are all sinners; but the true penitent confesses his sins by retail. Though it canted be denied but that in some cases a general confession may be penitent, Luke 18.13. as you see in the Publican, God be merciful to me a sinner; yet it must be granted, that a true penitent can't content nor satisfy himself with a general confession. And therefore David confesses his particular sins of adultery and bloodguiltiness, 1 Tim. 1.13. and Paul particularizeth his sins of blasphemy, and persecution, and injuriousness against the Saints. And more you have of this in that, Act. 26.10, 11. Which thing I also did in Jerusalem, and many of the Saints did I shut up in prison, having received authority from the chief Priests; and when they were put to death, I gave my voice against them; and I punished them oft in every Synagogue, and compelled them to blaspheme; and being exceedingly mad against them, I persecuted them even unto strange Cities. So Judg. 10.10. And the children of Israel cried unto the Lord, saying, we have sinned against thee, both because we have forsaken our God, and also served Balaam. We have sinned, there is their general confession; we have forsaken our God, and also served Balaam, there is their distinct and particular confession, both of their Apostasy and Idolatry. And so 1 Sam. 12.19. And all the people said unto Samuel, pray for thy servants unto the Lord thy God, that we die not, for we have added unto all our sins this evil, to ask us a King. They were discontented with that government that the Lord had set over them, and they would need; be governed by a King, after the mode of other Nations; and this sin they confess distinctly and particularly before the Lord and Samuel. And so David in that, 1 Chron. 21.17. And David said unto God, is it not I that commanded the people to be numbered? even I it is that have sinned and done evil indeed; but as for these sheep, what have they done? Thus that princely Prophet confesses that particular sin that he than lay under the guilt of. And so Zacheus makes a particular confession, he does as it were point with his finger at that wrong and injustice that he had been guilty of; Behold Lord, half my goods I give to the poor; and if I have taken any thing from any man, by false accusation, I restore him fourfold. Thus you see that true penitents make a particular confession of their right eye sins, and of their right hand sins; and indeed, what is confession of sin, but a setting our sins in order before the Lord? and how can this be done but by a distinct and particular enumeration of them? But to prevent mistakes, this must be taken with a grain of salt, this must be understood with this limitation; we are to confess our sins distinctly, particularly, so far as we know them, so far as we are acquainted with them. There are many thousand sins which we commit, that we know not to be sins, and there are many thousand sins committed by us, that can't be remembered by us. Now certainly it is impossible for us to recount or confess those sins that we know not, that we remember not; so that our particular confessions can only reach to known sins, so far as we can call them to mind; for indeed our particular acts of sin are innumerable, they are more in number than the hairs of our head; and indeed, we are as well able to tell the stairs of heaven, and to number the sands of the Sea, and to recount all the sparing mercies, the pitying mercies, the preventing mercies, the succouring mercies, the supporting mercies, and the delivering mercies of God, as we are able to tell, to number, to recount, the individual particular acts of sin that we are guilty of; yet so far as the knowledge and memory of a penitent Christian reaches, so far his confession reaches. But now, wicked men confess sin in the general, in the lump; as Tharaoh, I have sinned; and their concessions are commonly confused, and at random. When and where do you find wicked men confessing their sins distinctly or particularly before God or man? this is none of the least of their miseries, that they have not a clear, distinct, particular view of their own corruptions and abominations. But, Fifthly, The true penitent does not only distinctly and particularly confess his sins, but he does very highly aggravate his sins, Psal. 32.5. Levit. 16.21. by confessing not only the kinds and acts (so far as he knows and remembers them) but the circumstances of them also. There are (sometimes) some circumstances that may somewhat lessen a penitent man's sins; now these he readily and easily passes over, but then there are other circumstances which do exceedingly heighten and aggravate his sins, and that makes them more heinous and dangerous; and these he carefully and faithfully acknowledges. The penitential confessions recorded in the old and new Testament, are full of exaggerating expressions, as is evident in these instances. Ezra at once heightens and aggravates their sins by this circumstance, that they had been committed against manifold experiments that they had had, both of the severity, and also of the mercy of the Lord, Ezra 9 and so does Nehemiah also, Neh. 9 The like instance you have in Daniel, Chap. 9 5, 6. We have sinned, and have committed iniquity, and have done wickedly, and have rebelled, even by departing from thy precepts, and from thy judgements: neither have we harkened unto thy servants the Prophets which spoke in thy Name, to our Kings, our Princes and our Fathers, and to all the people of the Land. In these words you have seven circumstances that Daniel useth in confessing of his and the people's sins, and all to heighten and to aggravate them. First, We have sinned. Secondly, We have committed iniquity. Thirdly, We have done wickedly. Fourthly, We have rebelled against thee. Fifthly, We have departed from thy percepts. Sixthly, We have not harkened unto thy servants. Seventhly, Nor our Princes, nor all the people of the Land. These seven aggravations which Daniel reckons up in his confession, are worthy of our most serious consideration. The same spirit you may find working in Peter, Mark 14.72. When he thought thereon be wept; or nearer the Original; When he cast all these things one upon another, he wept. Ah wretch! that ever I was born, that ever I should deny the Lord that bought me; that ever I should deny him who hath, not only externally, but also internally called me; that ever I should deny him that made me an Apostle, that fed me at his table, that beautified me with his grace, and that in the Mount showed me some glimpses of his glory; that ever I should deny him who has brought me out of a state of death and wrath, into a state of life and love; that ever I should deny him that has been the best, the wisest, the holiest, the tenderest, the faithfullest, and the noblest Master that ever man served. Ah, wretch that I am! he forewarned me of this sin beforehand, that I might be not only cautioned but armed against it, and yet I denied him; I promised him beforehand, that I would never deny him, that I would never forsake him, that I would never turn my back upon him, and yet like a base coward, I have denied the captain of my salvation; yea, this very night, and no longer ago, did I say again and again, that I would not deny him, and yet now, even now, I have most shamefully denied him; yea, I told him, that though all others, should deny him, yet would not I deny him, and yet in all the world there is not such another to be found, that has so sadly, so desperately denied him, as I have denied him, and that before a silly Maid; nay, more beast that I am to my denying of him. I have added a most incredible lie, saying, I know not the man, when there was not a man in all the world that I was so well acquainted with as I was with Christ, feeding constantly at his table, There was scarce any Jew, which knew not Christ by sight, he being very famous for the many miracles that were wrote by him. and drinking constantly of his cup, and living constantly upon his purse, and waiting constantly upon his person, and being a constant eye-witness of all the famous miracles that were wrought by him; nay, yet more monster that I am, I did not only lie, but I also bound that lie with an hideous Oath, I did not only say that I knew not the man, but I also swore I knew not the man; nay, yet more than all this, I did not only basely deny him, I did not only tell an incredible lie against my own light and conscience, I did not only bind a fearful lie with a hideous oath, but I also fell a cursing and damning of myself, for so much the Greek word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 imports; I wished that the curse, the wrath or vengeance of God might fall upon me if I knew the man, I wished myself separated from the presence and glory of God if I knew the man: And woe and alas to me, all this I did when my Lord and Master was near me, yea when he was upon his trial; yea, and yet more, when all the world had forsaken him, yea, and yet more, when I had the greatest and loudest call that ever I had to have stood by him, and to have given my testimony for him! And thus Peter casting up all these circumstances and aggravations together, and meditating seriously on them, he went out and wept bitterly. Another famous instance of this you have in Paul, Act. 26.10, 11. In these two verses the Apostle lays down no less than eight aggravations of his sins, and all to greaten and heighten them, that his soul might be the more ashamed and humbled in him, etc. First, That they were not the worst, but the best of men, viz. Saints; that they were not sinners but Saints, that they were not drunkards, swearers; adulterers, murderers, oppressors, Sabbath-breakers, but Saints; Saints by calling, Saints by their high & holy calling, Saints by profession, Saints by a Gospel-conversation. The Saints have I cast into prison. Secondly, To cast a man into prison for theft, for murder for perjury, is no iniquity; I but says he, many have I cast into prison for professing the name of Jesus of Nazareth. O! 'tis dreadful to persecute men merely for professing of Christ, and yet this I did; though their profession and practice went together, though they lived as they professed, though I had nothing against them, but in the matters of their God, yet upon that very single account did I persecute them. Thirdly, If it had been but one, or two, or three, or five, or ten Saints that I had persecuted, the matter had not been much. O, but they were a great number; many of the Saints did I cast into prison. I have been a cruel ravening wolf, that have sucked the blood not of a few, but of many of the precious lambs of Christ; I have neither spared nor pitied any sex, but have broken into every house, haling and dragging both men and women to prison, Act. 8.3. As for Saul, he made havoc of the Church, entering into every house, and haling men and women, committed them to prison. Fourthly, Though he had cast them into prison, yet if he had given them but some liberty in a prison, as Joseph had, Act. 9.1, 2. and as others have had, and as himself once had when he begot Onesimus in his bonds, Philemon v. 10. and when Onesiphorus oft refreshed him, and was not ashamed of his chain, 2 Tim. 1.16, etc. or as the primitive Christians had, the matter had not been so great. O, but I kept them closely prisoners; Many of the Saints did I shut up in prison. I shut them up from friends, from relations, and from all comfortable accommodations; and thus he further aggravates his sin. Fifthly, If he had rested there, if he had proceeded no further, the matter had not been so bad; O, But I gave my voice against them to put them to death. My heart and my hand was not only against them, but my tongue also; if I could not kill them with my hand, I was ready and willing to kill them with my tongue; if the casting voice fell upon me, I would be sure to give it against them; I never wanted a word to do them a mischief; if they wanted a word, instead of a knife to cut their throats, I would be sure to lend them one. Sixthly, He rises yet higher; for he does not only severely punish their bodies, but he does what he can to damn their souls; I compelled them to blaspheme, like that Italian, who first made his enemy deny God, and then stabbed him, and so at once murdered both body and soul. As there is no love to soul love, so there is no cruelty to soul cruelty; and as there is no mischief to soul mischief, so there is no murder to soul murder, and yet in this murder had Paul a hand. 'Tis sad to compel a man to bear a burden beyond his strength, to lie in chains, to forsake his own country, etc. but 'tis infinitely more sad, to compel a man to sin, to the least sin; but saddest of all to compel a man to blaspheme, And yet this I did, skies Paul, etc. Seventhly, He yet further aggravates his sin by his madness, by his exceeding madness against the Saints, in those words; And I was exceedingly mad against them. He was mad with rage and wrath, he was exceedingly mad with passion and fury against the dear Saints of God; mad men think madly, and mad men speak madly, and mad men act madly against those they are mad with; and so did he against the Saints. The Alcoran saith, That God created the Angels of light, and the Devils of the flame. Certainly, as God's children are children of the light, so Satan's children are furious children, wrathful children, children of the flame, children of madness; and such a one was Paul, etc. Eighthly and lastly, I did persecute them to strange Cities; them I did not kill I did scatter, I forced them to leave both house and home; them whom God had joined together, I put asunder; I made the husband run one way, and the wife and children another way, and all of them glad to hid their heads in a corner. And thus you see, that true penitents in the confession of their sins, do cloth their sins with the highest aggravations imaginable. A penitent in his confession of sin cries out, O! the sparing mercies, the preventing mercies, the succouring mercies, the supporting mercies, the renewed mercies, the delivering mercies that I have with a high hand sinned against. O, that clear light! O, that free love! O, that Gospel grace! O, those bowels of mercy that I have sinned against! O, the fatherly corrections, the dreadful warnings, the high resolutions, the serious protestations, the frequent vows and promises that I have desperately sinned against! O, the checks of conscience, the rebukes of conscience, the lashes of conscience, the wounds of conscience, and the frequent motions of the spirit, and strive of the spirit, that I have sinned against! etc. But now wicked men confess their sins slightly, carelessly, triflingly; they are careful and skilful to hid their sins, to cloak their sins, and to extenuate and lessen their sins; and with the unjust Steward, for an hundred to set down fifty. Luke 16.6. All wicked men do commonly flatter themselves, that either their sins are not sins when indeed they are, or that they are not great and grievous sins when indeed they are, or that they are not so great and grievous as other men's sins are when indeed they are more grievous and heinous than other men's sins are, so far are they from aggravating of their sins; the truth is, wicked men are so far from aggravating of their sins, that they are still extenuating of them, and that by fathering of them, sometimes upon their constitutions, sometimes upon bad company, sometimes upon their callings, sometimes upon Satan, and sometimes upon chance, as they call it, etc. But no more of this, enough is as good as a feast. Sixthly, The true penitent confesses his sins humbly, sorrowfully. In his confessions he appears before the Lord with ropes about his neck (as Benhadad's servants) and with tears in his eyes; his confessions savour of contrition of heart, and not of ostentation of spirit; contrition of heart, Levit. 23.27.28. and confusion of face, is the common result of a penitential confession. David waters his couch with his tears, (Psal. 6.6. and he mingles his meat with his tears (Psal. 42.3.) and Ezra and Daniel confess their sins with wet eyes and blushing cheeks. Confession without contrition, Ezra 9 Dan. 9 neither pleaseth God nor profiteth man; confession is the language of the tongue, contrition is the language of the heart, and God looks for both. Luke 18.13. The Publican does not only confess his sins, but he smites also upon his breast, as a man full of grief and sorrow; lying in the dust, and renting of garments, and putting on sackcloth and ashes were of old required of those that confessed their iniquities. The spirit of repentance is a spirit of mourning. Penitential confessions are commonly attended with grief in the heart, Compare these Scriptures together, Psal. 51.17. Isa. 61.1. & 57.15 Job 16.20. Psal. 119.136. Jer. 9.1. Jer. 31.18, 19 and with shame in the face, Psal. 38.18. For I will declare mine iniquity, I will be sorry for my sin. He tells you not only that he will declare his iniquity, but he tells you also, that he will be sorry for his sin. The same spirit you may find working in Jacob, Hosea 12.4. yea, he had power over the Angel and prevailed, he wept and made supplication unto him. The people of God in the day of their confession, do not only say we have sinned, but they also draw water and pour it out before the Lord in token of contrition, 1 Sam. 7.6. Every sin is as a sword in a penitent man's bosom, and therefore whilst confessions are in his mouth, you shall mostly find, either tears in his eyes, or sorrow in his heart. And indeed, true confession of sin is many times rather a voice of mourning, than a voice of words; sometimes a penitent man's eyes will in some sort tell what his tongue can in no sort utter; many times the penitent is better at weeping than he is at speaking, Psal. 39.12. Hold not thy peace at my tears. Tears have a voice (as well as blood hath) and are very prevalent Orators with God, Psal. 6.8. The Lord hath heard the voice of my weeping. Penitent tears are undeniable Ambassadors, and they never return from the throne of grace without an answer of grace. Tears are a kind of silent prayers, which though they say nothing, yet they obtain pardon, they prevail for mercy, and they carry the day with God, as you may see in that great and clear instance of Peter; he said nothing, he confessed nothing that we read of, but went out and wept bitterly, and obtained mercy. That prescription that God gave to the Leper in the Law, is worthy of your most serious consideration; 'tis in that, Levit. 13.45. And the Leper in whom the plague is, his shall be rend, and his bead bare, and he shall put a covering upon his upper lip, and shall cry, unclean, unclean. In these words the Leper stands charged with four things; 1. To go in rent or torn garments, to note that there must be brokenness and sorrow of heart joined with confession of sin. 2. To go bareheaded, and that partly that men might not mistake him, but mainly to show his humility under his present misery. 3. To put a covering upon his upper lip. (Some read it, upon his Mouchaches) The Jews in their mournings used this Ceremony among the rest, of covering their chin, mouth, Mouchaches, all under the nose. Now the use of this Ceremony in the Leper, was partly to preserve others from being infected by his loathsome breath, and partly to show that God takes no pleasure nor delight in the breathe, the prayers of spiritual Lepers, of wicked men. God loves not to hear good words drop from an ill mouth, and partly to note that shame that must be mingled with his sorrow. 4. Twice to proclaim his own uncleanness, unclean, unclean. And thus you see that there was to be a closely connexion between the Lepers confession and his contrition; and thus 'tis with the true penitent; he does not only cry out, unclean, unclean, but he also rents and tears his garments, that is, he joins contrition to his confession. But to prevent mistakes, and that I may not shoot an arrow, instead of giving a cordial, to the weak and weary soul; let me only give you this short hint, viz. That when the true penitent can't pour out his soul in heart-melting confessions before the Lord, yet than he can mourn over his own hardness of heart; when he is at worst he can grieve that he cannot grieve, and mourn that he cannot mourn, and melt that he cannot melt, and break that he cannot break; and he can bless God for every rod, and every stroke, and every word, and every work, and every Ordinance, and every frown, and every reproof, and every cross, and every comfort, that has the least tendency to the melting and mollifying of his soul. The true penitent always sets a very high price and value upon a broken heart, though he has not the happiness always to have his heart broken. I know that sometimes the penitent soul is so shut up, that if he might have all the world he cannot mourn, he can only sit down, and sigh, and groan; nay, if all the joys and delights of heaven were to be bought for one single tear, he can't shed it; and yet all this time he can grieve that he cannot grieve for sin, and he can be sorry that he cannot be sorry for sin; and without all peradventure this is in a measure true godly Gospel-sorrow for sin, etc. But now wicked men confess their sins, but they never grieve for their sins; they confess their sins, but they are not ashamed of their sins, Compare these Scriptures together, Jer. 6.15. & 8.12. Zeph. 3.5. Isa. 3.9. Isa. 42.23. Heb. 6.6. Caligula used to say of himself, that he loved nothing better in himself, than that he could not be asham●d, etc. Aug. confess. lib. 2. cap. 3. they confess their sins, but they can't blush for their sins. Though men of good names, and of good natures, would be ashamed to be found doing of base things, things that are below them, that are not worthy of them, yet the generality of sinners are so bold and base, so ignorant, arrogant and impudent, so frontless and graceless, etc. that they are no ways ashamed, no not of those very sins that has put Christ to an open shame; yea, that has put the Sun and Moon to a blush. Most sinners in these days have brows of brass, and whores foreheads that cannot blush; they are so far from being ashamed of their sins, that they think it a shame and disgrace not to sin, not to swear, and whore, and curse, and be drunk, and profane Sabbaths, and despise Ordinances; yea, there are many that are so far from being ashamed of their abominations, that they even glory in them, like those in that, Phil. 3.19. They show their sins as Sodom, they make both a sport of acting, and a jest of confessing their sins. Thus Austin confesseth that it was sometimes with himself, before the Lord wrought upon him; I was stricken with such blindness, as that I thought it a shame unto me to be less vile and wicked than my companions whom I heard boast of their lewdness, and glory so much the more, by how much they were the more filthy; therefore (saith he) lest I should be of no account, I was the more vicious; and when I could not otherwise match others, I would feign that I had done those things which I never did, lest I should seem so much the more abject, by how much I was the more innocent; and so much the more vile, by how much I was the more chaste. But for a close remember this, The true penitent knows, that the more God has been displeased with the blackness of sin, the better he will be pleased with the blushing of the sinner; and therefore he can't but blush when either he looks upon sin within him, or God above him. But, Seventhly, Penitential confession 'tis believing and fiducial, 'tis mixed with some faith, Hosea 14. ●. though not always with a strong faith; 'tis not like the confession of a Malefactor to the Judge, but like the confession of a child to his father, or like the confession of a sick man to his Physician. As a penitent man has one eye of sorrow upon his sin, so he has another eye of hope upon pardoning grace. Thus David, Psal. 51. though he had sinned greatly, yet he hangs upon free mercy, and begs his pardon believingly. Thus Daniel, Dan. 9.9. To the Lord our God belongs mercies and forgivenesses, though we have rebelled against him. Thus Sechaniah, Ezra 10.2. Ezra 10.2. And Sechaniah the son of Jehiel, one of the sons of Elam, answered and said unto Ezra, we have trespassed against our God, and have taken strange wives of the people of the Land, yet now there is hope in Israel concerning this thing. If it were not for hope the heart would break; there was hope among them that Israel would repent, and there was hope among them that God would have mercy upon their repentance. And the same spirit was working in the Prodigal; I will arise and go to my father, and will say unto him, father, I have sinned against heaven and before thee. Luke 18.18. Though he was a Prodigal, yet he would go to God as to a father, who knew how to pity and forgive the mourning and repenting child. When confessions of sin are mingled with hopes of mercy, and the soul draws near to God as a father, than the heart breaks most, and melts and mourns most. That confession of sin that is not mixed with some hope of pardon, and with some faith in the mercy of God is not penitential but desperate. Cain in some sort confesses, Gen. 4.16. but then he flies into the Land of Nod, and there he falls a building and planting, partly in contempt of the dreadful doom God had passed upon him, and partly to drown the noise of his conscience, and despairing of ever obtaining pardon in this world, 2 Cor. 5.1, 2. or enjoying a house not made with hands in another world. Judas likewise confesses his most heinous sin; I have sinned in betraying innocent blood; but having no hope of pardon, Mat. 27.3, 4. no faith in that innocent blood he had shed, he goes out and hangs himself. Judas had no faith to mingle with his confession, he confesses despairingly not believingly, and so goes forth and strangles himself. Since Adam fell in paradise, there has not been one wicked man in the world (continuing in that state) that has ever mixed faith with his sorrows, believing with his confessing; 'tis only the penitent man that confesseth sin believingly, and that is pardoned graciously, The confessing penitent reasons thus with God; Lord, though I am a sinful creature, yet thou art a merciful God; though I am unworthy of mercy, yet thou forgivest sins freely; though my sins reach as high as heaven, yet thy mercies teach above the heavens; I am here ready and willing to accuse and condemn myself, and therefore be thou as ready and as willing to absolve me, and forgive me. O Lord, though my sins are very many, yet thy mercies are exceeding more; though I have multiplied my sins, yet thou canst multiply thy pardons; though I am a sinner, a very great sinner, yet there is mercy with thee, that thou mayest be feared and loved, served and trusted; and therefore in the face of all my sins, provocations and unworthiness, I will look up for mercy, and wait for mercy. But, Eighthly and lastly, True penitential confession is joined with reformation. That confession of sin that carries forgiuness of sin with it, Psal. 51.10. is attended with serious desires and earnest endeavours of reformation; therefore forsaking of sin is annexed to confession of sin, Prov. 28.13. He that covereth his sins shall not prosper, but whoso confesseth and forsaketh them shall have mercy. Confession of sin must be joined with confusion of sin, or all's lost; God will never cross the book, he will never draw the red lines of Christ's blood over the black lines of our transgressions, except confessing and forsaking go hand in hand. He that does not forsake his sin, as well as confess it, forsakes the benefit of his confession. And indeed, there is no real confession of sin, where there is no real forsaking of sin; 'tis not enough for us to confess the sins we have committed, but we must peremptorily resolve against the committing again the sins we have confessed; we must desire as freely to forgo our sins, as we do desire God to forgive us our sins. Confession of sin is a spiritual vomit; now you know, a man that is burdened in his stomach, is hearty willing to be rid of that ●oad on his stomach that doth oppress nature; and so a man that is real in his confession of sin, is as hearty willing to be rid of his sin, that lies as a lo●d upon his conscience, as any sick man can be hearty willing to be rid of that load that lies upon his stomach. The penitential confessor doth as hearty desire to be delivered from the power of his sins, as he does desire to be delivered from the sting and punishment of his sins. This is observable in the confession of good Sechaniah, Ezra 10.2, 3. We have trespassed against our God, and taken strange wives of the people of the Land: Now therefore let us make a covenant with our God to put away all the wives, and such as are born of them, according to the counsel of my Lord, and those that tremble at the commandment of our God, and let it be done according to the Law. And this was the former practice of the children of Israel, who joined reformation with their confession, as you may see in that, Judg. 10.15. We have sinned. Ver. 16. And they put away the strange Gods from among them, and served the Lord, and his soul was grieved for the misery of Israel. That, Job. 34.31, 32. is observable; Surely it is meet to be said unto God, I have born chastisement, I will not offend any more; that which I see not teach thou me; if I have done iniquity, I will do no more. And the same spirit you may find working in those that were once given up to sorcery and witchcraft, Act. 18. And many that believed came and confessed, and shown their deeds. Ver. 19 Many also of them which used curious arts, brought their books together, and burned them before all men. Penitential confession leaves a holy awe and dread on the soul, to take heed of committing sins confessed. Though a godly man may (in an hour of temptation, or in a day of desertion, or in a season of God's withholding the gracious influences of heaven from falling upon his soul) commit a sin which he has seriously confessed and sadly bewailed, yet he retains in his course and practise, such a holy fear and awe upon his heart, as in some measure proves armour of proof against future commissions of sin. But now wicked men are very ready, bold, and venturous to commit the same sins they have confessed, as you may see in Saul, one while you shall have him confessing his sinful injuries against David with tears; and soon after you shall find him pursuing of him in the wilderness of Zaph with three thousand chosen men at his heels. Compare 1 Sam. 24.16, 17. with Chap. 26.2, 3, 4 Exod. 9 27, 34. The same evil spirit was predominant in Pharaoh, one day you shall have him confessing his sin, and promising to let Israel go, and the next day you shall find his heart hardened, and he peremptorily resolved that Israel shall not go. And so the Harlot made the confession of her sin, Prov. 7.14. to be but a provocation to more sin. The wicked sometimes confess their sins, but they never forsake their sins; 2 Pet. 2. ult. after confession they commonly return with the dog to his vomit; as Fulgentius Fulgent. de Rem. peccat. l. 1. c. 12. hath worthily observed. Many (saith he) being pricked in conscience, confess that they have done ill, and yet put no end to their ill deeds; they humbly accuse themselves in God's sight of the sins which oppress them, and yet with a perverse heart rebelliously heap up those sins whereof they accuse themselves. The very pardon which they beg with mournful-sighs, they impede with their wicked actions; they ask help of the Physician, and still minister matter to the disease, thus in vain endeavouring to appease him with penitent words, whom they go on to provoke by an impenitent course. Well remember this, real confession of sin is always attended with real endeavours of turning from sin. Look, as the Patient lays open his diseases to the Physician for this very purpose, that he may be cured and healed; so the penitent soul confesses his sins to the Physician of souls on purpose to be cured and healed. The daily language of the penitent soul is this; Lord, when wilt thou heal the maladies of my soul? when wilt thou heal my unbelief, and heal my pride, and heal my vain glory, and heal my hypocrisy, and heal my impurity, and heal my hard heartedness, and heal my carnalness, and heal my worldliness, and heal my selfishness? etc. Lord, I do as earnestly beg grace to heal my soul, as I do mercy to pardon my soul. And let thus much suffice for the second part of true Evangelical repentance. The third part of true Repentance● lies in turning from all sin to God. That great and precious promise of forgiveness of sin is made over to repenting and ●●●●ning from sin; all who truly repent of their sins, and turn from their sins, shall receive the forgiveness of their sins; pardon of sin is for that man, and that man is for pardon of sin, who truly reputes and returns from his sin. Four things speak out this, etc. First, Scripture exhortations to repent, that so our sins may be forgiven, Ezek. 18.30. Repent and turn yourselves from all your transgressions, so iniquity shall not be your ruin. Acts 2.38. Repent and be baptised every one of you in the name of Jesus Christ, for the remission of your sins. Acts 3.19. Repent and be converted, that your sins may be blotted out, etc. Secondly, Express promises that our sins shall be forgiven upon our repentance, 2 Chron. 7.14. If my people shall turn from their evil way, then will I forgive their sin. Prov. 28.13. Whose confesseth and forsakes his sin, shall find mercy. Ezek. 18.21. If the wicked will turn from all his sins which he hath committed, and do that which is lawful and right, he shall surely live, he shall not die. Ver. 22. All his transgressions which he hath committed, they shall not be mentioned unto him. Thirdly, A most certain assurance of the forgiveness of sins upon repentance, though they have been never so great and heinous, Isa. 1.16, 17, 18. Wash ye, make you clean, put away the evil of your do, cease to do evil, learn to do well: Come now and let us reason together, saith the Lord; though your sins be as scarlet, they shall be as white as snow; though they be re● like crimson, they shall be as wool. Fourthly, Express records and instances of forgiveness unto such as have repent and turned from their sins, 2 Sam. 12.13. And David said unto Nathan, I have sinned against the Lord; and Nathan said to David, the Lord hath also put away thy sin. Jer. 31.18, 19, 20. I have surely heard Ephraim bemoaning himself; turn thou me, and I shall be turned, etc. Surely after that I was turned, I repent; and after that I was instructed, I s●ote upon my thigh, I was ashamed, yea even confounded, because I did bear the reproach of my youth. Is Ephraim my dear son? ●s he a pleasant child? for since I spoke against him, I do remember him still; therefore my bowels are troubled for him, I will surely have mercy upon him, saith the Lord. Luke 7.38. And she stood at his feet behind him weeping, and began to wash his feet with tears, and did wipe them with the hairs of her head, and kissed his feet and anointed them with ointment. Ver. 47. Wherefore I say, her sins which were many are forgiven. Chap. 15.18, 19, 20. I will arise and go to my father, and will say to him, father, I have sinned against heaven and before thee, and am no more worthy to be called thy son▪ And he arose and came to his father; but when he was yet a great way off; his father saw him, and had compassion, and ran and fell upon his neck and kissed him. Qu. But what are the properties or qualifications of that right turning from sin, which brings poor sinners within the compass of the promise of forgiveness of sins? Now to this great question I shall give these four following Answers. First Answer. Ans. 1 First, That turning from sin, which brings a man within the compass of the promise of forgiveness of sin, is a cordial turning from sin, Joel 2.12. Turn ye, even to me, with all your heart. 2 Chron. 6.38. If they return to thee with all their heart, and with all their soul. Ver. 39 Then hear thou from the heavens their prayer and their supplication, and forgive their sins. Deut. 30.10. If thou turn unto the Lord thy God with all thine heart, and with all thy soul, etc. Jer. 3.10. And yet for all this, her treacherous sister Judah hath not turned unto me with her whole heart, but feignedly, saith the Lord. Chap. 24.7. And I will give them an heart to know me, that I am the Lord, and they shall be my people, and I will be their God; for they shall return unto me with their whole heart. Wicked men are serious and cordial in their sinning, and they must be as serious and cordial in their returning, or they are lost and undone for ever. The true penitent turns from sin with his heart, with all his heart, and with all his soul; he is turned in good earnest from his sins, whose heart is turned from his sins; if the heart turns not, all is naught, all is stark naught; he that turns from sin, but not with his heart, turns but feignedly, partially, hypocritically, deceifully. God is a just and a jealous God, and he will never endure corrivals or copartners in the throne, the heart of man; a holy God will never divide with an unholy Devil. The true God is a righteous God, and he will never share his glory with another; the true God must be served truly, hearty, he loves neither halting nor halving. Such as divide the rooms of their souls betwixt God and sin, God and Satan, God and the world, that swear by God and Malcham, that sometimes pray devoutly, and at other times curse most hideously; that halt betwixt God and Baal, are mere Heteroclites in Religion, and such whom God abhors. When a man's heart gives a bill of divorce to his sins, when his heart breaks the league with sin, when his heart casts it off, and casts it out as an abominable thing, than the heart is turned from sin really, effectually, etc. If notwithstanding all the professions that a man makes against his sins, his heart still loves them, and delights in them, and he will still retain them, and welcome them, and cleave to them, and make provision for them, etc. his repentance is feigned and not real, etc. But, The second Answer. Secondly, A true penitential turning is an universal turning, Ans. 2 a turning not from some sins, but from all sins, Ezek. 18.30. Repent and turn yourselves from all your transgressions. Ver. 31. Cast away from you all your transgressions. 2 Cor. 7.1. Let us cleanse ourselves from all filthiness both of flesh and spirit. Psal. 119.101. I have refrained my feet from every evil way. Ver. 128. I hate every false way. Ezek. 14.6. Therefore say unto the house of Israel, thus saith the Lord God, repent and turn yourselves from your idols, and turn away your faces from all your abominations. Chap. 18.28. Because he considereth and turneth away from all his transgressions that he hath committed, he shall surely live, he shall not die. True repentance is a turning from all sin, without any reservation or exception; he never truly repent of any sin, whose heart is not turned against every sin. The true penitent casts off all the rags of old Adam, he throws down every stone of the old building, he will not leave a horn nor a hoof behind. That which Nehemiah speaks of himself in that, Neh. 13.7, 8. is very observable to our purpose. And I came to Jerusalem and understood of the evil that Eliashib did for Tobiah, in preparing him a chamber in the courts of the house of God, and it grieved me sore (but he rests not there, but goes further) therefore I cast forth all the householdstuff of Tobiah out of the chamber. What should Tobiah do with a chamber? therefore he not only outs Tobiah, but outgoes all his stuff too. Thus the true penitent, when he considers all the evil that sin has done, how it has taken up not only one chamber, but every chamber in the soul, and how it has for many years quite shut out God, and Christ, and the Spirit, and every thing that is good; he is grieved sore, and so falls upon the outging of every lust, being highly resolved that neither Satan nor any of his retinue shall ever find the least entertainment in his soul any more. Such as are resolved against turning from any sin, are horrible profane; such as turn from some sins, but close with others, are hideous hypocrites; such as turn from one sin to another, or change their sins as men do their fashions, are most sadly blinded, and desperately deluded by Satan; but such as turn not from some sins, but from every sin, are sincerely penitent. And certainly there are very grea● reasons why the true penitent does turn, and must turn from sin universally. As, First, 'Tis to no purpose for a man to turn from some sins, if he does not turn from all his sins, James 1.26. If any man seem to be religious and bridle not his tongue, but deceiveth his own heart, this man's Religion is in vain. This at first sight may seem to be a hard saying, One stab at the heart kills, one act of treason makes a Traitor, one spark of fire sets the house on fire, one flaw in a diamond spoils the price of it, one puddle if we wallow in it, will defile us, one head of garlic will poison a Leopard, say the Naturalists. that for one fault, for one fault in the tongue, all a man's Religion should be counted vain, and yet this you see the holy Ghost does peremptorily conclude. Let a man make never so glorious a profession of Religion, yet if he gives himself liberty to live in the practice of any known lust, yea though it be but in a sin of the tongue, his Religion is in vain, and that one lust will separate him from God for ever. If a Wife be never so officious to her Husband in many things, and though she gives him content several ways, yet if she entertains any other Lover into his bed besides himself, it will alienate his affections from her, and for ever separate him from her. The application is easy. To turn from one sin to another, is but to be tossed from one hand of the Devil to another; it is but with Benhadad, to recover of one disease and die of another, it is but to take pains to go to hell. If a Ship spring three leaks, and only two be stopped, the third will sink the Ship; or if a man have two grievous wounds in his body, and take order only to cure one, that which is neglected will certainly kill him: 'Tis so here, if a man that has divers lusts fight against the life of his precious soul, shall only mortify and slay some of them, the rest will certainly destroy him, and all his pains in subduing some of them will be lost. I have read of a devout man, who had amongst many other virtues, the gift of healing, unto whom divers made resort for cure; among the rest, one Chromatius being sick sent for him, being come he told him of his sickness, and desired that he might have the benefit of cure as others had before him: I cannot do it (said the devout person) till thou hast beaten all the Idols and Images in thy house to pieces. O, that shall be done, said Chromatius, here take my keys, and where you find any Images let them be defaced, which was done accordingly; to prayer went the holy man, but no cure was wrought. O, saith Chromatius, I am as sick as ever, O, I am very weak and sick: It cannot be otherwise, replied the holy man, nor can I help it; for certainly there is one Idol more in your house undiscovered, and that must be defaced too. True, says Chromatius, there is so indeed, there is one all of beaten gold, it cost 200 l. I would fain have saved it; but here take my keys again, you shall find it locked up fast in my chest, take it and break it in pieces; which done, the holy man prayed, and Chromatius was healed. The moral of this story is this: We are all spiritually sick, full of wounds and putrified sores; Christ our spiritual Physician tells us, that if we will be cured, we must break off our sins by repentance. Now this we are willing to do in part, but not in whole; we would fain keep one Dalilah, one darling beloved sin, but it must not be, there must not be one sin unrepented of; we must repent as well for our achan's as our Absaloms', our Rimmons as our Mammon's, our Davids as our Goliahs, our covert as well as our open sins, our loved as well as our loathed lusts, our heart abominations as well as our gross transgressions, our Babe iniquities as well as our Giantlike provocations; our repentance must be universal, or 'twill be to no purpose. Herod turned from many evils, but would not turn from his Herodias, Mark 6.18, 19, 20 and that was his ruin. Judas his life was as fair and as free from spots and blots, as the lives of any of the Apostles, no scandalous sin was to be found upon him, only that golden Devil covetousness was his sin, and his everlasting ruin; his Apostleship, Preaching, working of Miracles, hearing of Christ, and conversing with him, etc. was to no purpose, because of that Serpent he kept in his bosom, which at last stung him to death. If a man lives in the practice of any known sin, the union between sin and his soul is not dissolved; and if that union be not dissolved, Christ and his soul was never united, and therefore such a person can never be saved. Saul spared Agag and the Witch of Endor, whom he should have destroyed, and so lost his Crown, his Kingdom, and his Soul, which was saddest of all. Gideon had seventy sons, Judg. 8.13. and but one bastard, and yet that one bastard destroyed all the rest. The Jewish Rabbins report, that the same night that Israel departed out of Egypt towards Canaan, all the Idols and idolatrous Temples in Egypt, by lightning and earthquakes were broken down: So when a man truly reputes, all the Idols that were set up in his soul, are cast down. But, Secondly, God has so connexed the duties of his Law one to another, that if there be not a conscientious care to walk according to all that the Law requires, a man becomes a transgressor of the whole Law, according to that of Saint James, Chap. 2.10. Whosoever shall keep the whole Law, He who prevaricates with God as to any one particular commandment of his, his heart is naught, stark naught, and he is guilty of all: he hath no real regard to any of the commandments of God, that hath not a regard to all the commandments of God, etc. and yet offend in one point, is guilty of all; the bond of all is broken, the authority of all is slighted, and that evil disposition, that sinful frame of heart, that works a man to venture upon the breach of one command, would make him venture upon the breach of any command, were it not for some infirmity of nature, or because his purse will not hold out to maintain it, or for shame, or loss, or because of the eye of friends, or the sword of the Magistrate, or for some sinister respects; and might the breach of any other of the commands of God serve his turn, and advance his ends, he stands as strongly pressed in spirit to transgress them all, as to transgress any one of them. He that gives himself liberty to live in the breach of any one command of God, is qualified with a disposition of heart to break them all; every single sin contains virtually all sin in it. He that allows himself a liberty to live in the breach of any one particular Law of God, he casts contempt and scorn upon the authority that made the whole Law, and upon this account breaks it all. And the Apostle gives the reason of it in Verse 11. For he that said, do not commit adultery, said also, do not kill; now if thou commit no adultery, yet if thou kill, thou art become a transgressor of the Law. Not that he is guilty of all distributively, but collectively; for the Law is copulative, there is a chain of duties, and these are all so linked one to another, that you cannot break one link of the chain, but you break the whole chain. All the precepts of the Law are as it were a string of pearls strung by the authority of God; now break this string in any place, and all the pearls fall to the ground. No man can live in the breach of any known command of God, but he wrongs every command of God; and this at last he shall find to his cost, without sound repentance on his side, and pardoning grace on God's. But, Thirdly, One sin never goes alone, Cain's anger is seconded with murder, Gen. 4.6, 8. Ahab's covetousness is attended with bloody cruelty, and Jeroboam's rebellion with idolatry, and Judas his thievery with treason. I might give instances of this in Adam and Eve, and in Lot, Abraham, Noah, Jacob, Joseph, 1 King. 12. Job, David, Sol●mon and Peter, etc. but a touch on this string is enough; one sin commonly disposes the heart to another sin, a small sin many times draws the heart to a greater, ●nd one great sin draws the heart to another great sin, and that to a greater, till at last the soul comes to be drowned in all excess. Augustine relates this story of Manicheus, who being tormented with Flies, Exposit. in Evang. S. John, Tract. cap. 1. tom. was of opinion that the Devil made them and not God; why then, said one that stood by, ●f the Devil made Flies, than the Devil made Worms and not God, for they are living creatures as well as Flies; true said he, the Devil did make Worms: But said the other, if the Devil did make Worms, than he did make Birds, Beasts, and Man; he granted all. And thus saith that old Father by denying God in the Fly, he came to deny God in Man; and so consequently the whole Creation. And thus yielding to lesser sins, draws the soul to the common of greater, yea often to the greatest of all. I have both heard and read a story of a young man, who being often tempted by the Devil and his own wicked heart, to commit three sins, viz. to kill his father, to lie with his mother, and to be drunk; the two former his heart would not yield to, as being things abhorrent to the light and law of nature, and therefore to free himself from the temptation, he yielded to the last and least; but when he was drunk, he killed his father and ravished his mother: Thus these two abominable sins, Murder and Incest were ushered in by one that was not of so deep a dye. There is something in sin, like the radical virtue that is in the seed of Herbs and Plants; the seed is but a small inconsiderable thing in itself, yet let it be but cast into the ground, and there rest quietly a time, and it will take root, and grow up to a great stock, and bring forth many flourishing branches, like the grain of mustardseed, Mat. 13.31, 32. which though it be the least of seeds, yet being cast into the ground, grows up to be the greatest among herbs, and becometh a Tree, so that the birds of the Air come and lodge in the branches thereof. Satan will be sure to nest himself, to lodge himself in the least sins (as birdsnest and lodge themselves in the smallest branches of a Tree) and there he will hatch all manner of wickedness. A sinful motion, if it be not rejected, will procure consent, and consent will break forth into act, and one act will procure another act, until the multiplying of acts have begot a habit, and that habit hath choked and stifled conscience, and when once conscience is stifled and benumbed, it will be ready upon all occasions to lay the soul open, and to prostrate it to the basest and worst of sins. O! there is a prodigious evil in the least of sins, it will quickly multiply itself into all manner of evils; unless sin be cut off in the first motion, it will proceed to action, and from action to delectation, and from delight to custom, and from custom to a habit; and so the soul will be in eminent danger of being undone for ever. A little thief put in at the window, may open the doors for stronger and greater to come in, that may take away both life and treasure at once. A little wedge makes way for a greater, and so do little sins make way for greater. Satan and our own hearts will be modest at first, and therefore they are often in a combination, first to draw us to lesser sins, and then to greater, and so from sins less obnoxious to sins more scandalous, till we come to be abominable to God, hateful to others, and a terror to ourselves. Such as live in one sin, God will in justice give over to other sins. The Gentiles gave up themselves to idolatry, Rom. 1.23. And God gave them up to uncleanness, ver. 24. 'Tis impossible for any man to take one sin into his bosom, and to shut all others out; he that lives but in the allowance of himself in one sin, will find that sin at last to shut the door of heaven against him; and therefore the true penitent turns from sin universally. Fourthly, The reasons of turning from sin, are universally binding to a penitent soul. There are the same reasons and grounds for a penitent man's turning from every sin, as there is for his turning from any one sin. Do you turn from this or that sin, because the Lord has forbid it? why upon the same ground you must turn from every sin, As in a Harp to make the music good and harmonious, it is not enough that all the strings be right tuned except one; one string that jars, will spoil the sweetest music. The application is easy, etc. for God has forbid every sin as well as this or that particular sin; there is the same authority forbidding or commanding in all; and if the authority of God awes a man from one sin, it will awe him from all. There is one and the same Lawgiver in respect of all the commandments; he that gave one commandment gave also another, therefore he that observes one commandment gave in obedience unto God, whose commandment it is, will observe all, because all are his commandments; and he that slights one commandment is guilty of all, because he doth contemn the authority and will of him that gave them all; even in those commands which he doth observe, he hath no respect to the will and authority of him that gave them. Therefore there is no obedience towards God, where there is not an uniform endeavour to please God, as well in one thing as in another. The same God that hath inhibited one sinful act, hath inhibited every sinful act; and therefore he that out of conscience and respect to God's will, and word, and authority; turns from any one sin, or abhors any one sin, he will out of conscience of the same will, and word, and authority, turn from every sin, and abhor every sin, because the same God in his word hath alike forbidden all. O Si●s! how is it possible for a man truly to repent of this or that sin, because 'tis contrary to the Law, will and authority of God, but he must needs repent of whatsoever he knows to be contrary to the Law, will and authority of God. He that turns from any one sin because it is a transgression of the holy and righteous Law of God, he will turn from every sin upon the same account; he that turns from any one sin, because 'tis a dishonour to God, a reproach to Christ, a grief to the Spirit, a wound to Religion, etc. will upon the same grounds turn from every sin; he that turns from any one sin, because of the curse, the threaten, the judgements, the wrath, the hell that hangs (as it were) over the head of that sin; he will turn from every sin, because the curse, the threaten, the judgements, the wrath, the hell, that hangs over the head of that one sin, hangs over the head of every sin. By these hints 'tis most evident, that the reasons of turning from sin are universally binding to a penitent soul; and therefore he turns not from some sins only, but from every sin; he says not to one, but to all his Idols, Get you hence, for what have I any more to do with you. Fifthly, One sin allowed, wallowed and tumbled in, is sufficient to deprive a man for ever of the greatest good. Moses came within the sight of Canaan, but for one sin, viz. not sanctifying God's name at the water of Meribah, he was shut out; for him to be so near the holy Land, Exod. 22. and yet so far off from entering into it, was doubtless of all strokes the hardest that ever he felt. In the Law, Levit. 13. the Leper that had the spot of leprosy in any one part of his body, was accounted a Leper, although all the rest of his body were sound and whole, and accordingly he was to be shut up, and shut out from the society and company of the people of God; so one sin, one leprous spot, allowed and beloved, will for ever shut a man out from the glorious presence of God, Christ, the Spirit, Angels, and the spirits of just men made perfect; one sin wallowed in, will as certainly deprive a man of the blessed vision of God, and of all the treasures, pleasures and delights that be at God's right hand, as a thousand. It was a sore vexation to King Lysimachus, that he should lose his earthly kingdom for one draught of water. O Sirs! 'twill be an everlasting vexation to such, who for one lust shall at last lose not an earthly, but a heavenly kingdom. One sin stripped the fallen Angels of all their glory; and one sin stripped our first parents of all their dignity and excellency. Gen. 3.4, 5. Satan by one loud lie to Adam and Eve made fruitless all that God had preached to them immediately before. Job ●0. 13. To turn from some sins, but not from all, is gross hypocrisy; one sin set up in the love and service of it, will keep Christ out of his throne; it speaks sin to be rampant, and Satan to be victorious; and what can be the issue of these things, but ruin and damnation? Rom. 6.16. One fly in the box of precious ointment, spoils the whole box; one thief may rob a man of all his treasure, one disease may deprive a man of all his health, one strong wind may blow down and blow away all a man's comforts, and so one sin delighted and wallowed in, will make a man miserable for ever. Though this or that particular sin be very pleasant to the flesh, and delightful to the fancy, yet he is the wisest man, and he is the best man, and the only blessed man in all the world, that keeps furthest from it; and therefore the true penitent turns not merely from this or that sin, but from every sin. Sixthly, The principle of Regeneration, and seed of grace, which God lays into the soul of every penitent person at first conversion, is a universal principle, a principle that spreads itself over all the faculties of the soul, 1 Thes. 5.23. and over all the members of the body, Psal. 45.13. The King's daughter is all glorious within, her clothing is of wrought gold. In regeneration there is infused the habits or principles of all grace, Mat. 13.33. which like a divine leaven spreads itself over the whole man. Look, as Absalom's beauty was spread all over him, 2 Sam. 24.25. even from the crown of his head to the sols of his feet; so grace spreads itself over every faculty of the soul, and over every member of the body. Look, as Solomon's Temple was all glorious both within and without; so that grace which a man receives at first conversion, makes him all glorious both within and without. John 1.16. Look, as Adam's sin spread itself over the whole man, so that grace which we receive from the second Adam, spreads itself over the whole man. And as that grace which was in Christ, did diffuse and spread itself over all of Christ; so that grace which is in the true penitent, does diffuse and spread itself all over the penitent. Now, look as heaven is contrary to all of hell, and as light is contrary to all darkness, and heat to all cold; so that divine, that noble, that universal principle of grace, which God at first conversion infuses into the penitents soul, is contrary to all sin; and therefore the penitent turns from all sin. But, Seventhly, The true penitent would have God to forgive him, not only some of his sins, but all his sins; and therefore 'tis but just and equal that he should turn from all his sins. If God be so faithful and just to forgive us all our sins, 1 John 1.9. we must be so faithful and just as to turn from all our sins. The plaster must be as broad as the sore, and the tent as long and as deep as the wound. It argues horrid hypocrisy, damnable folly, and wonderful impudence, for a man to beg the pardon of those very sins that he is resolved never to forsake. Look, as he that hath any one sin forgiven, hath all sins forgiven; so he that hath sincerely turned from any one sin, he hath turned from every sin; and he that hath not repent him of all known sin, he hath not yet sincerely repent of any known sin, nor as yet experienced the sweetness of forgiveness of sin. He that will not renounce those sins that he would have God to remit, shall be sure to have a hell (of guilt) in his conscience. Of all fools there is none to him, that is very importunate with God to forgive those sins, which he is resolved beforehand to commit; for what Prince (in his wits) will pardon his treasons that is resolved to continue a Traitor? or what Judge will forgive his thievery, that is peremptorily determined to continue a thief? or what Husband will pardon his Wife that is resolved to defile his bed with other Lovers? Such as continue in the practice of those very sins, which they beg a pardon of, shall certainly go without their pardon. Pardon of sin is for that man, and that man is for pardon of sin, that is as truly willing to forsake his sins as he is to receive the pardon of his sins. Who would not look upon that man as a mad man, who should earnestly beg his pardon, and yet before his pardon is sealed, should afresh cut purses, and murder persons before the eyes of the Judge? The pardoned soul is the repenting soul, and the repenting soul is the pardoned soul, Psal. 32.2. Blessed is the man unto whom the Lord imputeth not iniquity, and in whose spirit there is no guil. He that begs pardon of sin, and is resolved against turning from sin, shall find no more sweetness in that grand promise of pardon, Prov. 28.13. than devils or damned spirits do. Look as one sin unforgiven, will as certainly undo and damn a man as a thousand; so one sin unforsaken, will as certainly undo and damn a man as a thousand. The true penitent is as willing to turn from all his sins, as he is willing that God should pardon all his sins. But, Eighthly and lastly, There is in every penitent a sincere hatred of sin, a universal hatred of sin, Psal. 97.10. Ye that love the Lord hate evil. Prov. 8.13. The fear of the Lord is to hate evil. True hatred is to the whole kind. Arist. Amos 5.15. Hate the evil and love the good. Psal. 119.104. Through thy precepts I get understanding, therefore I hate every false way. Ver. 128. Therefore I esteem all thy precepts concerning all things to be right, and I hate every false way. Ver. 113. I hate vain thoughts, but thy Law do I love. Ver. 163. I hate and abhor lying, but thy Law do I love. True hatred is universal, 'tis of the whole kind; he who hates a toad because it is a toad, hates every toad; he that hates a serpent because it is a serpent, hates every serpent; he that hates a wolf because 'tis a wolf, hates every wolf; he that hates a man because he is holy, hates every man that is holy; and so he that hates sin because it is sin, hates every sin, and therefore he can't but turn from it, and labour to be the death and ruin of it. Holy hatred is an implacable and an irreconcilable affection; you shall as soon reconcile God and Satan together, Christ and Antichrist together, heaven and hell together, as you shall be able to reconcile a penitent soul and his sin together. A true penitent looks upon every sin as contrary to the Law of God, the nature of God, the being of God, the glory of God, and accordingly his heart rises against it; he looks upon every sin as poison, as the vomit of a dog, as the mire of the street, as the * Pliny saith, that the very trees with touching of it, would become barren. menstruous cloth, which of all things in the Law was most unclean, defiling and polluting; and this turns his heart against every sin, he looks upon every sin as having a hand in apprehending, betraying, binding, scourging, condemning and murdering of his Lord and Master Jesus Christ; and this works him not only to refrain from sin, but to forsake it, and not only to forsake it, but also to abhor it, and to loathe it more than hell itself. The penitent soul will do all he can to be the death of every sin that has had a hand in the death of his Lord and Master; he looks upon the sins of his body, to be the tormentors of Christ's body, and the sins of his soul, to be the tormentors of Christ's soul, to be those that made his soul heavy to the death, and that caused the withdrawings of his father's love from him, and that forced him in the anguish of his soul to cry out, Mat. 27.46. My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me. And this raises up in him a universal hatred of sin; and a universal hatred of sin always issues in a universal turning from sin. Now these eight arguments do sufficiently prove, that a true penitential turning is a universal turning; a turning not from some sins, but from all sins. But some may be ready to object Object. and say, Sir, this is a hard saying, who can hear it? who can bear it? John 6.60. who shall then be saved? for if a man reputes not unless he turns from every sin, than there is not a man to be found in all the world that reputes; for there is not a man in all the world that turns from every sin, that forsakes every sin, etc. 1 King. 8.46. For there is no man that sinneth not. Prov. 20.9. Who can say, Job 9.30, 31. Psal. 130.3. 2 Chron. 6.36. Job 14.4. Psal. 51.5. Ponder upon these Scriptures, etc. I have made my heart clean, I am pure from my sin: It is a question that implies a strong denial. Who can say it, and say it truly, that he is pure from his sin? surely none. He that shall say that he has made his heart clean, and that he is pure from his sin, sins in so saying; and commonly there are none more unclean than those that say, they have made their hearts clean, nor none more impure than they that say they are pure from their sin, Eccl. 7.20. For there is not a just man upon the earth, that doth good and sinneth not. These words in their absolute sense, are a full testimony of the imperfection of our inherent righteousness in this life, and that even justified persons come very short of that exact and perfect obedience which the Law requireth, James 3.2. For in many things we offend all, or (as the Greek has it) we stumble all. 'Tis a metaphor taken from Travellers walking on stony or slippery ground, who are very apt to stumble or slide. This Apostle was worthily called James the just, and yet he numbers himself among the rest of the sanctified ones, that in many things offended all. The Apostle does not say, in many things they offend all, but in many things we offend all. We that have more gifts than others, we that have more grace than others, we that have more assurance than others, we that have more experiences than others, we that have more preservatives to keep us from sin than others, even we in many things offend all; nor the Apostle doth not say, in some things we offend all, but in many things we offend all; the Apostle speaking not of the singular individual acts of sin, but of the divers sorts of sin; nor the Apostle does not say, in many things we may offend all, but in many things we do offend all, 1 John 1.8. If we say that we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us. The Apostle does not say, if thou sayest thou hast no sin thou deceivest thyself, as if he spoke to some particular person only, but if we say we have no sin we deceive ourselves; nor the Apostle does not say, if ye say ye have no sin ye deceive yourselves, as if he intended weak or ordinary Christians alone, but if we say we have no sin we deceive ourselves, we Apostles, we that in all grace, and in all holiness, and in all spiritual enjoyments exceed and excel all others, even we sin as well as others. He that is so ignorant and so impudent, so saucy and so silly, as to say he has no sin, sins in saying so, and has no sincerity, no integrity, nor no ingenuity in him. Ver. 10. If we say we have not sinned, we make him a liar, and his word is not in us. As much as in us lies we make God a liar, if we say we have not sinned; he that says he has no sin, he does no sin, he does by consequence charge God with falsehood, who hath frequently told us in that word of grace that can't deceive us, that all men are sinners, and that they have all gone astray, and that they all need pardoning and purging grace, and that upon these very accounts he sent his beloved Son to lay down his dearest life, Isa. 53.3. Rom. 10.23. & 5.12, etc. and to make himself an offering for sin. Now from these Scriptures these two things are most evident; First, that sinful qualities do remain in the most sanctified persons. Secondly, that these sinful qualities are sometimes very prevalent over the most sanctified persons; and therefore I shall answer the objection thus, Ans. viz. That a true penitential turning from all sin, consists in these six things. First, In the alienation and inward aversation and drawing off of the soul, from the love and liking of all sin, and from all free and voluntary subjection unto sin, the heart being filled with a loathing and detestation of all sin, Psal. 119.104, 128. as that which is most contrary to all goodness and happiness. Secondly, In the wills detestation and hatred of all sin. When the very bent and inclination of the will is set against all sin, and opposes and crosses all sin, and is set upon the ruin and destruction of all sin, than the penitent is turned from all sin, Rom. 7.15, 19, 21, 23. Isa. 30.20. Thou shalt cast them away as a menstruous cloth, thou shalt say unto it, get thee hence. Hosea 14.8. Ephraim shall say, what have I to do any more with Idols. When the will stands upon such terms of defiance with all sin, as that it will never enter into a league of friendship with any sin, then is the soul turned from every sin; When the will is set upon avenging itself upon all sin, and upon daily endeavours to mortify and crucify all sin, then is the penitent turned from all his sins; when those sins that were once to the will, as Dalilah to Samson, are now to the will as Tamar to Amnon, then is the soul turned from sin with a witness. Thirdly, In the judgements turning away from all sin, by disapproving, disallowing and condemning of it, Rom. 7.15. For that which I do, I allow not; for what I would, that do I not; but what I hate, that do I. O, saith the judgement of a Christian, sin is the greatest evil in all the world, 'tis the only thing that God abhors, and that brought Jesus Christ to the Cross, that damns souls, that shuts heaven, and that has laid the foundations of hell. O, it is the pricking thorn in my eye, the deadly arrow in my side, the twoedged sword that hath wounded my conscience, and slain my comforts, and separated between God and my soul. O, it is that which hath hindered my prayers, and imbittered my mercies, and put a sting into all my crosses, and therefore I can't but disapprove of it, and disallow of it, and condemn it to death, yea to hell, f●om whence it came. I thus preach, and thus think (saith Chrysostom) that it is more bitter to sin against Christ, than to suffer the torments of hell. Plutarch reports of Marcus Cato, that he never declared his opinion in any matter in the Senate, but he would close it with this passage; Methinks still Carthage should be destroyed. So when ever a penitent looks upon his sins in his judgement, he is still saying, Methinks these sins should be destroyed, methinks this pride, this unbelief, this earthly-mindedness, this hypocrisy, this vain glory, etc. should be destroyed. Fourthly, In the purpose and resolution of the soul, the soul sincerely purposing and resolving never willingly, wilfully or wickedly to transgress any more, The true penitent holds up his purposes and resolutions to keep off from sin, and to keep closely with God, though he be not able in every thing, and at all times, to make good his purposes and resolutions, etc. Psal. 17.3. I have purposed that my mouth shall not transgress. The general purpose and resolution of my heart is not to transgress; though particular failings may attend me, yet my resolutions and purposes are firmly fixed against evil, Psal. 39.1. I said I will take heed to my ways, that I sin not with my tongue: I will keep my mouth with a bridle, while the wicked are before me. David highly resolves so to bridle and muzzle up his mouth, that he would not break out into any impatient or unbeseeming speeches, that might give the wicked any advantage to reproach Religion, or to blaspheme the holy One of Israel, etc. Anselme was a man of a holy resolution; I had rather, saith he, go to hell pure from sin, than to heaven polluted with that filth. And saith another, I will rather leap into a bonfire, than wilfully to sin against God. When Valens the Emperor threatened Basil with imprisonment, banishment, death; Threaten, says he, your Boys with such fray-bugs, and your purple Gallants, that give themselves to their pleasures; I am resolved neither menaces nor flatteries shall silence me, or draw me to betray a good cause, or a good conscience, etc. Fifthly, In the earnest and unfeigned desires, and careful endeavours of the soul to abandon all sin, to forsake all sin, to be rid of all sin, Rom. 7.22, 23. Now where God sees this frame of spirit, there he will certainly pardon the failings, and pass by the imperfections of his people; and he will spare them as a man spareth his son that serveth him, Mal. 3.17. Now you know, when a prudent, tender, indulgent father sees his child to fail and come short in that which he enjoins him to do, yet knowing that his desires and endeavours is to please him and serve him, he will not be harsh, rigid; sour or severe towards him, but will spare him and exercise much tenderness and indulgence towards him; and will God, will God whose mercies reach above the heavens, and whose compassions are infinite, and whose love is like himself, carry it worse towards his children, than men do carry it towards theirs? surely no. God's fatherly indulgence accepts of the will for the work, Heb. 13.18. 2 Cor. 8.12. As a father will accept in his child the desire for the deed, and if there be a blemish in his child, he will pity it, and cast a mantle of love over it. A sick man is not more desirous to be rid of all his diseases, nor a prisoner to be freed from all his bolts and chains, than the true penitent is desirous to be rid of all his sins, etc. Sixthly and lastly, In the ordinary declining, shunning, and avoiding of all known occasions, temptations, provocations, inducements and enticements to sin, etc. That royal Law, 1 Thes. 5.22. Abstain from all appearance of evil, is a Law that is very precious in a penitent man's eye, See Judas 23. Exod. 23.7. Prov. 22.3. & 27.12. Prov. 5.8. and commonly lies warm upon a penitent man's heart, so that take him in his ordinary course, and you shall find him very ready to shun, and be of the very appearances of sin, of the very shows and shadows of sin. Job made a covenant with his eyes, Job 31.1. and Joseph would not hearken to his bold tempting Mistress to lie by her, or to be with her, Gen. 39.10. and David when himself would not sit with vain persons, Psal. 26.3, 4, 5. 2 Sam. 24.20 ult and at another time he refused to take the threshing floor, Oxen and threshing instruments of Araunah as a gift, but would buy them, because he would avoid the very show of covetousness, as some conceive. Austin being often ensnared in uncleanness in his younger days (before his conversion) he was exceeding careful to avoid all occasions of it afterwards. Now a true penitential turning from all sin, lies in these six things, and therefore you had need look about you; for if there be any one way of wickedness wherein you walk, and which you are resolved you will not forsake, you are no true penitents, and you will certainly lose your souls, and all the great and glorious things of another world. The third Answer. Ans. 3 Thirdly, A true penitential turning is a constant and continued turning from sin. 2 Chron, 7.15. As it is total in respect of the act, so it is final in respect of the time. True repentance takes an everlasting farewell, an everlasting adieu of sin; it saith with the Spouse, Cant. 5.3. I have put off my coat, how shall I put it on? I have found the smart of sin, I have put off the garments of the old man, the rags of old Adam, and how shall I put them on again? The child will dread the fire. The man that hath smarted for Suretyship, will by no means be persuaded to come again into bonds, though you urge him to it never so frequently, never so strongly, never so rhetorically, yet he will tell you he has smarted for it, he has paid dear for it, and therefore you must excuse him; he is peremptorily resolved, nay he hath seriously vowed against it; and though he be never so much entreated, and by variety of arguments importuned, yet still he remains inexorable. A Christian that hath truly repent, is so sensible of the freeness and sweetness of the grace of God on the one hand, and of the weight of sin and wrath of God on the other hand, that he is highly resolved never to have any more to do with Idols, Psal. 40.12. Hos. 14.8. never to meddle more with those burning coals. True repentance is a continued act, a repentance never to be repent of. The true penitent is every day a turning further and further from sin, and nearer and nearer to God. There is nothing that fetches so many tears from a penitent man's eyes, nor so many sighs and groans from a penitent man's heart as this, that he can get no further off from sin, and that he can get no nearer nor no closer to God. Repentance for sin, and a willing continuance in sin, cannot consist in the same subject. A sincere penitent makes as much conscience of repenting daily, as he doth of believing daily, and he can as easily content himself with one act of faith, or love, or fear, or hope, or joy, or obedience, as he can content himself with one act of repentance. My sins are ever before me. Psal. 51.3. This is the voice of every true penitent; Oh, that I might sin no more! Oh, that I might never dishonour God more! Oh, that I might never walk contrary to Jesus Christ more! Oh, that I might never grieve the spirit of grace more. To sin is common to man, 1 John 1.8, 10. & 5.19. Isa. 28.15, 18. Psal. 139.24. Rom. 7.22, 23. yea to the best man in all the world, but to continue in a course of sin, is only proper to a wicked man. To err and fail that's humane, but to maintain a league or friendship with sin, that is diabolical. Though a true penitent dares not continue in a trade, a path of sin, whilst he lives in this world, yet sin will continue in him whilst he continues in this world; though sin and grace were not born together, and though sin and grace shall never die together, yet whilst a penitent man lives in this world they must live together. 'Tis one thing for sin to continue in us, and 'tis another thing for us to continue in sin. The Apostle having closed the fifth Chapter of his Epistle to the Romans, in the triumph of Gospel grace; That as sin hath reigned unto death, so grace might reign through righteousness ●nto eternal life, by Jesus Christ our Lord, Rom. 6.1, 2. gins the next with a prevention of the abuse of this grace; What shall we say then? shall we continue in sin that grace may abound? God forbidden. How shall we that are dead to sin, live any longer therein? To live in sin, in the face of Gospel-grace is most unreasonable, and to a gracious and ingenious nature impossible; the very question implies a kind of impossibility. Such as were once dead in sin, and now by Gospel-grace are dead to sin, such can no longer continue in sin. Look, as 'tis not the mere falling into the water that drowns a man, but his lying and continuing in it; so it is not a mere falling into sin that damns a man, that drowns a man, that everlastingly undoes a man, but his living in it, his continuing in it. It is bad to sin, but 'tis infinitely worse to continue in sin. The first best is not to sin, the next best is not to continue in sin, no not for an hour, as Paul speaks in another case (Gal. 2.5.) To whom we gave place by subjection, no not for an hour. Certainly to argue from Gospel-mercy to sinful liberty, is the Devil's Logic. The more a man lives in the sight of Gospel-grace, the more sin will be discountenanced, resisted, hated, and totally displaced. A man may as truly assert, that the Sea burns, or that the fire cools, or that the Sun darkens the Air, as he may assert that the sight, sense, or sweet of Gospel-grace will breed security or carnality, looseness or wickedness, in a gracious heart. The true penitent never ceases repenting, till he ceases living; he goes to heaven with the joyful tears of repentance in his eyes; he knows that his whole life is but a day of sowing tears, that he may at last reap everlasting joys. True repentance makes a final and everlasting separation between sin and the soul; it makes such an absolute and complete divorce between sin and the soul, and casts them so far asunder, that no power nor policy can ever bring them to meet as lovers together. The true penitent looks upon sin as an enemy, and deals with it, as Amnon dealt with Tamar, 2 Sam. 13.15. And Amnon hated her exceedingly, so that the hatred wherewith he hated her, was greater than the love wherewith he had loved her; and Amnon said unto her, arise, be gone. And just thus doth the penitent soul carry it towards sin. He that truly reputes, so turns from his sins, that he never returns to the bondage and service of his sins any more, Isa. 1.16. Psal. 85.8. Isa. 30.22. Ye shall defile also the covering of thy graven images of silver, and the ornament of thy molten images of gold; thou shalt cast them away as a menstruous cloth; thou shalt say unto it, Get thee hence. But now the repentance of hypocrites is not constant but inconstant, 'tis not steadfast but unsteadfast, 'tis not permanent but transient, 'tis quickly on, as quickly off; Come, say they, in that, Hosea 6.1. and let us return unto the Lord. But ver. 4. O Ephraim! what shall I do unto thee? O Judah, what shall I do unto thee? for your goodness is as a morning cloud, and as the early dew it goeth away. The hypocrites repentance is like Jonah's Gourd, which came up in a night, and perished in a night, Jonah 4.10. An hypocrites repentance springs from mutable grounds, causes, considerations and circumstances; and therefore it is compared to a deceitful bow, Hosea 7.16. 'tis as variable as the wind. An hypocrite is only constant in inconstancy, Psal. 78.8. whose spirit was not steadfast with God, Ver. 37. Neither were they steadfast in his Covenant, etc. An hypocrite puts off his sins in the day of adversity (as he doth his garments when he goes to bed) with an intent to put them on again in the morning of profperity, Ver. 34, 35, 36. When he slew them then they sought him, and they returned and enquired early after God; and they remembered that God was their Rock, and the high God their Redeemer: Nevertheless they did flatter him with their mouth, and they lied unto him with their tongues. In the language of the blessed Scripture, he is a dog that returns to his vomit again, and such a dog was Judas; and he is a swine that returns to the wallowing in the mire again, and such a swine was Demas; 2 Pet. 2.20, 21, 22. and such dogs and swine are all hypocrites. It is an extraordinary vanity in some men to lay aside their sins for a time, but with a purpose to return to them again; as they fable it of the Serpent that layeth aside his poison when he goeth to drink, and when he hath drank, he returns to it again. It is a sad and sore evil, when men say to their lusts, as Abraham said to his servants, Abide you here, and I will go and worship, and return again unto you, Gen. 22.5. doubtless such souls are as far off from sound repentance, as light is from darkness, or as hell is from heaven, etc. But in what respects is true penitential turning from sin, Quest. such a turning from sin, as never to return to sin any more? In what respects is the penitents turning from sin, a continued and steadfast turning from sin, etc. Sol. This is a very sober, serious, weighty question, Ans. and bespeaks a very sober, serious and satisfactory Answer, and therefore I would answer the question, 1. Negatively. 2. Affirmatively, etc. Negatively, It is not such a turning from sin as never to sin more, 1 King. 8.46. For there is no man that sinneth not. Prov. 20.9. Who can say, I have made my heart clean? I am pure from my sin? Prov. 24.16. A just man falleth seven times, and riseth again. Eccl. 7.20. For there is not a just man upon the earth that doth good, and sinneth not. Luke 17.4. If he trespass against thee seven times in a day, and seven times in a day turn again unto thee, saying, I repent, thou shalt forgive him. Mat. 18.21, 22. Then came Peter to him, and said, Lord, how oft shall my brother sin against me, and I forgive him, till seven times? Jesus saith unto him, I say not unto thee, until seven times, but until seventy times seven. James 3.2. For in many things we offend all; or we stumble all, as the Greek has it. 1 John 1.8. If we say we have no sin we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us. Ver. 10. If we say we have not sinned, we make him a liar, and his word is not in us. And what did the continual burnt-offering which was to be made day by day import, but a daily sinning, and expiating of it? etc. Num. 28.3. Such is the universal corruption of humane nature, that the souls of the best, of the purest, and of the holiest men in the world, do from day to day, yea from moment to moment, contract some filth and uncleanness. The choicest Saints can never acquit themselves from sins of infirmity, such as do inevitably and inseparably cleave unto the best of men, especially considering the state and condition wherein they are, carrying still about them corrupt flesh and blood. Methodius compares the inbred corruptions of man's heart to a wild Figtree, growing upon the wall of some goodly Temple or stately Palace, whereof although the main trunk of the stem be broke off, and stump of the root be plucked up, yet the fibrous strings of it piercing into the joints of the stone work, will not be utterly extracted, but will be ever and anon shooting and sprouting out, until the whole frame of the building be dissolved, and the stone work thereof be disjointed and pulled in pieces. Secondly, It is not such a turning from sin, as that the true penitent shall never relapse into the same kind of sin any more; for a true penitent may fall into the same sin again and again. It was a sin for the disciples to sleep when Christ had commanded them to watch and pray, Mat. 26.40, 41, 42, 43, 44, 45. and yet they slept again and again. The prophet Jonah was a holy man, and yet he relapsed into passion and discontent with God again and again; he was discontent with the work God set him about, therefore he flieth to Tarshish, Jonah 1.2, 3. and sorrows for it, and confesseth that they that trust upon lying vanities forsake their own mercies, Chap. 2.8. and yet when God had showed mercy to Niniveh, he was exceedingly discontented with God again, Jonah 4.1. But it displeased Jonah exceedingly, and he was very angry. And when the Lord, who might have sent him to his grave, or a frowned him to hell, reasons lovingly, sweetly and mildly with him to take him off from his passion, Chap. 4.3, 4. and provides for him in his extremity; yet upon a very small occasion, viz. the taking away of a Gourd or shrub (which God did to convince him of his folly and waspishness of spirit) he breaks out again into the same passion, or worse, as if he had never seen the evil of it, or been humbled for it, Jonah 4.8, 9 I am greatly angry, or I do well to be angry, even unto death. And that is very considerable that Job speaks concerning his friends, Job 19.3. These ten times have ye reproached me, yet are ye not ashamed. It is a sin to reproach any man, it is a greater to reproach a godly man; but yet greater to reproach a godly man under sad and sore afflictions; but yet greatest of all to reproach a godly man under his sufferings, often, frequently; yet saith Job, These ten times have ye reproached me; and yet Job's friends were not only godly, but eminently godly. By this sad instance 'tis evident, that gracious men, yea that men eminently gracious, may fall into the same sin again and again, yea ten times, that is often. Though Christ told his disciples that his kingdom was not of this world, John 18.36. Mat. 18.1, 2, 3, 4. Mark 9 34. Luke 9.46. & 22.24, 26. yet at three several times their pride and ambitious humour put them upon striving for pre-eminence and worldly greatness. King Jehoshaphat, though he was a godly man, yet he joins affinity with that non such wicked Ahab, for which he was smartly reproved by the Prophet, 2 Chron. 19.2. And Jehu went out to meet him, and said to King Jehoshaphat, shouldest thou help the ungodly, and love them that hate the Lord? therefore is wrath upon thee from the Lord. Now though this gracious Prince was thus reproved and saved, even by a miracle of mercy, 2 Chron. 18.1, 2, 3, 30, 31. compared; yet soon after he falls into the same sin again, and joins himself with Ahaziah King of Israel, who did very wickedly, 2 Chron. 20.35, 36. and for which he is severely reproved in verse 37. Then Eliezer the son of Dodavan of Mareshah, prophesied against Jehoshaphat, saying, because thou hast joined thyself with Ahaziah, the Lord hath broken thy works, and the Ships were broken that they were not able to go to Tarshish. Let was twice overcome with wine, etc. and Abraham, though the father of the faithful, yet falls once and again into the same sin, Gen. 12.11, 12, Mat. 26. Gal. 2.11, 12, 13 13. compared with Chap. 20, 1, 2, 3, 4, 13. Peter falls once and again into the same sin, and John twice worshipped the Angel, and Samson (who is by the Spirit of the Lord numbered amongst those Worthies of whom this world was not worthy, Heb. 11.32, 33, 38.) fell again and again into the same gross sin, as is evident in the 14, 15, & 16. Chapters of the book of Judges. And the Church confesses, that their backslidings are many, Jer. 14.7. By all which 'tis most evident, that good men may fall again and again into the same sin; and no wonder, for though their repentance be never so sincere and sound, yet their graces are but weak, and their mortification but imperfect in this life, and therefore 'tis possible for a gracious soul to fall again and again into the same sin; if the fire be not wholly put out, who will think it impossible, that it should catch and burn again and again? I readily grant, that the Lord hath graciously promised to heal the backslidings of his people (Hosea 14.4. and so Jer. 3.22. See Jer. 3.1, 4, 5, 6, 7, 8, 12, 14. Return ye backsliding children, and I will heal your backslidings; behold we come unto thee, for thou art the Lord our God.) But I can no no where find in all the Scriptures, that God hath engaged himself by any particular promise or promises, that Christians truly converted, truly penitent, shall never fall again and again into the same sins, after their conversion. I cannot find in all the book of God, where God has engaged himself to give such strength or power against this sin or that, as that a Christian shall be for ever (in this life) put out of all possibility of falling again and again into the same sins. No person on earth can show such a promise, that when a Christian has been thus or thus troubled, grieved, humbled or melted for his sins, that then God will assuredly preserve him from ever falling into the same sins again. The sight of such a promise under God's own hand, would be as life from the dead to all real Christians, who fear nothing more than the sin of backsliding. Certainly, there is no such power or infinite virtue in the greatest horrors or terrors, troubles or sorrows that the soul can be under for sin, nor in the fullest, sweetest or choicest discoveries of God's rich grace and free love to the soul, as for ever to fence and secure the soul from relapsing into the same sin again and again. Though grace be a glorious creature, yet 'tis but a creature; grace is but a created habit, that may be prevailed against by Satan's temptations, and by the strong, secret, and subtle workings of sin in our hearts. But this must be carefully minded and remembered, that though the Saints may and do sometimes relapse, yet they do not relapse in such a manner as wicked men do relapse. For, First, They do not relapse voluntarily, but involuntarily. Involuntary relapses, are when the resolution and full bend of the heart is against sin, when the soul strives with all its might against sin, by sighs and groans, by prayers and tears, and yet by some invincible weakness is forced to fall back into sin again, because there is not spiritual strength enough to overcome. Secondly, They do not relapse out of choice, as wicked men do, Isa. 66.3. Thirdly, They don't relapse out of any delight that they take in relapsing; witness their sad complaints, their great lamentations, and their bitter mournings over their relapses. Relapses into diseases, and relapses into sins, are more troublesome and dangerous than they are any ways delightful, to all that are in their wits. Fourthly, They don't relapse out of any settled purpose or resolution of heart to relapse, as wicked men do, Jer. 2.25. All the relapses of a Saint, are against the settled bent, bias and resolution of his soul. Fifthly, They don't relapse out of any love or longing to relapse, as wicked men do, who long and love to return to the fleshpots of Egypt. Sixthly, They don't relapse into enormities, as wicked men do (for 'tis not usual with God to leave his people frequently to relapse into enormities; for by his spirit and grace, by his smiles and frowns, by his word and rod he doth commonly preserve his people from a common, a frequent relapsing into enormities, into gross wickednesses.) The common and ordinary relapses of the people of God, are relapses into infirmities, as idle words, passion, hastiness, rashness, vain thoughts, etc. and these God pardons in course; but the common and ordinary relapses of wicked men, are relapses into enormities, into gross impieties. Seventhly, They don't relapse habitually, constantly, as wicked men do; their relapses are transient, not permanent, they are not of course. A Sheep may fall into the mire, but a swine wallows in the mire, etc. But secondly, I answer affirmatively, That notwithstanding all this, yet a true penitential turning from sin, is a continued and steadfast turning from sin, and that in these five respects. First, In respect of his habitual purpose and resolution, not to sin, Psal. 39.1. I said I will take heed to my ways, that I sin not with my tongue; I will keep my mouth with a bridle, while the wicked is before me. See my Treatise on holiness, page 507, 508, 509. David resolves to lay a Law of restraint upon his tongue, and to clap a muzzle upon his mouth, whilst he was in the presence of the wicked, who did lie at the catch to ensnare him, and trapan him; come health, come sickness, come honour, come reproach, come poverty, come plenty, come liberty, come restraint, come life, come death, the true penitent is fixed in his purpose and resolution not to sin. Jerom writes of a brave woman, that being upon the wrack, told her persecutors, that they might do their worst, for she was firmly resolved rather to die than lie. Secondly, In respect of his babitual desires, which are, that he may not sin, Psal. 119.133. Order my steps in thy word, and let not any iniquity have dominion over me. David's great desire is that he may walk as in a frame, that he may walk by line and rule, exactly, accurately; and that though sin did dwell in him, that yet it might not reign in him; and though it did rebel in him, that yet it might not have dominion over him; he would have his sins to be like those beasts in Daniel, whose dominion was taken away, though their lives were prolonged for a season and a time, Chap. 7.12. Psal. 119.10. O, let me not wander from thy commandments. Ver. 36. Incline my heart unto thy testimonies, and not to covetousness. Under the name of covetousness, all manner of viciousness is to be understood, that being the root of all evil, 1 Tim. 6.10. Thirdly, In respect of his habitual endeavours, which still are not to sin. The ordinary and habitual endeavours of a true penitent, are still set against sin; he ordinarily rows against the stream of sin, though sometimes the stream proves too strong for him. Psal. 119.11. Thy word have I hid in my heart, that I might not sin against thee. He hides the word in his heart as a treasure, that he might not lose it, and as a rule, that he might not transgress against it. The Law of God kept closely in the heart, is the best armour of proof against evil lusts. David locks up the Law of God in his heart, as in a chest or cabinet, to secure him against Satan's ambushes and assaults on the one hand, and to preserve him from sin on the other hand. So Psal. 18.23. I have kept myself from mine iniquity. Fourthly, In respect of his habitual hatred of sin. Although the true penitent does sometimes sin, yet he always hates the evil he does; there is a firm and fixed hatred in his soul against sin, Psal. 119. 1ST. Therefore I hate every false way. Ver. 113. I hate va●●●●oughts. Ver. 163. I hate and abhor lying. So Rom. 7.15. The evil that I hate, that I do. A penitent heart usually rises and swells against the toad in the bosom. Some say, that there is such a native dread and terror of the Hawk implanted in the Dove, that she is afraid of every feather, and that she detests and abhors the very sight of any feather that hath grown upon a Hawk; so there is such a detestation & abhorrency of sin divinely implanted in every penitent man's heart, that he cannot but hate every thing that looks like it, or that belongs to it, or that comes from it. Fifthly, In respect of his constant path, or continued way, or course of life, which is quite opposite and contrary to sin, Gal. 5.17. Isa. 26.7. The way of the just is uprightness, Prov. 16.17. The highway of the upright is to departed from evil. It is as common and ordinary for upright persons to departed from evil, as 'tis for Passengers to keep the King's highways. Though an upright man, through mistake or weakness of grace, or violence of temptation, may step out of a way of holiness, yet walking in a way of wickedness, cannot be charged upon him, Psal. 139.23, 24. Search me, O God, and know my heart; try me, and know my thoughts, and see if there be any wicked way in me, and lead me in the way everlasting. You know the path and practice of penitent Zacheus, of penitent Paul, and of the penitent Jailor, was quite contrary to those ways of wickedness, that they had formerly walked in. The fourth Answer. Ans. 4 But fourthly and lastly, As a true penitential turning from sin, is a constant and continued turning from sin; so 'tis a returning to God. Sin is an aversion from God, and repentance is a conversion to God, Act. 26.18. Sound repentance is not only a ceasing from doing evil, but also a learning to do well, Isa. 1.16, 17. Repentance and turning to God are joined together, as being one and the same thing, Act. 26.20. The Prodigals repenting, was his returning to his Father, Luke 15.17. When he came 〈◊〉 himself, he said, I will arise and go to my father, and say father▪ 〈◊〉 ●ave sinned against heaven and before thee, etc. The Hebrew word for repentance is from 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Shob, which signifies to return; implying, a going back from what a man had done; it notes a returning or converting from one thing to another, as from sin to God, from evil to good, from hell to heaven. The common call of sinners to repentance, is to turn from sin, and to return to God, Isa. 55.7. Let the wicked forsake his way, Consult these Scriptures, Isa. 44.22. Isa. 19.22. Isa. 59.20. Hosea 3.5. Hosea 6.1. Hosea 14.1. and the unrighteous man his thoughts, and let him return unto the Lord, etc. Jer. 1.4. If thou wilt return, O Israel, saith the Lord, return unto me; and if thou wilt put away thine abominations out of my sight, then shalt thou not remove. And so Chap. 18.11. Return ye now every one from his evil way, and make your way and your do good. 1 Pet. 2.25. For ye were as sheep going astray, but are now returned unto the shepherd and bishop of your souls. 'Tis not enough for a sinner to forsake his sins, but he must also return to the Lord. The true penitent subjects his heart to the power of divine grace, and his life to the blessed will and word of God. Look, as negative goodness can never satisfy a penitent soul, so negative goodness can never save an impenitent soul. It is not enough, O man, that thou art not thus and thus bad, but thou must be thus and thus good, or thou wilt be miserable for ever, Ezek. 18.21. But if the wicked will turn from all his sins that he hath committed, and keep all my statutes, and do that which is lawful and right, he shall surely live, he shall not die. Negative righteousness and holiness, is no righteousness, no holiness in the account of God. Luke 18.5. Mat. 20.13, 14. It was not the Pharisees negative righteousness, nor his comparative goodness, that could prevent his being rejected of God, or his being shut out of heaven, or his being turned into hell. It is not enough that the Tree bears no ill fruit, but it must bring forth good fruit, else it must be cut down and cast into the fire; that Tree that is not for fruit, is for the fire; Mat. 7.19. Every tree that brings not forth good fruit (says Christ) is hewn down and cast into the fire. Heaven at last will be found too holy, and too hot, to hold such as please themselves, as satisfy themselves with a negative righteousness. All that negative righteousness and holiness can do, is only to help a man to one of the coolest chambers and easiest beds in hell. True repentance brings the heart and life, not only off from sin, but on to God too; it takes a man not only off from the ways of death, but it engages him to walk in the paths of life, Psal. 119.3. They do no iniquity, Nazianzene speaking of true repentance, very aptly compares the soul to a pair of writing tables, out of which must be washed whatsoever was written with sin, and instead thereof the writing of grace must be writupon the soul, both being necessary to true repentance. Jer. 31.19. Job. 40.4, 5. Jer. 4.1. they walk in his ways. Prov. 13.14. The Law of the wise is a fountain of life, to departed from the snares of death. Prov. 15.24. The way of life is above to the wise, that he may departed from hell beneath. Psal. 34.14. Depart from evil and do good. We read in Scripture of God's returning to us, as well as of our returning to God; in both there is repentance: When God returns to us, he reputes of the evil of punishment that he hath brought upon us; and when we return to God, we repent of the evil of sin which we have committed against him. The true penitent, does not only sadly smite upon his thigh, and say, what have I done, but he also speedily faces about, and cries out, I will do so no more. When God calls for true repentance, it is with an if thou wilt return, O Israel, return unto me. And when the people of God do provoke and encourage one another to repentance, Hosea 6.1. it is with a come let us return unto the Lord. Repentance unto life, is not a turning from sin to sin, nor 'tis not a turning from profaneness to civility, nor 'tis not a turning from civility to formality; but 'tis a turning from darkness to light, Acts 26.18. 'tis a turning from the ways of iniquity into the ways of piety, 'tis a turning from sin to God. In this respect Israel's repentance was very defective; witness that sad complaint of the Prophet (Hosea 7.16.) They return (that is, they make a show of repentance) but not to the most High. So they in that, Joel 2.12. have the half turn, but returned not to the Lord with all their hearts. So Jehu went far, and gave many a half turn, but never turned to the most High, and that was his ruin at last. Such a repentance as brings the soul never the nearer to God, is a repentance never the near; but that repentance that brings the soul nearer to God, is a repentance never to be repent of. And let thus much suffice, to have spoken concerning that Evangelical Repentance, that hath the precious promises of remission of sin and salvation running out unto it, etc. CHAP. IU. Several have observed to my hand, 'Tis better that a hundred hypocrites should perish, than that one poor Christian should want his portion. Cotton on the Covenant, page 78. how far an Hypocrite may go; but my design in this Chapter, is to show how far an Hypocrite cannot go. Many have discovered at large, what an Hypocrite can do; but my scope in this Chapter, is to show what an Hypocrite cannot do. Some have showed what an Hypocrite is, and I shall now show what he is not. Some have showed the several rounds in Jacob's Ladder, that an Hypocrite may climb up to; but my business and work in this Chapter, is to show you the several rounds in Jacob's Ladder, that no Hypocrite under heaven can climb up to. FIrst, An Hypocrites inside is never answerable to his outside; an Hypocrites inside is one thing, Mat. 23.25, 26, 27 Luke 11.39. and his outside another thing; an Hypocrite is outwardly clean, but inwardly unclean; he is outwardly glorious, but inwardly inglorious. Hypocrites are like Apothecary's galley pots, having without the title of some excellent Preservative, but within they are full of some deadly poison; they are like the Egyptian Temples, that were beautiful without, but within there was nothing to be found but Serpents and Crocodiles, and other venomous creatures. Hypocrites trade more for a good name, than for a good heart; for a good report, than for a good conscience; they are like Fiddlers, more careful in tuning their Instruments, than in watching their spirits. Erasmi ●●milia. Hypocrites are like white silver, but they draw black lines; they have a seeming sanctified outside, but stuffed within with malice, worldliness, pride, envy, etc. Like window cushions, made up of velvet and richly embroidered, but stuffed within with hay. An Hypocrite may offer sacrifice with Cain, and fast with Jezabel; and humble himself with Ahab, and lament with the tears of Esau; and kiss Christ with Judas, and follow Christ with Demas; and offer fair for the holy Ghost with Simon Magus, Acts 8.23. and yet for all this his inside as bad as any of theirs. An Hypocrite is a Cato without, and a Nero within; a Jacob without, and an Esau within; a David without, and a Saul within; a Peter without, and a Judas within; a Saint without, and a Satan within; an Angel without, and a Devil within. Rom. 2.28, 29. An Hypocrite is a Jew outwardly, but an Atheist, a Pagan, Lucian. a Turk inwardly. I have read of certain Images, which on the outside were covered with gold and pearl, resembling Jupiter and Neptune, but within were nothing but spiders and cobwebs; a fit resemblance of Hypocrites. Hypocrisy is but an outside, like cloth of Arras, fair and beautiful without; but if you look to the inside, you shall find nothing but rags and ends. That Monk hit it, that said, To be a Monk in outward show was easy, but to be a Monk in inward reality was hard. To be a Christian in outward show is easy, but to be a Christian inwardly and really is very hard. An Hypocrites inside never eccoes or answers to his outside; his inside is vicious, and his outside is Religious: But let all such hypocrites know, that dissembled sanctity is double iniquity, and accordingly at last they shall be dealt with, Mat. 24.5. But, Secondly, No hypocrite under heaven is totally divorced from the love and liking of every known sin, there is still some secret lust or other, Job 20.12, 13, 14 which as a sweet morsel he rowls under his tongue, and will not spit it out; every Hypocrite tolerates some evil or other in himself, and takes liberty to transgress. An Hypocrite will make hard shift to daub up his conscience, and to secure himself from the checks thereof. After once the bag was committed to Judas his custody, after once he was chosen into that sweet office, he quickly put conscience out of office, It was a strange conceit of the Cerinthians and those Caini or Cainiani as they are called by some that honoured Judas the Traitor, as some divine and super-humane power, and called his treason a blessed piece of service, & that he knowing how much the death of Christ would profit mankind, did therefore betray him to death to save the race of men, and to do a thing pleasing to God. Irenaeus, Aug. de haeresi. and never left stealing and licking his fingers, whilst there was any money in his bag to finger. Herod knew much, and heard John Baptist, and had some temporary affections, and did many good things, Mark 6.20. But yet, 1. He kept Herodias his brother's wife, Mark 6.17. 2. He took away the life of John the Baptist, Mark 6.27. 3. He sets Jesus Christ at naught, and rejected him, Luke 23.11. As fair as Herod seemed to carry it, yet he lived in a known notorious sin, and unjustly murdered the messenger of God, and mocked and rejected Jesus Christ as a vile person. Some sin or other always reigns without control, in an hypocritical heart. As they say of Witches, that they have one familiar or another that still sucks them. An Hypocrite always reserves one nest-egg or another in his heart or life, for Satan to sit and brood on. Jehu did many brave things, but yet he kept up the worship of his golden calves. Naaman promises high, but yet he is for bowing in the house of Rimmon. The Pharisees were very devout, but yet they loved the praises of men, and the uppermost seats in the Synagogues. There is never an hypocrite in the world, but will do what he can to save the life of his sin, though it be with the loss of his soul. O Sirs! Satan can be contented that Hypocrites should yield to God in many things, provided they will be but true to him in some one thing; for he very well knows, that one sin lived in, and allowed, gives him as much advantage against the soul, as more. Satan can hold a man fast enough by one sin, as the Fowler can hold the bird fast enough by one claw; Satan knows, that one sin lived in and allowed, will mar all a man's sweetest duties and services; as one dead fly will mar the whole box of precious ointment, and as one jarring string will bring the sweetest music out of tune. 'Tis said of Naaman the Syrian, Eccl. 10.1. that he was a valiant man, and a victorious man, and an honourable man, 2 King. 5.1. and a great favourite with his Prince, but a Leper: So it may be said of many Hypocrites, they have such and such excellencies, and they perform such and such glorious duties, but they live and allow themselves in this or that sin, Mat. 7.21, 22, 23. and that mars the beauty of all their services. Satan knows, that one sin lived in and allowed, will as certainly damn a man, as many; as one disease, one ulcerous part, may as certainly kill a man, as many. Satan knows, that one sin lived in and allowed, Leu. 31. will render a man as unclean in the eye of God as many. If the Leper in the Law had the spot of leprosy in any one part of his body, he was accounted a Leper, although all the rest of his body were sound and whole: So he who hath the spot of the leprosy of sin allowed in any one part of his soul, he is a spiritual Leper in the eye of God, he is unclean, though in other parts he may not be unclean. The Schoolmen say, that if a sow do but wallow in one miry or dirty hole, she is filthy; and certainly, that soul that doth but wallow in any one sin, he is filthy in the eye of God. Satan knows, Heb. 13.4. It is most true that the Heathen man saith, Qui habet unium vitium shabet omnia; he that hath any one vice (viz. reigning) hath all others with it. Seneca de benef. l. 5. c. 15. that one sin lived in and allowed, will as effectually keep Christ and the soul asunder, as many; as one stone in the pipe will as effectually keep out the water, as many. Satan knows, that one sin lived in and allowed, will make way for many; as one thief can open the door to let in many more. Satan knows, that one sin lived in and allowed, will as certainly shut the soul out of heaven, as many; one enemy may shut the door upon a man as well as many: and what difference is there between that man that is shut out of heaven for living in many sins, and he that is shut out of heaven for l●ving but in one sin? One sin lived in and allowed, will arm conscience against a man, as well as many: If there be but one crack in the honey glass, there the wasp will be buzzing. One sin allowed and countenanced, will spoil the music of conscience; one sin lived in and allowed, will make death as terrible and as formidable to the soul, as many; one hand-writing upon the wall made King Nebuchadnezzar's countenance to change, Dan. 5.5, 6. and his thoughts to be troubled, and the joints of his loins to be loosed, and his knees to be dashed one against another. Now all this Satan knows, and therefore he labours mightily to engage Hypocrites to live in the allowance of some one sin. O Sirs! remember that as one hole in a Ship will sink it, and as one stab at the heart will kill a man, and as one glass of poison will poison a man, and as one act of Treason will make a man a Traitor; so one sin lived in and allowed, will damn a man for ever; one wound strikes Goliath dead, as well as three and twenty did Caesar; one Dalilah will do Samson as much mischief, Suetonius. as all the Philistines; one wheel broken, spoils all the whole clock; one veins bleeding will let out all the vitals, as well as more; one bitter herb will spoil all the pottage; Gen. 3. 1 Sam. 14.33. Josh. 7. Jonah 1. by eating one apple, Adam lost Paradise; one lick of honey endangered Jonathan's life; one Achan was a trouble to all Israel; one Jonah was lading too heavy for a whole Ship: So one sin lived in and allowed, is enough to make a man miserable for ever. One millstone will sink a man to the bottom of the Sea as well as a hundred; so one sin lived in and indulged, will sink a man to the bottom of hell as well as a hundred. I have read of a great Roman Captain, who as he was riding in his triumphant Chariot through Rome, had his eyes never off of a Courtesan that walked along the street, which made one say, Behold ho● this great Captain that hath conquered such and such Armies, is himself conquered by one silly woman! There is never an Hypocrite in the world, but lies under the conquest of one base lust or another, but lives under the reign and dominion of one sin or another. That soul that can in sincerity of heart appeal to a heart-searching God, that 'tis otherwise with him (viz. That he does not live nor allow himself in any one sinful way or practice) that soul, I dare assure in the Lord's name, is no hypocrite, Psal. 139, 23, 24. Thirdly, As an Hypocrites heart is never throughly subdued to a willingness to part with every lust, so neither is his heart throughly subdued to a willingness to perform all known duties; sometimes he is all for public duties, but makes no conscience of closet-duties, or of family-duties; sometimes he is all for the duties of the first Table, but makes no conscience of the duties of the second Table; and sometimes he is all for the duties of the second Table, but makes no conscience of the duties of the first Table; if he obeys one command, he willingly lives in the neglect of another; if he does one duty, he will be sure to cast off another; as he is not willing to fall out with every sin, so he is not willing to fall in with every duty. An Hypocrites obedience is always partial, 'tis never universal, he still baulks or boggles with those commands that cross his lusts. The Pharisees fasted, Mat. 23.23. Chap. 6. prayed, gave alms, and paid tithes: O, but they omitted the weightier matters of the Law, judgement, mercy and faith, and they were unnatural to parents, and under a pretence of praying, Mat. 15.4, 5, 6. they made a prey of widows houses; under a pretence of piety, they exercised the greatest covetousness, unrighteousness and cruelty, and that upon widows, who are (usually the greatest objects of pity and charity; they made no bones of robbing the widow, under a pretence of honouring of God: So Judas, under a pretence of laying up for the poor, rob the poor; he pretended to lay up for the poor, John 12.6. After some men have made a long and high profession, some one beloved lust or other, which they would never let go, parts Christ and them for ever. but he intended only to lay up for himself, and to provide against a rainy day; it is probable that he had no great mind to stay long with his Lord, and therefore he was resolved to make the best market he could for himself. Judas being willing to set up for himself, under a cloak of holiness, he practices the greatest unfaithfulness. Though the Eagle soars high, yet still her eye is upon her prey; so though Judas did soar high in profession, yet his eye was still upon his prey, upon his bags; and so he might have it, he cared not who went without it; so he might be rich, he did not care though his Lord and his retinue grew never so poor. Judas under all his shows of sanctity, had not so much as common honesty in him; counterfeit holiness is often made a stalking horse to much unrighteousness; but certainly it were better, with the Philosopher, to have honesty without Religion, than to have Religion without honesty. An Hypocrite may exercise himself in some outward, easy, ordinary duties of Religion; but when shall you see an Hypocrite laying the axe to the root of the Tree, or a searching and trying his own heart, or severely judging his bosom sins, or humbly mourning and lamenting over secret corruptions, or doubling his guards about his own soul, or rejoicing in the graces, services or excellencies of others, or striving or pressing after the highest pitches of grace, holiness and communion with God, or endeavouring more to cast out the beam out of his own eye, than the mote out of his brother's eye, or to be more severe against his own sins, than against the sins of others? Alas! an Hypocrite is so far from practising these duties, that he thinks them either superfluous or impossible. An Hypocrites obedience is always a limited and stinted obedience; it is either limited to such commands which are most suitable to his ease, safety, honour, profit, pleasure, etc. or else it is limited to the outward part of the command, and never extends itself to the inward and spiritual part of the command; as you may see in the Scribes and Pharisees; their obedience was all outward, they had no regard at all to the inward and spiritual part of any command; as is evident in that high charge that Christ gives in against them, Mat. 5. They did not murder, they did not commit adultery, they had an eye to the outward part of the command; but Christ charges them with unjust and adulterous thoughts, unchaste glances, contemplative wickedness, speculative uncleanness, etc. they having no regard at all to the inward and spiritual part of any command; common grace looks only to some particular duties, but saving grace looks to all. Renewing grace comes off to positives as well as negatives, Isa. 1.16, 17. Tit. 2.11, 12, 13. it teacheth us to cease to do evil, and it learns us also to do good; it teacheth us to deny all ungodliness and worldly lusts, and also to live soberly, righteously and godly in this present world. These words contain the sum of a Christians duty, to live soberly towards ourselves, righteously towards our neighbours, and godly towards God, is true godliness indeed, and the whole duty of man. There is never an Hypocrite in the world, that can sincerely appeal to God, and say, Lord, Psal. 119.6. Luke 1.5, 6. Acts 13.22. thou knowest that my heart is subdued to a willingness to perform all known duties; I would willingly do the best I can to observe all thy royal Laws: Lord, I unfeignedly desire, and really endeavour to have an eye upon every command of thine, and to live up to every command of thine; and it is the real grief of my heart, and the daily burden of my soul, when I violate any of thy blessed Laws. He that can in uprightness thus appeal to God, shall never miscarry in that other world. But, Fourthly, There is never an Hypocrite in the world that makes God, or Christ, or holiness, or his doing, or receiving good in his station, relation or generation; his grand end, his highest end, his ultimate end of living in the world; pleasures, profits and honours, are the Hypocrites all he aims at in this world; they are his Trinity which he adores and serves, 1 John 2.16. and sacrificeth himself unto; an Hypocrite's ends are corrupt and selfish. God may possibly be at the higher end of his work, but self is at the further end; for he that was never truly cast out of himself, John 6.26. Mat. 6.1, 5, 16. Gal. 4.17. Isa. 58.3. Mal. 3.14. zech. 7.5, 6, 7. Gen. 34.21, 22 can have no higher end than himself. An Hypocrite is all for his own glory, he acts for himself, and from himself; so I may have the profit, the credit, the glory, the applause, come of God's glory what will; this is the language of an unsound heart. An Hypocrite will seem to be very godly when he can make a gain of godliness, he will seem to be very holy when holiness is the way to outward greatness and happiness; but this religious wickedness will double damn the Hypocrite at last. Self-ends are the operative ingredients in all an Hypocrite does, self is the chief Engine, self is the great wheel that sets all an hypocrites wheels a going. When hypocrites take up Religion, Rom. 16.18. Phil. 3.19. 'tis only to serve their own turns, to bring about their own carnal ends; they serve not the Lord, but their own bellies; they use Religion only as a stream to turn about their own Mill, and the more neatly to effect their own carnal projects. Simon Magus will needs be baptised, and he is very desirous to have power to give the holy Ghost to others; but his aim being only to get a name, Acts 8.21. and to get money, Peter tells him to his face, that his heart was not right in the sight of God. No man can go higher than his principles, and therefore an hypocrite having no higher principles than himself, all he does must needs be terminated in himself. Look, as all the Rivers that come from the Sea, do return back again to the Sea from whence they come, so all those duties which arise from a man's self, must needs centre in a man's self. An hypocrite always makes himself the end of all his service; but let such hypocrites know, that though their profession be never so glorious, and their duties never so abundant, yet their ends being selfish and carnal, all their pretensions and performances are but beautiful abominations in the sight of God. An hypocrite has always a squint eye, and squint eyed aims, and squint eyed ends in all he does. Numb. 22, 23. Chapters. 2 Pet. 2.15. 2 King. 10. Balaam spoke very religiously, and he multiplied Altars and sacrifices; but the thing he had in his eye was the wages of unrighteousness. Jehu destroyed bloody Ahab's house, he executed the vengeance of God upon that wicked family; he readily, 1 King. 21. Jonah 3. resolutely and effectually destroyed all the worshippers of Baal, but his ends were to secure the Kingdom to him and his. Ahab and the Ninivites fasted in sackcloth, but it was merely that they might not feel the heavy judgements that they feared would overtake them. The Jews in Babylon fasted and mourned, Zech. 7.5, 6. and mourned and fasted seventy years, but it was more to get off their chains than their sins, it was more to be rid of their captivity than it was to be rid of their iniquity. Look, as the Eagle hath an eye upon her prey when she flies highest, so these Jews in all their fasting, praying, mourning, they had only an eye to their own ease, deliverance, freedom, etc. in all their Religious duties they were acted from evil principles, and carried on by self-respects; and therefore Daniel denies, that in all that seventy years' captivity they had prayed to any purpose. All this is come upon us, Dan. 9.13. yet made we not our prayer before the Lord our God, that we might turn from our iniquities and understand thy truth. It is the end that dignifies or debaseth the action, that rectifies it or adulterates it, that sets a crown of honour, or a crown of shame upon the head of it. He that commonly, habitually, in all his duties and services, proposes to himself no higher ends than the praises of men, or rewards of men, or the stopping the mouth of natural conscience, or only to avoid a smarting rod, or merely to secure himself from wrath to come, he is an hypocrite. The ends of a man's actions are always a great discovery either of sincerity or hypocrisy. Look, as great gifts, not sweetened with sincerity, are no ornaments to us; so great infirmities not soured with hypocrisy, are no great deformities to us. An hypocrites ends are always below God, they are always below glorifying of God, exalting of God, walking with God, and enjoying communion with God. An hypocrite in all he does, still proposes to himself some poor, mean, ignoble self-end or other. But now mark, a sincere Christian, if he prays, or hears, or gives, Psal. 115.1. 1 Thes. 2.6. or fasts, or reputes, or obeys, etc. God's glory is the main end of all; the glory of God is his highest end, his ultimate end. A sincere Christian can be content to be trampled upon and vilified, so God's name be glorified; the bent of such a heart is for God and his glory; Rev. 4.9, 10, 11. nothing but sincerity can carry a soul so high, as in all acts natural, civil and religious, to intent God's glory. A sincere Christian ascribes the praise of all to God, Rom. 14.7, 8. he sets the crown on Christ's head alone, he will set God upon the throne, and make all things else his servants, or his footstool; all must bow the knee to God, or be trodden in the dirt; he will love nothing, he will embrace nothing but what sets God higher, or brings God nearer to his heart. The glory of God is the mark, the white, that the sincere, Christian has in his eye. The sincere Christian lives not to himself, 1 Cor. 10. ult. Rev. 12.11. but to him who lives for ever; he lives not to his own will, or lusts, or greatness, or glory in this world, but he lives to his glory, whose glory is dearer to him than his own Life. Look, as bright shining golden vessels do not retain the beams of the Sun which they receive, but reflect them back again upon the Sun; so the sincere Christian return and reflects back again upon the Sun of righteousness, the praise and glory of all the gifts, graces and virtues that they have received from him. The daily language of sincere souls is this; 1 Chron. 29, 10, 18. Rom. 13.7. Non nobis Domine, non nobis Domine; Not unto us Lord, not unto us Lord, but to thy name be all the glory. A sincere Christian makes conscience of giving men their deuce; how much more than does he make conscience of giving God his due. Psal. 96.7, 8. Now glory is God's due, and God stands upon nothing more than that we g●ve him the glory due unto his name, Propter te Domine propter te, was once and is still every sincere Christians Motto. as you may see in Psal. 29.1, 2. There are three gives in those two verses; Give unto the Lord, give unto the Lord, give unto the Lord the glory that is due unto his name. Glory i● God's right, and he stands upon his right, and this the sincere Christian knows, and therefore he gives him his right, he gives him the honour and the glory that is due unto his name. But pray do not mistake me, I do not say that such as are really sincere, do actually eye the glory of Christ in all their actions: Oh, no, this is a happiness desirable on earth, but shall never be attained till we come to heaven. By and base ends and aims will be still ready to creep into the best hearts; but all sincere hearts sigh and groan under them, they complain to God of them, and they cry out for justice, justice upon them, and it is the earnest desires and daily endeavours of their souls to be rid of them; and therefore they shall not be imputed to them, nor keep good things from them: But now take a sincere Christian in his ordinary, usual and habitual course, and you shall find that his aims and ends in all his actions and undertake are to glorify God, to exalt God, and to lift up God in the world. If the Hypocrite did in good earnest aim at the glory of God in what he does, than the glory of God would swallow up all his by aims and carn●l ends, as Aaron's rod swallowed up the Magician's rods. Look, as the Sun puts out the light of the fire, Exod. 7.10, 11, 12. so the glory of God (where it is aimed at) will put out and consume all by and base ends. This is most certain, that which is a man's great end, that will work out all other ends; he that sets up the glory of God as his chief end, will find that his chief end will by degrees eat out all low and base ends. Look, Gen. 41.4. as Pharaoh's lean kin● eaten up the fat, so the glory of God will eat up all those fat and worldly ends that crowd in upon the soul in religious work. Where the glory of God is kept up as a man's greatest end, there all by and base ends will be kept at an under. By what has been said, 'tis most evident, that an Hypocrite in all his transactions looks at himself, and designs the advance and advantage of himself. An Hypocrite is as well able to make a world, and to unmake himself, as he is able to make the glory of God, the exaltation of God his highest end, his utmost aim in what he does. But, Fifthly, No Hypocrite can live wholly and only upon the righteousness of Christ, the satisfaction of Christ, the merits of Christ for justification and salvation. The hypocritical Scribes and Pharisees prayed and fasted, Mat. 6. Luke 18.11, 12. ponder upon that Rev. 3.16, 17, 18. and kept the Sabbath, and gave alms, etc. and in this legal righteousness they rested and trusted. Upon the performance of these and such like duties they laid the weight of their souls, and the stress of their salvation, and so perished for ever. An Hypocrite rests upon what he doth, and never looks so high as the righteousness of Christ; he looks upon his duties as so much good moneys laid out for heaven; he weaves a web of righteousness to himself withal, he never looks out for a more glorious righteousness to be justified by than his own, and so puts a slight upon the righteousness of Christ, Rom. 10.3. For they being ignorant of God's righteousness, and going about to establish their own righteousness, have not submitted themselves unto the righteousness of God. The first step to salvation is to renounce our own righteousness, the next step is to embrace the righteousness of Christ which is freely offered to sinner's i● the Gospel; but these things the Hypocrite minds not, regards not: The righteousness of an Hypocrite is not only imperfect, but impure, a rag, a filthy rag; and therefore he that rests upon such a righteousness, Isa. 64.6. must needs miscarry to all eternity. O Sirs! who will say that that man needs a Saviour, that can fly to heaven upon the wings of his own duties and services? If a man's duties can pacify an infinite wrath, and satisfy an infinite justice, then farewell Christ, and welcome duties. He that will rest upon his own righteousness for life and justification, must needs sit down on this side salvation; he that rests upon his duties, and that rests upon a gift of knowledge, a gift of utterance, a gift of memory, or a gift of prayer, though he may come near to heaven, and bid fair for heaven, yet he will never be able to get into heaven. Now, how sad is it for a man to lose himself and his soul in a wilderness of duties, when he is upon the borders, yea the very brink of the holy Land; he that rests upon any thing in him, or done by him as a means to procure the favour of God, or the salvation of his soul, will put such a cheat upon himself as will undo him for ever. Non-submission to the righteousness of Christ, keeps Christ and the hypocrite asunder; Christ will never love nor like to put the fine, clean, Rev. ●9. 7, 8. white linen of his own righteousness upon the old garment, the old rags of an hypocrites duties; Mar. 9.16, 17. neither will Christ ever delight to put his new wine into such old bottles. An hypocrites confidence in his own righteousness, Prov. 21.27. turns his righteousness into filthiness. But now a sincere Christian, he renounces his own righteousness, he renounces all confidence in the flesh, Phil. 3.3. he looks upon his own righteousness as dung, yea as dog's meat (as some interpret the word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, in that, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 dicuntur quasi 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Vide Bezam, vide a Lapíde. Phil. 3.8.) he will say no more to his duties, to the works of his hands, ye are my Gods, Hos. 14.3. When they look upon the holiness of God's nature, the righteousness of his government, the severity of his Law, the terror of his wrath, they see an absolute and indispensable necessity of a more glorious righteousness than their own to appear before God in. A sincere Christian sets the highest price and value upon the righteousness of Christ, Psal. 71.16. I will make mention of thy righteousness, even of thine only. Mark, the Emphasis doubled, of thine, and thine only; a sincere Christian is convinced of the nature, worth and excellency of the righteousness of Christ, and therefore he cries out, I will make mention of thy righteousness, of thine only. The costly cloak (of Alcisthenes) which Dionysius sold to the Carthaginians for an hundred Talents, was indeed a mean and beggarly rag in a sincere Christian's eye, to that embroidered mantle of righteousness that Christ puts upon his. A sincere Christian rejoices in the righteousness of Christ above all, Isa. 61.10. I will greatly rejoice in the Lord, my soul shall be joyful in my God; for he hath clothed me with the garments of salvation, he hath covered me with the role of righteousness, as a bridegroom decketh himself with ornaments, and as a bride adorneth herself with her jewels. It is matter of joy, Knolls Hist. and a sign of great favour from the great Turk, when a rich garment is cast upon any that comes into his presence: O then! what matter of joy must it be to a sincere Christian, Isa. 28.16. to have the rich and royal garment of Christ's righteousness cast upon him? A sincere Christian rests on the righteousness of Christ, as on a sure foundation, Isa. 45.24. Surely shall one say, in the Lord have I righteousness and strength. It was a very sweet and golden expression of one, when he thought himself to be at the point of death; I confess, said he, I am not worthy, I have no merits of mine own to obtain heaven by; Guliel. Abbess in vita Bern. lib. 1. cap. 12. but my Lord had a double right thereunto, an hereditary right as a son, and a meritorious right as a sacrifice; he was contented with the one right himse f, the other right he hath given unto me, by the virtue of which gift I do rightly lay claim unto it, and am not confounded. A sincere Christian looks upon the righteousness of Christ as that which renders him most splendid and glorious in the eyes of God, Phil. 3.9. And ●e found in him not having mine own righteousness, which is of the Law, but that which is through the faith of Christ the righteousness which is of God by faith. The Church, saith Marlorat, which puts on Christ and his righteousness, is m re illustrious than the Air is by the Sun. A sincere Christian looks upon the righteousness of Christ as his only security against wrath to come; 1 Thes. 1. ult. wrath to come is the greatest wrath, wrath to come is the purest wrath, wrath to come is infinite wrath, wrath to come is everlasting wrath: Now the sincere Christian he knows no way under heaven to secure himself from wrath to come, but by putting on the robe of Christ's righteousness. The story tells us (if we may believe it) that Pilate being called to Rome to give an account unto the Empeperor for some misgovernment and maladministration, Rom. 13.14. he put on the seamless coat of Christ, and all the time he had ●hat coat upon his back, Caesar's fury was abated. There is nothing that can abate the wrath and fury of a sin-revenging God, but the seamless coat of Christ's righteousness. Well, for a close remember this, There is never an hypocrite in the world that is more pleased, satisfied, delighted and contented with the righteousness of Christ, than with his own, etc. Though an hypocrite may be much in duties, yet he never lives above his duties; he works for life, and he rests in his work, and this proves his mortal wound. But, Sixthly, An Hypocrite never embraces a whole Christ, he can never take up his full and everlasting rest, satisfaction and content in the person of Christ, in the merits of Christ, in the enjoyment of Christ alone. No hypocrite did ever long and mourn after the enjoyment of Christ, as the best thing in all the world; no hypocrite did ever prize Christ for a sanctifier as well as a Saviour; no hypocrite did ever look upon Christ, or long for Christ to deliver him from the power of his sins, as much, or as well as to deliver him from wrath to come; no hypocrite can really love the person of Christ, or take satisfaction in the person of Christ, 1 Thes. 1.10. the rays and beam● of Christ's glory has never warmed his heart; he never knew what bosom communion with Christ meant. An hypocrite may love to be healed by Ch ist, and to be pardoned by Christ, and to be saved by Christ, etc. but he can never take any complacency in the person of Christ, his heart never seriously works after union with Christ. The love of a sincere Christian runs much out to the person of Christ, heaven itself without Christ, Cant. 5.10. Phil. 1.21. & 3.7, 8, 9, 10. would be to such a soul but a poor thing, a low thing, a little thing, an uncomfortable thing, an empty thing; 'tis the person of Christ that is the sparkling Diamond in the ring of glory. No hypocrite in the world is sincerely willing to receive Christ in all his Offices, and to close with him upon Gospel terms. 1 John 11, 13. Mat. 16.24. The terms upon which God offers Christ in the Gospel, are these, viz. That we shall accept of a whole Christ with a whole heart. Now mark, a whole Christ includes all his Offices, & a whole heart includes all our faculties: Christ as Mediator is King, Priest and Prophet, and so God the Father in the Gospel offers him. Salvation was too great and too glorious a work to be perfected and completed by any one Office of Christ. Christ as a Prophet instructs us, and as a Priest he redeems us, and intercedes for us, and as a King he sanctifies and saves us. The Apostle hit it when he said, He is made to us of God, wisdom, righteousness, sanctification and redemption. Consider Christ as our Prophet, and so he is made wisdom to us; 1 Cor. 1.30. consider him as our Priest, and so he is made righteousness and redemption to us; consider him as our King, and so he is made sanctification and holiness to us. An hypocrite may be willing to embrace Christ as a Priest to save him from wrath, from the curse, from hell, from everlasting burning, but he is never sincerely willing to embrace Christ as a Prophet to teach and instruct him, and as a King to rule and reign over him; many hypocrites may be willing to receive a Christ Jesus, that are not willing to receive a Lord Jesus; they may be willing to embrace a saving Christ, but they are not willing to embrace a ruling Christ, a commanding Christ. Luke 19 27. This man shall not rule over us. O Jerusalem, Jerusalem! thou that killest the Prophets, how often would I have gathered thy children together, Mat. 23.37. Psal. 2.2, 3. John 5.40. John 1.11. Isa. 8 14. 1 Pet. 2.7, 8. even as a hen gathereth her chickens under her wings, and ye would not? And ye will not come to me that ye might have life. He came to his own, and his own received him not. An hypocrite is willing to receive Christ in one office, but not in every office; and this is that stumbling stone at which hypocrites stumble and fall, and are broken in pieces. Certainly Christ is as lovely and as comely ●s desirable, and delightful as eminent, and excellent in one office as he is in another, and therefore 'tis a just and righteous thing with God, that hypocrites that won't receive him in every office, 1 Cor. 1. 1●. should have no benefit by any one of his offices. Christ and his offices may be distinguished, but Christ and his offices can never be divided; whilst many have been a labouring to divide one office of Christ from another, they have wholly stripped themselves of any advantage or benefit by Christ. Hypocrites love to share with Christ in his happiness, but they don't love to share with Christ in his holiness; they are willing to be redeemed by Christ, but they are not cordially willing to submit to the Laws and Government of Christ; they are willing to be saved by his blood, but they are not willing to submit to his Sceptre. Hypocrites love the privileges of the Gospel, but they don't love the services of the Gospel, especially those that are most inward and spiritual. But now a sincere Christian he owns Christ in all his offices, 1 John 12. Mat. 2.6. Heb. 7.21, 26. Acts 3.22. John 12.46. he receives Christ in all his offices, and he closes with Christ in all his offices, he accepts of him not only as a Christ Jesus, but also as a Lord Jesus; he embraces him not only as a saving Christ, but also as a ruling Christ. The Colossians received him as Christ Jesus the Lord, Col. 2.6. they received a Lord Christ as well as a saving Christ, they received Christ as a King upon his throne, 2 Cor. 4.5. as well as a sacrifice upon his Cross. God the Father in the Gospel tenders a whole Christ; We preach Christ Jesus the Lord, Acts 5.31. and accordingly a sincere Christian receives a whole Christ, he receives Christ Jesus the Lord; he says with Thomas, My Lord, and my God; John 20.28. he takes Christ for his wisdom as well as for his righteousness, and he takes him for his sanctification as well as for his redemption. An hypocrite is all for a saving Christ, for a sin-pardoning Christ, for a soul-glorifying Christ, but regards not a ruling Christ, a reigning Christ, a commanding Christ, a sanctifying Christ, and this at last will prove his damning sin, John 3.19, 20. But, Seventhly, An Hypocrite can't mourn for sin as sin, nor grieve for sin as sin, nor hate sin as sin, nor make head against sin as sin. Mark, to hate sin is not, 1. Num. 22. Merely to refrain from sin, for so Balaam did, even then when he was tempted to it. 2. To hate sin is not merely to confess sin, Exod. 10.16. Mat. 27.4. for so Pharaoh and Judas did. 3. To hate sin is not merely to be afraid to sin, for this may be where the hatred of sin is not. 4. To hate sin is not merely to mourn because of the dreadful effects and fruits that sin may produce, for so Ahab did, and the Ninivites did, etc. He that sears sin for hell, Augustine. fears not to sin but to burn, but he hates sin indeed whoso hates sin as hell itself. It was a saying of one of the Ancients, Anselm. That if hell and sin were before him, he would rather fall into hell than fall into sin; here was a true hatred of sin indeed. An hypocrite may be troubled for sin, as it blots his name, and wounds his conscience, and brings a scourge, and destroys his soul, & shuts him out of heaven, and throws him to hell, but he is never troubled for sin, he never mourns for sin, he never hates sin because 'tis contrary to the nature of God, the being of God, the Law of God, the glory of God, the design of God, or because of the evil that is in the nature of sin, or because of the defiling and polluting power of sin. True hatred of sin is universal; 'tis of the whole kind; he who hates a toad because it is a toad, hates every toad; and he who hates a man because he is holy, hates every holy man; and so he who hates sin because 'tis sin, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, Arist. Rhet. lib. 2. hates every sin, Psal. 119.128. I hate every false way. (True hatred is ever against the whole kind of a thing) Every sincere Christian hath in him a general hatred of every false way, and dares not allow himself in the least sin; What I do I allow not. Rom. 7.15. Rom. 12.9. Abhor that which is evil. The Greek word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 is very significant; Chrysost. the simple Verb imports extreme detestation, which is aggravated by the composition; Rom. 2.21. the word signifies to hate evil as hell itself. Though an hypocrite may hate some sins; Thou abhorrest Idols, yet that is out of some peculiar and particular indisposition to a particular sin; Doctor Sibs in his souls conflict makes the hatred of sin the surest and never failing character of a good soul, page 340. but this hatred of th●s or that particular sin, ariseth not from an inward nature or gracious principle, as it doth in him that is a sincere Christian; & the reason is this, because that contrariety to sin which is in a real Christian arising from this inward gracious nature, is to the whole species or kind of sin, and is irreconcilable to any sin whatsoever. As contrarieties of nature are to the whole kind, as light is contrary to all darkness, and fire to all water; so this contrariety to sin arising from the inward man, is universal to all sin. Though a sincere Christian has not a universal victory over all sin, yet there is in him a universal contrariety to all sin. Victory argues strength, contrariety argues nature. Hence it is that an hypocrite may hate one sin, and love another, because there is not a gracious nature in him which would be contrary to all. The inward nature of a Christian is to be judged by the universal contrariety of his inward man to all sin. Now this universal contrariety to all sin, will beget a universal conflict with all sin. O Sirs! remember this, A universal contrariety to sin, can be found in no man but he that is sincere; and this universal contrariety to sin argues an inward nature of grace, and this is that which differences a real Christian from an hypocrite, who may oppose some sins out of other principles and reasons. An hypocrite may be angry with this sin and that, which brings the smarting rod, and wounds his conscience, and disturbs his peace, and imbitters his mercies, and strangles his comforts, and that lays him open to wrath, and that brings him even to the gates of hell, but he can never hate sin as sin. An hypocrite he hates some sins, but likes others, he loathes some but loves others, he opposes some but practices others; like the Angel of the Church of Ephesus, that hated the deeds of the Nicolaitans, but loved lukewarmness. Rev. 2.5, 6. Many men detest theft that love covetousness, abhor whoredom that like irrereligiousness, etc. There is no hypocrite under heaven, that can truly say, I hate every false way; but a sincere Christian he hates all sinful ways, but his own first and most; 1 Kings 5.18. an upright heart leaves no nest-egg for Satan to sit on, but the hypocrite always does. Mark, in true hatred there are six things observable. First, True hatred includes an extreme detestation; every dislike is not hatred, but true hatred is an extreme loathing: Thou shalt cast them away as a menstruous cloth, Isa 30.22. thou shalt say unto it, Get thee hence. Chap. 2.20. In that day a man shall cast his idols of silver, and his idols of gold, which they made each one for himself to worship, to the Moles and to the Bats. Their detestation should be so great, that they should cast their most costly idols of silver and gold, into the most dark, nasty, dusty corners; to testify the sincerity of their conversion to God, they should hate and abhor, abandon and abolish their gold and silver idols which they valued above all others. Secondly, True hatred includes an earnest separation. He that hates his sin would fain be separated from his sin: 2 Cor. 5.4. For we that are in this tabernacle do groan being burdened. A sincere Christian finds no burden to lay so heavy and weighty upon his spirit as sin, and therefore he groans to be delivered from it. In the Law, Deut. 24.3. he that hated his Wife did sue out a bill of divorce from her. He that truly hates sin, puts in many a bill into the Court of Heaven, that he may be for ever divorced from his sin. Thirdly, True hatred includes an irreconcilable alienation. He that hates sin, has his heart for ever alienated from sin; he who hates sin, can never be one with sin. Two angry men may be made friends, Lawyer's often fall out at the Bar, but are very well agreed when they meet at the Tavern. but if two men hate each other, all friendship is everlastingly broken betwixt them. A man may be angry with sin, and yet made friends with sin again; but if once he comes to hate his sin, than all friendship with sin is everlastingly broken. When Christ and the soul comes to be really one, than sin and the soul comes to be everlastingly two, etc. Fourthly, True hatred includes a constant and perpetual conflict; the flesh will be still lusting against the spirit, and the spirit against the flesh. Gal. 5.17. Rom. 7.22, 23. Though sin and grace were not born together, and though sin and grace shall never die together; yet whilst a believer lives in this world, they must live together; and whilst sin and grace do cohabit together, they will still be opposing and conflicting one with another. That man that truly hates sin, will everlastingly conflict with sin, he will die fight against his sins as one of the Dukes of Venice died fight against his enemies with his weapons in his hand. Well Christians, remember this, Though to be kept from sin brings most peace and comfort to us, yet for us to oppose sin, and for God to pardon sin, that brings most glory to God, 2 Cor. 12.7, 8, 9 Fifthly, True hatred includes a deadly intention and destruction; for nothing satisfies hatred but death and ruin. Saul hated David, 1 Sam. 26.19, 20. 1 Sam. 23.23. Est. 5.14. and sought his life; he hunted him up and down as a Partridge in the mountains, he left no stone unturned, nor no means unattempted, whereby he might revenge himself upon David. Haman hated Mordecai, and nothing would satisfy him but to bring him to a shameful death, to see him hanged on a gallows fifty cubits high (which was designed saith Lyra, to put Mordecai to the greater shame, for he hanging h●gh every one might see him and point to him.) Now when there was but one night betwixt Mordecai and a shameful death, divine providence opportunely struck in and saved h●m from Haman's malice, and caused the mischief which he had plotted against Mordecai, suddenly to fall upon his own pate; for he who was highly feasted with the King one day, 2 Sam. 13.22, 28, 29, 30, 31, 32, 33. was made a feast for crows the next day. Absalon hated Amnon and killed him. Julian the Apostate hated the Christians with a deadly hatred, he put many thousands of them to death, and threatened and vowed that at his return from fight against the Persians he would put all the Christians in his Empire to the sword, but God prevented him, by cutting him off in that expedition. A Christian that hates sin, can't be satisfied but in the death and destruction of it; in all his duties the language of his soul is, Lord, let my sins be destroyed, whoever escapes let not my sins escape the hand of thy revenging justice: And in all Ordinances the language of his soul is, O Lord! when shall my sins be subdued and mortified, when shall my cursed corruptions be brought to an under? yea, when shall they all be drowned in the Red-Sea of my Saviour's blood, etc. Sixthly, True hatred includes an impartial aversation, true hatred is of the whole kind; but of this before. To wind up all, ask thy heart what is it that thou abhorrest as the superlative evil? what is that which thou wouldst have separated as far from thee, as heaven is from hell? what is that thy heart will never renew league or friendship with any more? what is that against which thy soul doth rise, and with which (as Israel with Amalek) thou wilt have war for ever? Exod. 17.16. what is that which thou wilt be avenged of, and daily dost endeavour the mortifying and crucifying of? what is that which thou settest thy heart against in the comprehensive latitude thereof, whether great or little, open or secret? if it be sin, if it be thy sins, if it be all thy sins, then assuredly here is a true hatred of sin, and assuredly here is a most distinguishing character of a child of God, of a sound conversion, and of a saving change. It was not wont to be thus with thee, nor is this findable in any hypocrite, Judg. 14.3, 7. or in any unconverted person upon the face of the earth; 2 Sam. 13.15. sin was once to thee as Dalilah to Samson, but now it is to thee as Tamar to Amnon; Job 20.12, 13. once it was a sweet morsel which thou heldst fast and wouldst not let it go, Isa. 30.22. but now it is the menstruous cloth which thou castest away, Hos. 14.8. saying, Get thee hence: Now with Ephraim thou criest out, What have I to do any more with Idols? O, if it be indeed thus with thee, than thou hast cause for ever to be much in blessing and in admiring of the Lord for his distinguishing grace and favour towards thee. O Sirs! the world is full of baits, snares and temptations, but whilst the hatred of sin burns in your breasts, you may cast up your caps, and throw the Gauntlet to the world, the flesh and the devil. Well, remember this for ever, There are three things an hypocrite can never do. 1. He can never mourn for sin as sin. 2. He can never mourn for the sins of others as well as his own. Moses, Lot, David, Jeremiah, Paul, and those in that, Ezek. 9.4, 6. mourned for others sins as well as their own; but Pharaoh, Ahab, Judas, Demas, Simon Magus never did. 3. He can never hate sin as sin. But, Eighthly, No hypocrite is habitually low or little in his own eyes, no hypocrite has ordinarily mean thoughts of himself, 1 Cor. 8.1, 2. John 7.49. & 9.34. or a poor esteem of himself; no hypocrite loves to lessen himself to greaten Christ, to debase himself to exalt Christ; no hypocrite loves to be outshined, all hypocrites love to write an I (not a Christ) upon what they do. The Pharisee stood and prayed thus with himself, Luke 18.11, 12 Monday and Thursday were the Pharisees. fasting days, because Moses went up to the Mount on a Thursday, and came down on a Monday, saith Drusius. God I thank thee, that I am not as other men are, extortioners, unjust, adulterers, or even as this Publican; I fast twice in the week, I give tithes of all that I possess. All hypocrites stand not only upon their comparisons, but also upon the disparisons; I am not as this Publican. All hypocrites stand much upon their negative righteousness, and their comparative goodness. There is no hypocrite in the world, but sets down his penny for a pound, and always prizes himself above the Market, 2 Kings 10.15, 16. And when he was departed thence, he lighted on Jehonadab the son of Rechab, coming to meet him, and he saluted him, and said to him, Is thine heart right as my heart is with thy heart? and Jehonadab answered, it is; if it be, give me thine hand, and be gave him his hand, and he took him up to him into his chariot; and he said, come with me, and see my zeal for the Lord. Comets make a greater blaze than fixed Stars; Come see my zeal for the Lord. Jehu his words were for the Lord, but his project was for the kingdom. The Actor in the Comedy said with his mouth, O coelum (O heaven) but with his finger he pointed to the earth. Lapidaries tell us of a stone called the Chelydonian stone, that it will retain its virtue no longer than it is enclosed in gold; a fit emblem of an hypocrite, of a Jehu. John 12.43. Jehu made a great blaze, but he was but a Comet. An hypocrite always loves the praise of men more than the praise of God, he loves more to be honoured by men than to be honoured by God. John 5.44. How can ye believe which receive honour one of another, and seek not the honour which cometh from God only. Nothing below that power which raised Christ from the grave, can make an hypocrite purely nothing in his own eyes. An hypocrite is always a great thing in his own eyes, Accius' the Poet, though he were a Dwarf, yet would be pictured tall of stature. The application to the hypocrite is easy. and when he is nothing, a great nothing in others eyes, he can't bear it. An hypocrite can't endure to be outshined in gifts, in graces, in experiences, in duties, in communion with God, in spiritual enjoyments. An hypocrites heart is full of pride, when his deportment is most humble; he always thinks best of himself and worst of others, he looks upon his own vices as graces, and he looks upon other men's graces as vices, or at least, as no true currant coin. A proud spirit will cast disgrace upon that excellency that himself wants, Eusebius Eccl. Hist. l. 4. c. 13. as Licinius who was joined with Galerius in the Empire, he was so ignorant that he was not able to write his own name; he was a bitter enemy to learning, and as Eusebius reports of him, he called the liberal Arts a public poison and pestilence. The emptiest barrels makes the loudest sound, the worst metal the greatest noise, and the lightest ears of corn hold their heads highest. An hypocrite may well lay his hand upon his heart, and say, is it not so with me? is it not just so with me? But now sincere Christians, they are men of another spirit, of another temper, of another mettle, of another mind, their hearts lie low, when their gifts, and graces, and spiritual enjoyments are high. Abraham is but dust and ashes in his own eyes. Gen. 18.27. The higher any man is in his communion with God, the more low that man will be in his own eyes: Dust and ashes are poor, base, vile, worthless things, and such a thing as these was Abraham in his own eyes. So Jacob was a plain man, Gen. 32.10. an upright man; and lo, what a low esteem had he of himself, I am not worthy of the least of all the mercies which thou hast showed unto thy servant, etc. In the Hebrew it is, I am little before thy mercies; for the Hebrews have no comparative, Gen. 31. from ver. 38. to 41. The least mercy, saith Jacob, is more worth than I, & more weighty than I and therefore they are wont to express this by a positive and a preposition. When Jacob had to do with Laban, he pleads his merits, but when he has to do with God, he pleads nothing but grace, setting a very low esteem upon himself; he looks upon himself as less than the least of mercies, and as worse than the worst of creatures; the least of my mercies are greater than I deserve, and the greatest of my troubles are less than I deserve, saith Jacob. The language of a plain hearted Jacob is this; O Lord, I might with Job have been stripped of all my comforts and enjoyments at a clap, and set upon a dunghill, I might with Lazarus have been begging my bread from door to door, Lam. 5.9. or I might have been getting my bread with the peril of my life, because of the sword of the wilderness, or I might have been with Dives in hell, a crying out for a drop of water to cool my tongue. A sincere Christian cannot tell how to speak good enough of God, Luk. 16.24. nor ill enough of himself. Agur was one of the wisest and holiest men on earth, and see how greatly he debases himself; Prov. 30.1, 2. Surely I am more brutish than any man, and have not the understanding of a man. Agur had seen Ithiel (God with me) and Ucal (God almighty) and this made him so vile and base in his own eyes; this made him vilify, yea nullify himself to the utmost. Job was a non-such in regard of those perfections and ●grees of grace, of integrity, of sanctity, that he had attained to beyond any other Saints in the World, in his time and day. You know, no man ever received a fairer or a more valuable certificate under the hand of God, or the broad Seal of heaven for his being a soul famous in uprightness and holiness than Job● as you may see, Job 1.8. And the Lord said unto Satan, hast thou con●●●●ed my servant Job, than there is none like him in the earth, a perfect and an upright man, one that feareth God and escheweth evil. Job was high in worth, and humble in heart, Job 42.5, 6. I have heard of thee by the hearing of the ear, but now mine ●●e seethe thee; I abhor myself in dust and ashes. This expression is the deepest act of abhorrency; abhorrency strictly taken, is hatred wound up to the height. I abhor myself. The Hebrew word that is rendered abhor, signifies to reject, to disdain, to contemn, to cast off. Ah, says Job, I abhor myself, I reject myself, I disdain myself, I cast off myself, I have a very vile and base esteem of myself. David was a man of great integrity, a man after Gods own heart, and yet he looks upon himself as a Flea; 1 King. 15.5. and what is more contemptible than 〈…〉 looks upon himself as a Flea, so he looks upon himself as a worm; 1 Sam. 26.20 I am a worm and no man. The Hebrew word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Tolagnath, Psal. 22.6. that is here rendered a worm, signifies a very little worm which breedeth in scarlet, a worm that is so li●●l● 〈◊〉 that a man can hardly perceive it. A worm is the most despicable creature in the world, trampled under foot by man and beasts; he who was in God's eye a man after his own heart, is in his own eye but a despicable worm, A sincere Christian is a little, little nothing in his own eyes. So Paul who had been caught up into the th●●d heaume, Chrysostom. 〈◊〉 learned his divinity among the Angels, as one speaks; and had such glorious Revelations as could not be uttered, yet he accounts himself less than the least of all Saints, Eph●▪ ●. 8● Unto me who am less than the least of all Saints. Vide Es●ius, ●●●●m, etc. The Greek is 〈◊〉 comparative made of a superlative, less than the least 〈…〉 Saints is a double diminutive, and signifies lesser than the least, if lesser might be, (not that any thing can be less than the least) Paul's rhetoric doth not cross Aristotle's Philosophy, the original word being a double diminutive; his meaning is, that he was as little as could be, therefore he put himself down so little, as could not be less than the least. Here you have the greatest Apostle descending down to the lowest step of humility; great Paul is least of Saints, 1 Tim. 1.15. last of the Apostles, and greatest of sinners. So Peter, Depart from me, for I am a sinful man, O Lord; Luke 5.8. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. or as the Greek runs, A man, a sinner, a very mixture and compound of dirt and sin, a mere bundle of vice and vanity, of folly and iniquity. So Luther, I have no other name than sinner, sinner is my name, sinner is my surname, this is the name by which I shall be always known; I have sinned, I do sin, I shall sin in infinitum, saith Luther speaking vilely and basely of himself. Lord, I am hell, and thou art heaven, said blessed Hooper, I am a most hypocrital wretch, not worthy that the earth should bear me, said blessed Bradford. Thus you see by these several instances, that sincere Christians do as it were take a holy pleasure and delight to debase, humble and vilify themselves. But this is a work hypocrites are mere strangers to; there is not an hypocrite under heaven that loves to debase himself, or that makes it his duty conscientiously to vilify and lessen himself, that Christ may be set up above all. Augustin. Humility is a grace hardly attained unto. Many (saith one) can more easily give all they have to the poor, than themselves become poor in spirit. But, Ninthly, No hypocrite will long hold out in the work and ways of the Lord, in the want of outward encouragements, and in the face of outward discouragements. An hypocrite is an Apostate cased, and an Apostate is an hypocrite uncased, Job 27. ver. 8. For what is the hope of the hypocrite, though he hath gained, when God shall take away his soul? Ver. 10. Will he delight himself in the Almighty? Will he always call upon God? Or, as the Hebrew runs, Will he in every time call upon God? It may be he may formally call on God in time of prosperity; but can he seriously do it in time of adversity? Sometimes when the rod is upon them, than they will pour out a prayer to God; Isa, 26.16. In their affliction they will seek me earthly. When he slew them, than they sought him, and they returned and enquired after God. Hos. 5. ult. Psal. 78, 34. But this was not the standing frame of their hearts. Ver. 36. Nevertheless, they did flatter him with their mouth, and they lied unto him with their tongues. Ver. 47. For their heart was not right with him, neither were they steadfast in his Covenant. When Pharaoh was upon the wrack, he could roar out a confession, Exo. 10.16, 17. Ver. 19.20. and earnestly cry out for a prayer; but when the judgement was removed, Pharaoh was as proud, and hard, and blind as ever. 1 King. 1.50, 51 When Adonijah was in danger of death, than he could hang on the horns of the Altar. When Ahab was threatened with utter desolation, than he could fast and lie in sackcloth; and so did the Minivites: Jonah 3. But all this was but like Ephraim and Judah's goodness, that as a morning cloud, and as the early dew passeth away. Will the hypocrite always, or in every time call upon God? will the hypocrite call upon God as often as providence calls him to call upon God? will he call upon God as often as judgements call him to call upon God? will he call upon God as often as conscience calls him to call upon God? will he call upon God as often as 'tis his duty to call upon God? will he call upon God as often as others call upon him to call upon God? Oh no. The hypocrite will not always call upon God, he will not persevere in prayer, he will not hold on, nor hold out in prayer, he is short spirited, he can't always pray and not faint, or shrink back as sluggards do in work, or cowards in war, as the original word in Luke imports. Luke 18.1. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. An hypocrite for want of an inward principle, can neither delight in God, nor always call upon God. If God comes not at his call, if he opens not as soon as he knocks, he is out of patience, and ready to say with that proud profane Prince; Behold, this evil is of the Lord, and what should I wait for him any longer? 2 Kings 6: 33. If any hypocrite obtains the mercy he desires, than he will throw off prayer; as he said, Take away the net, the fish is caught; if he obtains not the mercy, than he will grow weary of his duty. Thou hast been weary of me, O Israel. Mal. 1.13. Isa. 43.22. Prayer is too hard and too high a work for an unsound heart to hold on in; prayer is heart-work, and that proves heavy work to him. The soul of prayer lies in the pouring out of the soul before God, and this is a work that an hypocrite has no skill in. 1 Sam. 1.15. It was a profane and blasphemous speech of that Atheistical wretch, that told God he was no common beggar, he never troubled him before with prayer, Hil. Mic. p. 376. and if he would but hear him that time, he would never trouble him again: Even such a spirit and such principles lie lurking in every hypocrites breast. Doubtless he hit it who said; How canst thou expect that God should hear thee, Cyprian de oratione Dominica. Psal. 116.1, 2. Gen. 32.24, to ver. 29. Hos. 12.3, 4. Mat. 15.22. to ver. 28. when thou wilt not hear thyself? or that God should give thee a return in prayer, when thou art not mindful what thou askest in prayer? But now a sincere Christian he will go on in prayer, speed or not speed; if he prevails he will love prayer the better all his days, if he don't for the present prevail, he will be so much the more importunate with God in prayer: 'Tis as natural for a bird to live without Air, and for a fish to live without water, and for a man to live without food, as 'tis for a sincere heart to live without prayer. O, saith Chrysostom, it is more bitter than death to be spoilt of prayer. Dan. 6. Prayer is porta coeli clavis paradisi, the seat of heaven, a key to let us into paradise. And hereupon (as he observes) Daniel chose rather to run the hazard of his life, than to lose or give over his private prayers. Prayer is the key of heaven, and a sincere Christian loves much to be a handling of that key, though he should die for it. As that Emperor said, Oportet Imperatorem stantem mori, It behoves an Emperor to die standing: So may I say, Oportet Christianum mori praecantem, It behoves a Christian to die praying. An hypocrite will never hold out to the end; let but outward encouragements fail him, and his heart will quickly fail him in a way of duty. Hypocrites are like blazing Stars, which so long as they are fed with vapours, shine as if they were fixed Stars; but let the vapours dry up, and presently they vanish and disappear; let but the eye, the ear, the applause of men fail the hypocrite, and he will be ready to throw up all. 2 Pet. 2.20, 21, 22. 2 Tim. 4.10. If an hypocrite can't make some gain of his godliness, some profit of his profession, some advantage of his Religion, he will be ready with Demas, to turn his back upon all religious duties and services. Look, as a lame horse, when he is heated will go well enough, but when he cools will halt down right; even so an hypocrite, though for a time he may go on fairly in his way, yet in the end he will halt down right, & bid farewel (if not defiance) to all religious duties and services: Profit and applause are usually the baits that hypocrites by't at, and if they miss these baits, then farewell profession, farewel Religion, farewell all. John 6.66. From that time many of his Disciples went back and walked no more with him. Many hypocrites who had given up their names to Christ, and who for a time had been followers of Christ, at last deserted him and turned their back● for ever upon him, Mat. 13.5. Some fall upon stony places, where they had not much earth (not much care to receive, not much understanding to apprehend, not much faith to believe, not much will to obey, or not much love to retain it) and forthwith they sprung up, because they had no deepness of earth. Ver: 6. And when the Sun was up they were scorched, and because they had no root they withered away. This second ground goes beyond the former; For 1. It receives the seed. 2. Incontinently: 3. With joy. 4. It brings up the seed sown, it sprung up to sundry degrees. 1. To external obedience and reformation in many things. 2. To an outward profession. 3. To a kind of faith; but when the Sun of persecution beat hot upon them they withered and fell away, not all at once, but by little and little, as a leaf loseth his greeness and flourish, and withers by degrees. In the Palatinate, when the Sun of persecution began to scorch them, scarce one Professor of twenty stood out, but fell to Popery as fast as leaves in Autumn. The Crystal looks like pearl till it comes to the hammering; so an hypocrite looks like a Christian, and in many things acts like a Christian, till he comes to be hammered by sufferings, by persecutions, and then he discovers himself in his colours; and with Hymeneus and Alexander, 1 Tim. 1.19, 20. Hos. 5.2. he makes shipwreck of faith and a good conscience. In suffering times hypocrites labour mightily to put out that light which shines in their bosoms, and when they have quenched that light, then farewell faith, farewell profession, farewel a good conscience, farewell all. The wolf, though he often dissembles, and clossly hides his nature, yet he can't always do so; for at one time or other he will show himself to be a Wolf: So though an hypocrite may carry it clossly for a time, yet he will one time or other discover himself to be an hypocrite. It is reported of the waters of Nilus, that having run many hundred of miles a pure and clear water, when it comes near the Mediterranean Sea, it gins to grow brackish and salt, and at last it falls into the Sea and loseth its name. Sooner or later this will be the case of all hypocrites, they won't retain their spiritual fairness, clearness and sweetness long, but by degrees will grow brackish and salt, and lose their names, and all that seeming goodness and sweetness that once seemed to be in them. But now a sincere Christian he will hold on, and hold out in the ways of the Lord in the want of all outward encouragements, and in the face of all multiplied discouragements. When the eye of men, the favour of men, the bounty of men, and all other encouragement from men fails, yet then a sincere Christian will hold up, and hold on in his work and way. Job 17.9. The righteous shall hold on his way, and he that hath clean hands shall be stronger and stronger. The righteous man shall go on in a way of righteous to the end, no multiplied calamities or miseries shall ever work him to decline the way of righteousness. From this way a sincere Christian will never be withdrawn, either by any hopes or advantages on the one hand, or by any fears or dangers on the other: Sincere Christians have not taken up Religion on such slight grounds, as to be either flattered or frighted out of it; sincere Christians reckon upon afflictions, Joh. 16. ult. Acts 14.22. 2 Tim. 4.8. temptations, crosses, losses, reproaches on the one hand, and they reckon upon a crown of life, a crown of righteousness, a crown of glory on the other hand, Jer. 6.16. and hereupon they set up their staff, fully resolving never to departed from the good old way wherein they have found rest to their souls. Sincere Christians take Christ and his ways for better for worse, for richer for poorer, in prosperity and adversity, they resolve to stand or fall, to suffer and reign, to live and die with him. When all outward encouragements from God shall fail, yet a sincere Christian will keep closely to his God, and closely to his duty. Heb. 3.17, 18. Although the figtree shall not blossom, neither shall fruit be in the vines, the labour of the Olive shall fail, and the fields shall yield no meat, the flock shall be cut off from the fold, and there shall be no herds in the stalls; yet I will rejoice in the Lord, I will joy in the God of my salvation. When all necessary and delightful mercies fail, yet he will not fail in his duty; though God withhold his blessings, yet he will not withhold his service in the want of a livelihood, he will be lively in his duty; when he hath nothing to subsist by, yet than he will live upon his God, and joy in his God, and keep closely to this God. Though war and want come, yet he will not be wanting in his duty. Mark, there are three things in a sincere Christian that will strongly incline him to keep closely to the Lord, and closely to his ways in the want of all outward encouragements, 2 Cor. 5.14. Phil. 4.12, 13. Rom. 14.7, 8. and in the face of all outward discouragements: And the first is a forcible principle, Divine Love; the second, is a mighty aid, the Spirit of God; and the third is a high aim; the Glory of God. Look, as Ruth kept closely to her mother in the want of all outward encouragements, and in the face of all outward discouragements; And Ruth Ruth 1.16, 17. said, whither thou goest I will go, and where thou lodgest I will lodge; and nothing but death shall part thee and 〈◊〉. So saith a sincere Christian, I will take my lot with Christ were ever it falls; I will keep closely to the Lord, and closely to my duty in the want of all outward encouragements, and in the face of all outward discouragements. Though outward encouragements be sometimes as a side wind, or as oil, or as chariot wheels, means to move a Christian to go on more sweetly, easily and comfortably in the ways of God, yet when this wind shall fail, and these chariot wheels shall be knocked off, a sincere Christian will keep closely to the Lord and his ways. All this is come upon us; Psal. 44.17, 18 yet have we not forgotten thee, neither have we dealt falsely in thy covenant; our heart is not turned back, neither have our steps declined from thy ways. But what do they mean by saying, All this is come upon us? Why that you may see in the foregoing part of the Psalm. Thou hast cast us off, and put us to shame, Vers. 9, 10, 11, 12, 13, 14. The Jews sold Christ for thirty peace, and the Romans sold thirty of them for a penny, as Josephus relates. and goest not forth with our armies; thou makest us turn back from the enemy, and they which hate us spoil for themselves; thou hast given us like sheep appointed for meat, and hast scattered us among the heathen; thou sellest thy people for nought, and dost not increase thy wealth by their price; thou makest us a reproach to our neighbours, a scorn and derision to them that are round about us; thou makest us a byword among the heathen, a shaking of the head among the people. Antiochus Epiphanes looked upon the Jews Religion as superstition; his wrath and rage was exceeding great, both against the Jews, and against their Religion; he practised all manner of cruelty upon the miserable Jews, but yet there was a remnant among them, who were faithful to the Lord, and to his Covenant, and to his Laws, and to his ways, even to the death; though in the time of the Maccabees many revolted to Paganism, yet some maintained their constancy and integrity to the last. That is a great word of the Prophet Micah. Mich. 4.5. For all people will walk every one in the name of his God, and we will walk in the name of the Lord our God for ever and ever. This absolute and peremptory resolution to be really the Lord's, and for ever the Lord's, is of the essence of true conversion. 'Tis not the world's flatteries that can bribe off a sincere Christian from the ways of God; nor 'tis not the world's frowns that can beat off a sincere Christian from the ways of God: But an hypocrite will never, an hypocrite can never hold it out to the end; his ground-tackle will never hold when the storm beats strong upon him. An hypocrite is hot at hand, but soon tires and gives in. But, Tenthly, No hypocrite ever makes it his business, his work to bring his heart into religious duties and services; he never makes conscience of bringing his heart into his work. Mat. 15 8. ● Mark 7.6. An hypocrite is heartless in all he does, Psal. 78.34. When he slew them, than they sought him; and they returned and enquired early after God. The Fox when caught in a gin, looks pitifully, but it is only to get out. They worshipped the Lord as the Indians do the devil, that he may do them no hurt. Ver. 36. Nevertheless, they did flatter him with their mouth, and they lied unto him with their tongues. Ver. 37. For their heart was not right with him, neither were they steadfast in his Covenant. All lip-labour is but lost labour: When men's hearts are not in their devotion, their devotion is mere dissimulation. These hypocrites sought God, and enquired early after God, but it was still with old hearts, which are no hearts in the account of God: They made lip work of it, and head-work of it, but their hearts not being in their work, all was lost, their seeking lost, their enquiring lost, their God lost, their souls lost, and eternity lost, Hos. 7.14. And they have not cried unto m● with their hearts, when they howled upon their beds. When men's hearts are not in their prayers, all their praying is but as an hideous howling in the account of God. As dogs, bruit beasts, and Indians do, when they are hunger-bit. The cry of the heart is the only cry that God likes, loves and looks for; he accepts of no cry, he delights in no cry, he rewards no cry but the cry of the heart. Hypocrites are heartless in their cries, and therefore they cry and howl, and howl and cry, and all to no purpose; they cry and murmur, and they howl and repine; they cry and blaspheme, and they howl and rebel; and therefore they meet with nothing from heaven but frowns, and blows, and disappointments, Isa. 29.13. Wherefore the Lord said, for as much as this people draw near me with their mouth, and with their lips do honour me, but have removed their heart far from me. Ezek. 33.31. And they come unto thee as the people cometh, and they sit before thee as my people, and they hear thy words, but they will not do them: for with their mouth they show much love, but their heart goeth after their covetousness. Though this people flocked to the Prophet in troops, as men and women do to places of pleasure; and though they carried it before the Prophet, as if they were Saints, as if they were the people of God, as if they were affected with what they heard, as if they were resolved to live out what the Prophet should make out to them, yet their hearts run after their covetousness. Though these hypocrites professed much love and kindness to the Prophet, and paid him home with smooth words, & seemed to be much affected, delighted, ravished and taken with his person, voice and doctrine; yet they made no conscience of bringing their hearts into their duties. An hypocrite may look at some outward, easy, ordinary duties of Religion, but he never makes conscience of bringing his heart into any duties of Religion. When did you ever see an hypocrite a searching of his heart, or sitting in judgement upon the corruptions of his soul, or lamenting and mourning over the vileness and wickedness of his spirit? 'Tis only the sincere Christian that is affected, afflicted and wounded with the corruptions of his heart. When one told (blessed) Bradford, that he did all out of hypocrisy; because he would have the people applaud him: He answered, It is true, the seeds of hypocrisy and vain glory are in thee and me too, and will be in us as long as we live in this world; but I thank God it is that I mourn under and strive against. How seriously and deeply did good Hezekiah humble himself for the pride of his heart; 2 Chron. 32.25 out of the eater came meat, out of his pride he got humility. O Sirs! A sincere Christian makes it his great business to get his heart into all his Religious duties and services, to get his heart into every way and work of God. 2 Chron. 17.6. Psal. 86.12. Jehoshaphats heart was lifted up in the ways of the Lord. So David, I'll praise thee, 2 Chron. 22.9. Cant. 3.1, 2, 3, 4, 5, 6. It is reported, that when the Tyrant Trajane commanded Ignatius to be ripped & unboweled, they found Jesus Christ written upon his heart in characters of gold; here was a heart worth gold. That's the golden Christian indeed, whose heart is writ upon all his duties and services. O Lord, with all my heart. And so Psal. 119.7. I will praise thee with uprightness of heart. Ver. 10. With my whole heart have I sought thee. So Jehoshaphat he sought the Lord with all his heart, Isa. 26.8. The desire of our soul is to thy name, and to the remembrance of thee. Vers. 9 With my soul have I desired thee in the night; yea, with my spirit within me will I seek thee early. Lamen. 3.41. Let us lift up our heart with our hands unto God in the heavens. Rom. 1.9. For God is my witness, whom I serve with my spirit in the Gospel of his Son. Paul's very spirit, his very soul was in his service. Phil. 3.3. For we are the circumcision which worship God in the spirit, and rejoice in Christ Jesus, and have no confidence in the flesh. Rom. 7.22. I delight in the Law of God after the inward man. Ver. 25. With the mind I myself serve the Law of God. A sincere Christian is always best when his heart is in his work; and when he can't get his heart into his duties! Oh, how does he sigh, and groan, and complain, and mourn at the foot of God? Lord! my tongue has been at work, and my head has been at work, and my parts have been at work, and my eyes and hands have been at work, but where has my heart been this day? Oh, it is and must be for a sore and sad lamentation, that I have had so little of my heart in that service that I have tendered to thee! This is the daily language of an upright heart. But now all the work of an hypocrite, is to get his golden parts into his duties, and his silver tongue into his duties, and his nimble head into his duties; but he never makes conscience of getting his heart into his duties. If any beasts sacrificed by Heathens (who ever looked narrowly into the entrails) was found without heart, this was held ominous, and construed as very prodigious to the person for whom it was offered, as it fell out in the case of Julian. Hypocrites are always heartless in all the sacrifices they offer to God, and this will one day prove ominous and prodigious to them. But, Eleventhly, An hypocrite never performs religious duties from spiritual principles, nor in a spiritual manner. An hypocrite is never inclined, moved and carried to God, to Christ, to holy duties, by the power of a new and inward principle of grace working a sutableness between his heart and the things of God. An hypocrite rests himself satisfied in the mere external acts of Religion, though he never feels any thing of the power of Religion in his own soul. An hypocrite looks to his words in prayer, and to his voice in prayer, and to his gestures in prayer, but he never looks to the frame of his heart in prayer. An hypocrites heart is never touched with the words his tongue utters, an hypocrites soul is never divinely affected, delighted, or graciously warmed with any duty he performs. An hypocrites spiritual performances never flow from spiritual principles, nor from a heart universally sanctified; though his works may be new, yet his heart remains old, his new practices always spring from old principles; and this will prove the hypocrites bane, Vide Isa. 1.10, to 16. as you may see in that, Isa. 1.15. When you spread forth your hands to heaven, I will hid my eyes; and when you make many prayers, when you abound in duty, adding prayer to prayer (as the Hebrew runs) I will not hear, your hands are full of blood. These were unsanctified ones; their practices were new, Mat. 6. chap. 23 Luke 18. but their hearts were old still. The same you may see in the Scribes and Pharisees, who fasted, prayed, and gave alms, but their hearts were not changed, renewed, sanctified, nor principled from above; and this proved their eternal bane. Nicodemus was a man of great note, name, John 3.4. No man can understand spiritual mysteries by carnal reason. and fame among the Pharisees, and he fasted, and prayed, and gave alms, and paid tithes, etc. and yet a mere stranger to the new birth; Regeneration was a paradox to him. How can a man be born when he is old? can he enter the second time into his mother's womb and be born? This great Doctor was so great a Dunce, that he understood no more of the doctrine of Regeneration, than a mere child does the darkest precepts of Astronomy. 1 Cor. 2.14. Look, as water can rise no higher than the spring from whence it came, so the natural man can rise no higher than nature. An hypocrite may know much, and pray much, and hear much, and fast much, and give much, and obey much, and all to no purpose, because he never manages any thing he does in a right manner; he never carries on his work from inward principles of faith, fervency, life, love, delight, etc. Will the hypocrite delight himself in the Almighty? Ans. No, he cannot delight himself in the Almighty. Job 27.10. Job speaks of the hypocrite, as is evident, ver. 8. 1. To delight in God is one of the highest acts of grace; and how can an hypocrite put forth one of the highest acts of grace, who hath no grace? An hypocrite may know much of God, and talk much of God, and make a great profession of God, and be verbally thankful to God; but he can never love God, nor trust in God, nor delight in God, nor take up his rest in God, etc. 2. An hypocrite knows not God, and how then can he delight in that God whom he does not know? An hypocrite has no inward, saving, transforming, experimental, affectionate, practical knowledge of God; and therefore he can never take any pleasure or delight in God. 3. There is no sutableness between an hypocrite and God, and how then can an hypocrite delight himself in God? There is the greatest contrariety imaginable 'twixt God and an hypocrite. God is light, and the hypocrite is darkness; 2 Cor. 6.15, 16 God is holiness, and he filthiness; God is righteousness, and he unrighteousness; God is fullness, and he emptiness. Now what complacency can there be where there is such an utter contrariety. 4. Every hypocrites heart is full of enmity against God, and how then can he delight himself in God? The carnal mind is enmity against God, Rom. 8.7. To delight in God, is Christianorum propria virtus, saith Hierom. for it is not subject to the Law of God, neither indeed can be. The best part of an hypocrite is not only averse, but utterly adverse to God and all goodness. The Eagle (saith the Philosopher) hath a continual enmity with the Dragon and the Serpent. And so an hypocrites heart is still full of enmity against the Lord; and therefore he can never delight himself in the Lord. 5. The stream, cream, and strength of an hypocrites delight runs out to himself, and to this lust or that, to this relation or that, to this creature-comfort or that, to this worldly enjoyment or that, or else to arts, parts, gifts, privileges, etc. and therefore how can he delight himself in the Almighty? An Hypocrite always terminates his delight in something on this side God, Christ and Heaven. Look, as the Apricock-tree, though it leans against the wall, yet it is fast rooted in the earth; so though an hypocrite may lean towards God, and towards Christ, and towards heaven, yet his delight is still rooted fast in one creature-comfort or another, etc. Mark 6. God nor Christ is never the adequate object of an hypocrites delight. An hypocrite is never principled to delight himself in a holy God, neither can he cordially, divinely, habitually, delight himself in holy duties. An hypocrite may reform many evil things, and he may do many good duties, and yet all this while it is only his practices, but not his heart or principles that are changed and altered. Mark, though an hypocrite hath nothing in him which is essential to a Christian as a Christian, yet he may be the complete resemblance of a Christian in all those things which are not essential to him. An hypocrite in all the externals of Religion, may be the complete picture of a sincere Christian; but than if you look to his principles, and the manner of his managing of holy duties, there you will find him lame and defective, and as much unlike a sincere Christian, 1 Sam. 19.13, 16. as ever Michal's Image was unlike to David; and this will prove the great crack, the great break-neck of hypocrites at last. O Sirs! It is considerable, that outward motives and natural principles have carried many Heathens to do many great and glorious things in the world. Did not Sisera do as great things as Gideon? the difference did only lie here, that the great things which Gideon did, he did from more spiritual principles and raised considerations, than any Sisera was acted by. Heb. 11. And did not Diogenes trample under his feet the great and glorious things of this world, as well as Moses? The difference did only lie in this, that Moses trampled under his feet the gay and gallant things of this world, from inward gracious principles, viz. faith, love, etc. and from high and glorious considerations, viz. heaven, the glory of God, etc. whereas Diogenes did only trample upon them from poor low prineiples, and from mere outward, carnal, external considerations, The favour of men, the eye of men, the commendations of men, the applause of men, and a great name among men, were golden apples, great things among the Philosophers. The application is easy. Mark, A sincere Christian, he looks to the manner as well as to the matter of his duties, he acts and performs duties, not only from strength of parts and acquired qualifications but from strength of grace and infused habits; Rom. 11.24. Ezek. 36.25. Jer. 31.33. Rom. 3.5. 2 Cor. 5.19. 2 Pet. 1.4. Eph. 3.17. 2 Cor. 13.5. he acts from God and for God, he acts from a new heart, he acts from the Law written in his heart, he acts from the love of God shed abroad in his heart, he acts from the divine nature communicated to him, he acts from the spirits indwelling in his heart, he acts from the fear of God establishing his heart. These be the springs and principles of a sincere Christians spiritual life and actions; and where they act and bear rule, it is no wonder if such motions and performances as the world may admire but not imitate. saul's life (after his conversion) was a kind of constant miracle; 2. Cor. 11. so much he did, and so much he suffered, and so much he denied himself, that if he lived in these days, his life would be a miracle; but yet if we consider the principles that he was acted by, the great wonder will be, not that he did so much, but that he did no more; Gal. 2.20. For, saith he, Christ liveth in me, and the life which I now live in the flesh, I live by the faith of the Son of God, who loved me and gave himself for me. Fox Acts and Monum. It was a great saying of blessed Bradford, That he could not leave a duty till he had found communion with Christ in the duty, till he had brought his heart into a duty-frame; he could not leave confession till he had found his heart touched, broken and humbled for sin, nor petition till he had found his heart taken with the beauties of the things desired, and carried out after them; nor could he leave thanksgiving till he had found his spirit enlarged and his soul quickened in the return of praises. And it was a great saying of another, that he could never be quiet till he found God in every duty, Nunquam abs te absque te ●ecedo Bern. Meditat. and enjoyed communion with God in every prayer. O Lord (said he) I never come to thee but by thee, I never go from thee without thee. A sincere Christian that is taken with Christ above all, can't be satisfied nor contented with duties or ordinances, without he enjoys Christ in them, who is the life, soul and substance of them. But now hypocrites they do duties, but all they do is from common principles, from natural principles, and from an unsanctified heart, and that mars all. Remigius a Judge of Lorraigne tells this story, That the Devil in those parts did use to give money to Witches, Preston's four Treatises. which did appear to be good coin; it seemed to be currant at first, but being laid up a while, it than appeared to be nothing but leaves. Hypocrites they make a great profession, and are much in the outward actions of Religion; they make a very fair show, they hear, they read, they pray, they fast, they sing Psalms, and they give alms: But these duties being not managed from a principle of divine love, nor from a principle of spiritual life, nor from a sanctified frame of heart, turn all into leaves, they are all lost, and the Authors of them cast and undone for ever and ever. But, Twelfthly, No hypocrite in the world loves the Word, or delights in the Word, or prizes the Word, as 'tis a holy Word, a spiritual Word, a beautiful Word, a pure Word, Luther said he would not live in Paradise if he might without the Word, but with the Word he could live in hell itself. a clean Word, Psal. 119.140. Thy word is very pure, therefore thy servant loveth it. There are no hearts but men after God's own heart, that can love the Word, and delight in the Word, and embrace the Word for its holiness, purity and spirituality; witness Paul, Rom. 7.12. Wherefore the Law is holy, and the Commandment holy, and just, and good. Well and what then? why saith he, Ver. 22. I delight in the Law of God after the inward man. But is this all? No saith he, Ver. 25. With the mind I myself serve the Law of God. Holy Paul delights in the Law as holy, and serves the Law as holy, just, and good. A sincere heart is the only heart that is taken with the Word for its spirituality, purity and heavenly beauty. None can joy in the Word as it is a holy Word, nor none can taste any sweetness in the Word as 'tis a pure Word, but sincere Christians, Psal. 19.8, 9, 10. The statutes of the Lord are right rejoicing the heart. These several Titles, Law, Statutes, Testimony, Commandments, Judgements, are used promiscuously for the whole Word of God, commonly distinguished into Law and Gospel. The commandments of the Lord is pure enlightening the eyes. The fear of the Lord is clean (that is, the doctrine of the Word that teacheth the true fear of God) enduring for ever. The judgements of the L●rd are true and righteous altogether; more to be desired are they than gold, yea than much fine gold, sweeter also than honey and the honey comb; or as the Hebrew hath it, Sweeter than the droppings of honey combs. The Word of God, as it is a pure Word, a spiritual Word, a clean Word, a holy Word; so it rejoices a sincere heart, and so it is sweeter than the very droppings of honey combs. The Word, as it is a pure Word, a holy Word, is more sweet to a sincere Christian than those drops which drop immediately and naturally without any force or art, which is counted the purest and sweetest honey. There is no profit, nor pleasure, nor joy to that which the purity of the World yields to a sincere heart, Psal. 119.48. My hands will I lift up to thy commandments which I have loved. Sometimes the lifting up of hands betokens admiration; when men are astonished and ravished they lift up their hands. I will lift up my hands to thy commandments; that is, I will admire the goodness, spiritualness, holiness, righteousness, purity and excellency of thy commandments. Luther would not take all the world for one leaf of the Bible, he took such sweet pleasure and excellent delight in it. Rabbi Chiia in the Jerusalem Talmud says, That in his account all the world is not of equal value with one word out of the Law. Mr. Fox. The Martyrs would have given a load of Hay for a few Chapters of the Bible in English: Some of them gave five marks for a Bible, they were so delighted and taken with the Word, as it was a holy Word, a pure Word, a spiritual Word. Dolphins (they say) love music; and so do sincere Christians love the music of the Word. It's upon record, that Mary spent the third part of her time in reading the Word, she was so affected and delighted with the holiness and purity of it. King Edward the sixth being about to lay hold on something that was above the reach of his short arm, one that stood by espying a bossed Bible lying on the Table, offered to lay that under his feet to heighten him; Sir John Hayward in vita. but the good young King disliked the motion, and instead of treading it under his feet, he laid it to his heart, to express the joy and delight that he took in the holy Word. But now ne●er did any hypocrite, since there was one in the world, ever love God as a holy God, or love his people as a holy people, or love his ways as holy ways, or love his word as a holy word. There is no hypocrite in the world that can truly say with David, Thy word is very pure, therefore thy servant loveth it. Saul could never say so, nor Ahab could never say so, nor Herod could never say so, nor Judas could never say so, nor Demas could never say so, nor Simon Magus could never say so, nor the Scribes and Pharisees could never say so, nor the Stony ground could never say so, nor Isaiah's hypocrites could never say so. 'Tis true, Isa. 58. some of these did rejoice in the Word, and delight in the Word, but not as it was a holy Word, a pure Word, for than they would have rejoiced and delighted themselves in the whole Word of God, every part of God's Word being pure and holy. Hypocrites are sometimes affected and delighted with the Word, as it is dressed up with fine high notions (which are but mysterious nothings) they are taken with the Word as it is clothed with arts, parts, and elegancy of phrase; they are pleased with the Word as it is apparelled with a spruce wit, or with silken expressions, or with some delicate elocution, Ezek. 33.32. So thou art to them as a very lovely song, of one that hath a pleasant voice, and can play well on an instrument; or as the Hebrew may be read, Thou art as one that breaks jests. These hypocrites looked upon the solemnity and Majesty of the Word but as a dry jest; the Prophet being eloquent, and having a pleasing delivery, they were much taken with it, and it was as sweet and delightful to them as a fit of music; but they were not at all taken or delighted with the spirituality, purity and holiness of the Word, as is evident in ver. 31. And they come unto thee as the people cometh, and they sit before thee as my people, and they hear thy words, but they will not do them; for with their mouth they show much love, but their heart goeth after their covetousness. It was a very smart reproof of Chrysostom Chrysost. to his Hearers; This is that (saith he) which is like to undo your souls, you hear your Ministers as so many minstrels to please the ear, not to pierce the conscience. Augustin confesseth, that the delight which he took before his conversion in Saint Ambroses Sermons, was more for the eloquence of the words, than the substance of the matter. Hypocrites are taken more with the wit, eloquence of speech, action, quickness of fancy, smoothness of stile, neatness of expression, and rareness of notion, than they are with the spirituality, purity and holiness of the Word, which they either hear or read. These hypocrites are like those children, who are more taken with the fine flowers that are strewed about the dish, than they are with the meat that is in the dish, and that are more taken with the red weeds and blue bottles that grow in the field, than they are with the good corn that grows there. But now, look as the prudent Farmer is taken more with a few handfuls of sound corn, than he is with all the gay weeds that be in the field; so a sincere Christian is more taken with a few sound truths in a Sermon, than he is taken with all the strong lines, and high strains and flourishes of wit; or than he is taken with some new coined phrases, or some acquaint expressions, or some seraphical notions, with which a Sermon may be decked or dressed up. Some are taken with the Word as the profession of it brings in customers into their Shops, and keeps up their credits in the world; others are taken with the Word, as it seems to tickle their ears and please their fancies: Some are affected with Sermons, because of the elegancy of the stile, delicacy of the words, smoothness of the language, and gracefulness of the delivery. And these deal by Sermons as many do by their Nosegays that are made up of many picked (sweet) flowers, who after they have smelled to them a while, cast them into a corner, and never mind them more; so these after they have commended a Sermon, after they have highly applauded a Sermon, they cast away the Sermon, they smell to the Sermon (if I may so speak) and say it is sweet, it is sweet, and presently they throw it by as a Nosegay that is withered, and of no further use. But now a sincere heart savours the Word, and relishes the Word, and is affected and taken with the Word, as it is a holy Word, a spiritual Word, a pure Word, which the most refined hypocrite under heaven never was affected or taken with, nor can be, whilst hypocrisy keeps the throne in his soul. But, Thirteenthly and lastly, An hypocrite can't endure to be tried, and searched, and laid open; an hypocrite hates the light, and had rather go to hell in the dark, than come to be weighed in the balance of the Sanctuary. John 3.20. A soul-searching Ministry is to an hypocrite a tormenting Ministry, that's no man for his money that will never let his conscience alone; he knows he is like a velvet saddle, velvet without and straw within; he knows he is like a whited supulcher, Mat. 23.27, 28. glorious without, and dead bones within; and therefore his heart rises and swells against such a man, and such a Ministry, that is all for the anatomising and laying of him open to himself, and to the world. But now look, as pure gold fears neither fire nor furnace, neither test nor touchstone, neither one balance nor another; so a sincere heart dares venture itself upon trial, yea upon the very trial of God himself, Psal. 139.23. Search me, O God, and know my heart, try me and know my thoughts. A sincere Christian prays his friends to search him, and he prays soul-searching Ministers to search him; but above all, he begs hard of God to search him; See Job 31.5, 6 Search me, O God. The Hebrew word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 is Imperat Kal; he commands God to search him. The original word signifies a strict, curious, diligent search. A sincere Christian is very willing and desirous that God should throughly search him, that God should search into every corner and cranny of his heart, Psal. 26.2. Examine me, O Lord, and prove me, try my reins and my heart. Every word here has its weight; Examine me, O Lord. The Hebrew word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 signifi●s to melt, and so to try, which makes the most and e●act discovery. O Lord, let my heart and reins be melted, that it may be known what metal they are made of, whether gold or tin; Prove me. The Hebrew word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 signifies to view, as when a man gets upon some high Tower or Hill to see all from thence. Mount aloft, O Lord, take the high Tower, take the Hill, that thou mayest see what is in me; try me and know my thoughts. The Hebrew word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 is from 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Nasah, which properly signifies to take away, and is applied to Abraham's taking away of his son. Gen. 22.1. Lord, saith the Prophet, if upon searching and examining of me, thou shalt find any sin, any creature, any comfort, any enjoyment, that lies in thy room, take it away, that thou mayest be all in all to me. A sincere Christian knows that God never brings a pair of scales to weigh his graces, but only a touchstone to try the truth of his graces; he knows if his gold, his grace, be true, Mat. 12.20. though it be never so little, it will pass for currant with God, and therefore he is free to venture upon the closest search of God. A false evidence is the fruit of a slight and superficial search. Now, look as Bankrupts care not for casting up their accounts, because they know all is naught, very naught, yea stark naught with them: So hypocrites, they care not to come to the trial, to the test, because they know all is naught, yea worse than naught with them; they have no mind to cast up their spiritual estates, because at the foot of the account they must be put to read their neck verse, undone, undone: And therefore, as old deformed women cannot endure to look into the looking-glass, lest their wrinkles and deformity should be discovered; so hypocrites cannot endure to look into the glass of the Gospel, lest their deformities, impieties and wickednesses should be discovered and detected. I have read of the Elephant, how unwilling he is to go into the water; but when he is forced into it, he puddles it, lest by the cleverness of the stream he should discern his own deformity: So hypocrites, they are very unwilling to look into their own hearts, or into the clear streams of Scriptures, lest their souls deformity and ugliness should appear to their own terror and amazement. O Sirs! look, as it is a hopeful evidence that the Client's cause is good, when he is ready and willing to enter upon a trial; and as it is a hopeful sign that a man's gold is true gold, when he is willing to bring it to the touchstone; and that a man thrives when he is willing to cast up his Books: So it is a hopeful evidence that a Christian is sincere with God, when he is ready and willing to venture upon the trial of God, Gal. 6.4, 5. when he is willing to cast up his Books, his accounts, that he may see what he is worth for another world. Augustin Aug. in Psal. 33. Concl. 2. speaks of an acute person, who was wont to say that he prized that little time which he constantly set apart every d●y for the examination of his conscience, far more than all the other part of the day which he spent in his voluminous controversies. Of all the duties of Religion an hypocrite dreads most that of self-examination, and that of venturing himself upon the search and trial of God. Well, for a close, Though an hypocrite m●y deceive all the world, Job 34.21, 22. 2 Chron. 16 9 Prov. 5.21. & 15.3. Ambros. offic. l. 1 c. 14. like that counterfeit Alexander in Josephus his story, yet Augustus will not be deceived; the great God will not be deceived, for his eyes are quick and piercing into all things, persons and places. Look, as the eyes of a well drawn picture are fastened on thee which way soever thou turnest; so are the eyes of the Lord fastened on thee, O hypocrite, which way soever thou turnest. 'Twas a worthy saying of one, If thou canst not hid thyself from the Sun, which is God's Minister of light, how impossible will it be to hid thyself from him whose eyes are ten thousand times brighter than the Sun? The eye of God many times is very terrible to an hypocrite, which makes him very of venturing upon the trial of God: No hypocrite since the world stood, did ever love or delight to be searched and tried by God. And thus I have showed you the several rounds or steps in Jacob's Ladder, which no hypocrite under heaven can (whilst he remains an hypocrite) climb up to. And so much for this Chapter. CHAP. V. Now in this fifth and last Chapter, I shall lay down some Propositions and Directions, that so you may see what a sober use and improvement Christians ought to make of their evidences for Heaven; and how in the use of gracious evidences they ought to live above their gracious evidences, and how to exalt and lift up Christ above all their graces, evidences and performances. FIrst Proposition. 'Tis the wisdom, and aught to be the work of every Christian to own the least measure of grace that is in him, Though our graces like Gideon's Army, are but a handful in comparison of our sins, which like the Midianites are innumerable, yet a handful of grace is to be owned in the midst of an Host of sins. though it be mixed and mingled with many weaknesses and infirmities: Sin is Satan's work, and grace is Christ's work; and therefore Christ's work ought to be eyed and owned, though it be mingled with much of Satan's work. That Christian is much clouded and benighted, who hath two eyes to behold his sins, but never an eye to see his graces. Christ gets no glory, nor the soul gets no good, when a Christian is still a poring upon his sins. How can that Christian prize a little grace, and bless God for a little grace, and improve a little grace, who won't own a little grace because it is mingled with many weaknesses? Shall the Husbandman own a little wheat when mingled with a great deal of chaff? 1 Sam. 21.13, 14. shall the Goldsmith own a little filings of gold when mingled with a great deal of dust? and shall not a Christian own a little grace when mingled with a great many failings? David had a great many infirmities, yet he owns his uprightness, Psal. 18.23. I was upright before him. And Job Job 3. had a great many weaknesses, yet he owns his integrity, Job. 27.5. Till I die I will not remove my integrity from me. Ver. 6. My righteousness I hold fast, and will not let it go, my heart shall not reproach me so long as I live. The Spouse was sensible of her blackness, yet owns her comeliness, Cant. 1.5. I am black, but comely. So Cant. 5.2. I sleep, but my heart waketh. Jeremiah was a man of many failings, yet he owns his hope in God, Jer. 17.17. Jer. 20.14 ult. Thou art my hope in the day of evil: The poor man in the Gospel was very sensible of the sad relics and remains of unbelief that was in him, and yet with a holy boldness and confidence he pleads his faith, Mark 9.24. Lord, I believe, help my unbelief. Peter miscarried sadly, Mat. 26.69 ult and yet he owns his love to Christ, Joh. 21.15. Lord, thou knowest that I love thee. Ver. 16. Lord, thou knowest that I love thee. Ver. 17. Lord, thou knowest all things, thou knowest that I love thee. Paul had his infirmities and weaknesses hanging upon him, witness that 7th of the Romans; and yet how frequently and boldly does he own the grace of God that was in him, throughout his Epistles. Nothing keeps grace more at an under, than men's not owning of a little grace, because it is mingled with many infirmities. The best way to be greatly good, is to own a little, little good, though in the midst of much evil. But, The second Proposition is this. It is your wisdom, and should be your work, to look upon all your graces and gracious evidences as favours given you from above, as gifts dropped out of heaven into your hearts, as flowers of Paradise stuck in your bosoms by a divine hand. A man should never look upon his graces or his gracious evidences, Of thine own (saith David) have we given thee, 1 Chron. 29.14: but should be ready to say, these are the jewels of glory with which God has bespangled my soul, 1 Cor. 4.7. What hast thou that thou hast not received? What gift? what grace? what experience? what evidence hast thou that thou hast not received? All the light, and all the life, and all the love, and all the joy, and all the fear, and all the faith, and all the hope, and all the patience, and all the humility, etc. that thou hast, with all the evidences that arise from discovery of those graces, are all grace gifts, they are all from above. Every good gift, and every perfect gift is from above, Jam. 1.17. and cometh down from the father of lights. Look, as all light flows from the Sun, and all water from the Sea, so all temporal, spiritual and eternal good flows from heaven. All your graces, and the greatest excellencies that are in you, do as much depend upon God and Christ, as the light doth upon the Sun, or as the Rivers do upon the Sea, Joh. 15.1, 2, 3, 4, 5. Psal. 87.7. or as the branches do upon the root. All my springs are in thee; all the springs of comfort that I have communicated to my soul, and all the springs of grace that I have to quicken me, and to evidence the goodness and happiness of my spiritual estate and condition to me, they are all in thee. When a Christian looks upon his wisdom and knowledge, it concerns him to say, Here is wisdom and knowledge, I but 'tis from above; here is some weak love working towards Christ, but 'tis from above; here's joy, and comfort, and peace, etc. but these are all such flowers of Paradise as never grew in nature's garden. Now when a Christian looks thus upon all those costly Diamonds of grace, of glory, with which his soul is bedecked, he keeps low, though his graces and gracious evidences are high. Where this Rule is neglected, the soul will be endangered of being swelled and puffed. It was a great saying of a very worthy man that is now with God, viz, Mr. Fox. That as he often got much good by his sins, so he often got much hurt by his graces. Dear hearts, when you look upon the stream, remember the fountain; when you look upon the flower, remember the root; when you look upon the Stars, remember the Sun; and when ever you look upon your graces, then be sure to remember Christ the fountain of grace, else Satan will certainly be too hard for you: Satan is so subtle, so artificial, and so critical, that he can make your very graces to serve him against your grace's conquering joy by joy, sorrow by sorrow, humility by humility, fear by fear, and love by love; if you don't look upon all your graces as streams flowing from the fountain above, and as fruits growing upon the Tree of life that is in the midst of the Paradise of God. Therefore when one of your eyes is fixed upon your graces, let the other be always fixed upon Christ the fountain of grace. 1 John 16. Of his fullness have all we received, and grace for grace. Here they eye their graces, and the fountain of grace together. So Paul, I live, yet not I, but Christ liveth in me; and the life which I now live in the flesh, I live by the faith of the Son of God, Gal. 2.20. who loved me and gave himself for me. Paul eyes Christ and his graces together; so Peter eyes Christ and his graces together. Lord, John 21.15. thou knowest ●hat I love thee. So those Worthies of whom this world was not worthy, they eye Christ and their graces together. Heb. 12.2. Looking unto Jesus the Author and finisher of our faith. 2 Cor. 5.17. Though grace be a new creature, a noble creature, a beautiful creature, an excellent creature, yet grace is but a creature, Col. 1.17. Phil. 4.12, 13. Cant. 4. ult. and such a creature that is strengthened, maintained, cherished and upheld in your souls, in life and power, in beauty and glory, by nothing below the spiritual, internal and glorious operations of Christ, Col. 1.10. That ye might walk worthy of the Lord unto all pleasing, being fruitful in every good work, and increasing in the knowledge of God. Ver. 11. Strengthened with all might according to his glorious power, unto all patience and long-suffering with joyfulness. Now when ever you look upon grace as a lovely, beautiful creature, O then remember that might and glorious power of Christ, by which this creature is preserved and strengthened. Christians, your graces are holy and heavenly plants of Christ's own setting and watering, and will you mind the plants more than that noble hand that set them? 'Tis Christ alone that can cause the desires of his people to bud, and their graces to blossom, Isa. 58.11. & 35.6, 7. and their souls to be like a watered garden, green and flourishing; and therefore let the eye of your souls be firstly, mostly and chief fixed upon Christ. But, The third Proposition is this. When you look upon your graces in the light of the Spirit, it highly concerns you to look narrowly to it, that you don't renounce and rejecty our graces, as weak and worthless evidences of your interest in Christ, and of that eternal happiness and blessedness that comes by Christ. The works of grace (saith my Author) which consists in those divine qualities of holiness and righteousness, Grotius in Rom. 8.16. etc. Gal. 5.22, ●●. is a sure Mark, a blessed character, whereby men may know whose children they are; even as the Spartans' or Lacedæmonians of old are said to know what stock and lineage they were of, by a mark that was made upon their bodies by the head of a Lance or Speer. I readily grant, that you must not trust in your graces, nor make a Saviour of your graces; but yet you ought to look upon your graces, as so many signs and testimonies of the love and favour of God to your souls. What certainty can there be of Election, Remission of sin, Justification or Glorification, if there be not a certainty of your Sanctification and Renovation; if that persuasion that is in you about your grace or sanctification be false, than that persuasion that is in you concerning remission of sin, predestination, justification and eternal salvation is false: This highly concerns all them to consider, that would not be miserable in both worlds. I know many cry up Revelations, Impressions, Visions (yea the visions of their own hearts) and speak lightly and slightly of the graces of the Spirit, of sanctification, of holiness, as evidences of the goodness and happiness of a Christians condition. There were some in James his time, who cried up faith, James 2.18. and union, and communion with Christ, but were destitute of good works. Well, what saith the Apostle? Show me thy faith without thy works, Ver. 26. and I will show thee my faith by my works; for as the body without the spirit is dead, so faith without works is dead. Look, as the body without the spirit (or without breath, as the Greek word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 primarily signifies) is dead; so that faith that is without works, which are as it were the breathe of a lively faith, is a dead faith. Though it be faith that justifieth the man, yet it is works that justifies a man's faith to be right and real, saving and justifying. So there were some in John's time, viz. the Gnostics, who talked high of fellowship and communion with Christ, and yet walked in darkness; they lived in all impurity, and yet would make the world believe that they were the only people who knew God, and had fellowship with God, but John tells us they were liars. 2 Cor. 6.14. If we say that we have fellowship with him, and walk in darkness, we lie, and do not the truth. What fellowship hath light with darkness? Such walk in darkness, who promise to themselves the future vision of God's face, whilst they go on in the wilful breach of God's royal Laws. Such who say they know him, and are swallowed up in the enjoyments of him, and yet in the course of their live● walk contrary to him, such are liars. He that saith I know him; 1 John 2.4. and keeps not his commandments is a liar. Sanctification and justification are both of them benefits of the Covenant of grace, and therefore to evidence the one by the other, Jer. 33.8, 9 Heb. 8.10, 12. can be no turning aside to the covenant of works: You may run and read in the Covenant of grace, that he that is justified is also sanctified, and that he that is sanctified is also justified and therefore, why may not he that knows himself to be really sanctified upon that very ground, safely and boldly conclude, that he is certainly justified. O Sirs! the same spiri● that witness to a Christian his justification; can shine upon his graces, 1 Cor. 2.12. 1 Joh. 4.13, 14. and witness to him his sanctification as well as his justification; and without all controversy, 'tis as much the office of the Spirit to witness to a man his sanctification, as 'tis to witness to him his justification. But you will say, Sir, pray what should be the reasons why many men have, and why some do still cry down marks and signs, and deny sanctification to be an evidence of men's justification, etc. and speak disgracefully of this practice that is now under consideration? I conjecture the Reasons may be such as follow. First, Many Professors take up in a great name, and in a great profession, and in great parts and gifts, though they have never found a through change, 1 Thes. 5.23. John 3.3, 5. 2 Cor. 5.17. Acts 26.28. though they have never passed the pangs of the new birth, though they have never experienced what it is to be a new creature, a throughout Christian. And hence it comes to pass, that they make head against this way of evidencing the goodness and happiness of a man's condition, by inward gracious qualifications. Of all men these are most apt to outrun the truth, and to run from one extreme to another, and to be only constant in inconstancy. But, Secondly, Many professors are given up to spiritual judgements (which are the sorest of all judgements) viz. lukewarmness, dead-heartedness, formality, indifferency, Apostasy, blindness, hardness, and to strong delusions, that they should believe a lie, 2 Thes. 2.10, 11, 12. because they received not the love of the truth, that they might be saved. Now, is it any wonder to see such men quarrel, and wrangle, and rail against the way and method of evidencing the goodness and happiness of a man's spiritual condition, by inherent gracious qualifications? But, Thirdly, In some this ariseth from their lusts, which they indulge and connive at, and which they have a mind to live quietly in; they are desirous to keep their peace, and yet unwilling to forsake their lusts; and hence they exclude this witness of water or sanctification to testify in the Court of Conscience, whether they are beloved of God, or whether they are sincere hearted or no, or whether they have the root of the matter in them or no; for the want of this witness, water or sanctification, is a clear and full witness against them, that they are yet in their sins, under wrath, and in the way to eternal ruin; and that they have nothing to do with peace, Isa. 57 ult. Psal. 50.16. or comfort, or the promises, or Christ, or heaven, to take God's name into their lips, seeing they secretly hate to be reform. There are many fair Professors that are foul sinners, and that have much of God, and Christ, and heaven, and holiness in their lips, when they have nothing but sin and hell in their hearts and lives. These men's conversions shame their profession, and therefore they cry out against sanctification as a sure and blessed evidence of a man's justification: Such sinners as live in a course of sin, that make a Trade of sin, 1 Thes. 2.12. that indulge their sins, that take up arms in defence of sin, that make provision for sin, that make a sport of sin, that take pleasure in sin, and that have set their hearts upon their sins; such sinners can't but look upon the witness of sanctification, as the hand-writing upon the wall, Dan. 5.5, 6. But, Fourthly, There are many who are great strangers to their own hearts and the blessed Scriptures, and are ignorant of what may be said from the blessed Word, 'Tis sad to be a stranger at home, and to be least acquainted with a man's own heart. Aristotle. to evidence the lawfulness of this practice that is under our present consideration. And hence it comes to pass that they cry down marks and signs, and deny sanctification to be a sure and blessed evidence of men's justification. Ignorat sane improb●● omnis; ignorance is the source of all sin, the very wellspring from which all wickedness doth issue. 'Tis said of knowledge, non habet inimicum praeter ignorantem. Ignorance enslaves a soul to Satan, it lets in sin by Troops, locks them up in the heart, shuts out the means of recovery, and so plasters up a man's eyes, that he can't see the things that belongs to his own or to others internal or eternal peace. The Scripture sets ignorant persons below the Ox and the Ass. Did men either see the deformity of sin, Isa. 1.3. or the beauty and excellency of holiness, they would never delight in the one, nor cry down the other. Peter 2 Pet. 2.12. tells you of some that speak evil of the things that they understood not, they did reprehend that which they could not comprehend. Ignorance is a breeding sin, a mother sin, all sins are seminally in ignorance; ignorance is the mother of all the mistakes, and of all the misrule in the world. Christ told the Sadduces, Mat. 22.29. That they did err not knowing the Scriptures; and so I may say many err in crying down such signs and evidences of grace which are bottomed upon Scripture, because they are ignorant of what the Scripture saith in the case. But, Fifthly, The generality of Christians are but Lambs, Babes and Children in grace, Isa. 40.11. 2 Pet. 2.2, 3. 1 John 2.1. the springs of grace runs low in them, their fears frequently over-top their faith, and their strong passions and corruptions do often raise such a dust and smoke in their souls, that 〈◊〉 they might have all the world, yea if their salvation lay upon it, they were not able to discern the least measure of grace in their own souls. A little grace is next to none, small things are hardly discerned; he had need to have a clear light and good eyes, that is to discern a hair, a mote, or an atom. A little grace is not discoverable but by a shining light from above. There are none so full of fears, and doubts, and questions, and disputes, about the truth of their faith in Christ, and the sincerity of their love to Christ, as those that least believe and lest love. The Kingdom of God in most Christians, Mark 4.30, 31, 32. is but as a grain of mustardseed, which is the least of all seeds; and therefore▪ 'tis not wonder they see it not. The root of the matter in most Christians is but small, and that small root is often covered over with many sinful infirmities and weaknesses, and therefore we are not to look upon it as a strange thing, if we see such Christians not sensible of the root of the matter that is in them. Weak habits put forth such faint actions (and with so much interruption) that it is not an easy thing to discern whether they are the products of special or of common grace. Now most Christians having but small measures of grace, holiness and sanctification in them; and these small measures being much obscured and buried under the prevalency of fears, doubts and unmortified lusts, can speak but weakly and darkly for them; & upon this ground they are not fond of bringing in this witness of sanctification to speak for them. In civil Courts men are not ambitious to bring such witnesses to the Bar, as can witness but weakly & faintly in their case. 'tis so here. Sixthly, Satan is a grand enemy to the peace, joy, comfort, assurance, settlement and satisfaction of every poor Christian; and therefore he will leave no stone unturned, nor no means unattempted, Psal. 77. Psal. 88 whereby he may keep them in a low, dark, unsettled and uncomfortable condition. When once a poor soul is brought over to Christ, how does the Devil bestir himself to keep such a soul so under fears, doubts and bondage, as that it may not in the least have an eye to any thing that may have a proper tendency to its comfort, joy, assurance, peace or quiet. The Devil will do all he can to furnish such (as ar●●egotten again by the resurrection of Christ from the dead) with all sorts of deadly weapons one of his Armoury to fight against those Arguments and evidences which make for the peace and comfort of their own souls. He that shall look seriously and impartially upon the subtle, close, strong, 2 Sam. 2.19. and rhetorical arguings of many distressed Christians (above their own natural parts) against the peace, rest, comfort, and settlement of their own souls, may safely conclude, that a hand of Joab, a hand of Satan, yea a strong hand of Satan, has been with them. He that shall please to read the life of Francis Spira (though he be no great Philosopher) yet he may easily discern with what subtlety and wonderful. 2 Cor. 11.14. Sophistry Satan help● him to argue against the pardonableness of his sins, and the possibility of his salvation. Satan knows how to transform himself into an Angel of light; Satan does not always appear in one and the same fashion; but he appears in as many several shapes, fashions and changes, as Proteus did among the Poets: To deceive some, he has assumed a lightsome body, as if he were an Angel of heaven▪ as if he had been a holy one, clothed with the brightness of celestial glory. To deceive others, he has appeared as an Angel of light, suggesting such things to them, and injecting such things into them, under fair and specious shows and pretences of Religion, Piety, Zeal and Holiness, which have had a direct tendency to the dishonour of God, the wounding of Christ, the grieving of the Spirit, the clouding or denying their evidences for heaven, the strangling of their hopes, and the death of all their comforts and joy. But, Seventhly and lastly, Some Christians live under high enjoyments and singular manifestations of God's love to them, they have God every day a shedding abroad of his love into their hearts by the holy Ghost. Rom. 5.5. Psal. 63.2, 3, 4. God is every day a filling their souls with life, light, love, glory and liberty; Mat. 17.4. Christ every day takes them up into the Mount, and makes such discoveries of himself and his glory to them, that they are ready frequently to cry out, Bonum est esse hic, Dan. 9.22, 23 Cant. 2.6. It is good to be here Christ often whispers them in the ear with an, O man, O woman, greatly beloved; Christ's left hand is every day under their heads, and his right hand doth embrace them; they sit down every day under his shadow with great delight, and his fruit is sweet unto their taste; he makes out every day such sweet and clear manifestations of his admirable favour to their hearts, Psal 63.2, 3, 4, 5. that their souls are daily satisfied as with marrow and fatness. There are some precious Christians (I say not all, Cant. 8. I say not most) who live daily under singular glances of divine glory, and who are daily under the sensible embracements of God, and who daily lie in the bosom of the Father, Cant. 1.13. and who every night have Christ as a bundle of myrrh lying betwixt their breasts. Now these choice souls who live daily in the glorious manifestations of the Spirit, and enjoy a little heaven on this side heaven, these many times are so taken up with their high communion with God, with their spiritual enjoyments, and with their tastes of the glory of that other world, that they do not much mind such evidences as we have had under our consideration. And thus much for the Reasons, why some cry down Scripture marks, signs and evidences of grace, of holiness, of sanctification; and why others done't much mind them, or take any great notice of them. But, The fourth Proposition is this. If this way of trying our spiritual estates by holy and gracious qualifications, were not both lawful and useful, then certainly the holy Spirit would never have prescribed it, nor never have pressed men so earnestly upon it, as we find he has done in the blessed Scripture. Take a taste, 2 Cor. 13.5. Examine yourselves whether ye be in the faith; Psal. 4.4. Vide Chrysostom on the words. Gal. 6.3, 4. 1 Tim. 6.17, 18, 19 prove your own selves. The precept is doubled, to teach us to redouble our diligence in this most needful, but much neglected duty of self-examination. The final trial of our eternal estates, doth immediately and solely belong to the Court of heaven, but the disquisitive part belongs to us. Here are two emphatical words in the Greek; First, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, examine yourselves. The word in the general signifies to take an experimental knowledge of any thing, that is either uncertain, unknown or hidden; most men are great strangers to God, to Christ, to Scripture, and to themselves, and therefore saith the Apostle, Examine yourselves. Now if there were not sure marks and infallible signs whereby men may certainly know what their present estate is, and how 'tis like to go with them in another world, the redoubled commnad of the Apostle would be in vain. The second Greek word is 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, prove yourselves. The original word signifies a severe and diligent inquisition into ourselves, so as to have a full experience of what is in us. Doubtless the Apostle would never call again and again upon us, to try and examine ourselves whether we be in the faith, if it were not lawful to come to the knowledge of our faith, or of our being in the state of faithful Christians in a discursive way, arguing from the effect to the cause. So in that, 2 Pet. 1.10. Wherefore the rather brethren, give all diligence to make your calling and election sure. The Greek word translated give diligence, is very emphatical, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. it signifies to do a thing not in an overly, lazy, careless way, but to do a thing with industry, vigilancy and unweariedness of spirit. Now it is granted on all hands, that election cannot be made more sure in respect of God or itself, but only in respect of us, that we may be more persuaded of it. Election cannot be made more sure than it is already, for those whom God hath elected shall be certainly glorified, but we must make it sure on our parts; Rom. 8.29.30. that is, we must labour to have a real bottom and grounded assurance that we are elected by God in his eternal decree, to obtain life and glory by Jesus Christ. There is a double certainty, 1. There is certitudo objecti, a certainty of the object; so our election is sure with God, for with him both it and all things are unchangeable. 2. There is certitudo subjecti, the certainty of the subject; and so we must make our election sure to ourselves in our own hearts and consciences. Now the means whereby we are to come to this assurance, is by adding grace to grace, and by causing those several graces to abound in us. This is the way of ways to make all sure to us. Now by these Scriptures 'tis most evident, that we stand engaged to make our election sure by holy signs and marks. But, The fifth Proposition is this. That other precious Saints that are now triumphing in glory, have pleaded their interest in God's love, and their hopes of a better life from graces inherent. Grace in the working of it, is often compared to life. Now, look as natural life is discerned by the actions thereof, as by so many signs, so also is supernatural life. I'll only point at some of those Scriptures among many others, that clearly speak out this truth; the first Epistle of John, James 2.17— ult. Job. 23.10, 11, 12. and the whole 31. Chapter of Job, Psal. 119.6. Isa. 38.2, 3. Neh. 1. ult. & 13.14, etc. Now all these Scriptures do evidently prove, that the precious servants of the Lord did take their graces for precious signs and testimonies of God's love, of their interest in Christ, and thereby received much comfort, peace and satisfaction. And truly, to deny the fruit growing upon the Tree to be an evidence that the Tree is alive, is to me as unreasonable as it is absurd: Certainly 'tis one thing to judge by our graces, and another thing to trust in our graces, to make a Saviour of our graces. There is a great deal of difference betwixt declaring and deserving Christians, they may doubtless look to their graces as evidences of their part in Christ and salvation (and the clearer and stronger they are, the greater will be their comfort and assurance) but not as causes. No man advanced free grace like Paul; no man debased his own righteousness like Paul, he counted it but dung and dross; and no man exalted the righteousness of Christ like Paul, Phil. 3.6, 7, 8, 9 and yet by this way of signs he gathered much comfort and assurance, 2 Tim, 4.7, 8. I have fought a good fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith, henceforth is laid up for me a crown of righteousness. How plainly, how fully doth he here conclude his right to the crown of life, from his fight a good fight, his finishing his course (in a way of grace and holiness) and his keeping the faith. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 is boasting; they boasted in the testimony of their consciences. O the quiet and tranquillity that arises from the testimony of a man's sincerity, both in heart and life. By this great instance you may clearly see, that a Christian may greatly exalt Christ, lift up free grace, tread upon his own righteousness (as to justification) and at the very same time take comfort in his graces, and in his gracious actings. So in that, 2 Cor. 1.12. Our rejoicing is this, the testimony of a good conscience, that in godly sincerity we have had our conversation in the world. His joy was founded on the testimony of his conscience; but from what did his conscience testify? from his sincere conversation. Again, take that memorable instance of Job, God hide his face from him, the arrows of the Almighty stuck fast in him, Satan was let lose upon him, the wife of his bosom proved a tempter to him, a tormenter of him; his most inward acquaintance deserted him, reproached him, and condemned him as an hypocrite; God writ bitter things against him, and made him to possess the iniquities of his youth, all was clouded above him, and he stripped of all the outward comforts that did once surround him; so that he had nothing left to stay him, to refresh him, to support him, and to be a comfort and joy to him, Job 1.8. & 2.3. but the sense of his integrity, and the evidence he had of his own uprightness, his own righteousness, Job. 27.5. Till I die I will not remove my integrity from me. Ver. 6. My righteousness I hold fast, and will not let it go; my heart shall not reproach me so long as I live. Job was under great afflictions, sore temptations, and deep desertions; now that which was his cordial, his bulwark in those sad times, was the sense and feeling of his own uprightness, his own righteousness; the sense and feeling of the grace of God in him, kept him from fainting and sinking under all his troubles. So 1 Joh. 2.3. Hereby we know that we know him, if we keep his commandments, etc. In these words two things are observable; First, that where there is a true knowledge of Christ, there is an observation of his commandments. Secondly, that by this observation of his royal Law, we may know that our knowledge is sound and sincere. He speaks not of a legal, but of an evangelical keeping of his commandments. A conscionable and serious endeavour to walk in a holy course of life, according to God's will revealed in his Word, is a most certain mark or evidence that we have a saving knowledge of God, and that we are his children, and heirs of glory. Such who sincerely desire, and unfeignedly purpose, and firmly resolve, and faithfully endeavour to keep the commandments of God; these do keep the commandments of God evangelically and acceptably in the eye of God, the account of God. So ver. 6. He that saith he abideth in him, ought himself also so to walk, even as he walked. Here you may observe two things; First, that by faith we are implanted into Christ. Secondly, that we discover our implantation into Christ by our imitation of Christ. Such as plead for sanctification a an evidence of justification, don't make their grace's causes of their implantation into Christ, or of their justification before the throne of Christ, but they make them testimonies and witnesses to declare the truth of their real implantation into Christ, and of their being justified before the throne of Christ. So 1 Joh. 3.14. We know we are translated from death to life, because we love the brethren. The Apostle makes this a great sign of godliness to love another godly man for godliness sake; and the more godly he is, the more to love him and to delight in him. Now mark, this love of our brethren is not a cause of our translation from death to life (for the very word translated, supposeth such a grace, such a favour of God as is without us) but a sign of our translation from death to life. But of this I have said enough already; as you may see if you will but read from page 189. to page 200. of this Book. But, The most ordinary and safe way of coming to assurance, is the discursive way in which a believer from the fruits and effects of grace infers he hath the habit, and from the habit concludes his justification & adoption; and as this is a way least subject to delusion, so it is also most suited to a rational creature, whose way of acting is by discourse and argumentation. The sixth Proposition is this. There are many scores of precious promises made over to them that believe, to them that trust in the Lord, to them that set him up as the great object of their fear, to them that love him, to them that delight in him, to them that obey him, to them that walk with him, to them that thirst after him, to them that suffer for him, to them that follow after him, etc. Now, all these scores of promises are made for the support, comfort and encouragement of all such Christians whose souls are bespangled with grace. But now if we may not lawfully come to the knowledge of our faith, love, fear, delight, obedience, etc. in a discursive way, arguing from the effect to the cause. What support, what comfort, what advantage shall a sincere Christian have by all those scores of promissory places of Scripture? Doubtless all those scores of promises would be as so many Suns without light, as so many springs without water, as so many breasts without milk, and as so many bodies without souls, to all gracious Christians, were it not lawful for them to form up such a practical syllogism as this is, viz. The Scripture doth plainly and fully declare, that he that believeth, feareth, loveth, obeyeth, etc. is blessed, and shall be happy for ever. But I am such a one that doth believe, fear, love, obey, etc. therefore I am blessed, and shall be happy for ever. Now although it must be granted that the major of this Proposition is Scripture, yet the assumption is from experience, and therefore a godly man being assisted therein by the holy Ghost, may safely draw the conclusion as undeniable. O that you would seriously consider, how little would be the difference (should you shut out this discursive way) betwixt a man and a beast, if a man should assent to a thing unknown through an instinct and impression, and should to one who asks him a reason of his persuasion, be able to return no other answer but this; I am persuaded because I am persuaded. But, The seventh Proposition is this. That the Scripture giveth many signs and symptoms of grace; so that if a man cannot find all, yet if he discover some, yea but one, he may safely conclude, that all the rest are there; he who hath but one in truth of the forementioned characters in this book, hath seminally all; he who hath one link of the golden chain, hath the whole chain. Look, as he who hath one grace in truth, hath every grace in truth, though he doth not see every grace shining in his soul; so he that hath in truth any one evidence of grace in his soul, he hath virtually all. And, O that all weak, dark, doubting Christians, would seriously and frequently ponder upon this Proposition, for it may be a staff to uphold them, and a cordial to comfort them under all their fears and faintings. But, The eighth Proposition is this. Without the light of the holy Ghost our graces shine not; our graces are only the means by which our condition is known to us; Rom. 9.2. the efficient cause of this knowledge, is the Spirit illustrating our graces and making them visible, and so helping us to conclude from them, 1 Cor. 2.12. Now we have received not the spirit of the world, but the spirit which is of God, that we might know the things that are freely given to us of God. Our graces, our sanctification, as well as our election, vocation, justification and glorification, are freely given to us of God; and the Spirit of God is given as well to discover the one as the other to us. Mark, the things freely given us may be received by us, and yet the receipt of them not known to us; therefore the Spirit for our further consolation doth (as it were) put his hand and seal to our receipts, Eph. 4.30. whence he is said to seal us up unto the day of redemption. The graces of the Spirit are a real earnest of the Spirit, yet they are not always an evidential earnest; therefore an earnest is often superadded to our graces. For ever remember these few hints; 1. That it is the work of the Spirit to plant grace in the soul. 2. That it is the work of the Spirit to act and exercise the graces that he has planted there. 3. That it is the work of the Spirit to shine upon those graces that he has planted in the soul, and to cause the soul to see and feel what he has wrote. 4. That it is the work of the Spirit to raise springs of comfort and joy in the soul, upon the discovery of that grace which he has wrote in the soul. O Christians, till the Spirit of the Lord shine upon your graces, Job 33. you will still be in the dark. 'Tis only God's own Interpreter that must show a man his righteousness. When the holy Ghost shines upon a Christians graces, than a Christian finds the springs of comfort to rise in his soul, and then he finds the greatest serenity and calmness in his spirit. O Sirs! no man can by any natural light or evidence in him, come to be assured of the grace wrought in his soul. Look, as no man can see the Sun but in the light of the Sun; so no man can see the graces of the Spirit but in the light of the Spirit. 1 Joh. 5.13. A man may have grace, and not see it; he may be in a state of grace and not know it; as the child lives in the womb but don't perceive it, is heir to a crown but don't know it. Isa. 50.10. Rom. 8.13. O! till the Spirit shines upon his own work, a child of light may walk in darkness and see no light. Look, as no man can subdue his sins but by the power of the Spirit; so no man can see his graces but in the light of the Spirit. The confidence that a believer hath of the truth of grace wrought in him, springs more from the Spirits removing his slavish fears, and answering his doubts, and shining upon his graces, and supporting his soul, than it does from that excellency and beauty of grace which shines in him. A man may read the promises over and over a thousand times, and yet never be affected, delighted or taken with them, till the Spirit of the Lord set them home upon his soul. And a man may read the threaten over and over a thousand times, and yet never startle nor tremble, though he knows himself guilty of those very sins against which the threaten are denounced, till the Spirit of the Lord sets home the threaten in power upon his conscience; and then every threatening will be like the hand-writing upon the wall, which will cause his countenance to be changed, and his thoughts to be troubled, Dan. 5.6, 7. and his joints to be loosed, and his knees to be dashed one against another. It is just so in the matter of our graces, and gracious evidences, till the holy Spirit shine upon them, till in the light of the Spirit we come to see them, they won't be witnessing, comforting and refreshing to us; and therefore let not the pious Reader think, that by the strength of his natural light he shall ever attain to know the certainty of that grace which is in his soul, but let him rather beg hard of God for his holy Spirit, and that his Spirit may shine upon that good work which he hath begun in him, that so he may be persuaded, assured and comforted. Without the light of the Spirit, the work of the Spirit can't be seen, no more than a book written in the fairest hand or print, can be seen without light to see it or read it by. But, The ninth Proposition is this. Sincere Christians may safely and groundedly rejoice, Most Christians by experience find that their assurance and joy rises and falls as grace and holiness, and as the evidences of grace and holiness rise and fall in their souls. delight and take comfort in those graces, or in those divine qualities, which in the light of the Spirit they see and know are wrote in their souls. I don't say that a Christian should build the comfort of his justification upon his graces, or that he should rest on his graces, or trust to his graces, or make a Saviour of his graces, for this would be such a piece of Pharisaical Popery, as is justly to be detested and abhorred by all that love Christ, or are looking towards heaven: But this I say, a Christian may make several uses of his graces, he may safely look upon his graces as so many evidences of Christ's dwelling in him, and he may look upon his graces as so many heavenly bracelets, or as so many love tokens from God in which he may safely rejoice. The gracious evidences that I have laid down in this Treatise, are blessed symptoms of salvation, and therefore to rejoice in them, can be no transgression of any royal Law of heaven. He that can experimentally subscribe to any of the gracious evidences that are laid down in this Book, has such a fair certificate to show for heaven, that no wicked man or hypocrite under heaven has the like to show; and why such a man should not rejoice in such a certificate, I can't at present see. I may and aught to rejoice in the works of Creation: O! how much more than ought I to rejoice in the work of Renovation, in the work of sanctification, which does so infinitely transcend the work of Creation? I may and aught to rejoice in my natural life, health, strength, beauty; and why then should I not rejoice in grace and holiness, which is the life, health, strength and beauty of my soul? Cant. 4.9. Christ delights in the graces of his people. Thou hast ravished my heart, (or thou hast behearted me, as the Hebrew runs) my sister, my spouse; thou hast ravished my heart with one of thine eyes, (or with one glance of thine eyes, as some read it) with one chain of thy neck. The eye of faith, say some; the eye of love, say others: The chain of obedience, say some; the chain of spiritual graces, say others, ravished Christ's heart; the one eye of faith, the one chain of obedience, unhearted Christ, wounded Christ; this one eye, this one chain rob Christ of his heart, and laid the Spouse in the room of it. Now, shall Christ's heart be ravished with his children's graces, and shall not their hearts be ravished and delighted with those very graces that ravish Christ's own heart? I may, yea I ought to rejoice in the graces of others; 1 Thes. 1, ●, 3, 4, 5. 2 Thes. 1.3, 4. and why then not in my own? I may, yea I ought to rejoice in others outward mercies, and in my own outward mercies. O! how much more than ought I to rejoice in the saving and distinguishing graces of the Spirit, especially when I consider, that the least dram of grace is more worth than ten thousand thousand worlds, Hab. 3.18. Gal. 6.14. Phil. 3.3. as every awakened conscience will tell you when they come to die. Mark, firstly, mostly and chiefly a Christian is to rejoice in God and Christ; but secondarily and subordinately he may rejoice in those graces, and in those gracious evidences that God has given into his soul: Firstly, mostly and chiefly a Wife is to rejoice in the person of her Husband, but secondarily, subordinately she may rejoice in the bracelets, in the earrings, in the jewels, in the gold chains that are given her by her Husband. But, The tenth Proposition is this, viz. That that assurance that the people of God may rise to by the sight of their graces, and upon the sight of their gracious evidences in the light of the spirit, is not so clear, and bright, and high, and full, a that it utterly excludes all fears, doubtings, conflicts, 1 Cor. 13.12. Phil. 3.12, 13, 14. or spiritual agonies. Our knowledge of God, of Christ, of ourselves, and of the blessed Scripture, which is the Rule of trial, is imperfect in this life. And how then can our assurance be perfect? David, a man eminent in grace and holiness, had his up-hills and his down-hills, his Summer days and his Winter nights. Psal 73.25. Psal. 42.5, 11. Now you shall have him upon the Mountains singing and saying, The Lord is my portion; and presently you shall have him in the Valleys, sighing and saying, Wh● art thou cast down, O my soul; why art thou disquieted within me? Job 3. Psal. 77. Psal. 88 The same is evident in Job, Heman and Asaph. Such an assurance as shall exclude all fears, doubts, conflicts, agonies, i● very desirable on earth, but shall never be obtained till we come to heaven. The grievous assaults of Satan, the power of unbelief, and the prevalency of other corruptions in a Christians heart, may be such as may shake (I don't say overturn) that assurance which a Christian may gather from the sight and evidence of his graces in the light of the spirit. Gal. 5.17. The flesh lusteth as well against the spirit as it is a spirit of consolation, as it lusteth against the spirit as it is a spirit of sanctification; and therefore such an assurance as shall exclude all sorts and degrees of fears and doubts, Doubting is not a virtue, as the Papists would make us believe, but 'tis a fruit of the flesh, and a thing most contrary and opposite to the nature of faith, Jam. 1.5. Mat. 21.21. & 13.31. And therefore Christians should pray hard to be rid of their doubts. is not attainable in this life; whilst we are in this old world we shall have water with our wine, gall with our honey, and some clouds with our brightest Sun-shiny days, etc. Most Christians think, that as long as they have any doubtings they have no assurance; but they consider not that there are many degrees of infallible certainty, below a perfect or an undoubting certainty: Doubtless some darkness, more or less, will overspread the face of every Christians soul, and unbelief in one degree or another will be making head against their faith; and hypocrisy in one degree or another will be making head against sincerity, and pride in one degree or another will be making head against humility, and passion in one degree or another will be making head against meekness, and earthly-mindedness in one degree or another will be making head against heavenly-mindedness, etc. yet as long as a Christian has the sight of his graces or his gracious evidences, he may and aught to walk in much peace, comfort and joy. Such Christians as are resolved to lie down in sorrow, till they have attained to a perfect assurance, must resolve to lie down in sorrow till they come to lay down their heads in the dust. Our graces are imperfect, and therefore that assurance that arises from the sight and evidence of them, must needs be imperfect; 1 Thes. 3.10. perfect signs of grace can never spring from imperfect grace. Now, if this were seriously apprehended, studied and minded by many weak Christians, they would not at every turn call their spiritual estates into question as they do, because they find some seeds and stir of pride, hypocrisy, vainglory, and other sinful humours and passions working in them. But, The eleventh Proposition is this, viz. When all your signs and evidences of the happiness and blessedness of your condition fails you, and are so clouded, obscured, darkened and blotted, that you can't read them, that you can't take any comfort from them, than it highly concerns you to keep up high, and precious, and honourable thoughts of God, of Christ, of his word, and of his ways in your souls. Psal. 97.2. Cant. 5.6, 7. When Christ was withdrawn from his Spouse, and when the watchmen that went about the City had smote her and wounded her, and when the keepers of the walls had took away her vail from her, yet than she keeps up in heart very high, precious and honourable thoughts of Christ, Ver. 10. My beloved is white and ruddy, the chiefest among ten thousand. Ver. 16. His mouth is most sweet, and he is altogether lovely; or his mouth is sweetnesses, and he is altogether desirablenesses, or all of him is desires, or he is wholly desirable. Here she breaks off her praises in a general Elegy, which no words can express enough. Alas! saith the Spouse, I want words to express how sweet, how lovely, how comely, how desirable, how eminent, and how excellent Christ is in my eye, and to my soul; Hag. 2.8. he is the desire of all Nations (de jure) and all that is perfect in heaven or earth, is but a dim shadow of his excellency and glory. Where Christ is there is heaven; heaven itself in the Spouse's eyes, without Christ, would be but a low little thing. The Spouse looks upon Christ as the sparkling Diamond in the ring of glory. So David when he was woefully clouded and benighted, when all was dark within him, and dark about him, and dark over him, Psal. 73. Verily I have cleansed my heart in vain, See Psal. 77. & Psal. 88 1 Sam. 30.6. and washed my hands in innocency. Ver. 21. My heart was grieved, and I was pricked in my reins. Ver. 22. I was as a beast before thee; or I was as a great beast, or as many beasts in one, as the Hebrew word Behemoth imports. Ver. 26. My flesh and my heart faileth; that is, my outward man and my inward man faileth me. And yet mark, at this very time, when the Psalmist was thus overcast, he keeps up in him very high, precious and honourable thoughts of God, Ver. 1. Truly God is good to Israel, even to such as are of a clean heart. Ver. 23. Nevertheless, I am continually with thee, thou hast holden me by my right hand. Ver. 24. Thou shalt guide me with thy counsel, and afterward receive me to glory. Ver. 25. Whom have I in heaven but thee? and there is none upon earth that I desire besides thee. Ver. 26. God is the strength (or rock) of my heart, and my portion for ever. Ver. 28. It is good for me to draw near to God. So the Church in that, Micah 7. When God had hid his face from her. Ver. 7. When she sat in darkness. Ver. 8. When she was under the indignation of the Lord. Ver. 9 When the righteous man was perished, and there was none upright among men. Ver. 2. And when her enemies rejoiced, insulted and triumphed over her. Ver. 8. & ver. 10. Yet now, even now, she keeps up in her soul very high, precious and honourable thoughts of the Lord. Ver. 7. My God will hear me. Ver. 8. When I fall, I shall arise; when I sit in darkness, the Lord shall be a light unto me. Ver. 9 He will bring me forth to the light, and I shall behold his righteousness. I might give you twenty more instances, but enough is as good as a feast. Dear Christians, when your graces are not transparent, when your evidences for heaven are blotted, and when the face of God is clouded, O then keep up in your hearts high, precious and honourable thoughts of God and Christ, and of his Word and ways, Acts 27.20. etc. When your Sun of righteousness is set in a cloud, when great darkness is upon your spirits, when all Moonlight, and Starlight of your graces and gracious evidences fails you, Psal. 22.3. yet then say with David, Thou art holy, O thou that inhabitest the praises of Israel; and with Ezra, Thou hast punished me less than mine iniquities deserve; Ezra 9.13. Neh. 9.33. and with Nehemiah, Howbeit, thou art just in all that is brought upon us, for thou hast done right, but we have done wickedly; and with the Church, The Lord is righteous. Lam. 1.18. In the darkest night, and under your deepest soul-distresses, say, Well, if I perish, if I should miscarry for ever, yet I will maintain and keep up in my heart high, and precious, and honourable thoughts of God and Christ: Say, well, though my graces are obscured, and my evidences for heaven are blurred and soiled, yet I shall to my last breath, say the Lord is good, and his Word is good, and his ways are good; yea, though he should slay me, yet I will trust in him, Job 13.15. and entertain noble and glorious thoughts of him. This is the way of ways to have your graces cleared and strengthened, your evidences brightened, your comforts restored, and your assurance confirmed. But, The twelfth Proposition is this, viz. That it is the great duty and concernment of Christians to keep the evidences of their gracious and happy condition, always bright and shining; Christians should make conscience of blurring and disfiguring the golden characters of grace in their souls. The least character of grace in the soul, is more worth than all the gold of Ophir, yea more worth than ten thousand thousand worlds; Eph. 4.30. Psal. 51.11, 12 and therefore every gracious Christian should be marvellous careful, that he does not by wilful omissions or sinful commissions, cloud, dim or darken the least character of grace; such as blot or lose their evidences for heaven, they lose the comfort of their lives in this world. Satan's masterpiece is first to work Christians to blot and blur their evidences for glory, by committing this or that heinous sin; and then his next work is to rob them of their evidences for glory, that so though at the long run they may get safe to heaven, that yet Jacob like they may go halting and mourning to their graves. Satan knows, that whilst a Christians evidences are bright and shining, a Christian is temptation-proof. Satan may tempt him, but he can't conquer him; he may assault him, but he can't vanquish him. Satan knows, that whilst a Christians evidences for heaven are bright and shining, no afflictions can sink him, nor no opposition shake him, nor no persecution discourage him, nor no outward wants perplex him; and therefore he will use all his power and policy, all his arts, crafts and parts, to draw poor Christians to blot and blur their evidences for glory. Satan knows, that a man may lose one friend, and easily get another, lose his Trade in one place, and soon get a Trade in another place; lose health and get it, lose an estate and get an estate, etc. But if he loses his evidences for heaven, he knows it will cost him many a prayer, and many a sigh, and many a groan, and many a tear, and many a sad complaint, before he recovers his lost evidences; and therefore his grand design is to plunder a Christian of his evidences for heaven. O Sirs! keep but your evidences for heaven always bright and shining, and then heavy afflictions will be light, and long afflictions will be short, 2 Cor. 4.16, 17, 18. and bitter afflictions will be sweet; and then every evidence fainly written in your hearts, will be a living comfort to you in a dying hour. When the tokens of death are upon your bodies, and you shall see the lively characters of grace shining in your souls, Luke 2.29. you will then cry out with old Simeon, Lord, now let thy servant departed in peace; and with the Spouse, Make hast my beloved, Cant. 8. ult. and be like to a Roe, or to a young Hart upon the mountains of spices; Rev. 22.20. Phil. 1.23. and with the Bride, Come Lord Jesus, come quickly; and with Paul, I desire to be dissolved and to be with Christ. When a man's evidences for heaven are either lost or blotted and blurred, than he will be ready to cry out wi●h David, O spare me yet a little, that I may recover strength before I go hence and be seen no more; Isa. 38.3. and with Hezekiah, to turn his face to the wall and weep. There are four things that above all others a Christian should labour to keep; 1. Christ. 2. His own heart. 3. The Word. 4. His evidences for heaven, bright and shining. But, The thirteenth Proposition is this, viz. It is the high concernment of every Christian, either when he is in the dark, or when his graces shine brightest, and when his evidences for heaven are clearest, and his springs of comfort rise highest, then to have his heart and the eye of his faith most firmly fixed upon these three royal Forts, or these five Cities or refuge. It must be granted, that though our graces are our best jewels, yet they are imperfect, and do not give out their full lustre; they are like the Moon, which when it shines brightest hath her dark spots; and therefore a Christian had need have his eye, his heart fixed upon the five following royal Forts. You know in time of War there are the outworks, and there are the royal Forts: Now, when the Soldiers are beaten out of their outworks, they retire to the royal Forts, and there they are safe, and then they cast up their caps and bid defiance to their proudest enemies. Now, our graces and our gracious evidences, they are our outworks; and from these we may be beaten in a day of desertion and temptation, etc. Now if we make our retreat to the five following royal Forts, we may in a holy sense cast up our caps, and bid defiance to an host of Devils, yea to all the powers of darkness. Qu. But Sir, Pray let us know which are these Royal Forts. Ans. They are these three that follow. The first is the free, rich, infinite, sovereign and glorious grace of God. Gen. 6.8. Exod. 19.5. Eph 1.5, 6, 7. 1 Tim. 1.13, 14, 15, 16. The grace of our Lord was exceeding abundant. The original word is 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, was over full, redundant, more than enough, more than might serve the turn for him, who was the greatest of sinners. By freegrace you are to understand the gracious good will or favour of God, whereby he is pleased of his own free love to choose and accept of some in Christ for his own, This we call first grace, because it is the fountain of all other grace, and the springs from whence they flow; and it's therefore called grace, because it makes a man gracious with God. Now mark, there have been many Christians who have had no assurance of the love of God, no sight of their interest in Christ, no sealing of the spirit, nor no one clear evidence of grace, that they durst rest the weight of their souls upon; nor no one promise in the whole Book of God that they durst apply or rest upon, who yet daily casting or rolling themselves, their souls, and their everlasting concernments, upon the infinite, free, rich and sovereign grace of God in Christ, have found some tolerable peace, comfort and refreshment in such a practice all their days. A Christian may lose the sight of his graces, and the evidences of his gracious estate; he may be so much in the dark, he may be so much benighted and bewildered in his spirit, that there may be no way under heaven left to him to enjoy peace, comfort, rest, quiet, settlement or contentment, but by casting or rolling of his soul upon the free, rich, infinite and sovereign grace of God in Christ; and here casting anchor, the poor bewildered, deserted, tempted, Isa. 50.10. tossed soul may be safe and at rest. The free love and favour of God will be a lamp to the soul in the darkest night, Psal. 4.6. Socrates prized the King's countenance above his coin. What is then the countenance of a God, to a gracious soul? it will be a sweet lump that will sweeten the bitterest cup, it will be a singular cordial against all faintings, it will be armour of proof against all temptations, it will be an everlasting arm to you under all afflictions, it will be a Sun and a shield to you in every condition, Psal. 80.3. 'Cause thy face to shine, and we shall be saved. Divine favour is that pearl of price that is most desirable, Dan. 9.17. The Lord make his face to shine upon his sanctuary that is desolate, for the Lords sake. Numb. 6.24. The Lord make his face to shine upon you, and be gracious to you. Psal. 67.1. God be merciful to you, and bless you, and cause his face to shine upon you. Job 2.4. Life is a very desirable thing, skin for skin, yea all that a man hath will he give for his life; and yet the loving kindness of God is better than life, Psal. 63. Thy loving kindness is better than life. The Hebrew word is Chajim, lives; to note that the loving kindness of God is better than many lives, yea than all lives, and the revenues of life, put many lives together, put all lives together; and yet there is more excellency in the least discovery of divine love than in them all. Many a man has been weary of his life, but who have ever been weary of divine love? Dear Christians, are your graces or gracious evidences shining and sparkling? O then solace yourselves mostly in the free love and favour of God; for in his free favour lies the life of your souls, the life of your graces, the life of your comforts, yea in his free favour your all is bound up. If your graces or evidences are so clouded and darkened, that you are in a stormy day beat out of your outworks: O now run to the free grace and favour of God, as to your Royal Fort, as to your strong Tower, as to your City of Refuge, where you may be safe and happy for ever. In such a day ponder much upon these Scriptures, Hos. 14.4. I will heal their back-sliding, I will love them freely. God's love is a free love, having no motive or foundation but within itself; all the links of the golden chain of salvation are made up of freegrace. The people of God are freely loved, Deut. 7.6, 7, 8. and freely chosen, John 15.16, 19 Eph. 1.4. and freely accepted, Eph. 1.6. and freely adopted, Eph. 1.5. Gal. 4.5, 6. and freely reconciled, 2 Cor. 5.18, 19, 20. and freely justified, Rom. 3.24. Being justified freely by his grace; and freely saved, Eph. 2.5. By grace ye are saved. Ver. 8. For by grace are ye saved. Tit. 3.5. Not by works of righteousness which we have done, but according to his mercy he saved us. Thus you see, that all the golden rounds in Jacob's Ladder that reaches from heaven to earth, are all made up of freegrace. Freegrace is the foundation of all spiritual and eternal mercies; freegrace is the solid bottom and foundation of all a Christians comfort in this world. Were we to measure the love of God to us by our fruitfulness, holiness, humbleness, spiritualness, heavenly-mindedness, or gracious carriages towards him, how would our hope, our confidence, every hour, Rom. 4.16. yea every moment in every hour be staggered, if not vanquished? B●t all is of grace, of freegrace, that the promise might be sure, and that our salvation might be safe. O Sirs! it is freegrace that will strengthen you in all your duties, and that will sweeten all your mercie●, Rom. 8.33, 34, 35, 36. and that will support you under all your changes, and that will arm you against all temptations, & answer all objections, and take off all Satan's accusations, that may be cast in to disturb the peace and quiet of your souls; and therefore, whether your graces or gracious evidences do shine or are clouded, yet still have your recourse to the freegrace of God, as to your first Royal Fort, your first City of Refuge; and still cry out, Grace, grace. When your gracious evidences are clearest and fullest, it than concerns you to look upon free grace as your choicest and safest City of Refuge. But, The second Royal Fort that Christians should have their eyes, their hearts fixed upon, Imputed righteousness seem● to be prefigured by the skins wherewith the Lord after the full clothed our first parents. The bodies of the beasts were for sacrifice, & the skins to put them in mind, that their own righteousness was like the fig-leaves imperfect, & that therefore they must be justified another way▪ whether their graces or gracious evidences sparkle and shine, or are clouded and obscured, is the Mediatory righteousness of Christ. Beloved, there is a twofold righteousness in Christ. First, there is his essential and personal righteousness as God: Now this essential personal righteousness of Christ cannot be imputed to us. But then there is, Secondly, his Mediatory righteousness, that is that righteousness which he wrought for us as Mediator, whereby he did subject himself to the preceptt, to the penalties, commands & curses, answering both Gods vindictive and rewarding justice. This is communicated to us, and made ours: by virtue of which we stand recti in curia, justified in God's sight. The Mediatory righteousness of Christ is the matter of our justification. Now this Mediatory righteousness of Christ includes, First, the habitual holiness of his person in the absence of all sin, and in the rich and plentiful presence of all holy and requisite qualities. Secondly, the actual holiness of his life and death by obedience. By his active obedience he perfectly fulfilled the commands of the Law, and by his passive obedience, his voluntary sufferings, he satisfied the penalty and commination of the Law for transgressions. Mark, that perfect satisfaction to divine justice in whatsoever it requires, either in way of punishing for sin, or obedience to the Law, made by the Lord Jesus Christ, God and Man, the Mediator of the new Covenant, Osiander was of opinion, that men were justified by the essential righteousness of Christ as God, which opinion is largely confuted by Calvin in his Institutions. as a common head representing all those whom the Father hath given to him, and made over unto them that believe in him. This is that righteousness that is imputed to us in justification. No other righteousness can justify us before the throne of God. Look, as Christ was made sin for us only by imputation, so we are made righteous only by the imputation of his righteousness to us; as the Scripture clearly evidences, 2 Cor. 5.21. He hath made him to be sin for us, who knew no sin, that we might be made the righteousness of God in him. Jer. 23.6. The Lord our righteousness. (A soul truly sensible of his own unrighteousness, would not have this sentence, The Lord our righteousness, blotted out of the Bible for ten thousand thousand worlds.) 1 Cor. 1.30. Christ Jesus is made unto us of God, wisdom, righteousness, etc. And pray, how is Christ made righteousness to the believer? Not by way of infusion, but imputation; not by putting righteousness into him, but by putting a righteousness upon him, even his own righteousness; by the imputing his merit, his satisfaction, his obedience unto them, through which they are accepted as righteous unto eternal life, Rom. 5.19. As by one man's disobedience many were made sinners, so by the obedience of one shall many be made righteous. Christ's righteousness is his in respect of inhesion, but it is ours in respect of imputation; his righteousness is his personally, but ours meritoriously. Look, as there is a true and real union between us and Christ, so there is a real imputation of Christ's righteousness to us. And a gracious soul triumphs more in the righteousness of Christ imputed, than he would have done if he could have stood in the righteousness in which he was created. This is the crowning comfort to a sensible and understanding soul, that he stands righteous before a judgment-seat, in that full, exact, perfect, complete, matchless, spotless, pearless, and most acceptable righteousness of Christ which is imputed to him. The righteousness of Christ is therefore called the righteousness of God, Rom. 3.21, 22. Rom. 10.3. Phil. 3.9. because it is it which God hath designed, and which God doth accept for us in our justification, and for and in which he doth acquit and pronounce us righteous before his seat of justice. Luther's great fear was, that when he was dead this glorious doctrine of free justification by the righteousness of Christ would be sent packing out of the world. That we are freely justified by the righteousness of Christ imputed to us, is the very Basis, foundation and state of Christian Religion, whereby it is distinguished from all other Religions whatsoever. Jews, Turks, Pagans and Papists explode an imputed righteousness, yea Papists jeer it, calling it a putative righteousness. Well Sirs, remember this once for all, viz. That the Mediatory righteousness of Christ is the life of your souls, and will afford you these most admirable comforts. First, In this righteousness there is enough to satisfy the justice of God to the utmost farthing. The Mediatory righteousness of Christ is so perfect, so full, so exact, so complete, and so fully satisfactory to the justice of God, as that divine justice cries out, I have enough, and I require no more; I have found a ransom, and I am fully pacified towards you, Ezek. 16.62, 63. But, Secondly, This Mediatory righteousness of Christ takes away all our unrighteousness, it cancels every bond, it takes away all iniquity, and answers for all our sins. Lord, Isa. 53. Col. 2.12, 13, 14, 15. here are my sins of omission, and here are my sins of commission, but the righteousness of Christ hath answered for them all; here are my sins against the Law, and here are my sins against the Gospel, and here are my sins against the offers of grace, the tenders of grace, the strive of grace, the bowels of grace, but the righteousness of Christ hath answered for them all. When a cordial was offered to one that was sick; O (said he) the cordial of cordials which I daily take is this; The blood of Jesus Christ cleanseth us from all our sins. O Sirs! 1 Joh. 1.7. it would be high blasphemy for any to imagine that there should be more demerit in sin, Rom. 8.1, 33, 34, 35. in any sin, in all sin, to condemn a believer, than there is merit in Christ's righteousness to absolve him, to justify him. But, Thirdly, This righteousness of Christ presents us perfectly righteous in the sight of God. It is that pure, fine, white linen garment, whereby our nakedness is covered before the face of God. And to her was granted (that is to the Lamb's wife) that she should be arrayed in fine linen, Rev. 19.8. clean and white; for the fine linen is the righteousness of Saints, or the righteousnesses or justifications of Saints; 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. for the Greek is plural. Some by righteousnesses understand the righteousness of Christ imputed, and the righteousness of Christ imparted; but I rather close with those who say it is an Hebraism, the plural righteousnesses, noting that most perfect, complete, absolute righteousness which Christ is pleased to put upon his people. Upon the account of this righteousness of Christ, the Church is said to be without spot or wrinkle, Eph. 5.27. and to be all fair. Thou art all fair my love, Cant. 4.7. Col. 2.10. there is no spot in thee. And to be complete. And ye are complete in him, which is the head of all principality ●nd power. Rev. 14.5. And to be without fault. They are without fault before the throne of God. And so Col. 1.21. And to present us holy, and unblamable, and unreprovable in the sight of God. But, Fourthly, This righteousness of Christ will answer to all the fears, doubts, and objections of your souls. How shall I look up to God? the Answer is, in the righteousness of Christ. How shall I have any communion with a holy God in this world? the Answer is, in the righteousness of Christ? How shall I find acceptance with God? the Answer is, in the righteousness of Christ. How shall I die? the Answer is, in the righteousness of Christ? How shall I stand before a Judgment-seat? the Answer is, in the righteousness of Christ. Your sure and only way under all temptations, fears, conflicts, doubts and disputes, is by faith to remember Christ, That was a rare speech of Luther, Ips● videret ubi anima mea mansura sit, qui pro ea sic solicitus fuit ut vitam pro ea posuerit, let him see to it where my soul shall rest, who took so much care for it, as that he laid down his life for it. and the sufferings of Christ, as your Mediator and Surety; and say, O Christ, thou art my sin in being made sin for me, and thou art my curse in being made a curse for me; or rather I am thy sin, and thou art my righteousness, I am thy curse, and thou art my blessing, I am thy death and thou art my life; I am the wrath of God to thee, and thou art the love of God to me, I am thy hell, and thou art my heaven. O Sirs! if you think of your sins and of God's wrath, if you think of your guiltiness and of God's justice, your hearts will fail you and sink into despair; if you don't think of Christ, if you don't rest and stay your souls upon the Mediatory righteousness of Christ. But, Fifthly and lastly, The righteousness of Christ is the best title that you have to show for a Kingdom that shakes not, Heb. 12.28. 1 Pet. 1.3, 4, 5. 2 Cor. 5.1, 2, 3, 4. for riches that corrupt not, for an inheritance that fadeth not away, and for an house not made with hands, but one eternal in the heavens. The righteousness of Christ is your life, your joy, your comfort, your crown, your confidence, your heaven, your all; and therefore whether your graces or gracious evidences do sparkle and shine, or are clouded or blotted, yet still keep a fixed eye and an awakened heart upon the Mediatory righteousness of Jesus Christ, for that's the righteousness by which you may happily live, comfortably die, and boldly appear before a Judgment-seat. But, The third Royal Fort, that Christians should have their eyes, their hearts fixed upon, whether their graces or gracious evidences sparkle and shine, or are obscured and clouded, is the Covenant of grace. The Covenant of grace is a new compact or agreement which God hath made with sinful man out of his own mere mercy and grace, Deut. 4.23. Isa. 55.3. & 54.7, 8, 9, 10. Jer. 31.31. Psal. 50.5, etc. Hos. 14.4. Tit. 3.6. Eph. 1.5, 6, 7. Chap. 2.5 7, 8. Rom. 9.18, 23. Jer. 32.38, 39, 40, 41. Ezek. 36.25, 26, 27. wherein he undertakes both for himself and for fallen man, & wherein he engages himself to make fallen man everlastingly happy. All mankind had been eternally lost, and God had lost all the glory of his mercy for ever, had he not of his own freegrace and mercy made such an agreement with sinful man. This Covenant is called a Covenant of grace, because it flows from the mere grace and mercy of God. There was nothing out of God, nor nothing in God, but his mere mercy and grace that moved him to enter into Covenant with poor sinners. In the Covenant of grace there are two things considerable, First, the Covenant that God makes for himself to us, which consists of these Branches; 1. That he will be our God. 2. That he will give us a new heart, a new spirit. 3. That he will not turn away his face from us from doing of us good. 4. That he will put his fear into our hearts. 5. That he will cleanse us from all our filthiness, and from all our Idols. 6. That he will rejoice over us to do us good. Secondly, here is the Covenant which God doth make for us to himself, which consists in these things; 1. That we shall be his people. 2. That we shall fear him for ever. 3. That we shall walk in his Statutes, keep his Judgements and do them. 4. That we shall not departed from him. Upon many accounts I may not enlarge on these things; but by these short hints 'tis evident, that the Covenant of grace is an entire Covenant made by God, both for himself and for us. O Sirs! in the Covenant of grace God stands engaged to give whatsoever he requires. 1 Chron. 28.9. First, He requires us to know him, and he has engaged himself that we shall know him, Jer. 24.7. I will give them a heart to know me, that I am the Lord. And Jer. 31.34. They shall all know me from the least of them to the greatest of them, Heb. 8.11. But, Secondly, The Lord frequently requires his people to trust in him, Psal. 62.8. Isa. 26.4. 2 Chron. 20.20. And he has engaged himself that his people shall trust in him, Zeph. 3.12. I will leave in the midst of thee an afflicted and poor people, and they shall trust in the name of the Lord. But, Thirdly, The Lord frequently commands his people to fear him, Deut. 6.13. Chap. 8.6. And he has engaged himself that they shall fear him, Jer. 32.40. I will put my fear into their hearts, that they shall not departed from me. Hos. 3.5. They shall fear the Lord and his goodness. But, Fourthly, The Lord frequently commands his people to love him, Deut. 11.1. Psal. 31.23. O love the Lord, all ye his Saints. And he has promised and engaged himself, that his people shall love him, Deut. 30.6. The Lord thy God will circumcise thy heart, and the heart of thy seed, to love the Lord thy God with all thine heart and with all thy soul. But, Fifthly, The Lord frequently commands his people to call upon him, and to pray unto him, Psal. 50.15. 1 Thes. 5.17. etc. And he has promised and engaged himself to pour upon them a spirit of prayer, Zech. 12.10. I will pour upon the house of David, and upon the inhabitants of Jerusalem, the spirit of grace and supplications. But, Sixthly, The Lord frequently commands his people to repent, and to turn from their evil ways, Hos. 14.1. Ezek. 14.6. Chap. 18.30. Acts 17.30. Acts 26.20. And he has promised and engaged himself, that they shall repent and turn from their evil ways, Acts 5.30. Acts 11.18. 2 Tim. 2.25. Isa. 30.22. Jer. 24.7. But, Seventhly, The Lord has commanded his people to obey him, and to walk in his Statutes, Jer. 24.7. And he has promised and engaged himself, that his people shall obey him, and walk in his Statutes, Ezek. 36.27. And I will put my spirit within you, and cause you to walk in my statutes, and ye shall keep my judgements and do them. So Ezek. 11.19, 20. Chap 37.23, 24. But, Eightly, The Lord commands his people to mourn for their sins, Isa. 22.12. Joel 2.12. Jam. 4.10. And he has promised and engaged himself to give them a mourning frame, Zech. 12.10. They shall look upon him whom they have pierced, and they shall mourn for him, as one that mourneth for an only son. Ezek. 7.16. They shall be on the mountains as the Doves of the valleys, all of them mourning every one for his iniquity. But, Ninthly, The Lord commands his people to grow in grace, 2 Pet. 3.18. etc. And he has promised and engaged himself, that they shall grow in grace, Psal. 92.12, 13, 14. The righteous shall flourish like the Palmtree (which is always green and flourishing) he shall grow like a Cedar in Lebanon. The Cedar of all Trees is most durable, and shoots up highest. Those that be planted in the house of the Lord, shall flourish in the Courts of our God; they shall still bring forth fruit in old age, they shall be fat and flourishing. See Hos. 14.5, 6, 7. Mal. 4.2. etc. But, Tenthly, The Lord commands his people not to suffer sin to reign in them, Rom. 6.12. Let not sin reign in your mortal body. And he has promised and engaged himself, that sin shall not reign in them, Rom. 6.14. Sin shall not have dominion over you. Jer. 33.8. And I will cleanse them from all their iniquity. Ezek. 36.25. Then will I sprinkle clean water upon you, and ye shall be clean from all your filthiness; and from all your Idols will I cleanse you. Mich. 7.19. He will subdue our iniquities. But, Eleventhly, He has commanded his people to loathe their sins, and to loathe themselves for their sins, Psal. 97.10. Ye that love the Lord hate evil. Rom. 12.9. Abhor that which is evil. And the Lord has promised and engaged himself to give them such a frame of spirit, Ezek. 36.13. Then shall ye remember your own evil ways, and your do that were not good, and shall loathe yourselves in your own sight for your iniquities, and for your abominations. Ezek. 6.9. And they that escape of you shall remember me among the Nations whither they shall be carried captives, because I am broken with their whorish heart, which hath departed from me, and with their eyes which go a whoring after their Idols, and they shall loathe themselves for the evils which they have committed in all their abominations. Ezek. 20.43. And there shall ye remember your ways, and all your do wherein you have been defiled, and ye shall loathe yourselves in your own sight, for all your evils that ye have committed. But, Twelfthly and lastly, (for enough is as good as a feast) God has commanded us to hold out, to persevere to the end, 1 Cor. 15.58. Rev. 2.10. Luke 18.1. And the Lord has promised and engaged himself, that they shall persevere, Job 17.9. The righteous shall hold on his way, 2 Sam. 3.1. and he that hath clean hands shall be stronger and stronger. Isa. 40.31. They that wait upon the Lord shall renew their strength, they shall mount up with wings as Eagles, they shall run and not be weary, they shall walk and not faint. Thus you see by an induction of twelve particulars, that what ever God requires of his people, he stands engaged by the Covenant of grace to give to his people, to do for his people. Now mark, the Covenant of grace 〈◊〉 confirmed to us in the surest and most glorious waistcoat can be imagined. Gen. 17.7. Heb. 13.20. Psal. 89.28. 2 Sam. 23.5. The Covenant of grace is so ●●●ongly ratified, that there can be no nulling of it▪ ●o●▪ First, 'Tis confirmed to us by his Word. I will be your God, and you shall be my people. Now, Jer. 33.38. 2 Cor. 1.20. all the promises of God in htm are yea, and in him Amen, unto the glory of God by us; that is, they are stable and firm, as the Hebrew word signifies. They will eat their way over all Alps of opposition. In the new Covenant God neither makes nor fulfils any promises of salvation, but in Christ and by Christ. Secondly, God hath ratified the Covenant of grace by his oath; his promise is enough, Gen. 22.16. Heb. 6.19. but surely his oath must put all out of question; there's no room for unbelief now God hath sworn to it; had there been a greater God, he would have sworn by him. But, Thirdly, God hath ratified it by the death of his Son. A man's last Will and Testament as soon as he is dead, Gal. 3.15. Heb. 9.15, 26. is in force and cannot then be disannulled. The Covenant of grace is a Testamentary Covenant, which by the death of the Testator is so settled, that there is no altering of it. But, Fourthly and lastly, The Covenant of grace is ratified by the seals which God hath annexed to it. What was sealed by the King's Ring could not be altered. Esth. 8. God hath set his seals to the Covenant of grace, his broad seal in the Sacraments, and his privy seal in the witness of his Spirit, and therefore 'tis sure and can't be reversed, etc. Now, when ever you look upon your graces or gracious evidences with one eye, be sure you look upon the Covenant of grace, your last royal Fort with the other eye. The whole hang of a man's comfort and happiness hangs upon the Cove● of grace. The Covenant of grace is the Saints original title to 〈◊〉 'tis a Saint's best and brightest evidence for life and salvation. ●●re was an eternal design (an eternal plot, if I may so speak) be●●● God the father and the Lord Jesus Christ; a bargain, a Covenant ●●de between the Father and the Son, for the salvation of his chosen 〈◊〉; and by this patiented and tenure of grace, all Saints have title to heaven, etc. Dear Christians, many times your gracious evidences are so blotted and blurred that you can't read them. O then, turn to the Covenant of grace; when other evidences fail you, the Covenant of grace will be a glorious standing evidence to you; 'tis upon the score of the Covenant that you must challenge an interest in all the glory of another world. The Covenant of grace is the great Charter, the Magna Charta of all your spiritual privileges and immunities. Now in this great Charter the Lord declares, That sincerity shall go for perfection: Luke 1.5, 6. Acts 13.22. 2 Chron 3●. ●8, 19, 20. In this great Charter the Lord hath declared, That he judges his people by the standing bent and frame of their hearts, and not by what they are, under some pangs of passion, or in an hour of temptation. In this great Charter the Lord declares, That his eye is more upon his people's inward disposition, than 'tis upon their outward actions; and that his eye is more upon their will, 2 Cor. 8.12. Phil. 2.13. than 'tis upon their work. In this great Charter, the Covenant of grace, the Lord hath declared, That he will not forsake his people, nor cast off his people, Ponder much upon Jer. 31.31, to 38. because of those failings and weaknesses that may and do attend them, 1 Sam. 12.22. For the Lord will not forsake his people for his great name sake: because it hath pleased the Lord to make you his people. He chose you for his love, and he still loveth you for his choice. God will rather pity his people under their weakness, than he will reject them for their weakness. The Covenant of grace that God hath made with his people, is as the Covenant that a man makes with his Wife. I will betrothe thee unto me for ever, saith the Lord. Hos. 2.19, 20. Jer. 3.13. Turn O backsliding children, saith the Lord, for I am married unto you. Now, a man will never reject his Wife, he will never cast off his Wife for those common weaknesses and infirmities that daily attends her; no more will the Lord cast off his people, because of the infirmities that daily hang upon them. In this great Charter, the Covenant of grace, the Lord declares, that he will require no more than he gives; and that he will give what he requires, and that he will accept what he gives; and what can a God say more? and what can a gracious soul desire more? O Sirs! when all is cloudy over head, and all dark within doors, when a Christians graces are not transparent, when his evidences for heaven are soiled and blotted, and when neither heart nor house are as they should be, 'tis good then to turn to the Covenant grace, and to dwell upon the Covenant of grace. Thus David did, 2 Sam. 23.5. Although my house be not so with God, yet he hath made with me an everlasting covenant, ordered in all things and sure: for this is all my salvation, and all my desire, although he make it not to grow. Let me give a little light into the words. Although my house be not so with God.] Though David in the main had a good heart, yet he had but a wicked house. Absalon had slain his Brother, rebelled against his Father, and lay with his Father's Concubines. And Amnon had deflowered his Sister, etc. Now David under a deep sense of all this wickedness, and of his own personal unworthiness, sadly sighs it out, Although my house be not so with God, etc. though I have not walked so exactly and perfectly as I should have done, though neither I nor my house have walked answerable to those great mercies and singular kindnesses of God that have been extended to us. Yet he hath made with me an everlasting Covenant.] The word everlasting hath two acceptations; it doth denote, 1. Sometimes a long duration, Vide Isa. 55.3. Gen. 17.7. Psal. 105.9, 10 Isa. 61.8. Heb. 13.20. in which respect the old Covenant clothed with figures and ceremonies is called everlasting, because it was to endure, and did endure a long time. ●. Sometimes it denotes a perpetual duration, a duration which shall last for ever. In this respect the Covenant of grace is everlasting, it shall never cease, never be broken, nor never be altered. Now, the Covenant of grace is an everlasting Covenant in a twofold respect. First, Ex parte soederantis, in respect of God, who will never break Covenant with his people, but is their God, and will be their God for ever and ever, Psal. 48.14. For this God is our God for ever and ever, he will be our guide even unto death: I and after death too; for this is not to be taken exclusive; he will never leave his people, nor forsake his people, Heb. 13.5, 6. Secondly, Ex parte confoederatorum, in respect of the people of God who are brought into Covenant, and shall continue in Covenant for ever and ever. You have both these expressed in that excellent Scripture, Jer. 32.40. I will make an everlasting covenant with them, that I will not turn away from them to do them good; but I will put my fear in their hearts that they shall not departed from me. Seriously dwell upon the place; it shows that the Covenant is everlasting on God's part, and also on our part: On God's part, I will never turn away from them to do them good; and on our part, They shall never departed from me. How so? I will put my fear in their hearts, that they shall not departed from me (even that fear spoken of in ver. 39 That they may fear me for ever.) Ordered in all things.] O! what head can conceive, or what tongue can express that infinite counsel, wisdom, love, care and tenderness that the blessed God has expressed in ordering the Covenant of grace, so as it may most and best suit to all the wants, and straits, and necessities, and miseries, and desires, and long of poor sinners souls. The Covenant of grace is so well ordered by the unsearchable wisdom of God, that you may find in it remedies to cure all your diseases, and cordials to comfort you against all your faintings, Isa. 40.28. Psal. 147.5. and a spiritual armoury to arm you against all your enemies, viz. the world, the flesh, and the devil. Dost thou, O distressed sinner, want a loving God, a compassionate God, a reconciled God, a sin pardoning God? here thou mayest find him in the Covenant of grace. Dost thou want a Christ to counsel thee by his wisdom, and to thee with his righteousness, and to adorn thee with his grace? here thou mayest find him in a Covenant of grace. Dost thou want the Spirit to enlighten thee, to teach thee, to convince thee, to awaken thee, to lead thee, to cleanse thee, to cheer thee, and to seal thee up to the day of redemption? Eph. 1.13. here thou mayest find him in a Covenant of grace. Dost thou want grace, or peace, or rest, or quiet, or content, or comfort, or satisfaction? here thou mayest find it in a Covenant of grace. God has laid into the Covenant of grace, as into a common store, all those things that sinners or Saints can either beg or need. Look, as that is a well ordered Commonwealth where there are no wholesome Laws wanting to govern a people, and where there are no wholesome remedies wanting to relieve a people; so that must needs be a well ordered Covenant, where there is nothing wanting to govern poor souls, or to relieve poor souls, or to save poor souls; and such a Covenant is the Covenant of grace. And sure, the Covenant of grace is a sure Covenant, Jer. 31.31, 33, 35, 36, 37. Psal. 19.7. Rev. 3.14. Isa. 54.10. Deut. 7.9. The Lord thy God he is God, the faithful God (or the God of Amen) which keepeth Covenant with them that love him. Psal. 89.33. My Covenant will I not break (Hebrew, I will not profane) nor altar the thing that is gone out of my lips. All God's precepts, all God's predictions, all God's menaces, and all God's promises, are the issue of a most just, faithful and righteous will. God can neither die nor lie, Tit. 1.2. In hope of eternal life, which God that cannot lie promised before the world began. There are three things that God can't do; 1. He can't die. Nor, 2. He can't lie. Nor, 3. He can't deny himself, Josh. 23.14. And behold, this day I am going the way of all the earth; and ye know in all your hearts, and in all your souls, that not one thing hath failed of all the good things which the Lord your God spoke concerning you, all are come to pass unto you, and not one thing hath failed thereof. O Sirs! the Covenant of grace is bottomed upon God's everlasting love, John 13.1. upon God's unchangeable love, upon God's free love; whom God loves once he loves for ever. Jer. 31.3. I have loved thee with an everlasting love. God can as well cease to be, as he can cease to love those whom he has taken into Covenant with himself. And as the Covenant of grace is bottomed upon God's everlasting love, so 'tis bottomed upon God's immutable counsel, Heb. 6.17. God willing more abundantly to show unto the heirs of promise, the immutability of his counsel confirmed it by an oath. And as the Covenant of grace is bottomed upon the immutable counsel of God, so it is bottomed upon the free purpose of God, 2 Tim. 2.19. The foundation of God standeth sure; that is, the decree and purpose of God's election stands firm and sure. Now, the purpose of God's election is compared to a foundation, because it is that upon which all our happiness and blessedness is built and bottomed, and because as a foundation it abides firm and sure. And as the Covenant of grace is bottomed upon the free purpose of God, so 'tis bottomed upon the glorious power of God. The power of God is an infinite power, Isa. 33.11. Isa. 41.2. Mal. 4.1. 1 Cor. 1.25. it is a supreme power, a power that overtops the power of all mortals: What's the stubble to the flames, the chaff to the whirlwind? no more is all created power to the power of God. The weakness of God is stronger than men; and did not Pharaoh find it so? and Haman find it so? and Sennacherib find it so? and Nabuchadnezzar find it so? and Belshazzar find it so? and Herod find it so? In all the ages of the world the power of God hath boar down all before it; the power of God is an independent power, a matchless power, an incomparable power, an enduring power, an eternal power. And as the Covenant of grace is bottomed upon the power of God, Heb. 6.17, 18 Psal. 89.34, 35. so it is bottomed upon the oath of God, Luke 1.72. To perform the mercy promised to our fathers, and to remember his holy Covenant. Ver. 73. The oath which he swore to our father Abraham. To think that God will break his oath, or be perjured, is an intolerable blasphemy. Once more give me leave to say, the Covenant of grace is bottomed not only upon the oath of God, but also upon the precious blood of Christ. The blood of Christ is called the blood of the everlasting Covenant, Heb. 13.20. Mat. 26.28. This is my blood of the New Testament, which is shed for many for the remission of sins: Heb. 9.15. And for this cause he is the Mediator of the New Testament, that by means of death, for the redemption of the transgressions that were under the fi●st Testament, they which are called might receive the promise of eternal inheritance. Ver. 17. A Testament is of force after men are dead. It is called a Covenant and a Testament. 1. A Covenant in respect of God, and a Testament in respect of Christ. 2. A Covenant in respect of the manner of agreement, and a Testament in respect of the manner of confirming. Jesus Christ died as a Testator, and by his death confirmed the Testamentary gift before made of Life and Salvation. Now, the Covenant of grace being thus gloriously bottomed as you se●, it must roundly and undeniably follow, that th● Covenant of grace is a sure Covenant. For this is all my salvation and all my desire.] i. e. This is the great ground of all my hope concerning my salvation, and of all the happiness and blessedness which I look for in another world. This everlasting Covenant, this sure Covenant, is the great Charter of Charters that I have to show for eternal bliss. David was drawing near to his eternal home, and whether his graces and gracious evidences for heaven's happiness were bright and shining, or blotted and clouded, I shall not at this time stand to inquire; it is enough that he stays his soul upon the Covenant of grace, and that he comforts and solaces his soul in the Covenant of grace. And, O that all Christians, when their graces and gracious evidences are either clouded or blotted, or else sparkling and shining, that they would frequently eye these three royal Forts, viz. 1. The freegrace and favour of God. 2. The Mediatory righteousness of Christ. 3. The Covenant of grace. Now, that I may the more effectually prevail with you to look upon these royal Forts, and to delight in these royal Forts, and to prise these royal Forts, and to improve these royal Forts. Give me leave to offer these three things briefly to your consideration. First, Our best graces and performances are not commensurate and square payment in the eyes of pure justice; all of them as inherent in us, and acted by us, are but imperfect excellencies. No man hath so much grace and holiness as is required, nor doth he so much as he is obliged to do: Every particular grace, though it be of an heavenly and divine original, yet it is like the Stars twinkling, though placed in the heavens; so that if God should enter into judgement with the most righteous person, even the righteousness that is in him, Psal. 143.2. Job. 14.3, 4. Rom. 3.20. would not be safety and defence unto him; for what a deal of pride have we mixed with a little humility? and what a deal of passion have we mixed with a little meekness? and what a deal of hypocrisy have we mixed with a little sincerity? and what a deal of earthly-mindedness have we mixed with a little heavenly-mindedness? and what a deal of unbelief have we mixed with a little faith? O Sirs! in the great business of your access to God, and of your acceptance with God, Rom. 3.20, to ver. 27. Phil. 3.8, 9, 10. and of your reconciliation to God, and of your justification before God. 'Tis best, safest and noblest, to bottom your faith, hope and expectation, infinitely rather upon imputed righteousness than inherent righteousness, upon what Christ has done for you, than upon what he has done in you. Inherent righteousness is stained, imperfect, impure; but imputed righteousness is pure and perfect; if there were any stain, or any imperfection in that, it could not justify us, it could not save us, it could not secure us from wrath to come. Such evidences as are not fetched from any thing in us, nor from any things done by us, but are fetched by faith from our free justification, and from Christ's full satisfaction which he hath wrought for us, will be found the most full, the most sweet, the most refreshing, the most comforting, and the most satisfying evidences. Christ is all fair, all perfect, all pure, and therefore let him be most in your eye, and most upon your hearts; but here take heed, that you don't look upon your graces, or your gracious evidences, as poor, low, weak, contemptible things (as too many do) for the least of them is more worth than heaven and earth, and they may yield you much comfort, much support, much refreshing, and much satisfaction; though they can't yield you that full comfort, nor that full satisfaction as Christ himself can yield, as Christ's satisfaction can yield, as free justification can yield. Though children and friends can't yield to a Wife that full comfort, content, delight and satisfaction as her Husband does, yet they may yield her much comfort, much content, much delight, much satisfaction. The application is easy. But, Secondly, Consider, That Christian that hath freegrace, that hath free justification, that hath the Mediatory righteousness of Christ, that hath the satisfaction of Christ, that hath the Covenant of grace most constantly in his sight, and most frequently warm upon his heart, that Christian of all Christians in the world is most free from a world of fears, and doubts, and scruples, which do sad, sink, perplex and press down a world of other Christians, who affect a life of sense, and who daily eye more what Christ is a doing in them, and what they are a doing for Christ, than they do eye, either his active or passive obedience. Christ hath done great things for his people, and he has suffered great things for his people, and he has purchased great things for his people, and he has prepared great things for his people; and yet many of his own dear people are so taken up with their own hearts, and with their own duties and graces, that Christ is little eyed by them, or minded by them; and what is this but to be more taken with the streams than with the Fountain? with the leaves, blossoms and fruit, than with the Tree itself? with the bracelets, earrings and gold chains, than with the Husband himself? with the Nobles that wait, than with the King that is waited on? And this is the great Reason why so many Christians (who will certainly go to heaven) do walk in darkness, and lie down in sorrow. But, Thirdly, Trusting in our own duties, and resting on our own righteousness (and not on Christ's solely) is a close, secret, spiritual, Isa. 58.1, 2, 3. Zech. 7.5, 6. dangerous and unperceivable sin, which the nature of man is exceedingly prone unto. The Pharisees were mightily given up to trust in their own righteousness, to rest on their own righteousness, Mat. 6. chap. 23 Luke 18. and to boast and glory in their own righteousness; and this proved their mortal disease, their damning sin: trusting in their own righteousness had so besotted and benumbed them, that they had no mind, no heart to open the gates of their souls, that the King of glory might enter in. And this was that which undid the Jews, Rom. 10.3. For they being ignorant of God's righteousness, and going about to establish their own righteousness, have not submitted themselves to the righteousness of God. And 'tis observable, the Apostle useth an emphatical word of a Jew, Rom. 2.17. Thou restest in the Law, Look as there is nothing more pleasing to Christ, than the renouncing of all confidence in our own duties and righteousness; so there is nothing more provoking to Christ, than the setting up of our own duties and righteousness. This is a secret Imposthume that kills thousands. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, thou art secure in the Law, as in some admirable privilege and signal testimony of God's love. This was Bernard's temptation, when being assisted in duty he could stroke his own head with bene fecisti Bernarde; O Bernard, this was gallantly done, now cheer up thyself. It was the saying of a precious Saint, That he was more afraid of his duties than of his sins, for the one made him often proud, and the other made him always humble. It was good counsel Luther gave, Cavendum est non solum à peccatis, sed à bonis operibus; We must take heed not only of our sins, but of our good works. Duties can never have too much diligence used about them, nor too little confidence placed in them; they are good helps, but bad Saviour's; it is necessary we do them, but it is dangerous to rely upon them. If the devil cannot dissuade us from performing Religious duties, than his next work will be to persuade us all he can to rely upon them to make Saviour's of them, because this will as much gratify Satan, and as certainly ruin our souls, as if we had wholly neglected them. O man, thine own righteousness rested in, will as certainly and eternally undo thee as the greatest and foulest enormities. This soul-sickness is that spiritual Idolatry that will undo thee, for thou makest thyself a Saviour, and thy duties a Saviour, and sayest of thy duties, as they did of the golden Calf; These are the gods that brought thee out of the Land of Egypt. Open wickedness, open idolatry slays her thousands, but secret idolatry, a secret resting upon duties slays her ten thousands; multitudes bleed inward by this disease, and die for ever. Open profaneness is the broad dirty way that leads to hell, but Religious duties rested in, is as sure a way, though a cleaner way to hell; profane persons and formal Professors, shall meet at last in one hell. Ah Christians! done't make Religious duties your money, lest you and your money perish together. The Phoenix gathers sweet odoriferous sticks in Arabia together, and then blows them with her wings and burns with them: So do many shining Professors burn themselves with their own duties and services. You know in Noah's flood, all that were not in the Ark, though they climb up the tallest Trees, and the highest Mountains and Hills, yet were drowned: So let men climb up to the highest duties, yet if they be not housed in Christ, & in his righteousness, they will be as certainly damned, as the men in the old world were certainly drowned. Adam and all his posterity was to be saved by doing; Do this and live. And hence it is natural to all the sons and daughters of Adam to rest on duties, and to look for life and happiness in a way of doing; but if salvation were to be had by doing, what need of a Saviour? Well, remember this once for all, such as rest on duties, such as rest on their own righteousness, or on any thing on this side Christ, such shall find them as weak as the Assyrian, or as Jareb, they cannot heal them, they cannot cure them of their wounds: Hos. 5.13. When Ephraim saw his sickness, and Judah saw his wound, than went Ephraim to the Assyrian, and sent to King Jareb, yet could they not heal him, nor cure him of his wound. Duties are to Satan as the Ark of God was to the Philistines; he trembles to see a soul diligent in the use of them, and yet not daring to rely on them but on Christ; but when he can draw poor souls to confide in their duties, and to rest on their duties, than he has his design, than he claps his hands for joy, than he cries out, Ah, ah, so would I have it. There is no sin that doth so formally and immediately oppose Christ, and reject Christ, and provoke Christ, as this of resting upon self-righteousness; and therefore above all, pray against this, and watch against this, and weep over this. There is no man in his wits that hath a precious lading, that will dare to adventure it in a cracked and broken vessel; so there is no Christian in his wits that will dare to adventure the everlasting safety of his soul upon the leaking vessels and bottoms of his own holiness or services. O Sirs! your duties cannot satisfy the Justice of God, they cannot satisfy the Law of God; your present duties cannot satisfy for your former sins and rents that be behind. A man that pays his Rent honestly every year, does not thereby satisfy for the old Rent not paid in ten or twenty years before. Thy new obedience, O Christian, is too weak to satisfy for old debts, and therefore roll thyself on Christ, and Christ alone for life and for salvation. Bellarmine could say after all his disputes for relying on works, on Saints and Angels, Tutius est, etc. The safest way is to rely on Jesus Christ. Now, let all these things work you to renounce your own righteousness, and to take sanctuary alone in the pure, perfect, and most glorious righteousness of Jesus Christ, and in the freegrace of God. Austin. Paul is called by one the best child of grace in the world; Eph. 3.8. for whatsoever he was, or had, or did, he ascribeth all to freegrace; he was the chiefest of the Apostles, and yet less than the least of all Saints; he was very eminent in grace, and yet what he was, he was by grace. By the grace of God I am what I am. He lived, yet not he, but Christ lived in him. 1 Cor. 15.10. Gal. 2.20. 1 Cor. 15.10. Phil. 4.13. He laboured more abundantly than they all, yet not he, but the grace of God which was with him. He was able to do all things, but still through Christ that strengthened him. O, that these three last things might work you to be more in love with freegrace than ever, and to be more in love with the righteousness of Christ than ever, and to be more in love with the Covenant of grace than ever. But, The fourteenth Proposition is this. The more grace, the more holiness, the more any man has of the Spirit of Sanctification, the more clear, the more fair, the more full, the more sweet will his evidences be for heaven, for salvation; and the more comfort, and the more assurance, and the more settlement, and the more of the witness of the spirit of Adoption, such a person will certainly attain unto. That Spirit which is the earnest of our inheritance, and which seals us up to an holy assurance, is an holy Spirit; Eph. 1.13, 14. he is frequently called the holy Spirit. Cast me not away from thy presence, and take not thy holy Spirit from me. Psal. 51.11. Isa. 63.10. Eph. 4.30. 1 Thes. 4.8. But they rebelled and vexed his holy Spirit. And grieve not the holy Spirit of God whereby ye are sealed unto the day of redemption. H● therefore that despiseth, despiseth not man but God, who hath also given unto us his holy Spirit. To make a man holy, is more than to create a world, 'tis a work too high, and too hard for Angels or men; it becomes none, and it can be done by none but by the holy Spirit. Sanctification is the Spirits personal operation; 'tis the great work of the Spirit to shape, 2 Thes. 2.13. 1 Pet. 1.2. form and fashion the new-creature holiness in all the vessels of glory. The Spirit is the root of all holiness, and therefore the several parts of holiness are called the fruits of the Spirit. Holiness is the very picture of God; Gal. 5.22. and certainly no hand can carve that excellent picture but the Spirit of God. Holiness is the Divine nature, and none can impart that to man but the Spirit; the Spirit is the great principle of holiness. Now, the more grace, the more holiness any man hath, the more he is the delight of the Spirit; and the more the Spirit will delight to witness his Sonship, his Saintship, and his Heirship unto him. Scripture and experience will tell you, that commonly men of greatest holiness have been men of greatest assurance. This is certain, the more holiness the more assurance; for so the precious promises runs, Isa. 32.17. The work of righteousness shall be peace (to wit, peace of conscience, Rom. 5.1.) and the effect of righteousness quietness and assurance for ever. Inherent righteousness (for of that he speaks, as is evident by the 15. and 16. verses of the same Chapter) is the highway to assurance and peace. So Psal. 50. ult. To him that ordereth his conversation aright, will I show the salvation of God; that is, declare myself to be his Saviour, say some; say others, I will give him a prospect of heaven here, and a full fruition of heaven hereafter; say others, I will cause him to see and know that he shall be saved. So John 14.21. He that hath my commandments and keepeth them, he it is that loveth me; and he that loveth me shall be loved of my father, and I will love him, and manifest myself unto him. Ver. 23. If any man love me, he will keep my words, and my father will love him, and we will come unto him and make our abode with him. Holy Christians shall have most of the spiritual presence of Christ, and of the singular manifestations of the love of Christ to their souls. The great reason of reasons why the springs of comfort, of joy, of inward peace, and of assurance, rises no higher in many Christians souls, is because the springs of grace and holiness rises no higher in their souls. Had Christians more grace, and more holiness in their hearts and lives, God would quickly bring down more of heaven and assurance into their souls. There is a blessed assurance (as I have told you before) which arises from the discovery of grace in the soul. Now, the more ample, large and full the matter of our assurance is, the more ample, large and full must our assurance be. Methinks the connexion of these four verses in Titus 2.11, 12, 13, 14. shows this, When grace that appears to us, teacheth us to deny ungodliness and worldly lusts, etc. See what follows, than we are most likely to look for the blessed hope and glorious appearing of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. And that prayer of the Apostle for his Ephesians, Eph. 3.16, 17, 18 speaks as loudly in the case, That God would grant them to be strengthened by the Spirit, etc. to be rooted and grounded in love. And what then? That ye may comprehend with all Saints, the length and breadth of the love of God. Suppose in health or sickness, living or dying, a man should labour to support, comfort and cheer up his spirit, in the thoughts or meditations of his eternal election and free justification. And suppose that at that very time the Spirit of God, his own conscience, ● Thes. 2.13, 14. a faithful Minister, or an experienced Christian should tell him, That if he be really justified, he is really sanctified. Now, if this man should say, What do you tell me of sanctification, or I know not whether I am sanctified or no, or I look not to sanctification, I mind not holiness, I regard not the fruits of the Spirit; will not the holy Spirit, will not an enlightened conscience, will not a faithful Minister, will not an experienced Christian reply, Then certainly thou art not elected, thou art not justified, for it is a truth as clear as the Sun, a truth that will admit of no dispute, viz. Rom 8.1, 13, 29, 30. That none are eternally elected and freely justified, but they are sanctified; and that they that are not sanctified, are not justified. Mark, there is a closely connexion of sanctification with justification in the promises of the Covenant; sanctification and justificatiòn go hand in hand, they come forth like twins out of the womb of freegrace; as you may see in these remarkable Scriptures, Jer. 33.8. Bern. in Cant. Serm. 37. I will cleanse them from all their iniquity whereby they have sinned against me, and I will pardon all their iniquities whereby they have sinned, and whereby they have transgressed against me; Here you see them both expressed together in the same deed, I will cleanse them from all their iniquity; there is our sanctification promised. And I will pardon all their iniquities; there is justification promised, So Mich. 7.19. He will subdue our iniquities, and thou wilt c●st all their sins into the depths of the Sea. Here you find justification and sanctification again in the promise. He will subdue our iniquities; This is sanctifying. And he will cast all their sins into the depths of the Sea; This is justifying. Heb. 8.10. I will put my Laws into their minds, and write them in their hearts (there is the promise of sanctification) V●r. 12. And I will be merciful to their unrighteousness and their sins, and their iniquities will I remember no more; (There is the promise of justification. 1 John 1.9. If we confess our sins, he is faithful and just to forgive us our sins; (There is our justification promised.) And to cleanse us from a●l unrighteousness; (There is the promise of sanctification. Ezek. 36.25. From all your filthiness, and from all your idols will I cleanse you; (There is the promise of sanctification) Ver. 29. I will also save you from all your uncleannesses; (There is the promise of justification) 1 Cor. 6.11. But ye are washed, but ye are sanctified, but ye are justified. Justification and sanctification are inseparable companions; distinguished they must be, but divided they can never be; where sin is pardoned, the gift of sanctity is still conferred. 'Tis weakness, 'tis wickedness for a man to conclude that he is in an elected and justified estate when he has nothing, when he has not the least thing to evidence himself to be in a sanctified estate: Both justification and sanctification have a necessary respect to the salvation of all those that shall go to heaven. He that will go to heaven must be sanctified, and he that will go to heaven must be justified. No man can go to heaven without both; no man can go to heaven unless he be justified, Rom. 8.30. Whom he called, them also he justified; and whom he justified, them he also glorified. None are justified but such as are called, and none are glorified but such as are justified. And as no man can go to heaven but he that is justified, so no man can go to heaven but he that is sanctified, John 3.5. Jesus answered and said unto him, verily, verily, I say unto thee, except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God. Ver. 5. Jesus answered, verily, verily, I say unto thee, except a man be born of water and of the spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God. See my Treatise on Holiness. Heb. 12.14. And holiness, without which no man shall see the Lord. By these Scriptures 'tis evident, that there is an absolute necessity both of sanctification and justification in reference to salvation. Now, as sanctification and justification are linked together; so the more clear, the more full, the more evident, and the more eminent a man's sanctification is, the more clear, the more full, the more evident and the more eminent will the evidences of his justification be. The greatest evidences of our sanctification carries with them the greatest assurance of our justification, and of our salvation. But, The fifteenth Proposition is this. When your graces are strongest, and your evidences for heaven are clearest, and your comforts rise highest upon the sight of your graces or gracious evidences, then in a special manner it concerns you to make it your great business and work to act faith a fresh, to act faith with a greater strength, upon the free, rich and glorious grace of God, and upon the Lord Jesus Christ. 'Tis reported of the Crystal, that it hath such a virtue in it, that the very touching of it quickens other stones, and puts a lustre and beauty upon them. This is most true of faith; faith is a grace that gives strength and efficacy to all other graces, it is like a silver thread that runs thorough a chain of pearl, it hath an influence upon all other graces that are in the soul; faith is as the spring in the watch that moves the wheels, not a grace stirs till faith sets it at work. What is said of Solomon's virtuous woman, viz. Prov. 31.15, 27 Heb. 11. Rom. 4.3. & 8.24. Zech. 12.10. That she sets all her Maidens to work, is most true of faith; faith sets all the graces in the soul at work. We love as we believe, and we obey as we believe, and we hope as we believe, and we joy as we believe, and we mourn as we believe, and we repent as we believe; all graces keep time and pace with faith, etc. Now when your graces are most shining, and your evidences for heaven are most sparkling, O then, give faith elbow-room, give faith full scope to exercise itself upon the Lord Jesus. Adam's obedience to innocency was not more pleasing and delightful to God, than the exercise of your faith on the Lord Jesus will be at such a time pleasing and delightful to him; you are to look upon all your graces and gracious evidences as your highest encouragement to a lively, cheerful, 1 Joh. 5.13. Rom. 1.17. and resolute acting of faith upon the person of Christ, the righteousness of Christ, etc. All a Christians graces, and all his gracious evidences should be but as a golden bridge, Gen. 45.19, 21, 27. or as joseph's wagons, a means to pass his soul over to Christ afresh by a renewed exercise of faith. When your graces and gracious evidences are most splendent, then be sure that Christ be found lying as a bundle of myrrh between your breasts, and all is well, and will be well. Dear Christians, Cant. 1.12. when your eyes are fixed upon inherent righteousness, Plutarch in the life of Photion tells us of a certain gentlewoman of jonia who shown the wife of Photion all the rich jewels and precious stones she had: She answered her again, all my riches and jewels is my Husbands. This is more applicable to Christ, etc. The precious stone Opalum (is said) to have the virtue of all stones; the brightness of the Carbuncle, the purple colour of the Amethyst, the amiable greenness of the Emerald; but what are all these to Christ. and upon your gracious evidences, then let your hearts be firmly fixed upon the Lord Jesus Christ and his imputed righteousness. Paul's eye was fixed upon his grace, upon his better part, Rom. 7.22. I delight in the Law of God after the inward man. Ver. 25. And with my mind I serve the Law of God. And yet at the very same time his heart was set upon Christ, and taken up with Christ. Ver. 25. I thank God through our Lord Jesus Christ. Though Paul had an eye to his noble part, his better part, his regenerate part; yet at the same time his heart was taken up with the Lord Jesus Christ as freeing of him from the curse of the Law, the dominion of sin, the damnatory power of sin, and as translating of him into the glorious liberty of the sons of God. I thank God through our Lord Jesus Christ. So in Col. 2.2, 3. You have their eyes fixed upon grace, and at the same time their hearts fixed upon Christ; That their hearts might be comforted being knit together in love, and unto all riches of the full assurance of understanding, to the acknowledgement of the mystery of God, and of the father and of Christ, in whom are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge. Their eyes were upon grace, but their hearts were taken up with Christ. So in Phil. 3.8. The Apostle had his eye upon the excellent knowledge of Christ. But Ver. 9 his heart is taken up with the righteousness of Christ. That I might be found in him, not having mine own righteousness, which is of the Law, but that which is through the faith of Christ, the righteousness which is of God by faith. Though Paul had his eye upon grace, upon inherent righteousness; yet in the very presence of his grace his heart was taken up with Christ, and with his imputed righteousness, as is evident in the Text. This is your glory Christians, in the presence and sight of all your graces and gracious evidences, to see the free grace of Christ and his infinite, spotless, matchless and glorious righteousness to be your surest, sweetest, highest and choicest comfort and refuge. Look as Rebkekah was more taken with the person of Isaac than she was with his earrings, Gen. 24.30, 53, 64, 65, 66, 67. bracelets, jewels of silver, and jewels of gold: So it becomes a Christian in the presence of his graces and gracious evidences (which are Christ's earrings, bracelets and jewels) to be▪ more taken up with Christ than with them. He that holds not wholly with Christ, doth very shamefully neglect Christ. Aut totum mecum tene, aut totum omit, Grego Nazien. Christ and his Mediatory righteousness should be more in a Christians eye, and always lie nearer to a Christians heart, than inherent righteousness. Grace is a ring of gold, and Christ is the sparkling diamond in that ring. Now, what's the ring to the sparkling diamond? 'Tis not safe to poor more upon inherent righteousness than upon imputed righteousness. 'Tis not wisdom to have our thoughts and hearts more taken up with our gracious dispositions and gracious actings, than with the person of Christ, the righteousness of Christ, the life of Christ, the death of Christ, the satisfaction of Christ, etc. Dear Christians, was it Christ, or was it your graces, or your gracious evidences, or your gracious dispositions, or your gracious actings, that trod the wine-press of your Father's wrath, that satisfied divine justice, that pacified divine anger, that did bear the curse, that fulfilled the Law, that brought in an everlasting righteousness, that discharged your debts, that procured you pardon, that made your peace, and that brought you into a state of favour and friendship with God? If you answer (as you must) none but Christ, none but Christ; O then, let your thoughts and hearts be firstly, mostly, chief and last taken up with the Lord Jesus. Though inherent grace be a glorious creature, yet 'tis but a creature. Now, when your thoughts and hearts are more taken up with inherent grace, than they are with Christ the spring and fountain of all grace; you make an idol of inherent grace, John 1.16. Col. 2.2, 3. and reflect dishonour upon the Lord Jesus. A Christian may lawfully look upon his graces and his gracious evidences, and a Christian ought to be much in blessing and praising of God for his graces and gracious evidences, and a Christian may safely take comfort in his graces and gracious evidences as they are the fruits of God's eternal and unchangeable love, Isa. 38.3. 2 Cor. 1.12. but still his work should be to live upon Christ, and to lift up Christ above all. 'Tis Christ, 'tis his Mediatory righteousness, 'tis freegrace that a Christian ought to make the chief and only ground and bottom of his hope and comforts. Though good old Jacob did really rejoice in the chariots and wagons that Joseph had sent to bring him down to Egypt, Gen. 45.26, 27, 28. yet he did more abundantly rejoice in this, that Joseph was alive, and that shortly he should see and enjoy Joseph himself. Though a Christian may really rejoice in his graces and gracious evidences, yet above all he ought to rejoice in Christ Jesus, to triumph in Christ Jesus, Gal. 6.14. Phil. 3.3. 2 Cor. 2.14. Col. 3.11. and to take up in Christ Jesus as in his great all. There is a great aptness and proness in many (may I not say in most) gracious Christians, to gaze so much and so long upon their graces, upon their gracious dispositions, upon their gracious evidences, and upon their gracious actings, that too often they neglect the exercise of faith upon Christ, upon the promises; they gaze so much and so long upon what is wrought in them, and done by them, that they forget their grand work, which is immediate closing with Christ, immediate embracing of Christ, immediate relying upon Christ, immediate staying, rolling, and resting upon Christ, for justification and salvation. Now, from these frequent miscarriages of Christians, some have taken the liberty and boldness very hotly and peremptorily to cry down the total use of all characters, signs and marks, the evil of which I have formerly pointed at, and therefore let this touch suffice here. Grace is excellent, yea very excellent, but Christ is infinitely more excellent than all your graces, and therefore above all let Christ still have the pre-eminence. Col. 1.18. Now, though it must be granted that a Christian may lawfully make use of his graces and gracious evidences in order to his support, comfort and encouragement, yet it cannot be denied but that the noblest, purest, highest and most excellent acts and exercises of faith, Cant. 8.5. Job 13.15. Psal. 42.5, 11. Isa. 50.10. Mic. 7.7, 8, 9, 10 John 20.27, 28, 29. are when a Christian closes with Christ, embraces Christ, hangs upon Christ, and stays himself upon Christ, and upon free and precious promises, when sense and feeling fails, when joy and comfort fails, and when his gracious evidences for heaven fails. O now, to turn to Christ, and to turn to the breasts of a promise, and to live upon Christ, and to hang upon a promise, is the way of ways to exalt Christ, and to glorify Christ; there is nothing that pleases Christ, or that delights Christ, or that is such an honour to Christ, as these pure actings of faith are. Signs and evidences, are most sweet, comfortable and pleasing to us; but the pure actings of faith are most eyed and valued by Christ, Cant. 3.1, 2, 3, 4, 5. & 5.3, 4, 5, 6. and therefore many times Christ draws a curtain between him and the soul, and causes a Christians Sun to set at noon, and damps his joy, and mars his peace, and clouds his evidences for heaven, on purpose to train up his children in the pure actings of faith. 'Tis sad when Christians make such immoderate use of their signs, marks, evidences, as damps and hinders those direct and immediate acts of faith, whereby they should receive Christ, and apply Christ, and rest upon Christ alone for pardon, peace, reconciliation, justification and salvation; he that pores so long and so much upon his graces or gracious evidences as shall hinder him from the fresh and frequent actings of faith upon Christ, he casts contempt upon Christ. Christ is an incomparable cordial, he is worthily called the consolation of Israel, Luke 2.25. Though the sight of a Christians graces and gracious evidences be very comfortable and delightful to him, yet the sight of Christ should be ten thousand times more comfortable and delightful to him. O Sirs! what are the favourites to the King himself? What are the servants to the Lord they wait on? what are the friends of the Bridegroom to the Bridegroom himself? what are all the bracelets and jewels to the Husband that gives them? no more are all a Christians graces or gracious evidences to the Lord Jesus himself. A Christian should say to all his gifts, graces, evidences and services, Stand by, make room for Christ, make room for Christ. Oh! none but Christ; Oh! none to Christ. Living by signs is most natural, pleasing and comfortable to us, but living by faith is most honourable to Christ. It is said, the just shall live by his faith, not by his evidences. Hab. 2.4. Heb. 10.38. When men pride themselves in their evidences, and when men secretly lean upon their evidences instead of leaning upon Christ, and when men bottom their hopes and comforts upon their signs and evidences, when they should be bottoming of all their hopes and comforts upon Christ; on a sudden Christ withdraws, and the soul is immediately filled with clouds, fears, doubts, darkness; and all a man's graces and gracious evidences are eclipsed, and he can see nothing, nor feel nothing, but deadness, hardness, barrenness, hypocrisy, unbelief, self-love, guilt, etc. which makes him a Magor-Missabib, a terror to himself. Now the design of Christ in all this is to train up his people in a life of faith, and to teach them in the want of their signs and evidences, Col. 3.3, 4. Col. 1.27. how to live above their signs and evidences upon himself, who is their life, their hope, their heaven, their happiness, their all. Now Christians, the best way to prevent these sore soul-distresses, is in the moderate use of your signs and evidences, to live much in the fresh and frequent actings of faith upon the Lord Jesus, and in so doing, you will neither grieve Christ, nor provoke Christ nor wrong your own precious and immortal souls. But, The sixteenth and last Proposition that I shall lay down is this: When ever any fresh doubts or fears rise in your hearts, upon the stir of corruptions, or debility of graces, or failing in duties, etc. then keep closely to these two Rules; First, have recourse to any of the former characters that are laid down in this Book, and while you find any of them shining in your souls; nay, though it were but one, never pass any judgement against the happiness and blessedness of your spiritual or eternal estates. Secondly, turn yourselves to such particular promises, and plead such particular promises, and rest and stay your trembling souls upon such particular promises, Sirtorius paid what he promised with fair words, Plutarch. But so does not God; men may eat their words, but God won't eat his. and cling fast to such particular promises, that have been comforts, cordials and supports to many weak, doubting, trembling Christians, who have been always afraid to say they had grace, or to say that God was their Father, or Christ their Redeemer, or the Spirit their Sanctifier, or Heaven their Inheritance, etc. I have read of a woman that was much disquieted in conscience, even to despair, endeavouring to be her own executioner, but was comforted by that blessed promise, Isa. 57.15. For thus saith the high and lofty one that inhabiteth eternity, whose name is holy, I dwell in the high and holy place; with him also that is of an humble and contrite spirit, to revive the spirit of the humble, and to revive the heart of the contrite ones. And I have read of another man, who being ready to die; Lord, saith he, I challenge thee by that promise, Mat. 11.28. Come unto me all ye that labour, and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest, and so was comforted. And I have read of some others that were comforted with that promise, ●●rsin. and Beza. John 10.29. None shall pluck them out of my father's hand. And I have read of another, who having deeply wounded his conscience by subscribing to Popish errors, was much comforted by that blessed Scripture, 1 Tim. 1.15. This is a faithful saying, and worthy of all acceptation, that Jesus Christ came into the world to save sinners, of whom I am chief. And I have read of another, Mr. Bilney the Martyr, Psal. 51.17. A broken and a contrite heart, O God, thou thou wilt not despise. This promise was a cordial to Bernard on his dying bed, he died with this promise in his mouth. And Austin found so much sweetness in the same promise, that he caused it to be written on the wall over against his bed where he lay sick and died. who was much comforted under sore distresses by that promise, Isa. 26.3. Thou wilt keep him in perfect peace (or as the Hebrew runs, Shalom, Shalom, peace, peace) whose mind is stayed on thee, because he trusteth in thee. And many have gone to heaven triumphantly by the refreshing and comfort that they have found in these following Scriptures, John 6.37. All that the father giveth me shall come to me, and him that cometh to me, I will in no wise cast out. Isa. 55.1. Ho, every one that thirsteth, come ye to the waters, and he that hath no money, come ye, buy and eat, yea come buy wine and milk without money, and without price. Ver. 3. Incline your ear and come unto me, hear and your soul shall live, and I will make an everlasting Covenant with you, even the sure mercies of David. And so Rev. 22.17. And the Spirit and the Bride say come, and let him that heareth say come, and let him that is athirst come, and whosoever will let him take the water of life freely. So Hos. 14.4. I will heal their back-slidings, and love them freely. So Isa. 43.25. I, even I am he that blotteth out thy transgressions for mine own sake, and will not remember thy sins. Isa. 57.18. I have seen his ways, and will heal him; I will lead him also, and restore comforts unto him, and to his mourners. Ver. 19 I create the fruit of the lips; peace, peace to him that is far off, and to him that is near, saith the Lord, and I will heal him. O, these have been comforting promises, and upholding promises, and refreshing promises, The promises are pabulum fidei, etc. anima fidei, the food of faith, and the soul of faith. to many doubting, drooping souls. 'Tis impossible that such a soul should ever drop into hell, that can cling fast to any of these promises, that can hang upon any of these promises, that can rest and lay the weight of their souls upon Christ in any of these promises: Doubtless reliance upon Christ in these precious promises hath ferried many poor, doubting, trembling souls to heaven. The promise is the golden Cabinet, and Christ is the costly jewel that is laid up in it. The promise is the field, and Christ is the pearl of price that is hid in it; all the promises they point to Christ, they lead to Christ, they hang upon Christ; 2 Cor. 1.20. All the promises of God in him are yea, and in him Amen. In the new Covenant, God neither makes any promises, nor fulfils any promises of salvation, but in Christ and through Christ. Now when any fears, or darkness, or doubts, or disputes arises in your souls about your spiritual estates, Oh! then run to Christ in the promise, and plead the promise, and hang upon the breasts of the promise, and let your souls cleave closely to the promise; for this is the way of ways to have your evidences cleared, your comforts restored, your peace maintained, your graces strengthened, and your assurance raised and confirmed. FINIS. Books Printed and are to be sold by John Hankock, at his Shop over against Gresham College, in Bishopsgate-street, next to the White Lion at Great St. Hellins Gate, and at the first Shop in Popes-head-Alley next to Cornhill, at the Sign of the Three Bibles. ELeven Books lately published by Mr. Thomas Brooks, late Preacher of the Gospel at Margaret's New-Fish-Street. 1 Precious Remedies against Satan's Devices: Or, Salve for Believers and Unbelievers sores; being a companion for those that are in Christ, or out of Christ, that slight or neglect Ordinances, under a pretence of living above them; that are growing in spirituals, or decaying; that are tempted, or deserted; afflicted, or opposed; that have assurance, or want it; on 2 Cor. 2.11. 2 Heaven on Earth: Or, A serious Discourse touching a well grounded Assurance of man's everlasting happiness and blessedness; discovering the nature of assurance, the possibility of attaining it, the Causes, Springs and Degrees of it, with the resolution of several weighty Questions on the 8. of the Romans, 32, 33, 34. verses. 3 The unsearchable Riches of Christ: Or, Meat for strong Men, and Milk for Babes, held forth in two and twenty Sermons, from Ephes. 3.8. Preached on his Lecture-nights at Fish-street-hill. 4 His Apples of Gold for young Men and and Women; And A Crown of Glory for Old men and Women: Or the Happiness of being Good betimes, and the Honour of being an Old Disciple, clearly and fully discovered, and closely and faithfully applied. With the young man's objections answered, and the old man's doubts resolved. 5 A String of Pearls: Or, The best things reserved till last, delivered in a Sermon Preached in London, June 8. 1657. at the Funeral of (that Triumphant Saint) Mrs. Marry Blake, late Wife to his worthy Friend Mr. Nicholas Blake, Merchant. 6 The Mute Christian; with Sovereign Antidotes against the most miserable Exigents: Or, A Christian; with an Olive-leaf in his mouth, when he is under the greatest afflictions, the sharpest and sorest trials and troubles, the saddest and darkest providences and changes: with Answers to divers Questions and Objections that are of great importance; all tending to win and work souls to be still, quiet, calm, and silent, under all changes, that have, or that may pass upon them in ●his world, etc. Lately printed and dedicated to all afflicted, distressed, dissatisfied, disquieted, and discomposed Christians throughout the world. 7 An Ark for all Gods Noah's in a stormy day. Wherein is showed the transcendent excellency of a Believers portion; on Lament. 3.24. 8 The Crown and Glory of Christianity: Or, Holiness the only way to Happiness, discovered in 48. Sermons on Heb. 12.14. 9 The Privy Key of Heaven: Or, A Discourse of Closet-Prayer, Twenty Arguments for it, with the resolution of several Questions, etc. 10. A Heavenly Cordial for all that have had, or have escaped the Plague, etc. 11 Newly published, A Cabinet of choice Jewels; or, a Box of precious Ointment. Being a plain Discovery of what men are worth for Eternity, and how 'tis like to go with them in another World. There is now in the Press a New Treatise written by Mr. Thomas Brooks, called, London's Lamentations: Or, A sober serious discourse concerning the late fiery dispensation, wherein the procuring causes, and the final causes of that dreadful dispensation are laid open, with the duties that are incumbent, both upon those who have been burnt up, and upon those who have escaped those consuming flames; with thirteen supports, to bear up the hearts of such as have been sufferers: Here are many great Objections answered, and many weighty Questions resolved; and variety of Arguments to prove, that a little that the righteous man hath, is better than the riches of the wicked; with several other points of grand importance, all tending to the cooling, quieting, settling, refreshing, upholding and comforting of all that have been sufferers by the late fiery calamity. The Godly Man's Ark: Or, City of Refuge, in the day of his distress, discovered in divers Sermons. The first of which was Preached at the Funeral of Mrs. Elizabeth Moor. Whereunto are annexed Mrs. Moor's Evidences for Heaven, composed and collected by her in the time of her health, for her comfort in the time of sickness. By Edmund Calamy, B. D. and Pastor of the Church at Aldermanburic. A Book of Shortwriting, the most easy, exact, lineal, and speedy method, fitted to the meanest capacity: composed by Master Theophilus Metcalf, Professor of the said Art. Also a Schoolmaster, explaining the Rules of the said Book, with many new additions, very useful. Another Book of Shorthand, by Tho. Cross. A Copy-book of the newest and most useful Hands, with Rules whereby those that can read, may quickly learn to write: To which is added, brief directions for true spelling and Cyphering, and making divers sorts of Ink. There is now in the Press, ready to be published, an excellent new Book of Mr. Ralph venning's, entitled, Sin the Plague of Plagues; or, Sinful ●on the worst ●f Evils. All Printed for, and are to be sold by John Hancock at the first Shop in Popes-Head-Alley in Cornhill, at the sign of the three Bibles, or at his Shop in Bishops-Gate-Street, near great St. Hellins, over against Gresham-Colledge, 1669. FINIS.